COMMENTARY
ON
THE
BOOK OF PSALMS
BY JOHN
CALVIN
TRANSLATED FROM THE ORIGINAL LATIN,
AND COLLATED
WITH THE AUTHOR'S FRENCH
VERSION,
BY THE REV. JAMES
ANDERSON
VOLUME
FIRST
CHRISTIAN CLASSICS
ETHEREAL LIBRARY
GRAND RAPIDS,
MI
http://www.ccel.org
INTRODUCTORY
NOTICE
The Book Of Psalms, viewed merely as a poetical
composition, has very high claims on our attention. Men of the most
refined and cultivated taste have often been attracted to the study
of it from the poetical beauties with which it abounds, and have admitted, in
this respect, the superiority of its claims. The greatest of our English poets
fa1
thus speaks of these sacred songs:"Not in their divine argument alone, but in
the very critical art of composition, they may be easily made appear over all
the kinds of lyric poesy to be incomparable." Another elegant scholar
fa2
speaking on the same subject, says, "In lyric flow and fire, in crushing force
and majesty, that seems still to echo the awful sounds once heard beneath the
thunder clouds of Sinai, the poetry of the ancient Scriptures is the most superb
that ever burned within the breast of man."
But
the intrinsic excellence of this Book gives it still higher claims on our
attention. written under the influence of the Spirit of inspiration, its
subject-matter is worthy of its celestial origin. In general, it contains
details of the national history of the Jewish people, records of particular
portions of the life and experience of individuals, and predictions of future
events. Each of these heads embraces a wide field, and they include
illustrations of every religions truth which it is necessary for us to know,
exemplifications of every devout feeling which it is our duty to cherish, and
examples of every spiritual conflict which it is possible for us to experience.
We meet with many disclosures of the greatness, majesty, and perfections of the
only true God; his government of the world; and his special care over his chosen
people. We meet with the varied exercises of the regenerated soul, and behold it
at one time offering up fervent supplications to the Hearer of prayer, at
another celebrating his perfections and works; at one time giving utterance to
the ardent breathings of love to God, and trust in him, at another struggling
with unbelief and corruption; at one time mourning under the divine chastisement
on account of sin, at another rejoicing in a sense of forgiving mercy,
and enjoying the peace which passeth all understanding. We have presented to us
many wonderful predictions concerning the Messiah, his humiliation, sufferings,
death, resurrection, and ascension to his Fatherright hand; his work in heaven
as the intercessor of his people, and his authority as universal King; the
effusion of the influences of the Holy Spirit, and the conversion of all nations
to the faith of the Gospel. In short, we have unfolded to our view the final
judgment, the gathering of all the righteous to God, and the eternal exclusion
of the wicked from happiness and from
hope.
These and similar topics which are set
forth in the noblest strains of poetry, and in a diction whose magnificence and
sublimity correspond to the importance and grandeur of the sentiments,
constitute the materials of this Book; and while they afford an incontestable
proof that it Is inspired, that it does not consist of the creations of mere
human genius, but is an emanation from heaven, they show that its character and
tendency are altogether different from the character and tendency of the most
admired poetry, which the genius of heathen nations has ever produced. It
ministers to no depraved passion; it fosters no fictitious virtue; it disdains
to offer its delicious incense at the shrine of degrading superstition. It
teaches the most exalted piety, and the purest morality. It tends only to refine
and exalt the nature of man, to elevate the soul to God, and inspire it with the
admiration and love of his character, to curb the passions, purify the
affections, and excite to the cultivation of whatsoever things are true, honest,
just, pure, lovely, and of good report. It has guided the saint in doubt and
difficulty; it has nerved him for self-denial and suffering; it has imparted
support and comfort to him in the hour of death. This Book has accordingly been
highly appreciated by the best of men in every age, and they have labored to
find expressions in which to set forth its excellence. Athanasius styles it, "An
epitome of the whole Scriptures;" Basil, "A compendium of all theology;" Luther,
"A little Bible, and the summary of the Old Testament;" Melancthon, "The most
elegant work extant in the world;" and for Calvin's estimate of its value we
refer to the excellent preface with which he introduces this department of his
labors to the attention of the reader.
Calvin's
Commentary On The Psalms, a new Translation of which is now in course of being
presented to the English reader, is distinguished by many of the excellencies
which have acquired for his Commentaries on other parts of Scripture so great
reputation. In this, as in his other Commentaries, his first and great object is
to ascertain the mind of the Holy Spirit. To ascertain this, he proceeds on the
principle laid down by Melancthon, "that Scripture cannot be understood
theologically, unless it be first understood grammatically." Before his time the
mystical and allegorical method of explaining the Scriptures was very prevalent;
according to which, the interpreter, dwelling very little or not at all upon the
literal sense, sought for hidden and allegorical meanings. But rejecting this
mode of interpretation, which contributed little to the right understanding of
the word of God, and according to which the meaning was made to depend entirely
upon the fancy of the interpreter, Calvin set himself to the investigation of
the grammatical and literal sense, by a careful examination of the Hebrew test,
and by a diligent attention to the drift and intention of the writer's
discourse.
This principle of interpretation
cannot be too highly commended. It should first engage the attention of the
commentator; and when it is neglected, the fundamental principle of sacred
criticism is violated. Calvin was deeply alive to its importance. His only
defect lies in his acting upon it too exclusively. Many of the Psalms, in
addition to the literal meaning, have a prophetical, evangelical, and spiritual
sense. While referring primarily to David and the nation of Israel, they have,
at the same time, a reference to Christ and the New Testament Church, founded on
the fact that the former were typical of the latter. Calvin, indeed, explains
some of the Psalms on this principle. But he applies the principle less
frequently than he might have done, without contravening the canons of sound
hermeneutics. His great aversion to the mystical method of interpretation, and
to the absurd and extravagant lengths to which it was carried by the
Fathers, perhaps made him err on the other extreme of confining his attention
too much to the literal meanings and directing his attention too little to the
prophetical and spiritual character of the Book, and to the reference which it
has to Christ and the Church. In consequence of this, his expositions have less
unction, and contain less of rich evangelical sentiment, than would otherwise
have distinguished them. There are, however, two principles of evangelical truth
which he is at pains to inculcates whenever a fit opportunity presents itself
—the doctrine of justification by faith in Christ without the works of the
Law; and the necessity of personal holiness in order to
salvation.
Another excellence of this commentary
is its practical character. The author does not confine himself to the dry and
lifeless detail of mere grammatical praxis, as if he had been commenting on a
Greek or Roman classic. He turns all his explanations to practical account, and
thus his work exhibits a happy combination of critical and philological remark
with practical exposition.
Here, again, we find
displayed the sound and penetrating judgment for which Calvin has been
universally admired. This is manifest in the judicious selection which he makes
from amongst a variety of interpretations of that which is evidently the true
one, or which appears to be the most probable. Sometimes he pronounces a certain
interpretation to be meagre and unsatisfactory. At other times, he simply states
hit preference of one interpretation to another, when, after careful
examinations it appeared to him to have the balance of arguments in its favor;
without, however, expressing any decided opposition to the other, when the view
which he preferred to it was supported only bit a slight preponderance of
evidence. At other times, he does not decide between different interpretations,
showing that with respect to certain words and expressions he had not come to a
fixed opinion. In all these instances,
fa3 he generally shows much penetration and
judgment. He is, no doubt, sometimes mistaken in his interpretation of
particular passages. But when it is considered that the Scriptures had long been
a sealed book, and that his helps were few and imperfect compared with those
which we now possess, the wonder is, that he should have succeeded so well in
bringing out their true meaning. This was chiefly owing to vigor and acuteness
of intellects combined with a sound and discriminating judgment. These, indeed,
were the mental qualities by which he was peculiarly distinguished. We meet with
no flashes of poetry, no brilliant coruscation of fancy, giving evidence of a
powerful imagination. The eloquent passages which occur are the eloquence of
reason, not the bursts of imagination. But his strength of thought, the vigor
and perspicacity of his intellect, the extraordinary power of his judgment,
command our willing admiration.
Since this
commentary was first published, a great number of Translations of The Psalms, as
well as numerous critical and explanatory works upon them, have made their
appearance, while much new light has been thrown upon many passages from more
extensive philological research, from an attention to the parallelism of Hebrew
poetry,
fa4 and from the fuller information which we
now possess, by the discoveries of modern travelers, of the natural history,
customs, and mannered of the East, to which frequent allusion is made in The
Psalms. But such id the acuteness of judgment, and success in discovering the
mind of the Spirit which distinguish these prelections, that they are not
superseded by any modern Commentary on the same subject:and though it is nearly
three centuries since they were written, there are few separate works on The
Psalms from which the student of the present day, who wishes critically to
examine them, will derive more important
assistance.
Nor is Calvin's impartiality and
integrity as an interpreter less apparent in this Work than his judgment. It
being his first and leading object to ascertain the mind of the Holy Spirit, he
came to the Word of God not for the purpose of finding arguments to establish
some preconceived opinion or theory, but in the humble character of a learner,
and we never find him perverting or twisting a passage to support even those
doctrines which he most deeply cherished. So far from doing this, he not
infrequently gives up a text which has been explained by other commentators as a
proof of some important doctrine, and which he would have viewed in the same
light had it not been for his aversion to put on Scripture a forced
construction, and his determination rigidly to adhere to the principles of fair
and logical interpretation. For example, these words in
<190207>Psalm
2:7,
"Jehovah hath said unto
me,
Thou art my Son; this day have
I begotten thee,"
have been quoted by Augustine and many other eminent
divines, in proof of the eternal generation of the Son of God. But as Paul, in
<441333>Acts
13:33, explains them as receiving their fulfillment in the resurrection of
Christ, Calvin sets them aside from the class of proofs which support the
doctrine of an eternal generation, although he held that
doctrine,
fa5 and considers them as referring merely to
the manifestation afforded of Christ's Sonship by his resurrection from the
dead.
fa6 Again,
<190805>Psalm
8:5, etc.,
"Thou hast made him a
little lower than God, and hast crowned him with glory and honor,"
etc.,
has been often explained as prophetic of the
temporary humiliation and subsequent exaltation of Christ, an opinion which is
supported by reasons far from contemptible; but Calvin, judging from the scope
of the passage, considers it as exclusively referring to man, and that when Paul
quotes it in
<580207>Hebrews
2:7, and applies it to Christ, he applies it to him only by way of
accommodation.
fa7 Again, these words in
<193306>Psalm
33:6,
"By the word of Jehovah
were the heavens established, and all the host of them by the spirit of his
mouth,"
have been viewed by many judicious divines as a proof
of the Trinity, "Jehovah," denoting the Father, "the word of Jehovah," the Son,
and "the spirit of Jehovah's mouth," the Holy Spirit; but while Calvin admits
that the "word of Jehovah" means the Eternal Word, the only begotten Son of God,
yet reasoning from the sense which the phrase, "the spirit of Jehovah's mouth,"
ordinarily bears in Scripture, he argues that it does not there mean the third
person of the adorable Trinity, but simply sermo, speech, although there
were no truths which he held more firmly, and regarded as more essential to the
Christian system, than the doctrines of the Trinity and of the Divinity of the
Holy Spirit.
fa8 "It is very possible," says Tholuck,
"that in following this direction of mind, he may have unnecessarily sacrificed
this and the other proof text; still the principle upon which he proceeded is in
all cases to be approved." This commentary, again, bears evident marks of the
learning of its author. His intimate acquaintance with the Hebrew language, the
knowledge of which is of so much importance to the interpretation of the Old
Testament Scriptures, is everywhere apparent. Father Simon, whom the acrimony of
controversy led to indulge too much in depreciating and abusing those who
differed from him, asserts, indeed, that Calvin was so ignorant of the Hebrew
language, that he knew nothing more than the letters. But we have only to
examine his Commentary on The Psalms, not to speak of his Commentaries on other
parts of the Old Testament, to be convinced that his knowledge of the Hebrew
language was accurate and minute, considering the age in which he lived He
frequently enters into a critical examination of the original text, and
manifests by his philological remarks, brief though they be, an intimate
acquaintance with that language; arriving, in his interpretations, at the same
results to which a more profound exegesis and a more minute attention to
philology have conducted modern critics. Often, when he does not professedly
criticise the Hebrew text, or make his statements in the form of criticisms the
Hebrew scholar will perceive that his remarks are founded upon a close attention
to the strict meaning of the Hebrew words, and that he frequently states their
precise import with much force, felicity, and delicacy of expression. Nor is
proof wanting, from this Commentary, that Calvin had traveled over the whole
field of knowledge, in so far as it had been explored in his day. From ancient
and modern systems of philosophy, from civil and ecclesiastical history, as well
as from the Greek and Roman classical he draws materials, and shows how he could
employ with ease and power, and yet without the least ostentation or pedantry,
his varied acquisitions for the illustration of sacred
truth.
In short this Work is pervaded by earnest
piety and much Christian experience. Its whole tone evinces it to be the fruit
of a soul which felt the deep workings of piety; of a Soul in which the love of
God was extreme, which sought its rest and happiness in him alone, which
recognised his hand and providence in every event, which confided in him in all
circumstances, which looked to him as a Father and a friend for every blessing,
and which, in all its powers, was consecrated with entire devotedness to Christ
and the Gospel. It everywhere, too, bespeaks the man of large religious
experience. Whether the author comments on the plaintive songs in which grief
pours forth its bitterness, or on the triumphant and joyful songs in which the
perfections and providence of God, individual and national deliverances are
celebrated; whether he speaks of David's religious exercises, or of the trials
of his life, or of his inward conflicts, we perceive a mind which had itself
experienced much of what it illustrates. This experience eminently qualified
Calvin to be an interpreter of The Psalms. Placed often in circumstances similar
to those of David, as he graphically describes in his Preface, he was thus
enabled accurately to conceive of David's train of thinking, to see things as it
were with his eyes, to trace the complexion and character of his feelings, and
thus to portray them in so just and natural a manner, that we are almost ready
to think, in perusing the description of them, that they are described by David
himself.
This Work has been translated from the
original Latin, and collated with the French version, which was written by the
author himself. The French edition which has been used, and which was doubtless
the last corrected under the author's eye, was printed in 1563, and is described
on the title-page as "So carefully revised, and so faithfully compared with the
Latin version, that it may be considered a new translation." While the
Translator has made the Latin version his text book, he has throughout carefully
collated it with the French version, by which he has been greatly aided in
giving a clearer and fuller representation of his author's meaning. The French
version having made its appearance after the Latin, and being written in
Calvin's native tongue, in which he might be expected to write with greater ease
than in a dead language, admired though his Latin works are for the purity of
their classic diction, it contains numerous expansions of thought and
expression, by which he removes the occasional obscurities of the Latin version,
which is written in a style more compressed and concise. Sometimes, though not
often, we meet with a complete sentence in the French version which is not to be
found in the Latin; but the cases are of frequent occurrence, in which, by
inserting into the French version a clause at the beginning, the middle, or the
end of a sentence, which does not occur in the Latin, he explains what is
obscure in the latter version, or introduces a new thought or expresses his
meaning with greater clearness and with greater copiousness of language. These
additional clauses the Translator has introduced into the text in their Proper
place, and indicated them by adding the original French in the form of notes at
the foot of the page. He, however, sometimes translates from the French version
where it seems fuller and more perspicuous than the Latin, without indicating
this by foot-notes. In a few instances, where the expression in the two versions
is different, he has given the expression of both, retaining that of the Latin
version in the texts and transferring that of the French to the foot of the
page.
With respect to the principle on which he
has proceeded in the task of translating, it is sufficient simply to state, that
he has endeavored to express the meaning of his author in language as true to
the original as possible, avoiding being too literal on the one hand, and too
loose on the other; as this, in his apprehension, is the method by which a
translator can best succeed in faithfully representing to the reader the sense
as well as the style and manner of his
author.
Calvin's version of the Sacred Text has
been given in preference to that of our English Bible, as this was necessary to
the clear understanding of his illustrations. The two versions, however, nearly
resemble each other:often our English version is an accurate translation of
Calvin's, at other times the marginal readings which are in some of our English
Bibles. He, however, not infrequently differs from both; and in some instances,
though not in all, where he does differ, his translation appears to be superior
in accuracy, and places the sentiment of the original in a clearer light, and
with greater effect than is done in our English version. The Scriptural
quotations which he makes have been given in the words of our English Bible,
except in those cases in which his argument required his own translation of the
passage to be retained.
This Work was translated
into English some years after its first appearance by Arthur Golding, whose
translation was published at London in 1571. Arthur Golding, who was of a
gentleman's family and a native of London, was one of the most distinguished
translators of the Roman classics in the age of Queen Elizabeth, when the
translation of these valuable works of antiquity into the English language
employed every pen. He translated Justin's History, Caesar's Commentaries,
Ovid's Metamorphoses, Seneca's Benefits, and other classic authors; as well as
various modern French and Latin works, among which are a number of Calvin's
writings, besides The Psalms. His only original work appears to have been, "A
Discourse upon the Earthquake that happened through the Realme of Englande, and
other places of Christendom, the sixt of Aprill 1580," published in 16mo. "It is
to be regretted," says Warton, "that he gave so much of his time to
translation."
fa9 Golding was no doubt a good classical
scholar, and well acquainted with the style of Calvin; but as his translation
was executed nearly three hundred years ago, it every where abounds with words
and phrases which are become antiquated and obsolete, from the great change
which the English language has undergone since that period. Being on this
account frequently very obscure, often unintelligible, it fails in giving a just
representation to an English reader of the present day of Calvin's work, and
leads him to form a less favorable estimate of its value than is due to its high
merits. Besides, Golding does not appear to have seen the French version, which
affords to a translator so much assistance in the faithful representation of
Calvin's meaning.
With respect to the Notes with
which this Translation is accompanied, they are intended to enable the reader
clearly to understand the meaning of such of Calvin's philological remarks and
criticisms as are obscure, from the brevity with which they are stated; or to
exhibit Calvin's merits as a commentator, by showing how frequently his
interpretations are adopted and supported by the most eminent Biblical critics,
or to illustrate the Sacred Text, by showing the precise meaning of the Hebrew
words, or by explaining some portion of natural history, or some eastern custom
or manner to which there is an allusion. The ancient versions afford important
assistance in the explanation of difficult passages, and their rendering of
particular texts has been occasionally given when this contributes to elucidate
them, or to throw light on Calvin's observations. Of these versions the
Septuagint, the Vulgate, and Jerome's, are the only ones which he appears to
have consulted, and to the first he frequently
refers.
As the Translations of The Calvin
Society are intended for the whole Christian community, it has been deemed out
of place to enter upon theological questions on which difference of opinion
exists among the various denominations of the Christian community. In making
these Notes, the Editor has often compared Calvin's translation of the Sacred
Text with the original Hebrew, and with the Septuagint, Vulgate, and Jerome's
versions. He has also consulted a considerable number of critical works on The
Psalms by some of the most eminent Biblical scholars who have written on this
book, either as a separate undertaking, or in common with the other books of
Scripture. Of the rich stores of erudition thus supplied he has freely made use;
as in the course of the work he has carefully marked his authorities, as this
will give greater weight to his statements. Many of the authors who are quoted
were men of distinguished learning, judgment, and piety, possessed a profound
acquaintance with the Hebrew language, and had devoted years of laborious study
to the investigation of the meaning of this sacred book; and it is wonderful to
find how closely the results of Calvin's investigations, even on the most
difficult passages harmonise with the results to which modern critics guided by
the principles of accurate hermeneutics, have arrived. This has often forced
itself upon the attention of the Editor, and the more he has compared Calvin's
criticisms and interpretations with the labors of these learned men, the higher
has been raised his admiration of the ingenuity, penetration, learning, and
critical acumen of this great commentator. Not a few, indeed, of the most
beautiful interpretations which are to be found in Commentaries and critical
works were first given forth by Calvin, although the source in which they
originated has been forgotten. It may here be stated that the examination of the
philology of the Sacred Text, and of critical works on the subject, has led the
Editor to observe how closely Calvin often adheres in his interpretations to the
import of the original Hebrew, and enabled him in many cases in the course of
the translation to represent the meaning of his author more correctly than he
could otherwise have done as well as to avoid mistakes into which Golding has
sometimes fallen, evidently from his not being acquainted with the philology of
the passage, or the criticism which Calvin briefly states or refers took and
which it is difficult for the reader clearly to understand, unless he find it
more fully stated in some other critical
work.
The Editor has to express his obligations
to two of his friends who materially aided in the preparation of the latter part
of this volume,—the late Revelation Alexander Duncan, A.M., formerly of
Dundee, and the Revelation James M'lean, whose able translation of several of
the Psalms left him little more to do than the labor of revision and annotation.
The Editor and the Society have also been much indebted to the Revelation Thomas
M'crie, Professor of Divinity, Edinburgh, not only in general for the benefit of
his experience, but also for the trouble he has taken in examining the sheets of
this Volume while passing through the press, and for many important suggestions.
The Editor has great satisfaction in thus publicly acknowledging his
obligations.
A facsimile of the
Title-Page of the French version which we have used, and of the title-page of
Arthur Golding's translation, together with his Dedication, are prefixed to this
Volume.
It remains only to be added, that the
last Volume will contain copious Indices of the principal matters contained in
the Commentary and Notes, of the passages of Scripture more or less illustrated,
and of the Hebrew words referred to or
explained.
J.
A.
Edinburgh, June
1845.
[IT has been thought proper to
preserve The Dedication which is prefixed to the English Translation by Arthur
Golding in the original orthography. Besides affording a vivid idea of the style
and phraseology of this Translator, the slightest inspection of this singular
composition will demonstrate how very unsuitable the publication of such a
version would have been for general use in these
times.
The only liberty which has been taken in
reprinting this Dedication, is in reference to the supplying of modern
punctuation, and the division of it into paragraphs; but in other respects it is
given verbatim et literatim. There is only one paragraph in the
whole of Golding's Dedication. It is dated 20th October
1571.
Golding's version of Calvin's Commentary
On The Psalms is throughout equally obscure and quaint; and it may justly be
characterised as being wholly unfit for the perusal of all classes of readers of
the present day, who do not happen to be minutely acquainted with the language
and idiom of the sixteenth century its most uncouth and repulsive
form.]
THE EPISTLE
DEDICATORY
[PREFIXED TO THE ORIGINAL
TRANSLAT10N, 1571.]
To The Right
Honorably And Verie Good
Lord,
EDWARD DE VERE,
ERLE OF OXINFORD,
Lord Great Chamberlain Of
England, Vicount Bulbecke, Etc.
Fa10
ARTHUR
GOLDING
Wisheth Increace Of Godly
Knowldge,
With Health, Honour, And
Prosperitie.
IT may, peraduenture, be thought in respect of the
matter wherof this woork treateth, that it ought rather to haue bin dedicated to
som of my very good Lords, the Lords Spirituall, or to some of the Clergie, all
to whom such things seeme to perteine more peculiarly, by reason of theyr charge
and calling. Which opinions as I purpose not to encounter, but rather most
willingly submit my selfe and my doings to the iudgement and reformation of such
reuerend Fathers and learned men, as God hath put ill trust with the care of his
flock, and the charge of his Church within this Realms euen so forasmuch as the
things which the Holy Ghost vttereth in the Sacred Scriptures belong
indifferently unto all men, of what estate, degrees sex, age, or calling, so
euer they be, without exception:I haue at this time set all other respects and
considerations aside, and only had an eye to my dutie towards your
Lordship.
And bicause my continuall troubles and
sutes in the Lawe (as yit vnended after more than three yeeres trauel) haue
bereft mee of the greatest part of my timer, so as I could not dispatch things
with such expedition as otherwise I might haue done; my care and indeuer hath
bin too recompence mine ouerlong silence with goodnes of matter, that might
redound to the furtherance of our Christen common weale, and also be meete for
your Lordship too looke vpon. But you, perchaunce, according too the noble
courage and disposition of your yeeres, doo looke I should presente vntoo you
some Historie of the Conquestes and affaires of mightie Princes, some treatise
of the government of common weales, some description of the platte of the whole
Earth, or some discourse of chiualrie and feates of Armes. These things are, in
deede, meete studies for a noble manne, and in their season right necessary for
the common welth; but as nowe I present vntoo your honor muche greater things
that is, to wit, true Religyon, true Godlynesse, true Vertue, wythout the whych,
neyther force, policie, nor freend ship, are of any value, neyther can any
common weale any Cities any householde, or any company, bee wel gouerned, or
haue any stable and long continuance. These be the things wherin your Lordship
may do God, your Prince, and your Cuntrie, best seruice, and which do giue true
nobilitie, or rather are the very nobilitie it
self.
The greater that you are of birth and
calling, the more doo these things belong vnto you. The greater gifts of Nature,
the mo graces of mind, the mo worldly benefites that God hath bestowed vppon
you, the more are you bound to be thankful vnto him. But thankful you cannot bee
without the true knoweledge of him, neyther can you know him rightly but by his
woord. For his sword is the lanterne of your feete, and the light of your
steppes. Whosoeuer walked without it, walketh but in darkenesse, though he were
otherwise as sharpe sighted as Linceus or Argus, and had all the
sciences artes, conning, eloquence, and wisedome of the worlde. No sound and
substantiall truthe is too bee founde any where els saue onely there. And,
therfore, the Holy Ghost, by the mouth of Moyses, willeth you that the lawe of
God (that is to say, his word and doctrine) shoulde not departe from your mouth,
but that you should bynde it about your wrists, imbroyder it vpon your garments
ingraue it vpon the postes of your house, and write it in the tables of your
hart. And Dauid, speaking by the same spirite, exhorteth you by his owne example
to set your whole delight in it, too occupy your selfe in it day and night, too
lay it vp in your hart, too set more store by it than by riches, to be mindeful
of it, to make it your counsayler, to stick too it, too talke of it afore Kings
and greate men, to loue it, too make your songs of it, to remember it night and
day, too count it sweeter than Hony, too take it as an heritage, and too make it
the ioy of your hart. Neyther is it without cause that GOD calleth so ofte vppon
Magistrates and noble men by name, that they should be diligent in his worde.
For looke how muche the greater burthen and charge lyeth vpon their shoulders
and the greater accounte they haue to make afore him; so muche the greater
wisedome and knoweledge haue they need of, which are not to be atteyned
elsewhere than in his lawe. I beseeche your Lordship consider how God hath
placed you vpon a high stage in the eyes of all men, as a guide, patterne,
insample, and leader vnto others if your vertues be vncounterfayted, if your
religion be sound and pure, if your doings be according to true godliness you
shalbe a stay to your cuntrie, a comforte too good men, a bridle too euil men, a
ioy too your freends, a corzie too your enemies, and an increace of honor to
your owne house. But if you should become eyther a counterfayt Protestant, or a
peruerse Papist, or a colde and carelesse newter, (which God forbid,) the harme
could not be expressed which you should do to your natiue Cuntrie. For (as
Cicero, no lesse truely than wisely affirmeth, and as the sorrowfull
dooings of our Present dayes do too certeinly auouch) greate men hurt not the
common weale so much by beeing euil in respect of themselues, as by drawing
others vnto euil by their euil example. I assure your Lordshippe I write not
these things as though I suspected you to be digressed from that soundnes and
sinceritie wherein you were continually trayned and traded vnder that vigilant
Vlisses of our common welth, sometyme your Lordship's carefull Chyron
or Phoenix, and nowe your faithful Patroclus, or as though I
mistrusted your Lordship to be degenerated from the excellent towardnes, which
by foreward proof hath giuen glad foretokens, and (I trust also) luckye hansels
of an honorable age too ensue; but bycause the loue that I owe to God and his
religion, the care that I haue of the church and my natiue cuntrie, the dutie
wherin Nature hath bound mee to your Lordship, and (which is an occasion too
make all good and honest men look about them) the perilousnes of this present
time, wherin all meanes possible are practiced to ouerthrowe Christe's kingdom
and to abolishe all faithfullnes from among men, make mee to feare and forecast,
not so much what is true, as what may bee noysome and hurtful; and, therfore, I
seek rather too profite by wholesome admonition, than to delight by pleasant
speeches. These be no dayes of daliance; for Sathan, the workmaster of all
mischeef, being greued that his own king dome draweth to an end, not onely goeth
about like a roring Lyon too deuoure folke by open force, but also like a
slie Serpent setteth snares and pitfalles innumerable, to intrap men and bring
them to destruction by policie laying wayt for all men, but specially for such
as are of high estate, as who alwayes carye greatest nombers with them which
waye so euer they incline. Hee turneth himselfe intoo mo shapes than euer did
Proteus:and suche as himselfe is, suche are his ministers. First and
foremost the obstinate and stubborneharted Papistes, the sworne enemies
of God, the pestilent poyson of mankinde, and the very welsprings of all error,
hipocrisie, and vngraciousnes, (who, while they beare sway, bee more cruel than
Beares, Wolues, and Tigres; and when they bee kept vnder, more deceitfull than
Cerastes and Crocodyles; and at all times more mischeuous than the
Diuel himselfe,) labor with tooth and nayle too winde their owne trash into
credit with all men, and to bring the heauenly doctrine of the Gospel in
hatred.
Ageine, the Atheistes, which say
in their hartes there is no God; and the Epicures, which depriue God of
his prouidence in gouerning the world, as though hee eyther vnderstoode not what
is doone vppon Earth, or els cared not for mennes affaires:seeke they not by all
meanes possible too weede all Religion, all feare of God, all remorse of
conscience out of mennes harts? Out of these rootes spring other impes, no lesse
perniciouse than the stockes of whiche they come, men of all Religions,
Shippemen that canne sayle with all wethers, Carpenters that can hewe with bothe
handes, Laddes that canne holde with the Hare and hunt with the Hounde, and (as
the Scripture termeth them) time-seruers and menpleasers. Of which torte be the
picthank Preests of Hammon, who, with the venemouse blaste of their
filthie flattery, corrupt the wel instructed mindes of our Alexranders,
(that is to say, of our noble men,) by bearing them in hand, that they
bee the sonnes of Iupiter, add making them beleeue themselues too bee
Gods, yea, sometimes before they be scarce men. These, after the maner of
Panthers and Mermaides, astonne the senses with a deadly sweetnes,
and work destruction by delighting. Moreouer, to the further withdrawing of
men's minds from the estimation of the sound Religion, it falleth out that euen
in the outward face of the Church there be many Hipocrites, many looce liuers,
many Sectaries, and many wranglers, whiche pretending the countenance of
Chryste's flock, but beeing in deede the Deuil's hirelings, confessing GOD with
their mouth, but denying him in their works, cause his holy, pure, and reuerend
doctrine to bee slaundered and ill-spoken of among the Gentiles, (that
is, too wit, among the Papist and worldlings,) and so alienate men from
Christ.
The ignorant sort also deeming things
vntowardly by the outward shew, charge the Gospell with the faultes of men,
which it reprooueth and bringeth too lyght, as who would Say, that hee whiche
bewrayeth a Murtherer, or rebuketh an Adulterer, were too bee counted an
offender in the same caces, bicause hee discouereth their wickednesse, too the
intent too haue it punished or redressed. And these are stumbling-blocks common
to all sortes of men; but more peculiar to great menne are those that I spake of
in the third place, and also these ensuing, namely, noblenesse of birth, renowne
of Aunceters, fauor of their Prince, freendship of their peeres, awe of their
inferiours, great alyances, greate retinewes depending vpon them, libertie aboue
the common rate, welth, honor, riches, ease, sumptuouse fare, costly apparel,
gorgeouse buildings, attendaunce of seruants, and suche other like, whiche as
they bee the singuler good giftes and benefites of God bestowed vpon them for
their comfort, to the end they should the more loue him and imbrace his
truthe:so Sathan abusing the infirmitie and corruption of man's nature, dooth in
many menne wrest them all too a contrary ende, namely, too the proude contempt
and impugning, or at leastwise to the carelesse neglecting of God's true
Religion and seruice.
As for the fraylnesse of
youth it self, the open manaces and priuie practizes of Antichrist, the
common hatred and disdeine of the Worlde ageinst the sincere worshippers of God,
the hardnesse and aduersities which they endure in this life, and infinite other
by matters whiche are no small hinderances too the proceeding of the Gospel, I
wil not stand too intreat of them. For doubtlesse, although Antichrist
were abolished although Sathan were a sleepe, although the world were at one
with vs. although wicked counsel were vtterly put too silence, although no euil
example were giuen vs. although no outwarde stumbling-blocke were cast in our
waye; yit haue wee one thing in our selues and of our selues, (euen originall
sinne, concupiscence, or lust,) which neuer ceaseth too egge vs and allure vs
from God, and too staine vs with all kinde of vnclennes, according as Sainct
Iames sayth:Every man is tempted of his owne lust. This is the breth of the
venemouse Cockatrice which hath infected the whole offspring of Adam.
This is the sting of that olde Serpent whose wounds neither Chyron,
Aesculupius, nor Apollo, can heale, no, nor any wight in Heauen or
Earth, saue onely God. This is the bitter fountaine Exampeus, which with
his brackishnesse marreth the sweete Riuer Hipanis, that is to
say, the flowing streame of all God's graces, benefited and gifts in
vs.
Good cause haue we therfore to bee
forewarned and continually admonished to beware of the mischeef that is armed
with so many weapons and policies to anoy:specially considering how the
operation therof is to slea both bodie and soule, and to drown them togither in
to endles damnation. For this I dare be bolde to say vpon the warrant of assured
truthe, that whosoeuer is but lightly blasted with the poyson of Papistrie, is
the vnapter to all the duties of true vertue and godlines, like as a Cripple or
lame man is the vnmeeter and vnabler for the affaires of this life. But as for
him that is throughly saped in it, and hathe digested it into his bowels, and
hath setled the roots of it in the bottome of his hart; depending vpon the
Antichrist of Rome as vpon the mouth of God, He can neyther be the
faithful seruant of God, nor a hartie Subiect too his Prince, nor a good and
sound member of the common welth, vntill hee haue done as the Snake dooth when
he commeth to engender with the Lamprey.
For the
better manifestation of all the which things I besech your good Lordship to
peruse this present books, which doubtlesse, for the exceellency therof, not
onely deserueth more singular commendation than man's wit is able to yeeld, but
also is worthy too be had continually in all mennes hands, or rather too bee
printed in their hartes. For if you haue an eye too the Authors, it was written
by Prophets, Preestes, and Kinges, inspired with the Holye Ghost, the fountaine
of an vnderstanding, wysedom, and truth, and auouched onto vs by Christie the
Sonne of the euellasting God. Or if you haue an eye to the matter, it conteineth
a treatise of the Doctrine of lyfe and euerlasting Saluation, the particulars
wherof are as many as are the points of true Religion and holinesse to Godward,
or the points of faithfull meening and honest dealing too manward. And these
things are common to it with the residue of holy
Scripture.
The thing that is peculiar to it, is
the maner of the handling of the matters wherof it treateth. For whereas other
partes of holy writ (whither they be historicall, morall, iudiciall,
ceremoniall, or propheticall) do commonly set down their treatises in open and
plaine declarations; this parte consisting of them all, wrappeth vp things in
types and figures, describing them finder borowed personages, and oftentimes
winding in matters by preuention, speaking of thinges too come as if they were
past or present, and of things past as if they were in dooing, and euery man is
made a bewrayer of the secretes of his owne hart. And forasmuche as it
consisteth cheefly of prayer and thanksgiving, or (which comprehendeth them
bothe) of inuocation, whiche is a communication with God, and requireth rather
an earnest and deuout lifting vp of the minde, than a loud or curious vtterance
of the voice:there be many vnperfect sentences, many broken speeches, and many
displaced words, according as the voice of the partie that prayed was eyther
preuented with the swiftnesse of his thoughtes, or interrupted with vehemency of
ioy or greef, or forced to surcease through infirmities that hee might recouer
newe strength and cheerfulnesse, by interminding God's former promises and
benefites. Notwithstanding, the obscuritie of those places is not so great but
that it may be easely ouercome, by such as, when they pray, doo vtterly
sequester their mindes from all earthly imaginations and fleshly conceits, and
after a sort forsaking their bodies for the time, do mount vppe aboue the world
by faith, and present themselues before the heauenly throne of grace, to seek
the vnspeakable and inestimable comfort of their
soules.
Suche are the conteints, and suche is
the maner or disposition of the ground-worke of this booke, that is to say, of
the Psalmes themselues. Whervnto (for the better vnderstanding of them) heere is
added an exposition or Commentarie written in Latin by that learned Clerk and
faithful minister of Chryst in the church of Geneua, Master Iohn
Caluin, whose worthy praise and commendation, his owne manifolde woorks
moste peinfully, sincerely, and soundly set foorth too the greate furtherance
and profite of the whole Christen common weale, doo better declare than my pen
can vtter or my wit deuice. And among the reste of them, it is thoughte of most
learned men, that next vntoo his Institutions, this presente volume beareth the
Bel, bothe for varietie of matter, substantialnes of doctrine, depth of
iudgement, and perfectnesse of penning. For it is not puffed vp with vaine sound
of emptie woords, nor with Rhetorical inlarging of painted sentences, but it is
stuffed with piththy and grounded matter, such as plainly sheweth him too haue
bin a man indued with the Spirite of God, and also well practized and tryed in
the affaires and troubles of this world.
What is
to bee thought of the translation of it, that I remitte to your Lordship's
fauourable acceptation, vnder whose Antesigne it is my desire that it may fight
in the defense and maintenance of the true religion ageinst Antichrist and his
wicked members. Onely thus muche I may safely say of it, that in all pointes (to
the vttermoste of my power, and according to the abilitie which God hath giuen
me to edifie withall) I haue sincerely performed the dutie of a faithfull
Interpreter, rather indeuering too lay foorth things plainlye (yea, and
sometimes also homely and grossely) too the vnderstanding of many, than too
indyte things curyously too the pleasing of a fewe. For in this and suche other
workes, the rude and ignorant haue more interest than the learned and skillful.
If any thing be amisse, (as I dare not presume too vpholde that nothing hath
escaped mee in so great a woorke,) my hartie desire is, that the same may be
amended by such as are of sound iudgement and knowledge in God's woorde, so as
no inconuenience may ensue of it too the churche of Christ. And look what I
request in the behalfe of this present booke, the same do I request for all
other books whiche I haue or (by God's grace and permission) shall heerafter put
foorth for the edifying of Chrystes flock:for I knowe how suche things are the
woork of God and not of man.
What remayneth
then, but that your Lordship, framing your selfe according to the rule of God's
most holy word, should hie you apace to the atteinment of the true honor and
immortall glory, by subduing sinne, the world, and the Deuil, the Hectors
that cannot bee vanquished but by a christen Achilles; and by your
good guyding bring many vnto Christ, that in the end you may receiue the rewarde
of true and perfect blissednesse, euen the everlasting salvation of the soule,
whiche is the faire Helen for whose safetie it behooueth all good men too
endure, not tenne yeeres warre, but continuall warre all their life long. To the
furtherance wherof, God hath by householde alyance lincked vnto your Lordship a
long experienced Nestor, whose counsaile and footsteps if you folowe, no
doubte but you shalbee bothe happie in your selfe, and singularly profitable to
your common welth; and moreouer, God shall blisse you with plentiful and godly
issue by your vertuous and deerbeloued Spouse, to continew the honor and
renoavne of your noble house after the happy knitting vp of bothe your yeeres,
which I pray God may bee many in vnseperable loue, like the loue of
Ceix and Alcyonee, to the glory of God, and the contentation of
bothe your desires.
Written at London, the
20:of
October
1571.
Your good Lordship's moste humlble
to commaund, Arthur Goldling.
THE AUTHOR'S
PREFACE
JOHN
CALVIN
TO THE GODLY AND INGENUOUS READERS,
GREETING.
IF the reading of these my Commentaries confer as
much benefit on the Church of God as I myself have reaped advantage from the
composition of them, I shall have no reason to regret that I have undertaken
this work. Having expounded here, in our small school, the Book of Psalms, about
three years ago, I thought that I had by this means sufficiently discharged my
duty, and had resolved not to publish to the world what I had familiarly taught
those of my own household. And, in fact, before I had undertaken to expound this
book in my lectures, at the request of my brethren, I said what was true, that I
had kept away from this subject, because that most faithful teacher of the
Church of God, Martin Bucer, had labored in this field with such singular
learning, diligence, fidelity, and success, that at least there was not so great
need that I should put my hand to the work. And had the Commentaries of
Wolphangus Musculus at that time been published, I would not have omitted to do
them justice, by mentioning them in the same way, since he too, in the judgment
of good men, has earned no small praise by his diligence and industry in this
walk. I had not yet come to the end of the book, when, lo! I am urged by renewed
solicitations not to suffer my lectures, which certain persons had carefully,
faithfully, and not without great labor, taken down, to be lost to the world. My
purpose still remained unaltered; only I promised what for a long time I had
been thinking of, to write something on the subject in the French language, that
my countrymen might not be without the means of being enabled to understand so
useful a book when perusing it. Whilst I am thinking of making this attempt,
suddenly, and contrary to my first design, it occurred to me, by what impulse I
know not, to compose in Latin, only as it were in the way of trial, an
exposition of one Psalm. When I found that my success corresponded to my desire
far beyond what I had ventured to anticipate, I was encouraged, and accordingly
began to make the same attempt in a few other Psalms. On perceiving this, my
intimate friends, as if in this way they held me bound, urged me with the
greater confidence not to desist from my course. One reason which made me comply
with their solicitations, and which also had from the commencement induced me to
make this first attempt, was an apprehension that at some future period that had
been taken down from my lectures, might be published to the world contrary to my
wishes or at least without my knowledge. I can truly say, that I was drawn to
execute this work rather from such an apprehension, than led to it from my own
free will. At the same time, as I continued to prosecute the work, I began to
perceive more distinctly that this was by no means a superfluous undertaking,
and I have also felt from my own individual experience, that to readers who are
not so exercised, I would furnish important assistance in understanding The
Psalms. The wearied and resplendid riches which are contained it this treasury
it is no easy matter to express in words; so much so, that I well know that
whatever I shall be able to say will be far from approaching the excellence of
the subject. But as it is better to give to my readers some taste, however
small, of the wonderful advantages they will derive from the study of this book,
than to be entirely silent on the point, I may be permitted briefly to advert to
a matter, the greatness of which does not admit of being fully unfolded. I have
been accustomed to call this book, I think not inappropriately, "An Anatomy of
all the Parts of the Soul;" for there is not an emotion of which any one can be
conscious that is not here represented as in a mirror. Or rather, the Holy
Spirit has here drawn to the life all the griefs, sorrows, fears, doubts, hopes,
cares, perplexities, in short, all the distracting emotions with which the minds
of men are wont to be agitated. The other parts of Scripture contain the
commandments which God enjoined his servants to announce to us. But here the
prophets themselves, seeing they are exhibited to us as speaking to God, and
laying open all their inmost thoughts and affections, call, or rather draw, each
of us to the examination of himself in particulars in order that none of the
many infirmities to which we are subject, and of the many vices with which we
abound, may remain concealed. It is certainly a rare and singular advantage,
when all lurking places are discovered, and the heart is brought into the light,
purged from that most baneful infection, hypocrisy. In short, as calling upon
God is one of the principal means of securing our safety, and as a better and
more unerring rule for guiding us in this exercise cannot be found elsewhere
than in The Psalms, it follows, that in proportion to the proficiency which a
man shall have attained in understanding them, nill be his knowledge of the most
important part of celestial doctrine. Genuine and earnest prayer proceeds first
from a sense of our need, and next, from faith in the promises of God. It is by
perusing these inspired compositions, that men will be most effectually awakened
to a sense of their maladies, and, at the same time, instructed in seeking
remedies for their cure. In a word, whatever may serve to encourage us when we
are about to pray to God, is taught us in this book. And not only are the
promises of God presented to us in it, but oftentimes there is exhibited to us
one standing, as it were, amidst the invitations of God on the one hand, and the
impediments of the flesh on the other, girding and preparing himself for
prayer:thus teaching us, if at any time we are agitated with a variety of
doubts, to resist and fight against them, until the soul, freed and disentangled
from all these impediments, rise up to God; and not only so, but even when in
the midst of doubts, fears, and apprehensions, let us put forth our efforts in
prayer, until we experience some consolation which may calm and bring
contentment to our minds.
fa11 Although distrust may shut the gate
against our prayers, yet we must not allow ourselves to give way, whenever our
hearts waver or are agitated with inquietude, but must persevere until faith
finally come forth victorious from these conflicts. In many places we may
perceive the exercise of the servants of God in prayer so fluctuating, that they
are almost overwhelmed by the alternate hope of success and apprehension of
failure, and gain the prize only by strenuous exertions. We see on the one hand,
the flesh manifesting its infirmity; and on the other, faith putting forth its
power; and if it is not so valiant and courageous as might be desired, it is at
least prepared to fight until by degrees it acquire perfect strength. But as
those things which serve to teach us the true method of praying aright will be
found scattered through the whole of this Commentary, I will not now stop to
treat of topics which it will be necessary afterwards to repeat, nor detain my
readers from proceeding to the work itself. Only it appeared to me to be
requisite to show in passing, that this book makes known to us this privilege,
which is desirable above all others — that not only is there opened up to
us familiar access to God, but also that we have permission and freedom granted
us to lay open before him our infirmities which we would be ashamed to confess
before men. Besides there is also here prescribed to us an infallible rule for
directing us with respect to the right manner of offering to God the sacrifice
of praise, which he declares to be most precious in his sight, and of the
sweetest odour. There is no other book in which there is to be found more
express and magnificent commendations, both of the unparalleled liberality of
God towards his Church, and of all his works; there is no other book in which
there is recorded so many deliverances nor one in which the evidences and
experiences of the fatherly providence and solicitude which God exercises
towards us are celebrated with such splendor of diction, and yet with the
strictest adherence to truth, in short, there is no other book in which we are
more perfectly taught the right manner of praising God, or in which we are more
powerfully stirred up to the performance of this religious exercise. Moreover
although The Psalms are replete with all the precepts which serve to frame our
life to every part of holiness, piety, and righteousness, yet they will
principally teach and train us to bear the cross; and the bearing of the cross
is a genuine proof of our obedience, since by doing this, we renounce the
guidance of our own affections and submit ourselves entirely to God, leaving him
to govern us, and to dispose of our life according to his will, so that the
afflictions which are the bitterest and most severe to our nature, become sweet
to us, because they proceed from him. In one word, not only will we here find
general commendations of the goodness of God, which may teach men to repose
themselves in him alone, and to seek all their happiness solely in him; and
which are intended to teach true believers with their whole hearts confidently
to look to him for help in all their necessities; but we will also find that the
free remission of sins, which alone reconciles God towards us and procures for
us settled peace with him,
fa12 is so set forth and magnified, as that
here there is nothing wanting which relates to the knowledge of eternal
salvation.
Now, if my readers derive any fruit
and advantage from the labor which I have bestowed in writing these
Commentaries, I would have them to understand that the small measure of
experience which I have had by the conflicts with which the Lord has exercised
me, has in no ordinary degree assisted me, not only in applying to present use
whatever instruction could be gathered from these divine compositions, but also
in more easily comprehending the design of each of the writers. And as David
holds the principal place among them, it has greatly aided me in understanding
more fully the complaints made by him of the internal afflictions which the
Church had to sustain through those who gave themselves out to be her members,
that I had suffered the same or similar things from the domestic enemies of the
Church. For although I follow David at a great distance, and come far short of
equaling him; or rather, although in aspiring slowly and with great difficulty
to attain to the many virtues in which he excelled, I still feel myself
tarnished with the contrary vices; yet if I have any things in common with him,
I have no hesitation in comparing myself with him. In reading the instances of
his faith, patience, fervor, zeal, and integrity, it has, as it ought, drawn
from me unnumbered groans and sighs, that I am so far from approaching them; but
it has, notwithstanding, been of very great advantage to me to behold in him as
in a mirror, both the commencement of my calling, and the continued course of my
function; so that I know the more assuredly, that whatever that most illustrious
king and prophet suffered, was exhibited to me by God as an example for
imitation. My conditions no doubt, is much inferior to his, and it is
unnecessary for me to stay to show this. But as he was taken from the sheepfold,
and elevated to the rank of supreme authority; so God having taken me from my
originally obscure and humble condition, has reckoned me worthy of being
invested with the honorable office of a preacher and minister of the gospel.
When I was as yet a very little boy, my father had destined me for the study of
theology. But afterwards when he considered that the legal profession commonly
raised those who followed it to wealth this prospect induced him suddenly to
change his purpose. Thus it came to pass, that I was withdrawn from the study of
philosophy, and was put to the study of law. To this pursuit I endeavored
faithfully to apply myself in obedience to the will of my father; but God, by
the secret guidance of his providence, at length gave a different direction to
my course. And first, since I was too obstinately devoted to the superstitions
of Popery to be easily extricated from so profound an abyss of mire, God by a
sudden conversion subdued and brought my mind to a teachable frame, which was
more hardened in such matters than might have been expected from one at my early
period of life Having thus received some taste and knowledge of true godliness I
was immediately inflamed with so intense a desire to make progress therein, that
although I did not altogether leave off other studies, I yet pursued them with
less ardor. I was quite surprised to find that before a year had elapsed, all
who had any desire after purer doctrine were continually coming to me to learn,
although I myself was as yet but a mere novice and tyro. Being of a disposition
somewhat unpolished and bashful, which led me always to love the shade and
retirement, I then began to seek some secluded corner where I might be withdrawn
from the public view; but so far from being able to accomplish the object of my
be desire, all my retreats were like public schools. In short, whilst my one
great object was to live in seclusion without being known, God so led me about
through different turnings and changes, that he never permitted me to rest in
any place, until, in spite of my natural disposition, he brought me forth to
public notice. Leaving my native country, France, I in fact retired into
Germany, expressly for the purpose of being able there to enjoy in some obscure
corner the repose which I had always desired, and which had been so long denied
me. But lo! whilst I lay hidden at Basle, and known only to a few people, many
faithful and holy persons were burnt alive in France; and the report of these
burnings having reached foreign nations, they excited the strongest
disapprobation among a great part of the Germans, whose indignation was kindled
against the authors of such tyranny. In order to allay this indignation, certain
wicked and lying pamphlets were circulated, stating that none were treated with
such cruelty but Anabaptists and seditious persons, who by their perverse
ravings and false opinions, were overthrowing not only religion but also all
civil order. Observing that the object which these instruments of the court
aimed at by their disguises, was not only that the disgrace of shedding so much
innocent blood might remain buried under the false charges and calumnies which
they brought against the holy martyrs after their death, but also, that
afterwards they might be able to proceed to the utmost extremity in murdering
the poor saints without exciting compassion towards them in the breasts of any,
it appeared to me, that unless I opposed them to the utmost of my ability, my
silence could not be vindicated from the charge of cowardice and treachery. This
was the consideration which induced me to publish my Institute of the Christian
Religion. My objects were, first, to prove that these reports were false and
calumnious, and thus to vindicate my brethren, whose death was precious in the
sight of the Lord; and next, that as the same cruelties might very soon after be
exercised against many unhappy individuals, foreign nations might be touched
with at least some compassion towards them and solicitude about them. When it
was then published, it was not that copious and labored work which it now is,
but only a small treatise containing a summary of the principal truths of the
Christian religion, and it was published with no other design than that men
might know what was the faith held by those whom I saw basely and wickedly
defamed by those flagitious and perfidious flatterers. That my object was not to
acquire fame, appeared from this, that immediately after I left Basle, and
particularly from the fact that nobody there knew that I was the author.
Wherever else I have gone, I have taken care to conceal that I was the author of
that performance; and I had resolved to continue in the same privacy and
obscurity, until at length William Farel detained me at Geneva, not so much by
counsel and exhortation, as by a dreadful imprecation, which I felt to be as if
God had from heaven laid his mighty hand upon me to arrest me. As the most
direct road to Strasburg, to which I then intended to retire, was as shut up by
the wars, I had resolved to pass quickly by Geneva, without staying longer than
a single night in that city. A little before this, Popery had been driven from
it by the exertions of the excellent person whom I have named, and Peter Viret;
but matters were not yet brought to a settled state, and the city was divided
into unholy and dangerous factions. Then an individual who now basely
apostatised and returned to the Papists, discovered me and made me known to
others. Upon this, Farel, who burned with an extraordinary zeal to advance the
gospel, immediately strained every nerve to detain me. And after having learned
that my heart was set upon devoting myself to private studies for which I wished
to keep myself free from other pursuits, and finding that he gained nothing by
entreaties, he proceeded to utter an imprecation that God would curse my
retirement, and the tranquillity of the studies which I sought, if I should
withdraw and refuse to give assistance, when the necessity seas so urgent. By
this imprecation I was so stricken with terror, that I desisted from the journey
which I had undertaken; but sensible of my natural bashfulness and timidity, I
would not bring myself under obligation to discharge any particular office.
After that, four months had scarcely elapsed, when, on the one hand, the
Anabaptists began to assail us, and, on the other, a certain wicked apostate,
who being secretly supported by the influence of some of the magistrates of the
city, was thus enabled to give us a great deal of trouble. At the same time, a
succession of dissensions fell out in the
city
fa13 which strangely afflicted us. Being, as
I acknowledge, naturally of a timid, softer and pusillanimous disposition, I was
compelled to encounter these violent tempests as part of my early training; and
although I did not sink under themes yet I was not sustained by such greatness
of mind, as not to rejoice more than it became me, when, in consequence of
certain commotions, I was banished from Geneva. By this means set at liberty and
loosed from the tie of my vocational I resolved to live in a private station,
free from the burden and cares of any public charge, when that most excellent
servant of Christ, Martin Bucer, employing a similar kind of remonstrance and
protestation as that to which Farel had recourse before, drew me back to a new
station. Alarmed by the example of Jonas which he set before me, I still
continued in the work of teaching. And although I always continued like myself,
studiously avoiding celebrity;
fa14 yet I was carried, I know not how, as it
were by force to the Imperial assemblies, where, willing or unwilling, I was
under the necessity of appearing before the eyes of many. Afterwards, when the
Lord having compassion on this city, had allayed the hurtful agitations and
broils which prevailed in it, and by his wonderful power had defeated both the
wicked counsels and the sanguinary attempts of the disturbers of the Republic,
necessity was imposed upon me of returning to my former charge, contrary to my
desire and inclination. The welfare of this church, it is true, lay so near my
heart, that for its sake I would not have hesitated to lay down my life; but my
timidity nevertheless suggested to me many reasons for excusing myself from
again willingly taking upon my shoulders so heavy a burden. At length, however,
a solemn and conscientious regard to my duty, prevailed with me to consent to
return to the flock from which I had been torn; but with what grief, tears,
great anxiety and distress I did this, the Lord is my best witness, and many
godly persons who would have wished to see me delivered from this painful state,
had it not been that that which I feared, and which made me give my consent,
prevented them and shut their mouths. Were I to narrate the various conflicts by
which the Lord has exercised me since that time, and by what trials he has
proved me, it would make a long history. But that I may not become tedious to my
readers by a waste of words, I shall content myself with repeating briefly what
I have touched upon a little before, that in considering the whole course of the
life of David,
fa15 it seemed to me that by his own
footsteps he showed me the way, and from this I have experienced no small
consolation. As that holy king was harassed by the Philistines and other foreign
enemies with continual wars, while he was much more grievously afflicted by the
malice and wickedness of some perfidious men amongst his own people, so I can
say as to myself, that I have been assailed on all sides, and have scarcely been
able to enjoy repose for a single moment, but have always had to sustain some
conflict either from enemies without or within the Church. Satan has made many
attempts to overthrow the fabric of this Church; and once it came to this, that
I, altogether feeble and timorous as I am, was compelled to break and put a stop
to his deadly assaults by putting my life in danger, and opposing my person to
his blows. Afterwards, for the space of five years, when some wicked libertines
were furnished with undue influence, and also some of the common people,
corrupted by the allurements and perverse discourse of such persons, desired to
obtain the liberty of doing whatever they pleased, without controls I was under
the necessity of fighting without ceasing to defend and maintain the discipline
of the Church. To these irreligious characters. and despisers of the heavenly
doctrine, it was a matter of entire indifference, although the Church should
sink into ruin, provided they obtained what they sought, — the power of
acting just as they pleased. Many, too, harassed by poverty and hunger, and
others impelled by insatiable ambition or avarice and a desire of dishonest
gain, were become so frantic, that they chose rather, by throwing all things
into confusion, to involve themselves and us in one common ruin, than to remain
quiet by living peaceably and
honestly.
fa16 During the whole of this lengthened
period, I think that there is scarcely any of the weapons which are forged in
the workshop of Satan, which has not been employed by them in order to obtain
their object. And at length matters had come to such a state, that an end could
be put to their machinations in no other way than cutting them off by an
ignominious death; which was indeed a painful and pitiable spectacle to me. They
no doubt deserved the severest punishment, but I always rather desired that they
might live in prosperity, and continue safe and untouched; which would have been
the case had they not been altogether incorrigible, and obstinately refused to
listen to wholesome admonition. The trial of these five years was grievous and
hard to bear; but I experienced not less excruciating pain from the malignity of
those who ceased not to assail myself and my ministry with their envenomed
calumnies. A great proportion of them, it is true, are so blinded by a passion
for slander and detraction, that to their great disgracers they betray at once
their impudence, while others, however crafty and cunning, cannot so cover or
disguise themselves as to escape being shamefully convicted and disgraced; yet
when a man has been a hundred times found innocent of a charge brought against
him, and when the charge is again repeated without any cause or occasion, it is
an indignity hard to bear. Because I affirm and maintain that the world is
managed and governed by the secret providence of God, a multitude of
presumptuous men rise lip against me, and allege that I represent God as the
author of sin. This is so foolish a calumny, that it would of itself quickly
come to nothing, did it not meet with persons who have tickled ears, and who
take pleasure in feeding upon such discourse. But there are many whose minds are
so filled with envy and spleen, or ingratitude, or malignity, that there is no
falsehood, however preposterous, yea, even monstrous, which they do not receive,
if it is spoken to them. Others endeavor to overthrow God's eternal purpose of
predestination, by which he distinguishes between the reprobate and the elect;
others take upon them to defend free will; and forthwith many throw themselves
into their ranks, not so much through ignorance as by a perversity of zeal which
I know not how to characterise. If they were open and avowed enemies who brought
these troubles upon me, the thing might in some way be borne. But that those who
shroud themselves under the name of brethren, and not only eat Christ's sacred
bread, but also administer it to others, that those, in short, who loudly boast
of being preachers of the gospel, should wage such nefarious war against me, how
detestable is it? In this matter I may very justly complain with
David,
"Yea, mine own familiar
friend, in whom I trusted, who did eat of my bread, hath lifted up his heel
against me,"
(<194109>Psalm
41:9.)
"For it was not an enemy
that reproached me; but it was thou, a man mine equal, my guide, and mine
acquaintance. We took sweet counsel together, and walked unto the house of God
in
company,"
(<195512>Psalm
55:12, 13, 14.)
Others circulated ridiculous
reports concerning my treasures; others, of the extravagant authority and
enormous influence which they say I possess; others speak of my delicacies and
magnificence. But when a man is content with scanty food and common clothing and
does not require from the humblest more frugality than he shows and practices
himself, shall it be said that such an one is too sumptuous, and lives in too
high a style? As to the power and influence of which they envy me, I wish I
could discharge this burden upon them; for they estimate my power by the
multitude of affairs, and the vast weight of labors with which I am overwhelmed.
And if there are some whom I cannot persuade whilst I am alive that I am not
rich, my death at length will prove it. I confess, indeed, that I am not poor;
for I desire nothing more than what I have. All these are invented stories, and
there is no color whatever for any one of them; but many nevertheless are very
easily persuaded of their truth, and applaud them; and the reason is, because
the greatest part judge that the only means of cloaking their enormities is to
throw all things into disorder, and to confound black and white; and they think
that the best and shortest way by which they can obtain full liberty to live
with impunity just as they please, is to destroy the authority of Christ's
servants. In addition to these, there are "the hypocritical mockers in feasts,"
of whom David complains,
(<193516>Psalm
35:16;) and I mean by these not only lick-dish characters who seek a meal to
fill their belly,
fa17 but all those who by false reports seek
to obtain the favor of the great. Having been long accustomed to swallow such
wrongs as these, I have become almost hardened; yet when the insolence of such
characters increased I cannot but sometimes feel my heart wounded with bitter
pangs. Nor was it enough that I should be so inhumanly treated by my neighbors.
In addition to this, in a distant country towards the frozen ocean, there was
raised I know not how, by the frenzy of a few, a storm which afterwards stirred
up against me a vast number of persons, who are too much at leisure, and have
nothing to do but by their bickering to hinder those who are laboring for the
edification of the Church.
fa18 I am still speaking of the internal
enemies of the Church—of those who, boasting mightily of the gospel of
Christ, nevertheless rush against me with greater impetuosity than against the
open adversaries of the Church, because I do not embrace their gross and
fictitious notion concerning a carnal way of eating Christ in the sacrament; and
of whom I may protest, after the example of David, "I am for peace; but when I
speak, they are for war,"
(<19C007>Psalm
120:7.) Moreover, the cruel ingratitude of all of them is manifest in this, that
they scruple not to assail both in flank and rear a man who strenuously exerts
himself to maintain a cause which they have in common with him and whom
therefore they ought to aid and succor. Certainly, if such persons were
possessed of even a small portion of humanity, the fury of the Papists which is
directed against me with such unbridled violence, would appease the most
implacable animosity which they may bear towards me. But since the condition of
David was such, that though he had deserved well of his own people, he was
nevertheless bitterly hated by many without a cause, as he complains in
<196904>Psalm
69:4, "I restored that which I took not away," it afforded me no small
consolation when I was groundlessly assailed by the hatred of those who ought to
have assisted and solaced me, to conform myself to the example of so great and
so excellent a person. This knowledge and experience have been of much service
in enabling me to understand The Psalms, so that in my meditations upon them, I
did not wander, as it were, in an unknown region. My readers, too, if I mistake
not, will observe, that in unfolding the internal affections both of David and
of others I discourse upon them as matters of which I have familiar experience.
Moreover, since I have labored faithfully to open up this treasure for the use
of all the people of God, although what I have done has not been equal to my
wishes, yet the attempt which I have made deserves to be received with some
measure of favor. Still I only ask that each may judge of my labors with justice
and candour, according to the advantage and fruit which he shall derive from
them. Certainly, as I have said before, in reading these Commentaries, it will
be clearly seen that I have not sought to please, unless in so far as I might at
the same time be profitable to others. And, therefore, I have not only observed
throughout a simple style of teaching, but in order to be removed the farther
from all ostentation, I have also generally abstained from refuting the opinions
of others, although this presented a more favorable opportunity for plausible
display, and of acquiring the applause of those who shall favor my book with a
perusal. I have never touched upon opposite opinions, unless where there was
reason to fear, that by being silent respecting them, I might leave my readers
in doubt and perplexity. At the same time, I am sensible that it would have been
much more agreeable to the taste of many, had I heaped together a great mass of
materials which has great show, and acquires fame for the writer; but I have
felt nothing to be of more importance than to have a regard to the edification
of the Church. May God, who has implanted this desire in my heart, grant by his
grace that the success may correspond
thereto!
Geneva, July 22,
1557.
Commentary
upon
the book of Psalms
PSALM
1.
He who collected the Psalms into one volume, whether
Ezra or some other person, appears to have placed this Psalm at the beginning,
by way of preface, in which he inculcates upon all the godly the duty of
meditating upon the law of God. The sum and substance of the whole is, that they
are blessed who apply their hearts to the pursuit of heavenly wisdom; whereas
the profane despisers of God, although for a time they may reckon themselves
happy, shall at length have a most miserable
end.
Psalm
1:1-2
1. Blessed is the man who
walketh not in the counsel of the ungodly, nor standeth in the way of sinners,
nor sitteth in the seat of the scorner. 2. But his delight is in the law
of Jehovah; and in his law doth he meditate day and
night.
1.
Blessed is the
man.
fa19 The meaning of the Psalmist, as I have
stated above, is, that it shall be always well with God's devout servants, whose
constant endeavor it is to make progress in the study of his law. The greater
part of mankind being accustomed to deride the conduct of the saints as mere
simplicity, and to regard their labor as entirely thrown away, it was of
importance that the righteous should be confirmed in the way of holiness, by the
consideration of the miserable condition of all men without the blessing of God,
and the conviction that God is favorable to none but those who zealously devote
themselves to the study of divine truth. Moreover, as corruption has always
prevailed in the world, to such a degree, that the general character of men's
lives is nothing else but a continual departure from the law of God, the
Psalmist, before asserting the blessedness of the students of the divine law,
admonishes them to beware of being carried away by the ungodliness of the
multitude around them. Commencing with a declaration of his abhorrence of the
wicked, he teaches us how impossible it is for any one to apply his mind to
meditation upon God's laws who has not first withdrawn and separated himself
from the society of the ungodly. A needful admonition surely; for we see how
thoughtlessly men will throw themselves into the snares of Satan; at least, how
few comparatively there are who guard against the enticements of sin. That we
may be fully apprised of our danger, it is necessary to remember that the world
is fraught with deadly corruption, and that the first step to living well is to
renounce the company of the ungodly, otherwise it is sure to infect us with its
own pollution.
As the prophet, in the first
place, enjoins the godly to beware of temptations to evil, we shall follow the
same order. His affirmation, that they are blessed who have no fellowship with
the ungodly, is what the common feeling and opinion of mankind will scarcely
admit; for while all men naturally desire and seek after happiness, we see how
securely they can indulge themselves in their sins, yea, that those of them who
have departed farthest from righteousness, in the gratification of their lusts,
are accounted happy, because they obtain the desires of their heart. The
prophet, on the contrary, here teaches that no man can be duly animated to the
fear and service of God, and to the study of his law, until he is firmly
persuaded that all the ungodly are miserable, and that they who do not withdraw
from their company shall he involved in the same destruction with them. But as
it is no easy matter to shun the ungodly with whom we are mingled in the world,
so as to be wholly estranged from them, the Psalmist, in order to give the
greater emphasis to his exhortation, employs a multiplicity of
expressions.
In the first place, he forbids us
to walk in their
counsel; in the second place, to
stand in their
way; and, lastly, to
sit in their
seat.
The sum
of the whole is, that the servants of God must endeavor utterly to abhor the
life of ungodly men. But as it is the policy of Satan to insinuate his deceits,
in a very crafty way, the prophet, in order that none may be insensibly
deceived, shows how by little and little men are ordinarily induced to turn
aside from the right path. They do not, at the first step, advance so far as a
proud contempt of God but having once begun to give ear to evil counsel, Satan
leads them, step by step, farther astray, till they rush headlong into open
transgression. The prophet, therefore, begins with counsel, by which term I
understand the wickedness which does not as yet show itself openly. Then he
speaks of the way, which is to be understood of the customary mode or manner of
living. And he places at the top of the climax the seat, by which metaphorical
expression he designates the obduracy produced by the habit of a sinful life. In
the same way, also, ought the three phrases, to walk, to stand, and to sit, to
be understood. When a person willingly walks after the gratification of his
corrupt lusts, the practice of sinning so infatuates him, that, forgetful of
himself, he grows hardened in wickedness; and this the prophet terms standing in
the way of sinners. Then at length follows a desperate obstinacy, which he
expresses by the figure of sitting. Whether there is the same gradation in the
Hebrew words
µy[çr,
reshaim,
µyafj,
chataim, and
µyxl,
letsim, that is to say, a gradual increase of evil, I leave to the
judgment of others.
fa20 To me it does not appear that there is,
unless perhaps in the last word. For those are called scorners who, having
thrown off all fear of God, commit sin without restraint, in the hope of
escaping unpunished, and without compunction or fear sport at the judgment of
God, as if they would never be called to render up an account to him. The Hebrew
word
µyafj,
chataim, as it signifies the openly wicked, is very properly joined with
the term way, which signifies a professed and habitual manner of
living.
fa21 And if, in the time of the Psalmist, it
was necessary for the devout worshippers of God to withdraw themselves from the
company of the ungodly, in order to frame their life aright, how much more in
the present day, when the world has become so much more corrupt, ought we
carefully to avoid all dangerous society that we may be kept unstained by its
impurities. The prophet, however, not only commands the faithful to keep at a
distance from the ungodly, from the dread of being infected by them, but his
admonition farther implies, that every one should be careful not to corrupt
himself, nor abandon himself to
impiety.
fa22 A man may not have contracted defilement
from evil examples, and yet come to resemble the wicked by spontaneously
imitating their corrupt manners.
In the second
verse, the Psalmist does not simply pronounce those happy who fear God, as in
other places, but designates godliness by the study of the law, teaching
us that God is only rightly served when had law is obeyed. It is not left to
every man to frame a system of religion according to his own judgment, but the
standard of godliness is to be taken from the Word of God. When David here
speaks of the law, it ought not to be understood as if the other parts of
Scripture should be excluded, but rather, since the whole of Scripture is
nothing else than an exposition of the law, under it as the head is comprehended
the whole body. The prophet, therefore, in commending the law, includes all the
rest of the inspired writings. He must, therefore, be understood as meaning to
exhort the faithful to the reading of the Psalms also. From his characterising
the godly as delighting in the law of the Lord, we may learn that forced or
servile obedience is not at all acceptable to God, and that those only are
worthy students of the law who come to it with a cheerful mind, and are so
delighted with its instructions, as to account nothing more desirable or
delicious than to make progress therein. From this love of the law proceeds
constant meditation upon it, which the prophet mentions on the last clause of
the verse; for all who are truly actuated by love to the law must feel pleasure
in the diligent study of it.
Psalm
1:3
3. He shall be like a
tree planted by the rivers of waters, that bringeth his fruit in his season;
whose leaf shall not wither; and whatsoever he doeth shall
prosper.
The Psalmist here illustrates,
and, at the same time, confirms by a metaphor the statement made in the
preceding verse; for he shows in what respect those who fear God are to be
accounted happy, namely, not because they enjoy an evanescent and empty
gladness, but because they are in a desirable condition. There is in the words
an implied contrast between the vigor of a tree planted in a situation well
watered, and the decayed appearance of one which, although it may flourish
beautifully for a time, yet soon withers on account of the barrenness of the
soil in which it is placed. With respect to the ungodly, as we shall afterwards
see,
(<193735>Psalm
37:35) they are sometimes like "the cedars of Lebanon." They have such an
overflowing abundance of wealth and honors, that nothing seems wanting to their
present happiness. But however high they may be raised, and however far and wide
they may spread their branches, yet having no root in the ground, nor even a
sufficiency of moisture from which they may derive nourishment, the whole of
their beauty by and by disappears, and withers away. It is, therefore, the
blessing of God alone which preserves any in a prosperous condition. Those who
explain the figure of the faithful bringing forth their fruit in season, as
meaning that they wisely discern when a thing ought to be done so as to be done
well, in my opinion, show more acuteness than judgment, by putting a meaning
upon the words of the prophet which he never intended. He obviously meant
nothing more than that the children of God constantly flourish, and are always
watered with the secret influences of divine grace, so that whatever may befall
them is conducive to their salvation; while, on the other hand, the ungodly are
carried away by the sudden tempest, or consumed by the scorching heat. And when
he says, he bringeth forth his
fruit in
season,
fa23 he expresses the full maturity of the
fruit produced, whereas, although the ungodly may present the appearance of
precocious fruitfulness, yet they produce nothing that comes to
perfection.
Psalm
1:4
4. The ungodly are not so; but
are like the chaff which the wind driveth
away.
The Psalmist might, with propriety,
have compared the ungodly to a tree that speedily withers, as Jeremiah likens
them to the heath which grows in the wilderness,
(<241706>Jeremiah
17:6) But not reckoning this figure sufficiently strong, he debases them by
employing another, which represents them in a light still more contemptible:and
the reason is, that he does not keep his eye on the prosperous condition of
which they boast for a short time, but his mind is seriously pondering on the
destruction which awaits them, and will at length overtake them. The meaning,
therefore, is, although the ungodly now live prosperously, yet by and by they
shall be like chaff; for when the Lord has brought them low, he shall drive them
hither and thither with the blast of his wrath. Besides, by this form of speech,
the Holy Spirit teaches us to contemplate with the eye of faith, what might
otherwise seem incredible; for although the ungodly man rise high, and appear to
great advantage, like a stately tree, we may rest assured that he will be even
as chaff or refuse, whenever God chooses to cast him down from his high estate,
with the breath of his mouth.
Psalm
1:5-6
5. Therefore the ungodly shall
not stand in the judgment, nor sinners in the congregation of the righteous.
6. For Jehovah knoweth the way of the righteous; but the way of the
ungodly shall perish.
In the fifth verse,
the prophet teaches that a happy life depends on a good conscience, and that,
therefore, it is not wonderful, if the ungodly suddenly fall from the happiness
of which they fancied themselves in possession. And there is implied in the
words a kind of concession; the prophet tacitly acknowledges that the ungodly
please and enjoy themselves, and triumph during the reign of moral disorder in
the world; just as robbers revel in the woods and caves, when beyond the reach
of justice. But he assures us, that things will not always remain in their
present state of confusion, and that when they shall have been reduced to proper
order, these ungodly persons shall be entirely deprived of their pleasures, and
feel that they were infatuated when they thought themselves happy. We now see
how the Psalmist pronounces the ungodly to be miserable, because happiness is
the inward blessing of a good conscience. He does not deny, that before they are
driven to judgment, all things succeed well with them; but he denies that they
are happy unless they have substantial and steadfast integrity of character to
sustain them:for the true integrity of the righteous manifests itself when it
comes at length to be tried. It is indeed true, that the Lord daily executes
judgment, by making a distinction between the righteous and the wicked, but
because this is done only partially in this life, we must look higher if we
desire to behold the assembly of the righteous, of which mention is here
made.
Even in this world the prosperity of the
ungodly begins to pass away as often as God manifests the tokens of his
judgment; (for then, being awakened out of sleep, they are constrained to
acknowledge, whether they will or no, that they have no part with the assembly
of the righteous;) but because this is not accomplished always, nor with respect
to all men, in the present state, we must patiently wait for the day of final
revelation, in which Christ will separate the sheep from the goats. At the same
time, we must maintain it as a general truth, that the ungodly are devoted to
misery; for their own consciences condemn them for their wickedness; and, as
often as they are summoned to give an account of their life, their sleep is
broken, and they perceive that they were merely dreaming when they imagined
themselves to be happy, without looking inward to the true state of their
hearts.
Moreover, as things appear to be here
driven about at the mercy of chance, and as it is not easy for us, in the midst
of the prevailing confusion, to acknowledge the truth of what the Psalmist had
said, he therefore presents to our consideration the grand principle, that God
is the Judge of the world. Granting this, it follows that it cannot but be well
with the upright and the just, while, on the other hand, the most terrible
destruction must impend over the ungodly. According to all outward appearance,
the servants of God may derive no advantage from their uprightness; but as it is
the peculiar office of God to defend them and take care of their safety, they
must be happy under his protection. And from this we may also conclude that, as
he is the certain avenger of wickedness, although, for a time, he may seem to
take no notice of the ungodly, yet at length he will visit them with
destruction. Instead, therefore, of allowing ourselves to be deceived with their
imaginary felicity, let us, in circumstances of distress, have ever before our
eyes the providence of God, to whom it belongs to settle the affairs of the
world, and to bring order out of confusion.
PSALM
2
David boasts that his kingdom, though assailed by a
vast multitude of powerful enemies, would, notwithstanding, be perpetual,
because it was upheld by the hand and power of God. He adds, that in spite of
his enemies, it would be extended even to the uttermost ends of the earth. And,
therefore, he exhorts kings and other rulers to lay aside their pride, and
receive, with submissive minds, the yoke laid upon them by God; as it would be
vain for them to attempt to shake it off. All this was typical and contains a
prophecy concerning the future kingdom of
Christ.
Psalm
2:1-3
1. Why do the nations rise
tumultuously, and the peoples murmur in vain? 2. The kings of the earth
have confederated, and the princes have assembled together, against Jehovah and
against his Christ. 3. Let us break of their bonds, and cast away their
yoke from us.
WE know how many conspired
against David, and endeavored to prevent his coming to the throne, and from
their hostile attempts, had he judged according to the eye of sense and reason,
he might have been so full of apprehension, as forthwith to have given up all
hope of ever becoming king. And, doubtless, he had often to struggle sorrowfully
with very grievous temptations. But, as he had the testimony of an approving
conscience, that he had attempted nothing rashly nor acted as ambition and
depraved desire impel many to seek changes in the government of kingdoms; as he
was, on the contrary, thoroughly persuaded that he had been made king by divine
appointment, when he coveted no such thing, nor even thought of
it;
fa24 he encouraged himself by strong
confidence in God against the whole world, just as in these words, he nobly
pours contempt both on kings and their armies. He confesses, indeed, that he had
a sore battle to fight, inasmuch as it was no small party, but whole nations
with their kings, who had conspired against him; but he courageously boasts that
their attempts were vain, because they waged war, not against mortal man, but
against God himself. It is not certain from the words, whether he speaks only of
enemies in his own kingdom, or extends his complaints to foreign invaders. But,
since the fact was, that enemies rose up against him in all quarters, and that
as soon as he had settled the disturbances among his own people, the neighboring
states, in their turn, became hostile to him, I am disposed to think that both
classes of enemies are meant, Gentiles as well as Jews. It would be a strange
mode of expression to speak of many nations and people when only one nation was
meant, and to speak of many kings when he had in eye Saul only. Besides, it
agrees better with the completeness of the type to suppose that different kinds
of enemies were joined together; for we know that Christ had not only to do with
enemies in his own country, but likewise with enemies in other nations; the
whole world having entered into a common conspiracy to accomplish his
destruction. The Jews, indeed, first began to rage against Christ as they had
formerly done against David; but afterwards the same species of madness seized
upon other nations. The sum is, that although those who endeavored to overthrow
him might be strengthened by powerful armies, yet their tumults and counsels
would prove vain and ineffectual.
By attributing
to the people commotion and uproar, and to kings and rulers the holding of
assemblies, to take counsel, he has used very appropriate language. Yet he
intimates that, when kings have long and much consulted together, and the people
have poured forth their utmost fury, all of them united would make nothing of
it. But we ought carefully to mark the ground of such confidence, which was,
that he had not thrust himself forward to be king rashly, or of his own accord,
but only followed the call of God. From this he concludes, that in his person
God was assailed; and God could not but show himself the defender of the kingdom
of which he was the founder. By honoring himself with the title of Messias, or
the Anointed, he declares that he reigned only by the authority and command of
God, inasmuch as the oil brought by the hand of Samuel made him king who before
was only a private person. David's enemies did not, indeed, think they were
making a violent attack against God, yea, they would resolutely deny their
having any such intention; yet it is not without reason that David places God in
opposition to them, and speaks as if they directly levelled their attacks
against him, for by seeking to undermine the kingdom which he had erected, they
blindly and ferociously waged war against Him. If all those are rebels against
God who resist the powers ordained by him, much more does this apply to that
sacred kingdom which was established by special
privilege.
But it is now high time to come to
the substance of the type. That David prophesied concerning Christ, is clearly
manifest from this, that he knew his own kingdom to be merely a shadow. And in
order to learn to apply to Christ whatever David, in times past, sang concerning
himself, we must hold this principle, which we meet with everywhere in all the
prophets, that he, with his posterity, was made king, not so much for his own
sake as to be a type of the Redeemer. We shall often have occasion to return to
this afterwards, but at present I would briefly inform my readers that as
David's temporal kingdom was a kind of earnest to God's ancient people of the
eternal kingdom, which at length was truly established in the person of Christ,
those things which David declares concerning himself are not violently, or even
allegorically, applied to Christ, but were truly predicted concerning him. If we
attentively consider the nature of the kingdom, we will perceive that it would
be absurd to overlook the end or scope, and to rest in the mere shadow. That the
kingdom of Christ is here described by the spirit of prophecy, is sufficiently
attested to us by the apostles, who, seeing the ungodly conspiring against
Christ, arm themselves in prayer with this doctrine,
(<440424>Acts
4:24.) But to place our faith beyond the reach of all cavils, it is plainly made
manifest from all the prophets, that those things which David testified
concerning his own kingdom are properly applicable to Christ. Let this,
therefore, be held as a settled point, that all who do not submit themselves to
the authority of Christ make war against God. Since it seems good to God to rule
us by the hand of his own Son, those who refuse to obey Christ himself deny the
authority of God, and it is in vain for them to profess otherwise. For it is a
true saying,
"He that honoureth not
the Son, honoureth not the
Father
which hath sent him," (John 5:22.)
And it is of great importance to hold fast this
inseparable connection, that as the majesty of God hath shone forth in his only
begotten Son, so the Father will not be feared and worshipped but in his
person.
A twofold consolation may be drawn from
this passage:— First, as often as the world rages, in order to disturb and
put an end to the prosperity of Christ's kingdom, we have only to remember that,
in all this there is just a fulfillment of what was long ago predicted, and no
changes that can happen will greatly disquiet us. Yea, rather it will be highly
profitable to us to compare those things which the apostles experienced with
what we witness at the present time. Of itself the kingdom of Christ would be
peaceable, and from it true peace issues forth to the world; but through the
wickedness and malice of men, never does it rise from obscurity into open view
without disturbances being excited. Nor is it at all wonderful, or unusual, if
the world begin to rage as soon as a throne is erected for Christ. The other
consolation which follows is, that when the ungodly have mustered their forces,
and when, depending on their vast numbers, their riches, and their means of
defense, they not only pour forth their proud blasphemies, but furiously assault
heaven itself, we may safely laugh them to scorn, relying on this one
consideration, that he whom they are assailing is the God who is in heaven. When
we see Christ well nigh overwhelmed with the number and strength of his enemies,
let us remember that they are making war against God over whom they shall not
prevail, and therefore their attempts, whatever they may be, and however
increasing, will come to naught, and be utterly ineffectual. Let us learn,
farther, that this doctrine runs through the whole gospel; for the prayer of the
apostles which I have just quoted, manifestly testifies that it ought not to be
restricted to the person of Christ.
3.
Let us
break, etc. This is a
prosopopoeia,
fa25 in which the prophet introduces
his-enemies as speaking; and he employs this figure the better to express their
ungodly and traitorous design. Not that they openly avowed themselves rebels
against God, (for they rather covered their rebellion under every possible
pretext, and presumptuously boasted of having God on their side;) but since they
were fully determined, by all means, fair or foul, to drive David from the
throne, whatever they professed with the mouth, the whole of their consultation
amounted to this, how they might overthrow the kingdom which God himself had set
up. When he describes his government under the metaphorical expressions of
bonds, and a yoke, on the persons of his adversaries, he indirectly condemns
their pride. For he represents them speaking scornfully of his government, as if
to submit to it were a slavish and shameful subjection, just as we see it is
with all the enemies of Christ who, when compelled to be subject to his
authority reckon it not less degrading than if the utmost disgrace were put upon
them.
Psalm
2:4-6
4. He who dwelleth in heaven
will laugh at them; the
Lordfa26
will have them in derision. 5. Then will he speak to them in his wrath,
and vex them in his sore displeasure. 6. I have anointed my King upon my
holy hill of Sion.
After David has told us
of the tumult and commotions, the counsels and pride, the preparation and
resources the strength and efforts of his enemies, in opposition to all these he
places the power of God alone, which he concludes would be brought to bear
against them, from their attempting to frustrate his decree. And, as a little
before, by terming them kings of
the earth, he expressed their feeble and
perishable condition; so now, by the lofty title of
He that dwelleth in
heaven, he extols the power of God, as
if he had said, that power remains intact and unimpaired, whatever men may
attempt against it. Let them exalt themselves as they may, they shall never be
able to reach to heaven; yea, while they think to confound heaven and earth
together, they resemble so many grasshoppers, and the Lord, meanwhile,
undisturbed beholds from on high their infatuated evolutions. And David ascribes
laughter to God on two accounts; first, to teach us that he does not stand in
need of great armies to repress the rebellion of wicked men, as if this were an
arduous and difficult matter, but, on the contrary, could do this as often as he
pleases with the most perfect ease. In the second place, he would have us to
understand that when God permits the reign of his Son to be troubled, he does
not cease from interfering because he is employed elsewhere, or unable to afford
assistance, or because he is neglectful of the honor of his Son; but he
purposely delays the inflictions of his wrath to the proper time, namely, until
he has exposed their infatuated rage to general derision. Let us, therefore,
assure ourselves that if God does not immediately stretch forth his hand against
the ungodly, it is now his time of laughter; and although, in the meantime, we
ought to weep, yet let us assuage the bitterness of our grief, yea, and wipe
away our tears, with this reflection, that God does not connive at the
wickedness of his enemies, as if from indolence or feebleness, but because for
the time he would confront their insolence with quiet contempt. By the adverb
then, he points to the fit time for exercising judgment, as if he had said,
after the Lord shall have for a time apparently taken no notice of the
malpractices of those who oppose the rule of his Son, he will suddenly change
his course, and show that he retards nothing with greater abhorrence than such
presumption.
Moreover, he ascribes speech to
God, not for the purpose of instructing his enemies, but only to convict them of
their madness; indeed, by the term speak, he means nothing else than a
manifestation of Godwrath, which the ungodly do not perceive until they feel it.
The enemies of David thought it would be the easiest thing in the world for them
to destroy one who, coming from a mean shepherd's cot, had, in their
view,
fa27 presumptuously assumed the sovereign
power. The prophecy and anointing of Samuel were, in their estimation, mere
ridiculous pretences. But when God had at length overthrown them, and settled
David on the throne, he, by this act, spoke not so much with his tongue as with
his hand, to manifest himself the founder of David's kingdom. The Psalmist
hereon then, refers to speaking by actions, by which the Lord, without uttering
a single word, makes manifest his purpose. In like manner, whenever he defends
the kingdom of his Son against the ungodly, by the tokens and inflictions of his
wrath, although he does not speak a single word, yet in effect he speaks enough
to make himself understood.
fa28 David afterwards, speaking in the name
of God, shows more clearly how his enemies were guilty of wickedly fighting
against God himself in the hatred which they bore towards him whom God had made
king. The sum is this: Wicked men may now conduct themselves as wickedly as they
please, but they shall at length feel what it is to make war against heaven. The
pronoun I is also emphatical, by which God signifies that he is so far
exalted above the men of this world, that the whole mass of them could not
possibly obscure his glory in the least degree. As often, then, as the power of
man appears formidable to us, let us remember how much it is transcended by the
power of God. In these words there is set before us the unchangeable and eternal
purpose of God effectually to defend, even to the end, the kingdom of his Son,
of which he is the founder; and this may well support our faith amidst the
troublous storms of the world. Whatever plots, therefore, men may form against
it, let this one consideration be sufficient to satisfy us, that they cannot
render ineffectual the anointing of God. Mention is here made of mount Sion in
express terms, not because David was first anointed thereon but because at
length, in God's own time, the truth of the prophecy was manifested and actually
established by the solemn rite of his consecration. And although David in these
words had a regard to the promise of God, and recalled the attention of himself
and others to it, yet, at the same time, he meant to signify that his own reign
is holy and inseparably connected with the temple of God. But this applies more
appropriately to the kingdom of Christ, which we know to be both spiritual and
joined to the priesthood, and this is the principal part of the worship of
God.
Psalm
2:7-8
7. I will declare the decree:
The Lord hath said unto me, Thou art my Son; this day have I begotten thee.
8. Ask of me, and I will give thee the heathen for thine inheritance, and
the uttermost parts of the earth for thy
possession.
7.
I will declare,
etc. David, to take away all pretense of
ignorance from his enemies, assumes the office of a preacher in order to publish
the decree of God; or at least he protests that he did not come to the throne
without a sure and clear proof of his calling; as if he had said, I did not,
without consideration, publicly go forward to usurp the kingdom, but I brought
with me the command of God, without which, I would have acted presumptuously, in
advancing myself to such fin honorable station. But this was more truly
fulfilled in Christ, and doubtless, David, under the influence of the spirit of
prophecy, had a special reference to him. For in this way all the ungodly are
rendered inexcusable, because Christ proved himself to have been endued with
lawful power from God, not only by his miracles, but by the preaching of the
gospel. In fact, the very same testimony resounds through the whole world. The
apostles first, and after them pastors and teachers, bore testimony that Christ
was made King by God the Father; but since they acted as ambassadors in Christ's
stead, He rightly and properly claims to himself alone whatever was done by
them. Accordingly, Paul
(<490217>Ephesians
2:17) ascribes to Christ what the ministers of the gospel did in his name. "He
came," says he, "and preached peace to them that were afar off, and to them that
were nigh." Hereby, also, the authority of the gospel is better established
because, although it is published by others, it does not cease to be the gospel
of Christ. As often therefore, as we hear the gospel preached by men, we ought
to consider that it is not so much they who speak, as Christ who speaks by them.
And this is a singular advantage, that Christ lovingly allures us to himself by
his own voice, that we may not by any means doubt of the majesty of his
kingdom.
On this account, we ought the more
carefully to beware of wickedly refusing the edict which he publishes,
Thou art my
Son. David, indeed could with propriety be
called the son of God on account of his royal dignity, just as we know that
princes, because they are elevated above others, are called both gods and the
sons of God. But here God, by the singularly high title with which he honors
David, exalts him not only above all mortal men, but even above the angels. This
the apostle
(<580105>Hebrews
1:5) wisely and diligently considers when he tells us this language was never
used with respect to any of the angels. David, individually considered, was
inferior to the angels, but in so far as he represented the person of Christ, he
is with very good reason preferred far above them. By the Son of God in this
place we are therefore not to understand one son among many, but his only
begotten Son, that he alone should have the pre-eminence both in heaven and on
earth. When God says, I have begotten thee, it ought to be understood as
referring to men's understanding or knowledge of it; for David was begotten by
God when the choice of him to be king was clearly manifested. The words this
day, therefore, denote the time of this manifestation; for as soon as it became
known that he was made king by divine appointment, he came forth as one who had
been lately begotten of God, since so great an honor could not belong to a
private person. The same explanation is to be given of the words as applied to
Christ. He is not said to be begotten in any other sense than as the Father bore
testimony to him as being his own Son. This passage, I am aware, has been
explained by many as referring to the eternal generation of Christ; and from the
words this day, they have reasoned ingeniously as if they denoted an eternal act
without any relation to time. But Paul, who is a more faithful and a better
qualified interpreter of this prophecy, in
<441333>Acts
13:33, calls our attention to the manifestation of the heavenly glory of Christ
of which I have spoken. This expression, to be begotten, does not therefore
imply that he then began to be the Son of God, but that his being so was then
made manifest to the world. Finally, this begetting ought not to be understood
of the mutual love which exists between the Father and the Son; it only
signifies that He who had been hidden from the beginning in the sacred bosom of
the Father, and who afterwards had been obscurely shadowed forth under the law,
was known to be the Son of God from the time when he came forth with authentic
and evident marks of Sonship, according to what is said in
<430114>John
1:14, "we have seen his glory, as of the only begotten of the Father." We must,
at the same time, however, bear in mind what Paul teaches,
(<450104>Romans
1:4) that he was declared to be the Son of God with power when he rose again
from the dead, and therefore what is here said has a principal allusion to the
day of his resurrection. But to whatever particular time the allusion may be,
the Holy Spirit here points out the solemn and proper time of his manifestation,
just as he does afterwards in these words
"This is the day which
the Lord hath made;
we will rejoice
and be glad in it."
(<19B824>Psalm
118:24)
8.
Ask of
me. Christ, it is true, besought his Father
(<431705>John
17:5) to "glorify him with the glory which he had with him before the world
was;" yet the more obvious meaning is, that the Father will deny nothing to his
Son which relates to the extension of his kingdom to the uttermost ends of the
earth. But, in this wonderful matter, Christ is introduced as presenting himself
before the Father with prayers, in order to illustrate the free liberality of
God in conferring upon men the honor of constituting his own Son governor over
the whole world. As the eternal Word of God, Christ, it is true, has always had
in his hands by right sovereign authority and majesty, and as such can receive
no accessions thereto; but still he is exalted in human nature, in which he took
upon him the form of a servant. This title, therefore, is not applied to him
only as God, but is extended to the whole person of the Mediator; for after
Christ had emptied himself there was given to him a name which is above every
name, that before him every knee should bow,
(<502609>Philippians
2:9) David, as we know, after having obtained signal victories reigned over a
large extent of territory, so that many nations became tributaries to him; but
what is here said was not fulfilled in him. If we compare his kingdom with other
monarchies it was confined within very narrow boundaries. Unless, therefore, we
suppose this prophecy concerning the vast extent of kingdom to have been uttered
in vain and falsely, we must apply it to Christ, who alone has subdued the whole
world to himself and embraced all lands and nations under his dominion.
Accordingly, here, as in many other places, the calling of the Gentiles is
foretold, to prevent all from imagining that the Redeemer who was to be sent of
God was king of one nation only. And if we now see his kingdom divided,
diminished, and broken down, this proceeds from the wickedness of men, which
renders them unworthy of being under a reign so happy and so desirable. But
although the ingratitude of men hinders the kingdom of Christ from prospering it
does not render this prediction of none effect, inasmuch as Christ collects the
dispersed remnants of his people from all quarters, and in the midst of this
wretched desolation, keeps them joined together by the sacred bond of faiths so
that not one corner only, but the whole world is subjected to his authority.
Besides, however insolently the ungodly may act, and however they may reject his
sovereignty, they cannot, by their rebellion, destroy his authority and power.
To this subject also belongs what immediately
follows:
Psalm
2:9
9. Thou shalt break them with a
rod of iron, and dash them in pieces like a potter's
vessel.
This is expressly stated to teach
us that Christ is furnished with power by which to reign even over those who are
averse to his authority, and refuse to obey him. The language of David implies
that all will not voluntarily receive his yoke, but that many will be
stiff-necked and rebellious, whom notwithstanding he shall subdue by force, and
compel to submit to him. It is true, the beauty and glory of the kingdom of
which David speaks are more illustriously displayed when a willing people run to
Christ in the day of his power, to show themselves his obedient subjects; but as
the greater part of men rise up against him with a violence which spurns all
restraint, it was necessary to add the truth, that this king would prove himself
superior to all such opposition. Of this unconquerable power in war God
exhibited a specimen, primarily in the person of David, who, as we know,
vanquished and overthrew many enemies by force of arms. But the prediction is
more fully verified in Christ, who, neither by sword nor spear, but by the
breath of his mouth, smites the ungodly even to their utter
destruction.
It may, however, seem wonderful
that, while the prophets in other parts of Scripture celebrate the meekness, the
mercy, and the gentleness of our Lord, he is here described as so rigorous,
austere, and full of terror. But this severe and dreadful sovereignty is set
before us for no other purpose than to strike alarm into his enemies; and it is
not at all inconsistent with the kindness with which Christ tenderly and sweetly
cherishes his own people. He who shows himself a loving shepherd to his gentle
sheep, must treat the wild beasts with a degree of severity either to convert
them from their cruelty, or effectually to restrain it. Accordingly in
<19B005>Psalm
110:5, after a commendation is pronounced upon the obedience of the godly Christ
is immediately armed with power to destroy, in the day of his wrath, kings and
their armies who are hostile to him. And certainly both these characters are
with propriety ascribed to him: for he was sent by the Father to cheer the poor
and the wretched with the tidings of salvation, to set the prisoners free, to
heal the sick, to bring the sorrowful and afflicted out of the darkness of death
into the light of life,
(<236101>Isaiah
61:1) and as, on the other hand, many by their ingratitude, provoke his wrath
against them, he assumes, as it were, a new character, to beat down their
obduracy. It may be asked, what is that iron scepter which the Father hath put
into the hand of Christ, wherewith to break in pieces his enemies? I answer, The
breath of his mouth supplies to him the place of all other weapons, as I have
just now shown from Isaiah. Although, therefore, Christ move not a finger, yet
by his speaking he thunders awfully enough against his enemies, and destroys
them by the rod of his mouth alone. They may fret and kick, and with the rage of
a madman resist him never so much, but they shall at length be compelled to feel
that he whom they refuse to honor as their king is their judge. In short, they
are broken in pieces by various methods, till they become his footstool. In what
respect the doctrine of the gospel is an iron rod, may be gathered from Paul's
Epistle to the Corinthians,
(<471004>2
Corinthians 10:4) where he teaches that the ministers of Christ are furnished
with spiritual weapons to cast down every high thing which exalteth itself
against Christ, etc. I allow that even the faithful themselves may be offered in
sacrifice to God, that he may quicken them by his grace, for it is meet we
should be humbled in the dust, before Christ stretch forth his hand to save us.
But Christ trains his disciples to repentance in such a way as not to appear
terrible to them; on the contrary, by showing them his shepherd's rod, he
quickly turns their sorrow into joy; and so far is he from using his iron rod to
break them in pieces, that he rather protects them under the healing shadow of
his hand, and upholds them by his power. When David speaks, therefore, of
breaking and bruising, this applies only to the rebellious and unbelieving who
submit to Christ, not because they have been subdued by repentance, but because
they are overwhelmed with despair. Christ does not, indeed, literally speak to
all men; but as he denounces in his word whatever judgments he executes upon
them, he may be truly said to slay the ungodly man with the breath of his mouth,
(<530208>2
Thessalonians 2:8.) The Psalmist exposes to shame their foolish pride by a
beautiful similitude; teaching us, that although their obstinacy is harder than
the stones, they are yet more fragile than earthen vessels. Since,
however, we do not see the enemies of the Redeemer immediately broken in pieces,
but, on the contrary, the Church herself appears rather to be like the frail
earthen vessel under their iron hammered the godly need to be admonished to
regard the judgments which Christ daily executes as presages of the terrible
ruin which remains for all the ungodly, and to wait patiently for the last day,
when he will utterly consume them by the flaming fire in which he will come. In
the meantime, let us rest satisfied that he "rules in the midst of his
enemies.
Psalm
2:10-11
10. And now, O ye kings, be
wise; and ye judges of the earth be instructed. 11. Serve Jehovah with
fear, and rejoice with trembling.
David
having, as a preacher of the judgments of God, set forth the vengeance which God
would take upon his enemies proceeds now, in the character of a prophet and
teacher, to exhort the unbelieving to repentance, that they may not, when it is
too late, be compelled to acknowledge, from dire experience, that the divine
threatenings are neither idle nor ineffectual. And he addresses by name kings
and rulers, who are not very easily brought to a submissive state of mind, and
who are, besides, prevented from learning what is right by the foolish conceit
of their own wisdom with which they are puffed up. And if David spare not even
kings themselves, who seem unrestrained by laws, and exempted from ordinary
rules, much more does his exhortation apply to the common class of men, in order
that all, from the highest to the lowest, may humble themselves before God. By
the adverb now, he signifies the necessity of their speedy repentance, since
they will not always be favored with the like opportunity. Meanwhile, he tacitly
gives them to understand, that it was for their advantage that he warned them,
as there was yet room for repentance provided they made haste. When he enjoins
them to be wise, he indirectly condemns their false confidence in their own
wisdom as if he had said, The beginning of true wisdom is when a man lays aside
his pride, and submits himself to the authority of Christ. Accordingly, however
good an opinion the princes of the world may have of their own shrewdness, we
may be sure they are arrant fools till they become humble scholars at the feet
of Christ. Moreover, he declares the manner in which they were to be wise, by
commanding them to serve the Lord with fear. By trusting to their elevated
station, they flatter themselves that they are loosed from the laws which bind
the rest of mankind; and the pride of this so greatly blinds them as to make
them think it beneath them to submit even to God. The Psalmist therefore, tells
them, that until they have learned to fear him, they are destitute of all right
understanding. And certainly, since they are so much hardened by security as to
withdraw their obedience from God, strong measures must at the first be employed
to bring them to fear him, and thus to recover them from their rebelliousness.
To prevent them from supposing that the service to which he calls them is
grievous, he teaches them by the word rejoice how pleasant and desirable it is,
since it furnishes matter of true gladness. But lest they should, according to
their usual way, wax wanton, and, intoxicated with vain pleasures, imagine
themselves happy while they are enemies to God, he exhorts them farther by the
words with fear to an humble and dutiful submission. There is a great difference
between the pleasant and cheerful state of a peaceful conscience, which the
faithful enjoy in having the favor of God, whom they fear, and the unbridled
insolence to which the wicked are carried, by contempt and forgetfulness of God.
The language of the prophet, therefore, implies, that so long as the proud
profligately rejoice in the gratification of the lusts of the flesh, they sport
with their own destruction, while, on the contrary, the only true and salutary
joy is that which arises from resting in the fear and reverence of
God.
Psalm
2:12
12. Kiss the Son, lest he be
angry, and ye perish from the way, when
fa29
his wrath is kindled in a moment. O blessed are all who put their trust in
him.
David expresses yet more distinctly
what kind of fear and service God requires. Since it is the will of God to reign
by the hand of his Son, and since he has engraved on his person the marks and
insignia of his own glory, the proper proof of our obedience and piety towards
him is reverently to embrace his Son, whom he has appointed king over us,
according to the declaration,
"He that honoureth not
the Son,
honoureth not the Father
who hath sent him," (John 5:23)
The term kiss refers to the solemn token or sign of
honor which subjects were wont to yield to their sovereigns. The sum is, that
God is defrauded of his honor if he is slot served in Christ. The Hebrew word
rb
Bar, signifies both a son and an elect person; but in whatever way you take it,
the meaning will remain the same. Christ was truly chosen of the Father, who has
given him all power, that he alone should stand pre-eminent above both men and
angels. On which account also he is said to be "sealed" by God,
(<430627>John
6:27) because a peculiar dignity was, conferred upon him, which removes him to a
distance from all creatures. Some interpreters expound it, kiss or embrace
what is pure,
fa30 which is a strange and rather forced
interpretation. For my part, I willingly retain the name of son, which answers
well to a former sentence, where it was said, "Thou art my Son, this day have I
begotten thee."
What follows immediately after
is a warning to those who despise Christ, that their pride shall not go
unpunished, as if he had said, As Christ is not despised without indignity being
done to the Father, who hath adorned him with his own glory, so the Father
himself will not allow such an invasion of his sacred rights to pass unpunished.
And to teach them to beware of vainly deceiving themselves with the hope of a
lengthened delay, and from their present ease indulging themselves in vain
pleasures, they are plainly told that his wrath will be kindled in a
moment. For we see, when God for a time connives at the wicked, and bears
with them, how they abuse this forbearance, by growing more presumptuous,
because they do not think of his judgments otherwise, than according to sight
and feeling. Some interpreters, I know, explain the Hebrew word
f[mk,
Camoat, which we have rendered, in a moment, in a different way,
namely, that as soon as God's wrath is kindled in even a small degree, it will
be all over with the reprobate. But it is more suitable to apply it to time, and
to view it as a warning to the proud not to harden themselves in their stupidity
and indifference, nor flatter themselves from the patience of God, with the hope
of escaping unpunished. Moreover, although this word appears to be put for the
purpose of giving a reason of what goes
before,
fa31 namely, why those who refuse to kiss the
Son shall perish, and although the Hebrew word
yk,
ki, signifies more frequently for than when, yet I am
unwilling to depart from the commonly received translation, and have thought it
proper to render the original word by the adverb when, which denotes both
the reason and time of what is predicated. Some explain the phrases, to
perish from the way, as meaning, a perverse way, or wicked manner of
listing. Others resolve it thus, lest your way perish, according to that saying
of the first psalm, the way of the ungodly shall perish. But I am rather
inclined to attach to the words a different meaning, and to view them as a
denunciation against the ungodly, by which they are warned that the wrath of God
will cut them off when they think themselves to be only in the middle of their
race. We know how the despisers of God are accustomed to flatter themselves in
prosperity, and run to great excess in riot. The prophet, therefore, with great
propriety, threatens that when they shall say, Peace and safety, reckoning
themselves at a great distance from their end, they shall be cut off by a sudden
destruction,
(<520503>1
Thessalonians 5:3)
The concluding sentence of
the psalm qualifies what was formerly said concerning the severity of Christ;
for his iron rod and the fiery wrath of God would strike terror into all men
without distinction, unless this comfort had been added. Having, therefore
discoursed concerning the terrible judgment which hangs over the unbelieving, he
now encourages God's faithful and devout servants to entertain good hope, by
setting forth the sweetness of his grace. Paul likewise observes the same order,
(<471006>2
Corinthians 10:6) for having declared that vengeance was in readiness against
the disobedient, he immediately adds addressing himself to believers "When your
obedience is fulfilled." Now, we understand the meaning of the Psalmist. As
believers might have applied to themselves the severity of which he makes
mention, he opens to them a sanctuary of hope, whither they may flee, in order
not to be overwhelmed by the terror of God's
wrath;
fa32 just as Joel
(<290232>Joel
2:32) also after having summoned the ungodly to the awful judgment-seat of God,
which of itself is terrible to men,
fa33 immediately subjoins the comfort,
Whosoever shall call on the name of the Lord shall be saved. For it appears to
me that this exclamation, Blessed
are all they that put their trust in
him,
fa34 should be read as a distinct sentence by
itself. The pronoun him may be referred as well to God as to Christ, but, in my
judgment, it agrees better with the whole scope of the psalm to understand it of
Christ, whom the Psalmist before enjoined kings and judges of the earth to
kiss.
PSALM
3.
David, although driven from his kingdom, and pressed
down with utter despair of relief from every earthly quarter, ceases not to call
upon God, and supports himself from his promise against the greatest terrors,
against the mockery and cruel assaults of his enemies; and, finally, against
death itself, which then forced itself upon his consideration. In the end of the
psalm, he congratulates himself and the whole Church on the happy issue of
all.
A Psalm of David,
when he fled from Absalom his
Son
fa35
How bitter David's sorrow was under the conspiracy of
his own household against him, which arose from the treachery of his own son, it
is easy for every one of us to conjecture from the feelings of nature. And when,
in addition to this, he knew that this disaster was brought upon him by God for
his own fault in having defiled another man's wife, and for shedding innocent
blood, he might have sunk into despair, and been overwhelmed with anguish, if he
had not been encouraged by the promise of God, and thus hoped for life even in
death. From his making no allusion here to his sins, we are led to infer, that
only one part of his prayers is comprised in this psalm; for as God punished him
expressly on account of his adultery, and his wicked treachery towards Uriah,
there can be no doubt that he was at first distressed with grievous and dreadful
torments of mind. But after he had humbled himself before God, he took courage;
and being well assured of having obtained forgiveness, he was fully persuaded
that God was on his side, and knew that he would always preside over his
kingdom, and show himself its
protector.
fa37 But he, nevertheless, complained of his
son, and of the whole faction involved in the conspiracy, because he knew that
they wickedly rose up for the purpose of frustrating the decree of God. In like
manner, if at any time God makes use of wicked and mischievous men, as scourges
to chastise us, it becomes us first diligently to consider the cause, namely,
that we suffer nothing which we have not deserved, in order that this reflection
may lead us to repentance. But if our enemies, In persecuting us,
rather
fa38 fight against God than against us, let
the consideration of their doing so be immediately followed by the confident
persuasion of our safety under the protection of him, whose grace, which he hath
promised to us, they despise and trample under
foot.
Psalm
3:1-2
1. O Lord, how are my
oppressors multiplied! many rise up against me. 2. Many say to my soul,
There is no help for him in God.
Selah.
Sacred history teaches that David
was not only dethroned, but forsaken by almost all men; so that he had well nigh
as many enemies as he had subjects. It is true there accompanied him in his
flight a few faithful friends; but he escaped in safety, not so much by their
aid and protection as by the hiding-places of the wilderness. It is therefore
not wonderful though he was affrighted by the great numbers who were opposed to
him, for nothing could have taken place more unlooked for, on his part, than so
sudden a rebellion. It was a mark of uncommon faith, when smitten with so great
consternation, to venture freely to make his complaint to God, and, as it were,
to pour out his soul into his bosom.
fa39 And certainly the only remedy for
allaying our fears is this, to cast upon him all the cares which trouble us; as,
on the other hand, those who have the conviction that they are not the objects
of his regard, must be prostrated and overwhelmed by the calamities which befall
them.
In the third verse he expresses more
distinctly, and more emphatically, the pride of his enemies in deriding him as a
castaway, and as a person whose circumstances were past hope. And he means, that
their boldness increased hereupon, because they were confident he had been
rejected by God. Perhaps, in these words also, their ungodliness is indirectly
referred to, inasmuch as they made no account of the help of God in preserving
the king whom he had chosen. And this second view is the more probable, for
Absalom did not flatter himself with the hope of the favor of God, but, entirely
disregarding him, hoped for victory from his own power. David, therefore,
expressly introduces both him and the rest as speaking after this manner, to
show that it was by a monstrous and outrageous contempt of God that they were
driven to such fury against him, as if they made no account whatever of the fact
of his having been often wonderfully delivered from the greatest dangers. The
ungodly, when they rise up to destroy us, may not openly break forth into such
daring presumption as to maintain it to be impossible for us to derive any
advantage from the favor of God; yet, as they either ascribe every thing to
fortune, or hold the opinion that a man's success will be in proportion to his
strength, and therefore fearlessly rush forward to gain their object, by all
means, whether right or wrong, as if it would be equally the same, whether God
is angry with or favorable towards them, it is evident that they set no value
whatever upon the favor of God, and mock at the faithful as if it would avail
them nothing to be under the care and protection of
God.
The translation of some, Many say OF
my soul, does not give the true meaning of this passage. The letter
l
lamed is indeed sometimes used as meaning of in Hebrew, but David here
intended to express something more, namely, that his heart was in a manner
pierced with the mockery of his enemies. The word soul, therefore, in my
opinion, here signifies the seat of the affections. And it has a corresponding
meaning in a passage which we shall meet with in another Psalm,
(<193503>Psalm
35:3,) "Say to my soul, I am thy salvation." David thus teaches us by his own
example, that although the whole world, with one voice, should attempt to drive
us to despair, instead of listening to it, we ought rather to give ear to God
alone, and always cherish within us the hope of the salvation which he hath
promised; and as the ungodly use their endeavors to destroy our souls, we ought
to defend them by our prayers. With respect to the word Selah,
interpreters are not agreed. Some maintain it is a mark of affirmations and
has the same signification as truly or amen. Others understand it as meaning
for ever. But as
lls
Selal, from which it is derived, signifies to lift up, we incline
to the opinion of those who think it denotes the lifting up of the voice in
harmony in the exercise of singing. At the same time, it must be observed, that
the music was adapted to the sentiment, and so the harmony was in unison with
the character or subject-matter of the song; just as David here, after having
complained of his enemies for shamefully laughing to scorn his hope, as if the
protection of God would be of no avail to him, fixes the attention on this
blasphemy, which severely wounded his heart, by the use of the word Selah;
and as a little after, when he has added a new ground of confidence with
regard to the safety of his person, he repeats the same
word.
Psalm
3:3-4
3. And thou, Jehovah, art a
shield for me, my glory, and he that exalteth my head. 4. I have cried to
the lord with my voice, and he heard me out of his holy hill.
Selah.
The copulative and should be
resolved into the disjunctive particle but, because David employs language full
of confidence, in opposition to the hardihood and profane scoffings of his
enemies,
fa40 and testifies that whatever they may
say, he would nevertheless rely upon the word of God. It besides appears that he
had previously entertained an assured hope of deliverance, from the circumstance
of his here making no mention of his present calamity as a chastisement
inflicted upon him by the hand of God; but rather depending upon the divine aid,
he courageously encounters his enemies, who were carrying on an ungodly and
wicked war against him, seeing they intended to depose a true and lawful king
from his throne. In short, having acknowledged his sin before, he now takes into
consideration only the merits of the present cause. And thus it becomes the
servants of God to act when molested by the wicked. Having mourned over their
own sins, and humbly betaken themselves to the mercy of God, they ought to keep
their eyes fixed on the obvious and immediate cause of their afflictions, that
they may entertain no doubt of the help of God when undeservedly subjected to
evil treatment. Especially when, by their being evil entreated, the truth of God
is opposed, they ought to be greatly encouraged, and glory in the assurance that
God without doubt will maintain the truth of his own promises against such
perfidious and abandoned characters. Had it been otherwise with David, he might
seem to have claimed these things to himself groundlessly, seeing he had
deprived himself of the approbation and help of God by offending
him.
fa41 But being persuaded that he was not
utterly cut off from the favor of God, and that God's choice of him to be king
remained unchanged, he encourages himself to hope for a favorable issue to his
present trials. And, in the first place, by comparing God to a shield, he
means that he was defended by his power. Hence also he concludes, that God
was his glory, because he would be the maintainer and defender of the
royal dignity which he had been pleased to confer upon him. And, on this
account, he became so bold that he declares he would walk with unabashed
brow.
fa42
4.
With my voice have I cried
unto the Lord. He here informs us that
he had never been so broken by adversity, or cast down by impious
scornings,
fa43 as to be prevented from addressing his
prayers to God. And it was an infallible proof of his faith to exercise
it by praying even in the midst of his distresses. Nothing is more unbecoming
than sullenly to gnaw the bit with which we are bridled, and to withhold our
groaning from God,
fa44 if, indeed we have any faith in his
promise. Nor is there a redundancy of expression in these words,
I have cried with my
voice. David distinctly mentions his
voice, the better to express that how much soever the ungodly might rage against
him, he was by no means struck dumb, but pronounced, in a loud and distinct
voice, the name of his God; and to do this was a difficult matter under so
grievous and severe a temptation. He also particularly mentions his voice, in
order to show that he opposes the voice of prayer to the tumultuous outcries of
those who either blame fortune or curse God, or give way to excessive
complainings; those in short, who with passionate confusion pour forth their
immoderate sorrow. But David's meaning appears to me to be principally this,
that amidst the blasphemies of his enemies by which they endeavored to overwhelm
his faith, he was not put to silence, but rather lifted up his voice to God,
whom the ungodly imagined to have become his enemy. He adds that he cried not in
vain, to encourage all the godly to the like constancy. As to the expression,
from the hill of his
holiness or, which signifies the same
things from his holy hill, it is improperly explained of heaven, as has
been done by some. Heaven, I indeed confess, is often called, in other places,
God's holy palace; but here David has doubtless a reference to the ark of the
covenant, which at that time stood on Mount Sion. And he expressly affirms that
he was heard from thence, though he had been compelled to flee into the
wilderness. The Sacred History relates,
(<101524>2
Samuel 25:24,) that when Abiathar the priest commanded the ark to be carried by
the Levites, David would not suffer it. And in this the wonderful faith of the
holy man appears conspicuous. He knew that the Lord had chosen Sion to be the
dwelling place of the ark, but he was, notwithstanding, willing rather to be
torn from that sacred symbol of the divine presence, (which was painful to him
as if his own bowels had been torn from him,) than make any innovation not
sanctioned by the will of heaven. Now, he boasts, that although he was deprived
of the sight of the ark, and notwithstanding the distance to which he was
removed from it, God was near him to listen to his prayers. By these words he
intimates that he kept a due medium, inasmuch as he neither despised the visible
sign, which the Lord had appointed on account of the rudeness of the times, nor
by attaching a superstitious importance to a particular place, entertained
carnal conceptions of the glory of God. Thus, he did not idly scatter words
which would vanish into air, as unbelievers are wont to do, who pray also but
are in doubt to what place they ought to direct their speech. David turned
himself directly towards the tabernacle, whence God had promised to be merciful
to his servants. Hence the confidence with which he prayed; and this confidence
was not without success. In our day, since there is fulfilled in Christ what was
formerly shadowed forth by the figures of the law, a much easier way of approach
to God is opened up for us, provided we do not knowingly and willingly wander
from the way.
Psalm
3:5-6
5. I laid me down and slept, I
awaked; for the lord sustained me. 6. I will not be afraid of ten
thousands of people, who have set their camps against me on all
sides.
According to the usage of the
Hebrews, these words, which are in the past tense,
I laid me down and
slept, are taken sometimes for the
future, I will lie down and
sleep.
fa45 If we retain the reading of the
verb in the past tense, David expresses a wonderful and almost incredible
steadfastness of mind in that he slept so soundly in the midst of many deaths,
as if he had been beyond the reach of all danger. He had doubtless been tossed
amidst the merciless waves of anxiety, but it is certain their violence had been
allayed by means of faith, so that however much he was disquieted, he reposed in
God. Thus the godly never fail in ultimately proving victorious over all their
fears, whereas the ungodly, who do not rely upon God, are overwhelmed with
despair, even when they meet with the smallest perils. Some think there is here
a change of tenses; and, therefore, translate the verbs into the fixture tense,
I will lay me down and will sleep, and will awake, because
immediately after a verb of the future is subjoined,
The Lord shall uphold
me. But as he expresses, by these last
words, a continuous act, I thought it unnecessary to change the tenses in the
three first verbs. Still we ought to know, that this confidence of safety is not
to be referred peculiarly to the time of his affliction, or, at least, is not to
be limited to it:for, in my judgment, David rather declares how much good he had
obtained by means of faith and prayer; namely the peaceful and undisturbed state
of a well regulated mind. This he expresses metaphorically when he says, that he
did the ordinary actions of life without being disturbed by fear. "I have not
lain," says he, "waking and restless on my bed; but I have slept soundly,
whereas such manner of sleeping does not generally happen to those who are full
of thought and fear." But let us particularly notice that David came to have
this confidence of safety from the protection of God, and not from stupidity of
mind. Even the wicked are kept fast asleep through an intoxication of mind,
while they dream of having made a covenant with death. It was otherwise with
David, who found rest on no other ground but because he was upheld by the power
of God, and defended by his help. In the next verse, he enlarges upon the
incalculable efficacy of this confidence, of which all the godly have some
understanding, from their experience of the divine protection. As the power of
God is infinite, so they conclude that it shall be invincible against all the
assaults, outrages, preparations, and forces of the whole world. And, indeed,
unless we ascribe this honor to God, our courage shall be always failing us. Let
us, therefore, learn, when in dangers, not to measure the assistance of God
after the manner of man, but to despise whatever terrors may stand in our way,
inasmuch as all the attempts which men may make against God, are of little or no
account.
Psalm
3:7-8
7. Arise, O Lord, save me, O
my God; for thou hast smitten all mine enemies upon the cheek-bone; thou hast
broken the teeth of the ungodly. 8. Salvation belongeth unto the Lord;
thy blessing is upon thy people.
Selah.
7.
Arise, O
Lord. As in the former verses David
boasted of his quiet state, it would now appear he desires of the Lord to
be preserved in safety during the whole of his life; as if he had said, Lord,
since thou hast overthrown my enemies, grant that this thy goodness may follow
me, and be continued even to the end of my course. But because it is no uncommon
thing for David, in the Psalms, to mingle together various affections, it seems
more probable, that, after having made mention of his confidence in God, he
returns again to make the same prayers as at the
beginning.
fa46 He therefore asks to be preserved,
because he was in eminent peril. What follows concerning the smiting of
his enemies, may be explained in two ways: either that in praying he calls
to his remembrance his former victories, or that having experienced the
assistance of God, and obtained the answer of his prayers, he now follows it up
by thanksgiving: and this last meanings I am much inclined to adopt. In the
first place, then, he declares that he fled to God for help in dangers, and
humbly prayed for deliverance, and after salvation had been granted him, he
gives thanks, by which he testifies, that he acknowledged God to be the author
of the deliverance which he had
obtained.
fa47
8.
Salvation belongeth unto the
Lord. Because
l is
sometimes used by the Hebrews for
°m
Min, some not improperly translate this clause, Salvation is of
the Lord. I, however consider the natural and obvious meaning to be simply
this, that salvation or deliverance is only in the hands of God. By these words,
David not only claims the office and praise of saving for God alone, tacitly
opposing his power to all human succor; but also declares, that although a
thousand deaths hang over his people, yet this cannot render God unable to save
them, or prevent him from speedily sending forth without any effort, the
deliverance which he is always able to impart. In the end of the psalm, David
affirms that this was vouchsafed, not so much to him as an individual, as to the
whole people, that the universal Church, whose welfare depended on the safety
and prosperity of his kingdom, might be preserved from destruction. David,
therefore, acknowledges the dispersion of this wicked conspiracy to have been
owing to the care which God had about the safety of his Church. From this
passage we learn, that the Church shall always be delivered from the calamities
which befall her, because God who is able to save her, will never withdraw his
grace and blessing from her.
PSALM
4.
After David in the beginning of the psalm has prayed
to God to help him, he immediately turns his discourse to his enemies, and
depending on the promise of God, triumphs over them as a conqueror. He,
therefore, teaches us by his example, that as often as we are weighed down by
adversity, or involved in very great distress, we ought to meditate upon the
promises of God, in which the hope of salvation is held forth to us, so that
defending ourselves by this shield, we may break through all the temptations
which assail us.
To the chief
musician on Neginoth. A psalm of David.
It is uncertain at what time this psalm was composed.
But from the tenor of it, it is conjectured, with probability, that David was
then a fugitive and an exile. I therefore refer it to the time when he was
persecuted by Saul. If, however, any person is disposed rather to understand it
as referring to the time when he was compelled by the conspiracy of Absalom to
secure his safety by flight, I will not greatly contend about the matter. But
as, a little after, he uses an expression, namely, "How long?" (verse
3)
fa48 which indicates that he had a lengthened
struggle, the opinion which I have already brought forward is the more probable.
For we know with what varied trials he was harassed, before he obtained complete
deliverance, from the time when Saul began to be his enemy. Concerning the words
which are contained in this verse, I shall only make one or two brief
observations. Some translate the word
htnm,
Lamnetsah, for ever; and they say that it was the commencement of
a common song, to the tune of which this psalm was
composed:fa49
but this I reject as a forced translation. Others, with more truth, are of
opinion, that
hxnm,
Menetsah, signifies one who excels and surpasses all others. But because
expositors are not agreed as to the particular kind of excellence and dignity
here spoken of, let it suffice, that by this word is denoted the chief master or
president of the band.
fa50 I do not approve of rendering the word,
conqueror; for although it answers to the subject-matter of the present
psalm, yet it does not at all suit other places where we shall find the same
Hebrew word used. With respect to the second word, Neginoth, I think it
comes from the verb
°gn,
Nagan, which signifies to strike or sound; and, therefore, I doubt not,
but it was an instrument of music. Whence it follows, that this psalm was
designed to be sung, not only with the voice, but also with musical instruments,
which were presided over, and regulated by the chief musician of whom we have
just now spoken.
Psalm
4:1
1. Answer me when I cry, O God
of my righteousness; thou hast enlarged me in distress; have pity upon me, and
hear my prayer.
In these words there is
shown the faith of David, who, although brought to the uttermost distress,
and indeed almost consumed by a long series of calamities, did not sink under
his sorrow; nor was he so broken in heart as to be prevented from betaking
himself to God his deliverer. By his praying, he testified, that when utterly
deprived of all earthly succor, there yet remained for him hope in God.
Moreover, he calls him the
God of his righteousness, which is the
same thing as if he had called him the vindicator of his
right;
fa51 and he appeals to God, because all men
everywhere condemned him, and his innocence was borne down by the slanderous
reports of his enemies and the perverse judgments of the common people. And this
cruel and unjust treatment which David met with, ought to be carefully marked.
For while nothing is more painful to us than to be falsely condemned, and to
endure, at one and the same time, wrongful violence and slander; yet to be
ill spoken of for doing well, is an affliction which daily befalls
the saints. And it becomes them to be so exercised under it as to turn away from
all the enticements of the world, and to depend wholly upon God alone.
Righteousness, therefore, is here to be understood of a good cause, of
which David makes God the witness, while he complains of the malicious and
wrongful conduct of men towards him; and, by his example, he teaches us,
that if at any time our uprightness is not seen and acknowledged by the world,
we ought not on that account to despond, inasmuch as we have one in heaven to
vindicate our cause. Even the heathen have said there is no better stage for
virtue than a man's own conscience. But it is a consolation far surpassing this,
to know when men vaunt themselves over us wrongfully, that we are standing in
the view of God and of the angels. Paul, we know, was endued with courage
arising from this source,
(<460405>1
Corinthians 4:5) for when many evil reports were spread abroad concerning him
among the Corinthians, he appeals to the judgment-seat of God. Isaiah also,
fortified by the same confidence,
(<235006>Isaiah
50:6 and following verse) despises all the slanders by which his enemies
calumniated him. If, therefore, we cannot find justice anywhere in the world the
only support of our patience is to look to God, and to rest contented with the
equity of his judgment. It may, however, be asked by way of objection, Since all
the purity of men is mere pollution in the sight of God, how can the godly dare
to bring forward their own righteousness before him? With respect to David, it
is easy to answer this question. He did not boast of his own righteousness
except in reference to his enemies, from whose calumnies he vindicated himself.
He had the testimony of a good conscience that he had attempted nothing without
the call and commandment of God, and therefore he does not speak rashly when he
calls God the protector and defender of his right. Hence we learn that David
honored God with this title of praise, in order the more readily to set him in
contrast with the whole world. And as he asks twice to be heard, in this there
is expressed to us both the vehemence of his grief and the earnestness of his
prayers. In the last clause of the verse, he also shows whence he expected to
obtain what he needed, namely, from the mercy of God. And certainly, as often as
we ask anything from God, it becomes us to begin with this, and to beseech him,
according to his free goodness, to relieve our
miseries.
Thou hast enlarged
me when I was in distress. Some think
that David here promises himself what he had not yet experienced; and in the
exercise of hope anticipates the manifestations of God's grace with which he
should afterwards be favored. But, in my opinion, he rather mentions the
benefits which he formerly received from God, and by these strengthens himself
against the time to come. Thus the faithful are accustomed to call to their
remembrance those things which tend to strengthen their faith. We shall,
hereafter meet with many passages similar to this, where David, in order to give
energy to his faith against terrors and
dangers,
fa52 brings together the many experiences
from which he had learned that God is always present with his own people and
will never disappoint their desires. The mode of expression which he here
employs is metaphorical, and by it he intimates that a way of escape was opened
up to him even when he was besieged and enclosed on every side. The distress of
which he speaks, in my opinion, refers not less to the state of his mind than to
circumstances of outward affliction; for David's heart was not of such an iron
mould as to prevent him from being cast into deeper mental anguish by
adversity.
Psalm
4:2-3
2. O ye sons of men, how long
will ye try to turn my glory into shame? how long will ye love vanity, and
seeking after lying? Selah 3. But know that Jehovah hath chosen for
himself one who is merciful:Jehovah will hear when I call upon
him.
2.
O ye sons of
men. The happy result of the prayer of David
was, that resuming courage, he was able not only to repel the fury of his
enemies, but also to challenge them on his part, and fearlessly to despise all
their machinations. That our confidence, therefore, may remain unshaken, we
ought not, when assailed by the wicked, to enter into conflict without being
furnished like David with the same armor. The sum is, that since God was
determined to defend David by his own power, it was in vain for all the men in
the world to endeavor to destroy him; however great the power which they
otherwise might have of doing him injury. By calling those whom he addresses the
sons, not of Adam, or of some common persons but of men, he seems by the
way to reprove their pride.
fa53 I do not agree with certain Jewish
expositors who think that nobles or men of rank are meant. It is rather an
ironical concession of what they claimed to themselves, by which he ridicules
their presumption, in esteeming themselves to be noble and wise, whereas it was
only blind rage which impelled them to wicked enterprises. In the words how
long, he condemns their perverse obstinacy; for what he means, is not that
they were stirred up against him merely by some sudden impulses, but that the
stubborn purpose of injuring him was deeply fixed in their hearts. Had not their
maliciousness deprived them of their understanding, the many instances in which
God had proved himself to be David's defender would have compelled them to
desist from their attempts against him. But as they were fully determined to
disgrace him whom God had exalted to the royal throne he asks them, How
long they will persevere in their endeavors
to turn his glory into
shame. And it is to be observed that
although loaded with every kind of reproach, both among the high and the low he
yet courageously keeps fast hold of the glory or the honor of royalty which God
had graciously promised him, or had conferred upon him, and is fully persuaded
that God will at length vindicate his right to it, however much his enemies
might wickedly endeavor to blot and obscure it by treating his pretensions with
derision and scorn.
How long
will ye love vanity? In these words, he
partly reproaches his enemies for the wicked and perverse passions with which he
saw them to be impelled, although they falsely pretended to be actuated by a
godly zeal; and he partly derides their folly in flattering themselves with the
hope of success while fighting against God. And it is a most pointed rebuke.
Even when the ungodly rush headlong into all manner of wickedness with the
grossest
fa54 malice, they soothe themselves with
deceitful flatteries in order not to be disturbed with the feelings of remorse.
David, therefore, cries out, that wilfully to shut their eyes and varnish their
unrighteousness with deceitful colors, would avail them nothing. The ungodly may
indeed flatter and delude themselves, but when they are brought in good earnest
to the trial, it will be always manifest that the reason why they are deceived
is, because from the beginning they were determined to deal deceitfully. Now,
from this place, we ought to take a shield of invincible steadfastness as often
as we see ourselves overmatched in prudence and subtlety by the wicked. For with
whatever engines they assault us, yet if we have the testimony of a good
conscience, God will remain on our side, and against him they shall not prevail.
They may greatly excel in ingenuity, and possess much power of hurting us, and
have their plans and subsidiary aid in the greatest readiness, and be very
shrewd in discernment, yet whatever they may invent, it will be but lying
and vanity.
3.
Know that Jehovah hath set
apart, etc. This is a confirmation of
the preceding verse, for it shows that the cause of David's boldness consisted
in this, that he depended upon God, the founder of his kingdom. And surely we
may then safely triumph over our enemies when we are assured of having the call
of God to the office which we hold, or the work in which we are engaged.
Accordingly, David does not here boast of his own strength, or riches, or armies
by which he obtained the kingdom. But as he was chosen by God, he intimates that
the many attempts of his enemies against him would be without success, because
they would find from experience, that God, whose power they could not
successfully resist, was against them. In the first place, he says that he was
set apart by God, by which he means that he was advanced to the throne,
not by the will of man, or by his own ambition, but by the appointment of God.
The Hebrew word
hlp,
Phalah, signifies to separate, and it here refers to separation to honor
and dignity; as if he had said you admit no one as king but he who is chosen by
your own suffrages, or who pleases you; but it is the peculiar prerogative of
God to make choice of whom he will. By the word merciful or bountiful,
he doubtless vindicates his right to be king, from the fact that this was a
quality which belonged to himself; it is as if he had produced the mark or badge
of his calling. For it was truly said in the old proverb, Mercy is the virtue
most suitable for kings. Now, God usually furnishes those whom he reckons worthy
of having this honor conferred upon them, with the endowments requisite for the
exercise of their office, that they may not be as dead idols. Some understand
the word
dysj,
chasid, in a passive sense, not as denoting a beneficent person, but one
who is placed on the throne by the favor of God. As, however, I meet with no
examples of this signification of the word in Scripture, I think it safer to
follow the common interpretation, which is this:God has chosen a king, who
answers to the character which should be possessed by all who are called to fill
such an exalted station, in as much as he is merciful and beneficent. Hence, he
infers that he would be heard by God as often as he called upon him; for God
principally proves his faithfulness in this, that he does not forsake the work
of his own hands, but continually defends those whom he has once received into
his favor. Hence, we are taught fearlessly to proceed in our path; because
whatever we may have undertaken according to his will, shall never be
ineffectual. Let this truth then, obtain a fixed place in our minds, that God
will never withhold his assistance from those who go on sincerely in their
course. Without this comfort, the faithful must inevitably sink into despondency
every moment.
Psalm
4:4-5
4. Tremble then, and sin
not:commune with your own heart upon your bed, and be still. Selah. 5.
Sacrifice the sacrifices of righteousness, and put your trust in the
Lord.
4.
Tremble
then. Now he exhorts his enemies to
repentance, if peradventure, their madness was not wholly incorrigible. In the
first place, he bids them tremble, or be troubled; a
word by which he rebukes their stupidity in running headlong in their wicked
course, without any fear of God, or any sense of danger. And certainly the great
presumption of all the ungodly in not hesitating to engage in war against God,
proceeds from their being hardened through an infatuated security; and by their
thoughtlessness, they render themselves stupid, and become more obdurate by
forgetting both God and themselves, and following whithersoever lust leads them.
He tells them that the best remedy to cure their rage, and prevent them from
sinning any longer, would be to awaken from their lethargy and begin to
be afraid and tremble; as if he had said, As soon as you shall have shaken off
your drowsiness and insensibility, your desire of sinning will abate; for the
reason why the ungodly are troublesome to the good and the simple, and cause so
much confusion, is because they are too much at peace with
themselves.
He afterwards admonishes them
to commune with their own heart
upon their bed, that is, to take an
account of themselves at leisure, and as it were, in some place of deep
retirement;
fa55 an exercise which is opposed to their
indulgence of their unruly passions. In the end of the verse he enjoins them
to be still. Now, it is to be observed, that the cause of this stillness
is the agitation and trembling, of which he before made mention. For if any have
been hurried into sin by their infatuated recklessness, the first step of their
return to a sound mind is to awaken themselves from their deep sleep to
fearfulness and trembling. After this follows calm and deliberate reflection;
then they consider and reconsider to what dangers they have been exposing
themselves; and thus at length they, whose audacious spirits shrink at nothing,
learn to be orderly and peaceable, or, at least, they restrain their frantic
violence.
To commune upon
one's bed, is a form of expression taken
from the common practice and experience of men. We know that, during our
intercourse with men in the day time, our thoughts are distracted, and we often
judge rashly, being deceived by the external appearance; whereas in solitude, we
can give to any subject a closer attention; and, farther, the sense of shame
does not then hinder a man from thinking without disguise of his own faults.
David, therefore, exhorts his enemies to withdraw from those who witnessed and
judged of their actions on the public stage of life, and to be alone, that they
may examine themselves more truthfully and honestly. And this exhortation has a
respect to us all; for there is nothing to which men are more prone than to
deceive one another with empty applause, until each man enter into himself, and
commune alone with his own heart. Paul, when quoting this passage in
<490426>Ephesians
4:26, or, at least when alluding to the sentiment of David, follows the
Septuagint, "Be ye angry and sin not." And yet he has skilfully and beautifully
applied it to his purpose. He there teaches us that men, instead of wickedly
pouring forth their anger against their neighbors, have rather just cause to be
angry with themselves, in order that, by this means, they may abstain from sin.
And, therefore, he commands them rather to fret inwardly, and be angry with
themselves; and then to be angry, not so much at the persons, as at the vices of
others.
5.
Sacrifice
ye. Many are of opinion that David
exhorts his enemies to give some evidence of their repentance; and I certainly
admit, that sacrifices were partly enjoined for the purpose of inducing men to
walk in newness of life. But when I consider the character of the men who
opposed David, I am satisfied that he here censures their hypocrisy, and beats
down their groundless boasting. David, when he wandered as a fugitive in
deserts, or in caves, or on mountains, or in the regions beyond his own country,
might seem to have been separated from the Church of God; and certainly he was
commonly accounted as a corrupt member cut off from the body and the communion
of the saints. Meanwhile the ark of the covenant was in the hands of his
enemies, they kept possession of the temple, and they were the first in offering
sacrifices. They, therefore, vaunted themselves against David with the same
boldness and presumption with which we know hypocrites to have been always
puffed up. Nor is it to be doubted, but they proudly abused the name of God as
if they only had been his true
worshippers.
fa56 But as Jeremiah
(<240704>Jeremiah
7:4) rebukes the ungodly, because of the false confidence which they placed in
the temple of the Lord; so David also denies that God is pacified by mere
outward ceremonies, since he requires pure sacrifices. There is in the words an
implied contrast between the sacrifices of righteousness, and all those vain and
spurious rites
fa57 with which the counterfeit worshippers
of God satisfy themselves. The sum, therefore, is, "You boast of having God on
your side, because you have free access to his altar to offer your sacrifices
there with great pomp; and because I am banished from the Holy Land, and not
suffered to come to the temple, you think that I am not an object of the divine
care. But you must worship God in a far different manner, if you would expect
any good at his hand; for your unclean sacrifices with which you pollute his
altar, so far from rendering him favorable to you, will do nothing else but
provoke his wrath." Let us learn from this passage, that, in contending with the
corrupters of true religion, who may have the name of God continually in their
mouth, and vaunt themselves on account of their observance of his outward
worship, we may safely rebuke their boasting, because they do not offer the
right sacrifices. But, at the same time, we must beware lest a vain pretense of
godliness foster in us a perverse and ill founded confidence, in place of true
hope.
Psalm
4:6-7
6. Many say, Who will show us
good?
fa58 Lift thou up upon us the light of thy
countenance, O Jehovah. 7. Thou hast given more joy to my heart than they
have in the time when their corn and their wine are
increased.
6.
Many
say. Some are of opinion that David here
complains of the cruel malice of his enemies, because they greedily sought for
his life. But David, I have no doubt, compares the sole wish with which his own
heart was burning, to the many desires with which almost all mankind are
distracted. As it is not a principle held and acted upon by ungodly men, that
those only can be truly and perfectly happy who are interested in the favor of
God, and that they ought to live as strangers and pilgrims in the world, in
order through hope and patience to obtain, in due time, a better life, they
remain contented with perishing good things; and, therefore, if they enjoy
outward prosperity, they are not influenced by any great concern about God.
Accordingly, while, after the manner of the lower animals, they grasp at various
objects, some at one thing, and some at another, thinking to find in them
supreme happiness, David, with very good reason, separates himself from them,
and proposes to himself an end of an entirely opposite description. I do not
quarrel with the interpretation which supposes that David is here complaining of
his own followers, who, finding their strength insufficient for bearing the
hardships which befell them, and exhausted by weariness and grief, indulged in
complaints, and anxiously desired repose. But I am rather inclined to extend the
words farther, and to view them as meaning that David, contented with the favor
of God alone, protests that he disregards, and sets no value on objects which
others ardently desire. This comparison of the desire of David with the desires
of the world, well illustrates this important
doctrine,
fa59 that the faithful, forming a low
estimate of present good things, rest in God alone, and account nothing of more
value than to know from experience that they are interested in his favor. David,
therefore, intimates in the first place, that all those are fools, who, wishing
to enjoy prosperity, do not begin with seeking the favor of God; for, by
neglecting to do this, they are carried about by the various false opinions
which are abroad. In the second place, he rebukes another vice, namely, that of
gross and earthly men in giving themselves wholly to the ease and comforts of
the flesh, and in settling down in, or contenting themselves with, the enjoyment
of these alone, without thinking of any thing
higher.
fa60 Whence also it comes to pass, that as
long as they are supplied with other things according to their desire, they are
altogether indifferent about God, just as if they had no need of him. David, on
the contrary, testifies, that although he may be destitute of all other good
things, the fatherly love of God is sufficient to compensate for the loss of
them all. This, therefore, is the purport of the whole:"The greater number of
men greedily seek after present pleasures and advantages; but I maintain that
perfect felicity is only to be found in the favor of
God."
David uses the expression,
The light of God's
countenance, to denote his serene and
pleasant countenance — the manifestations of his favor and love; just as,
on the other hand, the face of God seems to us dark and clouded when he shows
the tokens of his anger. This light, by a beautiful metaphor, is said to be
lifted up, when, shining in our hearts, it produces trust and hope. It
would not be enough for us to be beloved by God, unless the sense of this love
came home to our hearts; but, shining upon them by the Holy Spirit, he cheers us
with true and solid joy. This passage teaches us that those are miserable who do
not, with full resolution, repose themselves wholly in God, and take
satisfaction therein,
fa61 even although they may have an
overflowing abundance of all earthly things; while, on the other hand, the
faithful, although they are tossed amidst many troubles, are truly happy, were
there no other ground for it but this, that God's fatherly countenance shines
upon them, which turns darkness into light, and, as I may say, quickens even
death itself.
7.
Thou hast given more joy to
my heart. By another comparison
he better expresses and illustrates the strength of his affection, showing that,
having obtained the good which he had longed for, he does not in the least
degree envy the wealth and enjoyments of others, but is altogether contented
with his own lot. The sum is, that he had more satisfaction in seeing the
reconciled countenance of God beaming upon him, than if he had possessed garners
full of corn, and cellars full of
wine.
fa62 Interpreters are not agreed as to the
word
t[m,
me-eth, which we have translated, in the time. Some give this
rendering, Thou hast put gladness into my heart, Since The Time
that their corn and wine
increased; as if David had said, I
rejoice when I see mine enemies prospering in the
world.
fa63 But the former translation appears to me
much more suitable; according to which David declares, that he rejoices more in
the favor of God alone, than earthly men rejoice when they enjoy all earthly
good things, with the desire of which they are generally inflamed. He had
represented them as so bent upon, and addicted to, the pursuit of worldly
prosperity, as to have no great care about God; and now he adds, that their joy
in the abundance and increase of their wine and corn is not so great as is his
joy in a sense of the divine goodness alone. This verse contains very profitable
instruction. We see how earthly men, after they have despised the grace of God,
and plunged themselves over head and ears in transitory pleasures, are so far
from being satisfied with them, that the very abundance of them inflames their
desires the more; and thus, in the midst of their fullness, a secret uneasiness
renders their minds uncomfortable. Never, therefore, shall we obtain undisturbed
peace and solid joy until the favor of God shine upon us. And although the
faithful also desire and seek after their worldly comforts, yet they do not
pursue them with immoderate and irregular ardor; but can patiently bear to be
deprived of them, provided they know themselves to be the objects of the divine
care.
Psalm
4:8
8. I will lay me down, and will
sleep together in peace; for thou, Lord, hast placed me alone
fa64
in safety.
He concludes, by stating, that
as he is protected by the power of God, he enjoys as much security and quiet as
if he had been defended by all the garrisons on earth. Now, we know, that to be
free from all fear, and from the torment and vexation of care, is a blessing to
be desired above all other things. This verse, therefore, is a confirmation of
the former sentence, intimating that David justly prefers the joy produced by
the light of God's fatherly love before all other objects for inward peace of
mind certainly surpasses all the blessings of which we can form any conception.
Many commentators explain this place as expressing David's hope, that his
enemies will be reconciled to him, so that he may sleep with them in peace, God
having granted him the peculiar privilege of being able to rest without being
disturbed or disquieted by any man. But in my judgment the proper meaning is
this, that he will live as quietly and securely alone, as in the midst of a
great host of men, because God defends him for in the words, I will sleep
together, I consider the particle as to be understood, as if the
reading were as together, that is to say, as with a multitude. Some refer
ddbl,
lebadad, alone, to God, translating the words thus, Thou alone, O
Lord, hast set me in safety; but this I do not at all approve, because, by
taking away the contrast between these two words, together and alone,
much of the beauty of the sentence is lost. In short, David boasts
that the protection of God alone was sufficient, and that under it he sleeps as
securely, although destitute of all human guardianship, as if he had had many to
keep watch and ward continually over him, or as if he had been defended on all
sides by a great company. Let us therefore, learn from his example, to yield
this honor to God — to believe, that although there may appear no help for
us from men, yet under his hand alone we are kept in peace and safety, as if we
were surrounded by a great host.
PSALM
5.
David being grievously oppressed by the cruelty of
his enemies, and apprehending still more mischief, earnestly beseeches God for
help. And the more easily to obtain what he asks, after having, by the
earnestness of his prayers, manifested the greatness of his grief, he first
brings forward the intolerable malice of his enemies, showing how inconsistent
it would be with the character of God, were they to be left unpunished. He next
speaks of his own faith and patience, and even comfort; having no doubt whatever
of a happy issue. Finally, he concludes, that when he shall be delivered, the
benefits resulting from his deliverance would not be limited to himself, but
would extend to all the godly.
To the chief
musician upon Nehiloth. A psalm of David.
Some translate the Hebrew word Nehiloth,
heritages, and others, armies. The former assign this reason for
their opinion, that David prayed for the welfare of the twelve tribes, whom he
calls heritages.
fa65 The latter assert in support of
their view, that being besieged by a vast multitude of men, he betook himself to
God for succor; and, according to this sense, the word upon will signify
against. But not approving of the conjectures of many who speak upon
these inscriptions of The Psalms as if they were
riddles,
fa66 I adopt the opinion of those who hold
that it was either a musical instrument or a tune; but of what particular kind I
consider it of little importance to
ascertain.
Psalm
5:1-2
1. Give ear unto my words, O
Jehovah; attend to my speech. 2. Hearken to the voice of my cry, my King
and my God:for unto thee will I pray.
I
presume not positively to determine whether David, in this psalm, bewails the
wrongs which he suffered from his enemies at some particular time, or whether he
complains generally of the various persecutions with which, for a long time, he
was harassed under Saul. Some of the Jewish commentators apply the psalm even to
Absalom; because, by the bloody
and deceitful man, they think Doeg and
Ahithophel are pointed out. To me, however, it appears more probable, that when
David, after the death of Saul, had got peaceable possession of the kingdoms he
committed to writing the prayers which he had meditated in his afflictions and
dangers. But to come to the words:— First, he expresses one thing in three
different ways; and this repetition denotes the strength of his affection, and
his long perseverance in prayer. For he was not so fond of many words as to
employ different forms of expression, which had no meaning; but being deeply
engaged in prayer, he represented, by these various expressions, the variety of
his complaints.
fa67 It therefore signifies, that he prayed
neither coldly nor only in few words; but that, according as the vehemence of
his grief urged him, he was earnest in bewailing his calamities before God; and
that since it did not immediately appear what would be their issue, he
persevered in repeating the same complaints. Again, he does not expressly state
what he desires to ask from
God:fa68
but there is a greater force in this kind of suppression, than if he had spoken
distinctly. By not uttering the desires of his heart, he shows more emphatically
that his inward feelings, which he brought with him before God, were such that
language was insufficient to express them. Again, the word cry, which
signifies a loud and sonorous utterance of the voice, serves to mark the
earnestness of his desire. David did not cry out as it were into the ears of one
who was deaf; but the vehemence of his grief and his inward anguish, burst forth
into this cry. The verb hgh
hagah, from which the noun
gygh,
hagig, speech, which the prophet here uses, is derived, means both to
speak distinctly, and to whisper or to mutter. But the second sense
seems better suited to this passage.
fa69 After David has said in general, that
God hears his words, he seems, immediately after, for the purpose of being more
specific, to divide them into two kinds, calling the one obscure or indistinct
moanings, and the other loud crying.
fa70 By the first he means a confused
muttering, such as is described in the Song of Hezekiah, when sorrow hindered
him from speaking distinctly, and making his voice to be heard. "Like a crane,
or a swallow, so did I chatter; I did mourn as a dove,"
(<233814>Isaiah
38:14.)
fa71 If, then, at any time we are either
backward to pray, or our devout affections begin to lose their fervor, we must
here seek for arguments to quicken and urge us forward. And as by calling God
his King and his God, he intended to stir up himself to entertain
more lively and favorable hopes with respect to the issue of his afflictions,
let us learn to apply these titles to a similar use, namely, for the purpose of
making ourselves more familiar with God. At the close, he testifies that he does
not sullenly gnaw the bit, as unbelievers are accustomed to do; but directs his
groaning to God:for they who, disregarding God, either fret inwardly or utter
their complaints to men, are not worthy of being regarded by him. Some translate
the last clause thus, When I pray
to thee; but to me it seems rather to be
the reason which David assigns for what he had said immediately before, and that
his purpose is, to encourage himself to trust in God, by assuming this as a
general principle that whoever call upon God in their calamities never meet with
a repulse from him.
Psalm
5:3
3. O that thou wouldst hear my
voice in the morning; O Jehovah, in the morning will I direct unto thee, and I
will keep watch.
The first sentence may
also be read in the future tense of the indicative mood, Thou shalt hear my
prayer. But, in my opinion, the verb is rather in the optative mood,
as I have translated it. Having besought God to grant his requests, he
now entreats him to make haste. Some think he alludes to the morning prayers
which were wont to be joined with the daily sacrifices in the temple, according
to the appointment of the law. Although I do not disapprove of this opinion, yet
I have no doubt but that, constrained by the weariness of a somewhat lengthened
delay, he wishes his deliverance to be hastened; as if he had said, "As soon as
I awaken this will be the first subject of my thoughts. Therefore, O Lord, delay
no longer the help of which I stand in need, but grant immediately my desires."
The expression, To direct unto God, I take to signify the same thing as
directly to approach to God. Many, as if the language were elliptical, supply
the words, my prayer. But in my judgment, David rather intends to declare
that he was not turned hither and thither, nor drawn different ways by the
temptations to which he was exposed, but that to betake himself to God was the
settled order of his life. There is, in the words, an implied contrast between
the rambling and uncertain movements of those who look around them for worldly
helps, or depend on their own counsels and the direct leading of faith, by which
all the godly are withdrawn from the vain allurements of the world, and have
recourse to God alone. The Hebrew word
°r[,
arac, signifies to set in order or dispose, and sometimes to dress or
make fit. This sense is very suitable to the passage, in which David plainly
declares it to be his determination not to be drawn away in any degree from his
orderly course into the indirect and circuitous paths of error and sin, but to
come directly to God. By the word, watch, he conveys the idea of hope and
patience as well as of anxiety. As
hpx,
tsapah, in Hebrew means, to wait for, as well as to look for,
David, I have no doubt, intended to say, that after he had disburdened his
cares into the bosom of God, he would, with an anxious mind, look out, as it
were, like a sentinel, until it should appear, that in very deed God had heard
him. No doubt, in the exercise of longing, there is always implied some degree
of uneasiness; but he who is looking out for the grace of God with anxious
desire, will patiently wait for it. This passages therefore, teaches us the
uselessness of those prayers to which there is not added that hope which may be
said to elevate the minds of the petitioners into a
watch-tower.
Psalm
5:4-6
4. For thou art not a God that
hath pleasure in wickedness;
fa72 evil shall not dwell Smith thee.
5. The foolish shall not stand in thy sight; thou hatest all that commit
iniquity. 6. Thou shalt destroy them that speak falsehood; Jehovah will
abhor the blood-thirsty
fa73 and deceitful
man.
Here David makes the malice and
wickedness of his enemies an argument to enforce his prayer for the divine favor
towards him. The language is indeed abrupt, as the saints in prayer will often
stammer; but this stammering is more acceptable to God than all the figures of
rhetoric, be they ever so fine and glittering. Besides, the great object which
David has in view, is to show, that since the cruelty and treachery of his
enemies had reached their utmost height, it was impossible but that God would
soon arrest them in their course. His reasoning is grounded upon the nature of
God. Since righteousness and upright dealing are pleasing to him, David, from
this, concludes that he will take vengeance on all the unjust and wicked. And
how is it possible for them to escape from his hand unpunished, seeing he is the
judge of the world? The passage is worthy of our most special attention. For we
know how greatly we are discouraged by the unbounded insolence of the wicked. If
God does not immediately restrain it, we are either stupified and dismayed, or
cast down into despair. But David, from this, rather finds matter of
encouragement and confi-dence. The greater the lawlessness with which his
enemies proceeded against him, the more earnestly did he supplicate preservation
from God, whose office it is to destroy all the wicked, because he hates
all wickedness. Let all the godly, therefore, learn, as often as they have to
contend against violence, deceit, and injustice, to raise their thoughts to God
in order to encourage themselves in the certain hope of deliverance, according
as Paul also exhorts them in
<530105>2
Thessalonians 1:5, "Which is," says he, "a manifest token of the righteous
judgment of God, that ye may be counted worthy of the kingdom of God, for which
ye also suffer:seeing it is a righteous thing with God to recompense tribulation
to them that trouble you; and to you who are troubled, rest with us." And
assuredly he would not be the judge of the world if there were not laid up in
store with him a recompense for all the ungodly. One use, then, which may be
made of this doctrine is this, — when we see the wicked indulging
themselves in their lusts, and when, in consequence, doubts steal into our minds
as to whether God takes any care of us, we should learn to satisfy ourselves
with the consideration that God, who hates and abhors all iniquity, will not
permit them to pass unpunished, and although he bear with them for a time, he
will at length ascend into the judgment-seat, and show himself an avenger, as he
is the protector and defender of his
people.
fa74 Again, we may infer from this passage
the common doctrine, that God, although he works by Satan and by the ungodly,
and makes use of their malice for executing his judgments, is not, on this
account, the author of sin, nor is pleased with it because the end which he
purposes is always righteous; and he justly condemns and punishes those who, by
his mysterious providence, are driven whithersoever he
pleases.
In the 4th verse some take
[r,
ra, in the masculine gender, for a wicked man; but I understand it rather
of wickedness itself David declares simply, that there is no agreement between
God and unrighteousness. He immediately after proceeds to speak of the men
themselves, saying, the foolish
shall not stand in thy sight; and it is
a very just inference from this, that iniquity its hateful to God, and that,
therefore, he will execute just punishment upon all the wicked. He calls
those fools, according to a frequent use of the term in Scripture, who,
impelled by blind passion, rush headlong into sin. Nothing is more foolish, than
for the ungodly to cast away the fear of God, and suffer the desire of doing
mischief to be their ruling principle; yea, there is no madness worse than the
contempt of God, under the influence of which men pervert all right. David sets
this truth before himself for his own comfort; but we also may draw from it
doctrine very useful in training us to the fear of God; for the Holy Spirit, by
declaring God to be the avenger of wickedness, puts a bridle upon us, to
restrain us from committing sin, in the vain hope of escaping with
impunity.
Psalm
5:7
7. And I, in the multitude [or
abundance] of thy mercy, will enter into thy house; I will worship in thy holy
temple in thy fear.
Some think that the
word and, by which this sentence is joined to the preceding, is put for
but; as if David, comparing himself with the ungodly, declared and assured
himself that God would be merciful to him, while he abhorred and would destroy
the wicked. But I leave it to my readers to judge whether it does not suit the
passage better to consider this verse as an inference from what goes before,
which might be put in this form:"O Lord, thou canst not bear with the wicked;
when, therefore, I am saved out of their hands by thy power, I will come to
present myself before thee in thy temple, to give thee thanks for the
deliverance which thou hast vouchsafed to me." If the former interpretation be
preferred, then the prophet, by simply commending his own piety towards God,
separates himself from the class of whom he spoke. The scope of the passage
leads us to understand him as promising to give thanks to God. He had before
spoken of his enemies as hated of God; and now, being persuaded that God will
keep him in safety, he calls himself to the exercise of gratitude.
I will come into thy
temples says he, in
the multitude of thy
mercy; as if he had said, I may
now seem to be in a condition almost desperate, but by the favor of God, I shall
be kept in perfect safety. This passage, therefore, teaches us, that when we are
afflicted by the most distressing temptations, we ought to set the grace of God
before our eyes, in order thereby to be supported with the hope of the divine
interposition amidst the greatest dangers. Farther, as our carnal minds either
wickedly undervalue the grace of God, or put the low estimate upon it which is
commonly put by the world, let us learn to extol its wonderful greatness, which
is sufficient to enable us to overcome all fears. The primary object of David
was to encourage himself in the assured hope of preservation from the mercy of
God; but at the same time he shows, that upon obtaining deliverance, he will be
grateful to God for it, and keep it in remembrance. And as hypocrites, in giving
thanks to God, do nothing else but profane his name, inasmuch as they themselves
are unholy and polluted, he therefore resolves to come in the fear of God,
in order to worship him with a sincere and upright heard. Again, we may
hence draw the general truth, that it is only through the goodness of God that
we have access to him; and that no man prays aright but he who, having
experienced his grace, believes and is fully persuaded that he will be merciful
to him. The fear of God is at the same time added, in order to distinguish
genuine and godly trust from the vain confidence of the
flesh.
Psalm
5:8-10
8. O Jehovah, lead me forth
in thy righteousness, because of mine adversaries:make thy way straight before
my face. 9. For there is no faithfulness in their mouth; their inward
parts are very wickedness; their throat is an open sepulcher; with their tongues
they deal deceitfully 10. Cause them to err, O God; let them fall from
their counsels; destroy them in the
multitude
fa75 of their transgressions; for they have
rebelled against thee.
8.
O Jehovah, lead me
forth, etc. Some explain these words
thus:Show me what is right, and make me wholly devoted to the practice of that
righteousness which adorns thy character; and do this because of my adversaries;
for the saints, impelled by the wicked practice and deceitful arts of the
ungodly, are in danger of turning aside from the right way. This meaning is
unquestionably a pious and a useful one. But the other interpretation is more
suitable, which views the words as a prayer that God would lead his servant in
safety through the midst of the snares of his enemies, and open up to him a way
of escape, even when, to all appearance, he was caught and surrounded on every
side. The righteousness of
God, therefore, in this passage, as in
many others, is to be understood of his faithfulness and mercy which he shows in
defending and preserving his people. Consequently, in thy righteousness
means the same thing as for or according to thy righteousness.
David, desiring to have God as the guide of his path, encourages himself in
the hope of obtaining his request, because God is righteous; as if he had said,
Lord, as thou art righteous, defend me with thine aid, that I may escape from
the wicked plots of my enemies. Of the same import is the last clause of the
verse, where he prays that the
way of God may be made straight before his
face, in other words, that he might be
delivered by the power of God from the distresses with which he was so
completely surrounded, that, according to the judgment of the flesh, he never
expected to find a way of escape. And thus he acknowledges how impossible it was
for him to avoid being entangled in the snares of his
enemies,
fa76 unless God both gave him wisdom, and
opened up for him a way where no way is. It becomes us, after his example, to do
the same thing; so that distrusting ourselves when counsel fails us, and the
malice and wickedness of our enemies prevail, we may betake ourselves speedily
to God, in whose hands are the issues of death, as we shall see afterwards,
(<196901>Psalm
69:1.)
9.
For there is no faithfulness
in their mouth. He still repeats the
same complaints which he made before, in order thereby to render his enemies the
more odious in the sight of God, and to call forth in his own behalf the mercy
of God, who has promised to succor those who are unjustly oppressed. And this is
to be particularly attended to, that the more our enemies manifest their cruelty
against us, or the more wickedly they vex us, we ought, with so much the greater
confidence, to send up our groanings to heaven, because God will not suffer
their rage to proceed to the uttermost, but will bring forth their malice and
wicked devices to the light. In the first place, he accuses them of treachery,
because they speak nothing uprightly, or in sincerity; and the cause which he
assigns for this is, that inwardly they are full of iniquity. He next compares
them to sepulchres, their throat
is an open sepulcher; as if he had said,
they are devouring gulfs;
fa77 meaning by this, their insatiable desire
of shedding blood. In the close of the verse, he again speaks of their
deceitfulness. From all this we conclude, that the wrongs with which he was
tried were of no ordinary kind, but that he had to contend with enemies the most
wickedly who had neither humanity nor moderation. Being so miserably oppressed,
he not only perseveres in prayer, but finds ground of hope even from the
confusion and apparent hopelessness of his outward
condition.
When Paul,
(<450313>Romans
3:13,) in quoting this passage, extends it to all mankind, both Jews and
Gentiles, he does not give to it a meaning of greater latitude than the Holy
Spirit intended to give. Since he takes it as an undeniable point, that under
the person of David, there is here described to us the church, both in the
person of Christ, who is the head, and in his members, it follows that all those
ought to be reckoned among the number of his enemies, who have not been
regenerated by the Spirit of God, whether they are without the pale of the
visible church, or within it. For David, in this passage, does not summons
either the Assyrians or the Egyptians to the judgment-seat of God, but the
degenerate Jews, who, being circumcised in the flesh, gloried in their descent
from the holy lineage of Abraham. Paul, therefore, does not wrest these words
from their genuine meaning when he applies them to all mankind, but asserts,
with truth, that David showed in them what is the character of the whole human
family by nature.
10.
Cause them to
err. As the Hebrew word
µça
asam, signifies to cut up or to destroy, as well as to sin,
and is taken metaphorically for to err, or be deceived, either
of these senses is suitable in this passage; but, as David immediately after
subjoins, Let them fall from
their counsels, I have no doubt but this first
prayer is allied and similar to the second. I therefore join these two clauses
together, as the cause and the effect. In the first, he prays that God would
deprive them of their understanding, and drive them into error; and in the
second, he prays that, as the effect of this, their counsels might come to
nought, in other words, that their undertakings might prove
unsuccessful.
fa78 For how is it that the ungodly take
counsel in vain, and are carried hither and thither without consideration or
judgment, and become so basely obstinate, if it is not because the Lord takes
them unawares in their own craftiness, breaks their artful schemes, intoxicates
them with the spirit of phrenzy and giddiness, so that they act foolishly even
in the smallest matters? If, therefore, we are afraid of the snares and deceits
of men, and if we find those who desire to do us mischief to be clear-headed and
sharp-witted persons, let us remember, that it is the continual office of God to
strike with stupidity and madness those who are wise to commit iniquity. Thus it
will come to pass, that although we may be asleep the Lord will dissipate with
the breath of his mouth their devices, be they never so subtle, and, in the end,
expose them to the mockery of the whole world. In short, David wishes God to lay
his hand upon his enemies, and to put a stop to their wicked deliberations. And
in fact it is necessary that God bring to nothing the schemes which the wicked
cunningly devise, since it is Satan, the contriver of all deceits, who suggests
to them all their methods of doing mischief. By praying
Let them fall from their
counsels he means that they may not
obtain or accomplish what they had determined. Again, he prays to God to punish
them as they deserved, because, in wrongfully and wickedly making war against an
innocent person, they rebelled against God. The proud, indeed, never
think of this, that the poor, whom they afflict and despise, are of such
estimation in the sight of God, that he feels himself insulted and injured in
their persons:for they do not imagine that the blows aimed at them are struck
against heaven, any more than if they trampled a little dust or clay under their
feet. But God bestows upon his servants the inestimable reward of taking their
cause into his own hand. Whoever, therefore, has an approving conscience, and
does not turn aside from his uprightness, although troubled wrongfully, has no
reason to doubt of his warrant to improve God as a buckler against his
enemies.
Psalm
5:11-12
11. And let all rejoice who
put their trust in thee, yea, let them rejoice for ever; and cover thou them,
and let those that love thy name delight in
thee.
fa79 12. For thou, O Jehovah, shalt
bless the righteous, thou shalt encompass them with thy loving kindness as with
a shield.
11.
And let all rejoice,
etc. It makes little difference as to
the sense, whether we read these words in the future tense, All shall
rejoice, etc., or in the optative mood,
Let all
rejoice, etc.; for in both ways the
meaning of the prophet will be the same; namely, that if God deliver him, the
fruit of this deliverance will be common to all the godly; as if he had said
Lord, if thou succourest me, the goodness which thou conferrest upon me will not
rest on me alone, but will extend to all thy servants:for this will serve the
more to confirm their faith, and make them praise thy name the more. In order,
therefore, to induce God to grant him deliverance, he employs as an argument the
end or effect which it would produce, inasmuch as it would stir up all the godly
to exercise greater trust in God, and encourage them to give praise and thanks
to him. This passage teaches us, that we are ungrateful to God if we do not take
encouragement and comfort from whatever blessings he confers upon our
neighbours, since by these he testifies that he will always be ready to bestow
his goodness upon all the godly in common. Accordingly the reason of this
joy is added, because the Lord
will cover or protect them. As
often as God bestows any blessings upon any of the faithful, the rest, as I have
said before, ought to conclude that he will show himself beneficent towards
them. Again, this passage teaches us, that true joy proceeds from no other
source than from the protection of God. We may be exposed to a thousand deaths,
but this one consideration ought abundantly to suffice us, that we are covered
and defended by the hand of God. And this will be the case, if the vain shadows
of this world do not so beguile us as to excite us to take shelter under them.
We ought also particularly to notice the statement, that those who trust in the
Lord love his name. The remembrance of God must be sweet to us, and fill
our hearts with joy, or rather ravish us with love to him, after he has caused
us to taste of his goodness; as, on the other hand, all unbelievers wish the
name of God to be buried, and shun the remembrance of him with
horror.
12.
For thou, 0 Jehovah, wilt
bless the righteous. The Psalmist here
confirms the concluding sentence of the preceding verse, namely, that all the
servants of God in common will take support to their faith from what he had
experienced, for he would have us from one example to form our judgment of the
immutability and perpetuity of God's grace towards all the godly. Again, by this
he teaches us that there is no true and right joy but that which is derived from
the sense of God's fatherly love. The word, to bless, in Hebrew, (when we
speak of this as the act of men,) signifies to wish happiness and prosperity to
any one, and to pray for him;
fa80 but when it is spoken of as the act of
God, it signifies the same thing as to prosper a man, or to enrich him
abundantly with all good things; for since the favor of God is efficacious, his
blessing of itself produces an abundance of every good thing. The name
righteous is not restricted to any one man, but signifies in general all
the servants of God. Those, however, who are called righteous in Scripture, are
not so called on account of the merit of their works, but because they aspire
after righteousness; for after God has received them into his favor, by not
imputing their sins to them, he accepts their upright endeavors for perfect
righteousness. What follows is of the same import as the preceding clause,
Thou wilt crown them with thy
free favor, or good will,
as with a
shield. The Psalmist's meaning is, that
the faithful shall be completely defended on all sides, since he will, in no
case, withhold from them his grace, which is to them an invincible fortress, and
brings along with it certain safety. The word, to crown, which the
Psalmist employs, often denotes in Hebrew, ornament or glory; but
as there is added the similitude of a shield, I have no doubt but he uses it
metaphorically for, to fortify or to compass
about.
fa81 The meaning, therefore, is, that
however great and various may be the dangers which besiege the righteous, they
shall, notwithstanding, escape, and be saved, because God is favorable to
them.
PSALM
6.
David, being afflicted by the hand of God,
acknowledges that he had provoked the Divine wrath by his sins, and, therefore,
in order to obtain relief, he prays for forgiveness. At the same time, he
regrets, that by being taken out of the world, he would be deprived of an
opportunity of praising God. Then, having obtained confidence, he celebrates the
grace of God, and directs his discourse to his enemies, who triumphed over his
calamities.
To the chief
musician on Neginoth, upon the eighth. A song of David.
The name of Song shows that David composed
this psalm, in which he describes the passionate workings of his grief in the
time of his troubles after he had obtained deliverance from the evils which he
deplores. What the kind of chastisement was of which he speaks is
uncertain. Those who restrict it to bodily disease do not adduce in support
of their opinion any argument of sufficient weight. They insist on the
word
lma,
amal, which occurs in verse third, where he says, "I am weak," which indeed
signifies to be sick; but it is more probable that it is here used
metaphorically. They allege that Hezekiah, after his recovery from sickness,
sung in the same strains as are here recorded, concerning death. But in
<19B601>Psalm
116, where no mention is made of bodily disease, the same complaint is uttered
by the Psalmist in the name of the whole Church. We can, indeed, gather from
these words that the life of David was in the utmost danger, but it may have
been some other kind of affliction than bodily sickness under which he labored.
We may, therefore, adopt this as the more certain interpretation, that he had
been stricken by some severe calamity, or that some punishment had been
inflicted upon him, which presented to his view on every side only the shadow of
death. It ought also to be considered, that this psalm was not composed at the
very time when he presented to God the prayers recorded in it; but that the
prayers which he had meditated and uttered in the midst of his dangers and
sadness were, after he had obtained respite, committed to writing. This explains
why he joins the sorrow with which he certainly had struggled for a time with
the joy which he afterwards experienced. With respect to the word eighth,
as we have before said that
twnygn,
Neginoth, signifies a musical instrument, I do not know whether it would be
correct to say, that it was a harp of eight strings. I am rather inclined to the
opinion that it refers to the tune, and points out the particular kind of music
to which the psalm was to be sung.
fa82 However, in a matter so obscure and of
so little importance I leave every one at liberty to form his own
conjecture.
Psalm
6:1
1. Jehovah, rebuke me not in
thine anger, and chastise me not in thine
indignation.
The calamity which David now
experienced had, perhaps, been inflicted by men, but he wisely considers that he
has to deal with God. Those persons are very unsuitably exercised under their
afflictions who do not immediately take a near and a steady view of their sins,
in order thereby to produce the conviction that they have deserved the wrath of
God. And yet we see how thoughtless and insensible almost all men are on this
subject; for while they cry out that they are afflicted and miserable, scarcely
one among a hundred looks to the hand which strikes. From whatever quarter,
therefore, our afflictions come, let us learn to turn our thoughts instantly to
God, and to acknowledge him as the Judge who summons us as guilty before his
tribunal, since we, of our own accord, do not anticipate his judgment. But as
men, when they are compelled to feel that God is angry with them, often indulge
in complaints full of impiety, rather than find fault with themselves and their
own sins, it is to be particularly noticed that David does not simply ascribe to
God the afflictions under which he is now suffering, but acknowledges them to be
the just recompense of his sins. He does not take God to task as if he had been
an enemy, treating him with cruelty without any just cause; but yielding to him
the right of rebuking and chastening, he desires and prays only that bounds may
be set to the punishment inflicted on him. By this he declares God to be a just
Judge in taking vengeance on the sins of
men.
fa83 But as soon as he has confessed that he
is justly chastised, he earnestly beseeches God not to deal with him in strict
justice, or according to the utmost rigour of the law. He does not altogether
refuse punishment, for that would be unreasonable; and to be without it, he
judged would be more hurtful than beneficial to him:but what he is afraid of is
the wrath of God, which threatens sinners with ruin and perdition. To anger and
indignation David tacitly opposes fatherly and gentle chastisement, and this
last he was willing to bear. We have a similar contrast in the words of
Jeremiah,
(<241024>Jeremiah
10:24,) "O Lord," says he, "correct me, but with judgment; not in thine anger."
God is, indeed, said to be angry with sinners whenever he inflicts punishment
upon them, but not in the proper and strict sense, inasmuch as he not only
mingles with it some of the sweetness of his grace to mitigate their sorrow, but
also shows himself favorable to them, in moderating their punishment, and in
mercifully drawing back his hand. But, as we must necessarily be stricken with
terror whenever he shows himself the avenger of wickedness, it is not without
cause that David, according to the sense of the flesh, is afraid of his anger
and indignation. The meaning therefore is this:I indeed confess, O Lord, that I
deserve to be destroyed and brought to nought; but as I would be unable to
endure the severity of thy wrath, deal not with me according to my deserts, but
rather pardon my sins, by which I have provoked thine anger against me. As
often, then, as we are pressed down by adversity, let us learn, from the example
of David, to have recourse to this remedy, that we may be brought into a state
of peace with God; for it is not to be expected that it can be well or
prosperous with us if we are not interested in his favor. Whence it follows,
that we shall never be without a load of evils, until he forgive us our
sins.
Psalm
6:2-3
2. Have mercy upon me, O
Jehovah, for I am weak; heal me, O Jehovah, for my bones are afraid. 3.
And my soul is exceedingly troubled;
fa84 and thou, O Jehovah, how
long?
fa85
2.
Have mercy upon
me. As he earnestly calls upon God to be
merciful to him, it is from this the more clearly manifest, that by the terms
anger and indignation he did not mean cruelty or undue severity,
but only such judgment as God executes upon the reprobate, whom he does not
spare in mercy as he does his own children. If he had complained of being
unjustly and too severely punished, he would now have only added something to
this effect:Restrain thyself, that in punishing me thou mayest not exceed the
measure of my offense. In betaking himself, therefore, to the mercy of God
alone, he shows that he desires nothing else than not to be dealt with according
to strict justice, or as he deserved. In order to induce God to exercise his
forgiving mercy towards him, he declares that he is ready to
fail:Have mercy upon me, O
Jehovah, for I am weak. As I have said
before, he calls himself weak, not because he was sick, but because he was cast
down and broken by what had now befallen him. And as we know that the design of
God in inflicting punishment upon us, is to humble us; so, whenever we are
subdued under his rod, the gate is opened for his mercy to come to us. Besides,
since it is his peculiar office to heal the diseased to raise up the fallen, to
support the weak, and, finally, to give life to the dead; this, of itself, is a
sufficient reason why we should seek his favor, that we are sinking under our
afflictions.
After David has protested that he
placed his hope of salvation in the mercy of God alone, and has sorrowfully set
forth how much he is abased, he subjoins the effect which this had in impairing
his bodily health, and prays for the restoration of this
blessing:Heal me, O
Jehovah. And this is the order
which we must observe, that we may know that all the blessings which we ask from
God flow from the fountain of his free goodness, and that we are then, and then
only, delivered from calamities and
chastisements,
fa86 when he has had mercy upon us. —
For my bones are
afraid. This confirms what I have just
now observed, namely, that, from the very grievousness of his afflictions, he
entertained the hope of some relief; for God, the more he sees the wretched
oppressed and almost overwhelmed, is just so much the more ready to succor them.
He attributes fear to his bones, not because they are endued with
feeling, but because the vehemence of his grief was such that it affected his
whole body. He does not speak of his flesh, which is the more tender and
susceptible part of the corporeal system, but he mentions his bones, thereby
intimating that the strongest parts of his frame were made to tremble for fear.
He next assigns the cause of this by saying,
And my soul is greatly
afraid. The connective particle and,
in my judgment, has here the meaning of the causal particle for, as
if he had said, so severe and violent is the inward anguish of my heart, that it
affects and impairs the strength of every part of my body. I do not approve of
the opinion which here takes soul for life, nor does it suit the scope of
the passage.
3.
And thou, O Jehovah, how
long? This elliptical form of expression
serves to express more strongly the vehemence of grief, which not only holds the
minds of men bound up, but likewise their tongues, breaking and cutting short
their speech in the middle of the sentence. The meaning, however, in this abrupt
expression is doubtful. Some, to complete the sentence, supply the words,
Wilt thou afflict me, or continue
to chasten me? Others read, How long wilt
thou delay thy mercy? But what is stated in the next verse shows that this
second sense is the more probable, for he there prays to the Lord to look upon
him with an eye of favor and compassion. He, therefore, complains that God has
now forsaken him, or has no regard to him, just as God seems to be far of from
us whenever his assistance or grace does not actually manifest itself in our
behalf. God, in his compassion towards us, permits us to pray to him to make
haste to succor us; but when we have freely complained of his long delay, that
our prayers or sorrow, on this account, may not pass beyond bounds we must
submit our case entirely to his will, and not wish him to make greater haste
than shall seem good to him.
Psalm
6:4-5
4. Return, O Lord, deliver my
soul; save me for thy mercy's sake. 5. For in death there is no
remembrance of thee; and in the grave who shall acknowledge
thee?
fa87
4.
Return, O
Lord. In the preceding verses the
Psalmist bewailed the absence of God, and now he earnestly requests the
tokens of his presence, for our happiness consists in this, that we are the
objects of the Divine regard, but we think he is alienated front us, if he does
not give us some substantial evidence of his care for us. That David was at this
time in the utmost peril, we gather from these words, in which he prays both for
the deliverance of his soul, as it were, from the jaws of death, and for his
restoration to a state of safety. Yet no mention is made of any bodily disease,
and, therefore, I give no judgment with respect to the kind of his affliction.
David, again, confirms what he had touched upon in the second verse
concerning the mercy of God, namely, that this is the only quarter from
which he hopes for
deliverance:Save me for thy
mercy's sake. Men will never find a
remedy for their miseries until, forgetting their own merits, by trusting to
which they only deceive themselves, they have learned to betake themselves to
the free mercy of God.
5.
For in death there is no
remembrance of thee. After God has
bestowed all things freely upon us, he requires nothing in return but a grateful
remembrance of his benefits. To this gratitude reference is made when David
says, that there will be no
remembrance of God in death, nor any celebration of his praise in the
grave. His meaning is, that if, by the
grace of God, he shall be delivered from death, he will be grateful for it, and
keep it in remembrance. And he laments, that if he should be removed out of the
world, he would be deprived of the power and opportunity of manifesting his
gratitude, since in that case he would no longer mingle in the society of men,
there to commend or celebrate the name of God. From this passage some conclude,
that the dead have no feeling, and that it is wholly extinct in them; but this
is a rash and unwarranted inference, for nothing is here treated of but the
mutual celebration of the grace of God, in which men engage while they continue
in the land of the living. We know that we are placed on the earth to praise God
with one mind and one mouth, and that this is the end of our life. Death, it is
true, puts an end to such praises; but it does not follow from this, that the
souls of the faithful, when divested of their bodies, are deprived of
understanding, or touched with no affection towards God. It is also to be
considered, that, on the present occasion, David dreaded the judgment of God if
death should befall him, and this made him dumb as to singing the praises of
God. It is only the goodness of God sensibly experienced by us which opens our
mouth to celebrate his praise; and whenever, therefore, joy and gladness are
taken away, praises also must cease. It is not then wonderful if the wrath of
God, which overwhelms us with the fear of eternal destruction, is said to
extinguish in us the praises of God.
From this
passage, we are furnished with the solution of another question, why David so
greatly dreaded death, as if there had been nothing to hope for beyond this
world. Learned men reckon up three causes why the fathers under the law were so
much kept in bondage by the fear of death. The first is, because the grace of
God, not being then made manifest by the coming of Christ, the promises, which
were obscure, gave them only a slight acquaintance with the life to come. The
second is, because the present life, in which God deals with us as a Father, is
of itself desirable. And the third, because they were afraid lest, after their
decease, some change to the worse might take place in religion. But to me these
reasons do not appear to be sufficiently solid. David's mind was not always
occupied by the fear he now felt; and when he came to die, being full of days
and weary of this life, he calmly yielded up his soul into the bosom of God. The
second reason is equally applicable to us at the present day, as it was to the
ancient fathers, inasmuch as God's fatherly love shines forth towards us also
even in this life, and with much more illustrious proofs than under the former
dispensation. But, as I have just observed, I consider this complaint of David
as including something different, namely, that feeling the hand of God to be
against him, and knowing his hatred of
sin,
fa88 he is overwhelmed with fear and involved
in the deepest distress. The same may also be said of Hezekiah, inasmuch as he
did not simply pray for deliverance from death, but from the wrath of God, which
he felt to be very awful,
(<233803>Isaiah
38:3.)
Psalm
6:6-7
6. I have become wearied in my
groaning; I make my bed to swim
fa89 every night; I water my couch with my
tears. 7. Mine eye hath waxed dim for vexation; it hath waxed old among
my persecutors.
These forms of expression
are hyperbolical, but it must not be imagined that David, after the manner of
poets, exaggerates his sorrow;
fa90 but he declares truly and simply how
severe and bitter it had been. It should always be kept in mind, that his
affliction did not proceed so much from his having been severely wounded with
bodily distress; but regarding God as greatly displeased with him, he saw, as it
were, hell open to receive him; and the mental distress which this produces
exceeds all other sorrows. Indeed, the more sincerely a man is devoted to God,
he is just so much the more severely disquieted by the sense of his wrath; and
hence it is that holy persons, who were otherwise endued with uncommon
fortitude, have showed in this respect the greatest softness and want of
resolution. And nothing prevents us at this day from experiencing in ourselves
what David describes concerning himself but the stupidity of our flesh. Those
who have experienced, even in a moderate degree, what it is to contend with the
fear of eternal death, will be satisfied that there is nothing extravagant in
these words. Let us, therefore, know that here David is represented to us as
being afflicted with the terrors of his
conscience,
fa91 and feeling within him torment of no
ordinary kind, but such as made him almost faint away, and lie as if dead. With
respect to the words, he says,
Mine eye hath waxed
dim; for grief of mind easily makes its way to
the eyes, and from them very distinctly shows itself. As the word
qt[
athak, which I have translated
it hath waxed
old, sometimes signifies to depart from
one's place, some expound it, that the goodness of his eyesight was lost, and
his sight, as it were, had vanished. Others understand by it that his eyes were
hidden by the swelling which proceeds from weeping. The first opinion, however,
according to which David complains of his eyes failing him, as it were, through
old age, appears to me the more simple. As to what he adds, every night,
we learn from it that he was almost wholly wasted away with protracted
sorrow, and yet all the while never ceased from praying to
God.
Psalm
6:8-10
8. Depart from me, all ye
workers of iniquity; for the Lord hath heard the voice of my weeping. 9.
The Lord hath heard my supplication; the Lord will
receive
fa92 my prayer. 10. Let all mine
enemies be put to shame and greatly confounded; let them turn back, and be
ashamed suddenly.
fa93
After David has disburdened his
griefs and troubles into the bosom of God, he now, as it were, assumes a new
character. And, without doubt, he had been afflicted with long-continued
despondency of spirit before he could recover himself, and attain to such a
degree of assurance as he here
displays;
fa94 for we have already seen that he
had spent many nights in continual weeping. Now, the more he had been distressed
and wearied by the long delay of his deliverance, with so much the more alacrity
does he stir up himself to sing of victory. Directing his discourse against his
adversaries, he represents it as not the least part of his temptations that
ungodly men triumphed over him, and derided him as lost, and in a hopeless
condition; for we know with what insolence their pride and cruelty magnify
themselves against the children of God, when they see them oppressed under the
cross. And to this Satan moves them, in order to drive the faithful to despair,
when they see their hope made the subject of mockery. This passage teaches us,
that the grace of God is the only light of life to the godly; and that, as soon
as He has manifested some token of his anger, they are not only greatly afraid,
but also, as it were, plunged into the darkness of death; while, on the other
hand, as soon as they discover anew that God is merciful to them, they are
immediately restored to life. David, it is to be noticed, repeats three times
that his prayers were heard, by which he testifies that he ascribes his
deliverance to God, and confirms himself in this confidence, that he had not
betaken himself to God in vain. And if we would receive any fruit from our
prayers, we must believe that God's ears have not been shut against them. By the
word weeping,
fa95 he not only indicates vehemence
and earnestness, but also intimates that he had been wholly occupied in mourning
and sorrowful lamentations. The confidence and security which David takes to
himself from the favor of God ought also to be noticed. From this, we are taught
that there is nothing in the whole world, whatever it may be, and whatever
opposition it may make to us,
fa96 which we may not despise, if we are
fully persuaded of our being beloved by God; and by this also we understand what
his fatherly love can do for us. By the adverb suddenly, he signifies,
that when there is apparently no means of delivering the faithful from
affliction, and when all seems desperate or hopeless, then they are delivered by
the power of God contrary to all expectation. When God suddenly changes men's
afflicted condition into one of joy and happiness, he thereby manifests more
illustriously his power, and makes it appear the more
wonderful.
PSALM
7
David, loaded with unjust calumny, calls upon God to
be his advocate and defender, and commits his innocence to the Divine
protection. In the first place, he protests that his conscience did notaccuse
him of the wickedness laid to his charge. Secondly, he shows how greatly it
concerns the glory of God that he should execute judgment against the ungodly.
Thirdly, to inspire his mind with confidence, he seriously reflects upon the
goodness and righteousness of God, and sets before him the divine promises.
Lastly, as if he had obtained the desire of his heart, he derides the folly and
the vain attempts of his enemies; or rather, depending upon the aid of God, he
assures himself that all their endeavours against him shall turn to their own
destruction.
Shiggaion of David,
which he sung unto
Jehovah,
upon the
words of Cush the Benjamite.
With respect to the word Shiggaion, the Jewish
interpreters are not agreed. Some understand it to mean a musical instrument. To
others it seems to be a tune to which a song is set. Others suppose it to have
been the beginning of a common song, to the tune of which David wished this
psalm to be sung. Others translate the Hebrew word, delight, or
rejoicing.
fa97 The second opinion appears to me
the most probable, namely, that it was some kind of melody or song, as if one
should term it Sapphic or Phaleucian
verse.
fa98 But I do not contend about a matter of
so small importance. Again, the psalm is said to have been composed upon the
words of Cush. I cannot subscribe to the interpretation, (although
it is the commonly received one,) that words here mean affairs, or
business. To put word for a matter, or an affair,
is, I allow, a common form of speech among the Jews; but as David a little
after declares that he was falsely accused of some crime, I doubt not but he
here speaks of the accusation or calumny itself, of which, as I judge, Cush,
some one of Saul's kindred, was the author, or, at least, the instrument who
preferred and circulated it. The opinion of some who say that Saul is here
spoken of under a fictitious name, is not supported by any argument of
sufficient weight. According to them, David avoided calling him by his own name,
in order to spare the royal dignity. David, I admit, had great reverence for the
holy anointing; but as he expressly names Saul in other places where he
reprehends him not less severely, and paints him in colours no less black than
he does in this psalm, why should he suppress his name here, and not in these
passages? In my opinion, therefore, he here expresses by his proper name, and
without figure, a wicked accuser, who had excited hatred against him by falsely
charging him with some crime, and who had either been bribed by the king to do
this, or, currying the royal favour, had calumniated David of his own accord;
for David, we know, was very much slandered, as if he had been ungrateful and
treacherous towards the king, his father-in-law. Saul, indeed, belonged to the
tribe of Benjamin. We do not, however, think that he is the person here
mentioned, but that it was one of Saul's relations, one who belonged to the same
tribe with him, who falsely accused
David.
Psalm
7:1-2
1. O Jehovah, my God, in thee
do I trust:save me from all them that persecute me, and deliver me. 2.
Lest he seize upon my soul as a lion, and tear it in pieces, while there is none
to deliver it.
At the commencement of the
psalm, David speaks of having many enemies, and in the second verse he specifies
some one in the singular number. And certainly, since the minds of all men were
inflamed against him, he had very good reason for praying to be delivered from
all his persecutors. But as the wicked cruelty of the king, like a firebrand,
had kindled against him, though an innocent person, the hatred of the whole
people, he had good reason also for turning his pen particularly against him.
Thus, in the first verse, he describes the true character of his own
circumstances—he was a persecuted man; and, in the second verse, the
fountain or cause of the calamity he was enduring. There is great emphasis in
these words which he uses in the beginning of the Psalms
O Jehovah my Godly in thee do I
trust. The verb, it is true, is in the
past tense in the Hebrew; and, therefore, if literally translated, the reading
would be, In thee have I trusted; but as the Hebrews often take one
tense for another,
fa99 I prefer to translate it in the present,
In thee I do
trust, especially since it is abundantly
evident that a continued act, as it is termed, is denoted. David does not boast
of a confidence in God, from which he had now fallen, but of a confidence which
he constantly entertained in his afflictions. And this is a genuine and an
undoubted proof of our faith, when, being visited with adversity, we,
notwithstanding, persevere in cherishing and exercising hope in God. From this
passage, we also learn that the gate of mercy is shut against our prayers if the
key of faith do not open it for us. Nor does he use superfluous language when he
calls Jehovah his own
God; for by setting up this as a bulwark
before him, he beats back the waves of temptations, that they may not overwhelm
his faith. In the second verses by the figure of
a
lion, he represents in a stronger light
the cruelty of Saul, as an argument to induce God to grant him assistance, even
as he ascribes it to Him as his peculiar province to rescue his poor sheep from
the jaws of wolves.
Psalm
7:3-5
3. O Jehovah, my God, if I
have done this thing, if there be iniquity in my hands:4 If I have
rewarded evil to him that was at peace with me, and have not delivered him that
persecuted me without cause:5. Let the enemy pursue my soul and take it;
and let him throw down my life to the
ground,
fa100 and hold
down
fa101 my glory in the dust.
Selah.
3.
O Jehovah my
God. Here David, to induce God to show
him favour, protests that he is molested unjustly, and without being guilty of
any crime. To give his protestation the greater weight, he uses an imprecation.
If he has done any wrong, he declares his readiness to bear the blame; yea, he
offers to endure the severest punishment, if he is not altogether innocent of
the crime of which all men thought him almost convicted. And by entreating God
to succour him upon no other condition than this, that his integrity should upon
trial be found to be untarnished, he teaches us, by his example, that as often
as we have recourse to God, we must make it our first care to be well assured in
our own consciences with respect to the righteousness of our cause; for we do
him great wrong if we wish to engage him as the advocate and defender of a bad
cause. The pronoun this shows that he speaks of a thing which was
generally known; whence we may conclude, that the slander which had been raised
by Cush was spread far and wide. And as David was condemned, by the false
reports and unrighteous judgments which men advanced against him, and saw no
remedy on earth, he betakes himself to the judgment-seat of God, and contents
himself with maintaining his innocence before the heavenly Judge; an example
which all the godly should imitate, in order that, in opposition to the
slanderous reports which are spread against them, they may rest satisfied with
the judgment of God alone. He next declares more distinctly, that he had
committed no crime. And in the fourth verse, he mentions two particulars in
self-vindication; first, That he had done no wrong to any one; and, secondly,
That he had rather endeavoured to do good to his enemies, by whom
notwithstanding he had been injured without any just cause. I, therefore,
explain the fourth verse thus: If I have wronged any man that was at peace with
me, and have not rather succoured the unworthy, who persecuted me without a
cause, etc. Since David was hated of almost all men, as if ambition to reign had
impelled him perfidiously to rise up in rebellion against Saul, and to lay
snares for the monarch to whom he was bound by the oath of
allegiances
fa102 in the first part of the verse, he
clears himself of such a foul slander. The reason, perhaps, why he calls Saul
him that was at peace with
him is, that on account of his royal
dignity his person ought to be sacred, and secure from
danger,
fa103 so that it should be unlawful to make
any hostile attempt against him. This phrase, however, may be understood
generally, as if he had said, No one who has meekly restrained himself from
injuring me, and has conducted himself kindly towards me, can with truth
complain that I have ever injured him in a single instance. And yet it was the
general persuasion, that David, in the midst of peace, had stirred up great
confusion, and caused war. From this it is just so much the more manifest, that
David, provided he enjoyed the approbation of God, was contented with the
consolation arising from this, though he should have comfort from no other
source.
In the second clause of the fourth
verse, he proceeds farther, and states, that he had been a friend, not only to
the good, but also to the bad, and had not only restrained himself from all
revenge, but had even succoured his enemies, by whom he had been deeply and
cruelly injured. It would certainly not be very illustrious virtue to love the
good and peaceable, unless there were joined to this self-government and
gentleness in patiently bearing with the bad. But when a man not only keeps
himself from revenging the injuries which he has received, but endeavours to
overcome evil by doing good, he manifests one of the graces of a renewed and
sanctified nature, and in this way proves himself to be one of the children of
God; for such meekness proceeds only from the Spirit of adoption. With respect
to the words:as the Hebrew word
xlj
chalats, which I have translated to delivers signifies to
divide and to separate, some, to prevent the necessity of supplying
any word to make out the sense,
fa104 thus explain the passage, If I have
withdrawn myself from my persecutors, in order not to succour them. The
other interpretation, however, according to which the verb is rendered to
deliver or rescue from danger, is more generally received; because
the phrase, to separate or set aside, is applied to those
things which we wish to place in safety. And thus the negative word not
must be supplied, an omission which we will find not unfrequently occurring
in The Psalms.
5.
Let mine enemy
pursue. It is a striking proof of the
great confidence which David had in his own integrity, when he is willing to
endure any kind of punishment, however dreadful, provided he should be found
guilty of any crime. If we could bring a good conscience like this before God,
his hand would be more quickly stretched forth to afford us immediate
assistance. But as it often happens that those who molest us have been provoked
by us, or that we burn with the desire of revenge when offended, we are unworthy
of receiving succour from God; yea, our own impatience shuts the gate against
our prayers. In the first place, David is prepared to be given over to the will
of his enemies, that they may
seize his life, and throw it down
to the ground; and then to be publicly
exhibited as an object of their mockery, so that, even after he is dead, he may
lie under eternal disgrace. Some think that the
dwbk
kebod, which we have translated
glory,
is here to be taken for
life,
and thus there will be three words,
soul,
life,
glory,
signifying the same thing. But it appears to me, that the meaning of the
passage will be fuller if we refer the word
glory
to his memory, or his good name, as if he had said, Let my enemy not
only destroy me, but, after having put me to death, let him speak of me in the
most reproachful terms, so that my name may be buried in mire or
filth.
Psalm
7:6-8
6. Arise, O Jehovah, in thine
anger, lift up thyself against the rage of mine enemies; and awake thou for me
to the judgment which thou hast ordained.
Fa105
7. And then the assembly of peoples [or nations] shall compass thee
about:and on account of this, return thou on high. 8. Jehovah shall judge
the peoples, [or nations :] judge me, O Jehovah, according to my righteousness,
and according to the integrity that is in
me.
6.
Arise, O
Jehovah. David here sets the anger of
God in opposition to the rage of his enemies; and when we are
Id in similar
circumstances we should act in the same manner. When the ungodly are inflamed
against us, and cast forth their rage and fury to destroy us, we ought humbly to
beseech God to be inflamed also on his side; in other words, to show in truth
that he has, no less zeal and power to preserve us, than they have inclination
to destroy us. The word,
Arise,
is taken in a figurative sense, for to ascend into a judgment-seat, or
rather to prepare one's self to make resistance; and it is here
applied to God, because, while he delays to succour us, we are very apt to think
him asleep. Accordingly, David also, a little after, beseeches him
to
awake; for it seemed on the part of God
something like the forgetfulness of sleep to give no assistance to an individual
who was so much afflicted and oppressed on all
hands.
In the end of the verse he shows that he
asks nothing but what is according to the appointment of God. And this is the
rule which ought to be observed by us in our prayers; we should in every thing
conform our requests to the divine will, as John also instructs us,
(<620514>1
John 5:14.) And, indeed, we can never pray in faith unless we attend, in the
first place, to what God commands, that our minds may not rashly and at random
start aside in desiring more than we are permitted to desire and pray for.
David, therefore, in order to pray aright, reposes himself on the word and prose
mise of God; and the import of his exercise is this:Lord, I am not led by
ambition, or foolish headstrong passion, or depraved desire, inconsiderately to
ask from thee whatever is pleasing to my flesh; but it is the clear light of thy
word which directs me, and upon it I securely depend. Since God, of his own good
pleasure, had called him to be one day king, it belonged to him to defend and
maintain the rights of the man whom he had chosen for his servant. David's
language, therefore, is the same as if he had said, "When I was well contented
with my humble condition in private life, it was thy pleasure to set me apart to
the honourable station of being a king; now, therefore, it belongs to thee to
maintain this cause against Saul and his associates who are using their efforts
to defeat thy decree in making war upon me." The Hebrew word
hrw[,
urah, which we have rendered awake
thou,
fa106 might also be taken transitively
for to build up, or to establish the right of David. The sum of
the whole, however, comes to this, that David, trusting to the call of God,
beseeches him to stretch forth his hand for his relief. The faithful must,
therefore, take care not to exceed these bounds, if they desire to have God
present with them to maintain and preserve
them.
7.
And a congregation of peoples. Some
limit this sentence exclusively to the people of Israel, as if David promised
that, as soon as he should ascend the throne, he would endeavour to reunite
together, in the pure worship of God, the people who before had been as it were
in a state of dispersion. Under the reign of Saul, religion had been neglected,
or such an unrestrained license in wickedness had prevailed, that few paid any
regard to God. The meaning, therefore, according to these expositors, is
this:Lord, when thou shalt have constituted me king, the whole people, who have
so basely gone astray from thee,
fa107 shall return from their wanderings and
disorderly courses to thee and to thy service, so that all shall know that thou
rulest in the midst of them, and shall worship thee as their only King. But I am
rather inclined to view this as language which has a respect in common to many
nations. David here speaks in high terms of the effects resulting from his
deliverance, the report of which would be spread far and wide, and his words
are, as if he had said, "Lord, when thou shalt have put me in peaceable
possession of the kingdom, this will not only be a benefit conferred on me
personally, but it will be a common lesson to many nations, teaching them to
acknowledge thy just judgment, so that they shall turn their eyes to thy
judgment-seat."
fa108 David here alludes to the practice of a
people who surround their king, as in a circle, when he holds a solemn assembly.
In the same sense, he adds immediately after, that God, who, for a time, lay
still and kept silence, would raise himself on high that not only one or two,
but whole nations, might behold his
glory:And on account of this
return thou on
high.
fa109 There is in these words, a tacit
comparison, that although it might not be necessary to have a regard to one man
alone, it is requisite that God should keep the world in the fear and reverence
of his judgment.
8.
Jehovah shall judge the
nations. This sentence is closely
connected with the preceding verse. David had prayed God to show himself as
judge to the nations; and now he takes it for a certain and admitted truth, that
it is the peculiar office of God to judge the nations:for the word put in the
future tense, and rendered shall
judge, denotes here a continued act; and
this is the signification of the future tense in general sentences. Besides, he
does not here speak of one nation only, but comprehends all nations. As he
acknowledges God to be the judge of the whole world, he concludes a little after
from this, that he will maintain his cause and right. And as often as we seem to
be forsaken and oppressed, we should recall this truth to our remembrance, that
as God is the governor of the world, it is as utterly impossible for him to
abdicate his office as to deny himself. From this source there will flow a
continual stream of comfort, although a long succession of calamities may press
upon us:for from this truth we may assuredly conclude, that he will take care to
defend our innocence. It would be contrary to every principle of just reasoning
to supposes that he who governs many nations neglects even one man. What happens
with respect to the judges of this world can never take place with respect to
him; he cannot, as may be the case with them, be so occupied about great and
public affairs as to neglect, because unable to attend to them, the concerns of
individuals. He again brings into new
his
integrity that he may not seem, after
the example of hypocrites to make the name of God a mere pretext for the better
furthering of his own purposes. Since God is no respecter of persons, we cannot
expect him to be on our side, and to favour us, if our cause is not good. But it
is asked, how can David here boast of his own integrity before God, when in
other places he deprecates God entering into judgment with him? The answer is
easy, and it is this:The subject here treated of is not how he could answer if
God should demand from him an account of his whole life; but, comparing himself
with his enemies, he maintains and not without cause, that, in respect of them,
he was righteous. But when each saint passes under the review of God's judgment,
and his own character is tried upon its own merits, the matter is very
different, for then the only sanctuary to which he can betake himself for
safety, is the mercy of God.
Psalm
7:9-11
9. Let the malice of the
wicked come to an end I beseech thee and direct thou the righteous:for God who
is righteous, proves [or searches] the hearts and the reins. 10. My
defense [or shield] is in God, who saves the upright in heart. 11. God
judgeth the righteous, and him who despiseth God,
daily.
9.
Let the malice of the wicked come
to an endow I beseech thee. David, in
the first place, prays that God would restrain the malice of his enemies, and
bring it to an end; from which it follows, that his affliction had been of long
duration. Others suppose that this is rather a dreadful imprecation, and they
explain the Hebrew word
rmg
, gamar, somewhat differently. Instead of rendering it to cease,
and to come to an end, as I have done, they understand it to make
to cease, which is equivalent to destroy or to
consume.
fa110 Thus, according to them,
David wishes that God would cause the mischief which the wicked devise to fall
upon their own heads: Let the
wickedness of the wicked consume them.
But, in my opinion, the former interpretation is the more simple, namely,
that David beseeches God to bring his troubles to a termination. Accordingly
there follows immediately after the corresponding prayer
Direct thou the
righteous, or establish him; for
it is of little importance which of these two readings we adopt. The meaning is,
that God would re-establish and uphold the righteous, who are wrongfully
oppressed, and thus make it evident that they are continued in their estate by
the power of God, notwithstanding the persecution to which they are
subjected.—For God
searcheth the hearts. The Hebrew
copulative is here very properly translated by the causal particle
for,
since David, without doubt, adds this clause as an argument to enforce his
prayer. He now declares, for the third time, that, trusting to the testimony of
a good conscience, he comes before God with confidence; but here he expresses
something more than he had done before, namely, that he not only showed his
innocence, by his external conduct, but had also cultivated purity in the secret
affection of his heart. He seems to set this confidence in opposition to the
insolence and boasting of his enemies, by whom, it is probable, such calumnies
had been circulated among the people concerning him, as constrained him in his
deep affliction to present his heart and reins to be tried by God. Perhaps,
also, he speaks in this manner, in order to divest them of all those plausible
but false and deceitful pretenses, which they made use of for the purpose of
deceiving men, and if they succeeded in doing this they were
satisfied.
fa111 He shows that, although they might
triumph before the world, and receive the applause of the multitude, they,
nevertheless, gained nothing, inasmuch as they would, by and by, have to make
their appearance before the judgment-seat of God, where the question would not
be, What were their titles? or, What was the splendour of their actions? but how
it stood as to the purity of their
hearts.
10.
My
shield. It is not wonderful that
David often mingles meditations with his prayers, thereby to inspire himself
with true confidence. We may go to God in prayer with great alacrity; but our
fervour, if it does not gather new strength, either immediately fails or begins
to languish. David, therefore, in order to continue in prayer with the same
ardour of devotion and affection with which he commenced, brings to his
recollection some of the most common truths of religion, and by this means
fosters and invigorates his faith. He declares, that as God
saves the upright in
heart, he is perfectly safe under his
protection. Whence it follows, that he had the testimony of an approving
conscience. And, as he does not simply say the righteous, but
the upright in
heart, he appears to have an eye to that
inward searching of the heart and reins mentioned in the preceding verse.
11.
God judgeth the righteous
etc. Others read, God is a righteous
Judge, and God is angry every day. The words will certainly admit of this
sense; but as the doctrine is fuller according to the first reading, I have
preferred following it, as I see it is more approved of by the most learned
divines, and, besides, it is more suitable to the subject which David is now
considering. As Saul and his accomplices had, by their calumnious reports, so
far succeeded in their wicked design as to have produced a general prejudice
against David, so that he was condemned by almost the whole people, the holy man
supports himself from this one consideration, that whatever may be the confusion
of things in the world, God, notwithstanding, can easily discern between the
righteous and the wicked. He, therefore, appeals from the false judgments of men
to Him who can never be deceived. It may, however, be asked, How does the
Psalmist represent God as judging every day, when we see him delaying
punishment frequently for a long time? The sacred writings certainly most justly
celebrate his long-suffering; but, although he exercises patience long, and does
not immediately execute his judgments, yet, as no time passes, yea, not even a
day, in which he does not furnish the clearest evidence that he discerns between
the righteous and the wicked, notwithstanding the confusion of things in the
world, it is certain that he never ceases to execute the office of a judge. All
who will be at the trouble to open their eyes to behold the government of the
world, will distinctly see that the patience of God is very different from
approbation or connivance. Surely, then, his own people will confidently betake
themselves to him every day.
Psalm
7:12-14
12. If he turn not, he will
whet his sword; he hath bent his bow and made it
ready.
fa0112 13. And he hath prepared for
fa0113
the instruments of death; he shall make fit his arrows for them that
persecute.
fa0114 14. Behold, he shall travail to
bring forth iniquity; he hath conceived wickedness, and he shall bring forth
falsehood.
fa0115
12.
If he turn
not. These verses are usually explained
in two ways. The meaning is, that if David's enemies should persevere in their
malicious designs against him, there is denounced against them the vengeance
which their obstinate wickedness deserves. Accordingly, in the second clause,
they supply the name of
God,—If he turn not,
GOD will whet his
sword;
fa0116 as if it had been said, If my
enemy do not repent,
fa0117 he shall, at length, feel that God is
completely armed for the purpose of maintaining and defending the righteous. If
it is understood in this sense, the third verse is to be considered as a
statement of the cause why God will thus equip himself with armour, namely,
because the ungodly, in conceiving all kinds of mischief, in travailing to bring
forth wickedness, and in at length bringing forth deceit and falsehood, directly
assail God, and openly make war upon him. But, in my judgment, those who read
these two verses in one continued sentence, give a more accurate interpretation.
I am not, however, satisfied that even they fully bring out the meaning of the
Psalmist. David, I have no doubt, by relating the dreadful attempts of his
enemies against him, intended thereby to illustrate more highly the grace of
God; for when these malicious men, strengthened by powerful military forces, and
abundantly provided with armour, furiously rushed upon him in the full
expectation of destroying him, who would not have said that it was all over with
him? Moreover, there is implied in the words a kind of irony, when he pretends
to be afraid of their putting him to death. They mean the same thing as if he
had said, "If my enemy do not alter his purpose, or turn his fury and his
strength in another direction, who can preserve me from perishing by his hands?
He has an abundant supply of arms, and he is endeavouring, by all methods, to
accomplish my death." But Saul is the person of whom he particularly speaks, and
therefore he says, he hath made
fit his arrows for the persecutors. This
implies that Saul had many agents in readiness who would willingly put forth
their utmost efforts in seeking to destroy David. The design of the prophet,
therefore, was to magnify the greatness of the grace of God, by showing the
greatness of the danger from which he had been delivered by
him.
fa0118 Moreover, when it is here said, if
he do not return,
returning does not signify repentance
and amendment in David's enemy, but only a change of will and purpose, as if he
had said, "It is in the power of my enemy to do whatever his fancy may
suggest."
fa0119 Whence it appears the more clearly,
how wonderful the change was which suddenly followed contrary all expectation.
When he says that Saul had
prepared the instruments of death
for his bow, he intimates that he was
driving after no ordinary thing, but was fully determined to wound to death the
man whom he shot at. Some, referring the Hebrew word
µyqlwd
doulekim, which we have rendered persecutors, to arrows,
have rendered it burning,
fa0120 because it has also this
signification;
fa0121 but the translation which I have given
is the more appropriate. David complains that he had reason to be afraid, not
only of one man, but of a great multitude, inasmuch as Saul had armed a powerful
body of men to pursue and persecute a poor
fugitive.
14.
Behold, he shall
travail. David has hitherto shown how
great and formidable the danger was which was near him. In this verse, laughing
to scorn the presumptuous and foolish attempts of Saul, and his magnificent
preparations, he declares that they had failed of accomplishing their
object.
fa0122 By the demonstrative adverb Behold,
he enhances the wonder, inasmuch as such a result fell out, on his part
altogether unlooked for.
Behold,
says he, after he has
travailed to bring forth wickedness, like as he had conceived
mischief, at length there comes forth
only empty wind and vanity, because God frustrated his expectations, and
destroyed all these wicked attempts.
fa0123 Iniquity and mischief are here put for
every kind of violence and outrage
fa0124 which Saul intended to inflict upon
David. Some interpreters think that the order of the words is inverted, because
travailing to bring forth is put before conceiving; but I think
that the words have their proper place if you explain them thus:Behold, he shall
travail to bring forth wickedness, for he hath conceived mischief; that is to
say, as he long ago devised with himself my destruction, so he will do
his utmost to put his design into execution. David afterwards adds,
he hath brought forth
falsehood. This implies that Saul had
been disappointed in his expectation; as Isaiah,
(<232618>Isaiah
26:18,) in like manner, speaks of unbelievers "bringing forth wind," when their
success does not correspond to their wicked and presumptuous attempts. As often,
therefore, as we see the ungodly secretly plotting our ruin, let us
remember that they speak falsehood to themselves; in other words deceive
themselves, and shall fail in accomplishing what they devise in their
hearts.
fa0125 If, however, we do not perceive that
they are disappointed in their designs until they are about to be brought forth,
let us not be cast down, but bear it with a spirit of patient submission to the
will and providence of God.
Psalm
7:15-16
15. He hath digged a pit,
and hollowed it out;
fa0126 and he hath fallen into the ditch
which he hath made. 16. His wickedness shall return upon his own head,
and his violence shall descend upon his own
crown.
Here David says not only that their
wicked devices were without success, but that, by the wonderful providence of
God, the result was the very opposite of what had been contemplated. He sets
this forth in the first place metaphorically, by employing the figure of
a pit and a
ditch; and then he expresses the same
thing in simple terms without figure, declaring, that the
mischief intended for others
returned upon the head of him who had devised
it. There is no doubt that it was a
common proverb among the Jews, He who hath digged a pit falleth into it; which
they quoted when they meant to say, that wicked and crafty men are caught in the
snares and traps which they have set for others, or that the contrivers of the
ruin of others perish by their own
devices.
fa0127 There is a twofold use of this
doctrine:the first place, however skilled in craft our enemies may be, and
whatever means of doing mischief they may have, we must nevertheless look for
the issue which God here promises, that they shall fall by their own sword. And
this is not a thing which happens by chance; but God, by the secret direction of
his own hand, causes the evil which they intend to bring upon the innocent to
return upon their own heads. In the second place, If at any time we are
instigated by passion to inflict any injury upon our neighbours, or to commit
any wickedness, let us remember this principle of retributive justice, which is
often acted upon by the divine government, that those who prepare a pit for
others are cast into it themselves; and the effect will be, that every one, in
proportion as he would consult his own happiness and welfare, will be careful to
restrain himself from doing any injury, even the smallest, to
another.
17.
I will praise Jehovah according
to his righteousness; and I will sing to the name of Jehovah, Most
High. As the design of God in the
deliverances which he vouchsafes to his servants is, that they may render to him
in return the sacrifices of praise, David here promises that he will gratefully
acknowledge the deliverance which he had received, and at the same time affirms
that his preservation from death was the undoubted and manifest work of God. He
could not, with truth, and from the heart, have ascribed to God the praise of
his deliverance, if he had not been fully persuaded that he had been preserved
otherwise than by the power of man. He, therefore, not only promises to exercise
the gratitude which was due to his deliverer, but he confirms in one word what
he has rehearsed throughout the psalm, that he is indebted for his life to the
grace of God, who had not suffered Saul to take it from him. The
righteousness of God is here to be understood of his faithfulness which he
makes good to his servants in defending and preserving their lives. God does not
shut up or conceal his righteousness from our view in the secret recesses of his
own mind, but manifests it for our advantage when he defends us against all
wrongful violence, delivers us from oppression, and preserves us in safety
although wicked men make war upon us and persecute us.
PSALM
8.
David, reflecting upon God's fatherly beneficence
towards mankind, is not content with simply giving thanks for it, but is
enraptured by the contemplation of it.
To the chief
musician upon Hagittith. A song of David.
Psalm
8:1
1. O Jehovah, our
Lord!
fa112 How wonderful is thy name in all the
earth, to set
fa113 thy glory above the
heavens!
Whether
tytg,
Gittith, signifies a musical instrument or some particular tune, or the
beginning of some famous and well-known song, I do not take upon me to
determine. Those who think that the psalm is so called because it was composed
in the city of Gath, give a strained and far-fetched explanation of the matter.
Of the other three opinions, of which I have spoken, it is not of much
importance which is adopted. The principal thing to be attended to is what the
psalm itself contains, and what is the design of it. David, it is true, sets
before his eyes the wonderful power and glory of God in the creation and
government of the material universe; but he only slightly glances at this
subject, as it were, in passing, and insists principally on the theme of God's
infinite goodness towards us. There is presented to us in the whole order of
nature, the most abundant matter for showing forth the glory of God, but, as we
are unquestionably more powerfully affected with what we ourselves experience,
David here, with great propriety, expressly celebrates the special favor which
God manifests towards mankind; for this, of all the subjects which come under
our contemplation, is the brightest mirror in which we can behold his glory. It
is, however, strange why he begins the psalm with an exclamation, when the usual
way is first to give an account of a thing, and then to magnify its greatness
and excellence. But if we remember what is said in other passages of Scripture,
respecting the impossibility of expressing in words the works of God, we will
not be surprised that David, by this exclamation, acknowledges himself unequal
to the task of recounting them. David, therefore, when reflecting on the
incomprehensible goodness which God has been graciously pleased to bestow on the
human race, and feeling all his thoughts and senses swallowed up, and
overwhelmed in the contemplation, exclaims that it is a subject worthy of
admiration, because it cannot be set forth in
words.
fa114 Besides, the Holy Spirit, who directed
David's tongue, doubtless intended, by his instrumentality, to awaken men from
the torpor and indifference which is common to them, so that they may not
content themselves with celebrating the infinite love of God and the innumerable
benefits which they receive at his hand, in their sparing and frigid manner, but
may rather apply their whole hearts to this holy exercise, and put forth in it
their highest efforts. This exclamation of David implies, that when all the
faculties of the human mind are exerted to the utmost in meditation on this
subject,
fa115 they yet come far short of
it.
The name of God, as I explain it, is
here to be understood of the knowledge of the character and perfections of God,
in so far as he makes himself known to us. I do not approve of the subtle
speculations of those who think the name of God means nothing else but God
himself. It ought rather to be referred to the works and properties by which he
is known, than to his essence. David, therefore, says that the earth is full of
the wonderful glory of God, so that the fame or renown thereof not only reaches
to the heavens, but ascends far above them. The verb
hnt,
tenah, has been rendered by some in the preterite tense, hast set,
but in my judgment, those give a more accurate translation who render it in
the infinitive mood, to place or to set; because the second clause
is just an amplification of the subject of the first; as if he had said, the
earth is too small to contain the glory or the wonderful manifestations of the
character and perfections of God. According to this view,
rça,
asher, will not be a relative, but will have the meaning of the expletive
or exegetic particle even, which we use to explain what has
preceded.
fa116
Psalm
8:2
2. Out of the mouth of babes and
sucklings thou hast founded thy strength, because of thy adversaries, that thou
mightest put to flight the enemy and
avenger.
He now enters upon the proof of
the subject which he had undertaken to discourse
upon,
fa117 declaring, that the providence of God,
in order to make itself known to mankind, does not wait till men arrive at the
age of maturity, but even from the very dawn of infancy shines forth so brightly
as is sufficient to confute all the ungodly, who, through their profane contempt
of God, would wish to extinguish his very
name.
fa118
The opinion of some, who think that
ypm,
mephi, out of the mouth, signifies
ypk,
kephi, in the mouth, cannot be admitted, because it improperly weakens
the emphasis which David meant to give to his language and discourse. The
meaning, therefore, is, that God, in order to commend his providence, has no
need of the powerful eloquence of
rhetoricians,
fa119 nor even of distinct and formed
language, because the tongues of infants, although they do not as yet speak, are
ready and eloquent enough to celebrate it. But it may be asked, In what sense
does he speak of children as the proclaimers of the glory of God? In my
judgment, those reason very foolishly who think that this is done when children
begin to articulate, because then also the intellectual faculty of the soul
shows itself. Granting that they are called babes, or infants, even until they
arrive at their seventh year, how can such persons imagine that those who now
speak distinctly are still hanging on the breast? Nor is there any more
propriety in the opinion of those who say, that the words
for babes and
sucklings are here put allegorically for
the faithful, who, being born again by the Spirit of God, no longer retain the
old age of the flesh. What need, then, is there to wrest the words of David,
when their true meaning is so clear and suitable? He says that babes and
sucklings are advocates sufficiently powerful to vindicate the providence of
God. Why does he not entrust this business to men, but to show that the tongues
of infants, even before they are able to pronounce a single word, speak loudly
and distinctly in commendation of God's liberality towards the human race?
Whence is it that nourishment is ready for them as soon as they are born, but
because God wonderfully changes blood into milk? Whence, also, have they the
skill to suck, but because the same God has, by a mysterious instinct, fitted
their tongues for doing this? David, therefore, has the best reason for
declaring, that although the tongues of all, who have arrived at the age of
manhood, should become silent, the speechless mouth of infants is sufficiently
able to celebrate the praise of God. And when he not only introduces babes as
witnesses and preachers of God's glory, but also attributes mature strength
to their mouth, the expression is very emphatic. It means the same thing as
if he had said, These are invincible champions of God who, when it comes to the
conflict, can easily scatter and discomfit the whole host of the wicked
despisers of God, and those who have abandoned themselves to impiety.
fa120
We should observe against whom he imposes upon infants the office of defending
the glory of God, namely, against the hardened despisers of God, who dare to
rise up against heaven to make war upon God, as the poets have said, in olden
time, of the giants.
fa121
Since,
therefore, these monsters,
fa122 with furious violence, pluck up by the
roots, and overthrow whatever godliness and the fear of
God
fa123 there is in the world, and through
their hardihood endeavor to do violence to heaven itself, David in mockery of
them brings into the field of battle against them the mouths of infants, which
he says are furnished with armor of sufficient strength, and endued with
sufficient fortitude, to lay their intolerable pride
fa124
in the dust. He, therefore, immediately subjoins,
On account of the
adversaries. God is not under the
necessity of making war with great power to overcome the faithful, who willingly
hearken to his voice, and manifest a ready obedience, as soon as he gives the
smallest intimation of his will. The providence of God, I confess, shines forth
principally for the sake of the faithful, because they only have eyes to behold
it. But as they show themselves willing to receive instruction, God teaches them
with gentleness; while, on the other hand, he arms himself against his enemies,
who never submit themselves to him but by constraint. Some take the word
founded as meaning, that, in the very birth or generation of man, God
lays foundations for manifesting his own glory. But this sense is too
restricted. I have no doubt that the word is put for to establish, as if
the prophet had said, God needs not strong military forces to destroy the
ungodly; instead of these, the mouths of children are sufficient for his
purpose.
fa125
To put to
flight. Interpreters differ with respect
to the word
tybçh,
hashebith. It properly signifies, to cause to cease; for it is in
the conjugation Hiphil of the neuter verb
tbç,
shabath, which signifies to cease. But it is often taken
metaphorically for to destroy, or to reduce to nothing, because
destruction or death brings to an end. Others translate it, that thou mayest
restrain, as if David meant that they were put to silence, so that they
desisted from cursing or reviling God. As, however, there is here a beautiful
allusion to a hostile combat, as I have a little before explained, I have
preferred the military phrase, to put to flight. But it is asked, How
does God put to flight his enemies, who, by their impious slanders and
detractions, do not cease to strike at, and violently to rush forward to oppose
all the proofs of a Divine Providence which daily manifest
themselves?
fa126 I answer, They are not routed or
overthrown in respect of their being compelled to become more humble and
unassuming; but because, with all their blasphemies and canine barkings, they
continue in the state of abasement and confusion to which they have been
brought. To express the whole in a few words:so early as the generation or birth
of man the splendor of Divine Providence is so apparent, that even infants, who
hang upon their mothers' breasts, can bring down to the ground the fury of the
enemies of God. Although his enemies may do their utmost, and may even burst
with rage a hundred times, it is in vain for them to endeavor to overthrow the
strength which manifests itself in the weakness of infancy. A desire of revenge
reigns in all unbelievers, while, on the other hand, God governs his own
children by the spirit of meekness and
benignity:fa127
but, according to the scope of the present passage, the prophet applies this
epithet, the avenger, to the despisers of God, who are not only cruel
towards man, but who also burn with frantic rage to make war even against God
himself.
I have now discharged the duty of a
faithful interpreter in opening up the mind of the prophet. There is only one
difficulty remaining, which is this, that Christ
(<402116>Matthew
21:16) seems to put upon this passage a different meaning, when he applies it to
children ten years old. But this difficulty is easily removed. Christ reasons
from the greater to the less in this manner; If God has appointed children even
in infancy the vindicators of his glory, there is no absurdity in his making
them the instruments of showing forth his praise by their tongues after they
have arrived at the age of seven years and
upwards.
Psalm
8:3-4
3. When I see thy heavens, the
works of thy fingers; the moon and the stars which thou hast arranged:4.
What is man
fa128 that thou art mindful of him? and the
son of man, that thou visitest him?
fa129
As the Hebrew particle
yk,
ki, has often the same meaning as because or for, and
simply affirms a thing, both the Greek and the Latin fathers have generally read
the fourth verse as if it were a complete sentence by itself. But it is,
doubtless, closely connected with the following verse; and, therefore, the two
verses ought to be joined together. The Hebrew word
yk,
ki, might be very properly translated into the disjunctive particle,
although, making the meaning to be this:Although the infinite majesty of
God shines forth in the heavenly bodies, and justly keeps the eyes of men fixed
on the contemplation of it, yet his glory is beheld in a special manner, in the
great favor which he bears to men, and in the goodness which he manifests
towards them. This interpretation would not be at variance with the scope of the
passage; but I choose rather to follow the generally received opinion. My
readers, however, must be careful to mark the design of the Psalmist, which is
to enhance, by this comparison, the infinite goodness of God; for it is, indeed,
a wonderful thing that the Creator of heaven, whose glory is so surpassingly
great as to ravish us with the highest admiration, condescends so far as
graciously to take upon him the care of the human race. That the Psalmist makes
this contrast may be inferred from the Hebrew word,
çwna,
enosh, which we have rendered man, and which expresses the frailty
of man rather than any strength or power which he
possesses.
fa130 We see that miserable men, in moving
upon the earth, are mingled with the vilest creatures; and, therefore, God, with
very good reason, might despise them and reckon them of no account if he were to
stand upon the consideration of his own greatness or dignity. The prophet,
therefore, speaking interrogatively, abases their condition, intimating that
God's wonderful goodness is displayed the more brightly in that so glorious a
Creator, whose majesty shines resplendently in the heavens, graciously
condescends to adorn a creature so miserable and vile as man is with the
greatest glory, and to enrich him with numberless blessings. If he had a mind to
exercise his liberality towards any, he was under no necessity of choosing men
who are but dust and clay, in order to prefer them above all other creatures,
seeing he had a sufficient number in heaven towards whom to show himself
liberal.
fa131 Whoever, therefore, is not astonished
and deeply affected at this miracle, is more than ungrateful and stupid. When
the Psalmist calls the heavens
God's
heavens, and
the works of his
fingers, he has a reference to the same
subject, and intends to illustrate it. How is it that God comes forth from so
noble and glorious a part of his works, and stoops down to us, poor worms of the
earth, if it is not to magnify and to give a more illustrious manifestation of
his goodness? From this, also, we learn, that those are chargeable with a very
presumptuous abuse of the goodness of God, who take occasion from it to be proud
of the excellence which they possess, as if they had either obtained it by their
own skill, or as if they possessed it on account of their own merit; whereas
their origin should rather remind them that it has been gratuitously conferred
upon those who are otherwise vile and contemptible creatures, and utterly
unworthy of receiving any good from God. Whatever estimable quality, therefore,
we see in ourselves, let it stir us up to celebrate the free and undeserved
goodness of God in bestowing it upon us.
The
verb, at the close of the third verse, which others translate to prepare,
or to found, or to establish, I have thought proper to render
to arrange; for the Psalmist seems to have a reference to the very
beautiful order by which God has so appropriately distinguished the position of
the stars, and daily regulates their course. When it is said, God is mindful
of man, it signifies the same thing as that he bears towards him a fatherly
love, defends and cherishes him, and extends his providence towards him. Almost
all interpreters render
dqp,
pakad, the last word of this verse, to visit; and I am unwilling to
differ from them, since this sense suits the passage very well. But as it
sometimes signifies to remember, and as we will often find in the Psalms
the repetition of the same thought in different words, it may here be very
properly translated to remember; as if David had said, This is a
marvellous thing, that God thinks upon men, and remembers them
continually.
Psalm
8:5-6
5.
For
fa132 thou hast made him little lower than
God.
fa133 and hast crowned him with glory and
honor. 6. Thou hast set him over the works of thy hands:Thou hast put all
things under his
feet.
5.
Thou hast made him little lower. The
Hebrew copulative
yk,
ki, I have no doubt, ought to be translated into the causal particle for,
seeing the Psalmist confirms what he has just now said concerning the
infinite goodness of God towards men, in showing himself near to them, and
mindful of them. In the first place, he represents them as adorned with so many
honors as to render their condition not far inferior to divine and celestial
glory. In the second place, he mentions the external dominion and power which
they possess over all creatures, from which it appears how high the degree of
dignity is to which God hath exalted them. I have, indeed, no doubt but he
intends, by the first,
fa134 the distinguished endowments which
clearly manifest that men were formed after the image of God, and created to the
hope of a blessed and immortal life. The reason with which they are endued, and
by which they can distinguish between good and evil; the principle of religion
which is planted in them; their intercourse with each other, which is preserved
from being broken up by certain sacred bonds; the regard to what is becoming,
and the sense of shame which guilt awakens in them, as well as their continuing
to be governed by laws; all these things are clear indications of pre-eminent
and celestial wisdom. David, therefore, not without good reason, exclaims that
mankind are adorned with glory and honor. To be crowned, is here taken
metaphorically, as if David had said, he is clothed and adorned with marks of
honor, which are not far removed from the splendor of the divine majesty. The
Septuagint render
µyhla,
Elohim, by angels, of which I do not disapprove, since this name,
as is well known, is often given to angels, and I explain the words of David as
meaning the same thing as if he had said, that the condition of men is nothing
less than a divine and celestial state. But as the other translation seems more
natural, and as it is almost universally adopted by the Jewish interpreters, I
have preferred following it. Nor is it any sufficient objection to this view,
that the apostle, in his Epistle to the Hebrews,
(<580207>Hebrews
2:7) quoting this passage, says, little less than the angels, and not
than God;
fa135 for we know what freedoms the apostles
took in quoting texts of Scripture; not, indeed, to wrest them to a meaning
different from the true one but because they reckoned it sufficient to show, by
a reference to Scripture, that what they taught was sanctioned by the word of
God, although they did not quote the precise words. Accordingly, they never had
any hesitation in changing the words, provided the substance of the text
remained unchanged.
There is another question
which it is more difficult to solve. While the Psalmist here discourses
concerning the excellency of men, and describes them, in respect of this, as
coming near to God, the apostle applies the passage to the humiliation of
Christ. In the first place, we must consider the propriety of applying to the
person of Christ what is here spoken concerning all mankind; and, secondly, how
we may explain it as referring to Christ's being humbled in his death, when he
lay without form or beauty, and as it were disfigured under the reproach and
curse of the cross. What some say, that what is true of the members may be
properly and suitably transferred to the head, might be a sufficient answer to
the first question; but I go a step farther, for Christ is not only the first
begotten of every creature, but also the restorer of mankind. What David here
relates belongs properly to the beginning of the creation, when man's nature was
perfect.
fa136 But we know that, by the fall of Adam,
all mankind fell from their primeval state of integrity, for by this the image
of God was almost entirely effaced from us, and we were also divested of those
distinguishing gifts by which we would have been, as it were, elevated to the
condition of demigods; in short, from a state of the highest excellence, we were
reduced to a condition of wretched and shameful destitution. In consequence of
this corruption, the liberality of God, of which David here speaks, ceased, so
far, at least, as that it does not at all appear in the brilliancy and splendor
in which it was manifested when man was in his unfallen state. True, it is not
altogether extinguished; but, alas! how small a portion of it remains amidst the
miserable overthrow and ruins of the fall. But as the heavenly Father hath
bestowed upon his Son an immeasurable fullness of all blessings, that all of us
may draw from this fountain, it follows that whatever God bestows upon us by him
belongs of fight to him in the highest degree; yea, he himself is the living
image of God, according to which we must be renewed, upon which depends our
participation of the invaluable blessings which are here spoken of. If any
person object that David first put the question, What is man? because God has so
abundantly poured forth his favor upon a creature, so miserable, contemptible,
and worthless; but that there is no cause for such admiration of God's favor for
Christ, who is not an ordinary man, but the only begotten Son of God. The answer
is easy, and it is this:What was bestowed upon Christ's human nature was a free
gift; nay, more, the fact that a mortal man, and the son of Adam, is the only
Son of God, and the Lord of glory, and the head of angels, affords a bright
illustration of the mercy of God. At the same time, it is to be observed, that
whatever gifts he has received ought to be considered as proceeding from the
free grace of God, so much the more for this reason, that they are intended
principally to be conferred upon us. His excellence and heavenly dignity,
therefore, are extended to us also, seeing it is for our sake he is enriched
with them.
What the apostle therefore says in
that passage concerning the abasement of Christ for a short time, is not
intended by him as an explanation of this text; but for the purpose of enriching
and illustrating the subject on which he is discoursing, he introduces and
accommodates to it what had been spoken in a different sense. The same apostle
did not hesitate, in
<451006>Romans
10:6, in the same manner to enrich and to employ, in a sense different from
their original one, the words of Moses in
<053012>Deuteronomy
30:12:
"Who shall go up for us
to heaven and bring it to us, that we
may
hear it and do
it?"
etc. The apostle, therefore, in quoting this psalm,
had not so much an eye to what David meant; but making an allusion to these
words, Thou hast made him a
little lower; and again,
Thou hast crowned him with
honor, he applies this diminution to the
death of Christ, and the glory and honor to his
resurrection.
fa137 A similar account may be given of
Paul's declaration in
<490408>Ephesians
4:8, in which he does not so much explain the meaning of the text,
(<196818>Psalm
68:18) as he devoutly applies it, by way of accommodation, to the person of
Christ.
6.
Thou hast set him
over. David now comes to the second
point, which I have just now spoken of, namely, that from the dominion over all
things which God has conferred upon men, it is evident how great is the love
which he has borne towards them, and how much account he has made of them. As he
does not stand in need of any thing himself, he has destined all the riches,
both of heaven and earth, for their use. It is certainly a singular honor, and
one which cannot be sufficiently estimated, that mortal man, as the
representative of God, has dominion over the world, as if it pertained to him by
right, and that to whatever quarter he turns his eyes, he sees nothing wanting
which may contribute to the convenience and happiness of his life. As this
passage is quoted by Paul in his First Epistle to the Corinthians,
(<461527>1
Corinthians 15:27) where he discourses concerning the spiritual kingdom of
Christ, some may object and say, that the meaning he puts upon it is very
different from the sense which I have given. But it is easy to answer this
objection, and the answer which I give to it is this, That generally the whole
order of this world is arranged and established for the purpose of conducing to
the comfort and happiness of men. In what way the passage may properly apply to
Christ alone, I have already declared a little before. The only thing which now
remains to be considered is, how far this declaration extends — that all
things are subjected to men. Now, there is no doubt, that if there is any thing
in heaven or on earth which is opposed to men, the beautiful order which God had
established in the world at the beginning is now thrown into confusion. The
consequence of this is, that mankind, after they were ruined by the fall of
Adam, were not only deprived of so distinguished and honorable an estate, and
dispossessed of their former dominion, but are also held captive under a
degrading and ignominious bondage. Christ, it is true, is the lawful heir of
heaven and earth, by whom the faithful recover what they had lost in Adam; but
he has not as yet actually entered upon the full possession of his empire and
dominion. Whence the apostle concludes, that what is here said by
David
fa138 will not be perfectly accomplished
until death be abolished. Accordingly, the apostle reasons in this manner, "If
all things are subdued to Christ, nothing ought to stand in opposition to his
people. But we see death still exercising his tyranny against them. It follows
then, that there remains the hope of a better state than the present." Now, this
flows from the principle of which I have spoken, that the world was originally
created for this end, that every part of it should tend to the happiness of man
as its great object. In another part of his writings, the apostle argues on the
same principle, when, in order to prove that we must all stand at the last day
before the judgment-seat of Christ, he brings forward the following passage, ,
Unto me every knee shall bow,"
(<451410>Romans
14:10.) In this syllogism, what Logicians call the minor proposition must be
supplied,
fa139 namely, that there are still too many
who proudly and obstinately cast off his yoke, and are averse to bow the knee in
token of their submission to
him.
Psalm
8:7-9
7. All sheep and oxen, and
also the beasts of the fields; 8. The birds of the air, and ,he fish of
the sea, and whatsoever passeth through the paths of the seas. 9. O
Jehovah, our Lord, how wonderful is thy name in all the
earth!
The preceding question, with respect
to the extent of man's dominion over the works of God, seems not yet to be fully
answered. If the prophet here declares, by way of exposition, to what extent God
has put all things in subjection to us, this subjection, it seems, must be
restricted to what contributes to the temporal comfort and convenience of man
while he continues in this world. To this difficulty I answer, That the Psalmist
does not intend in these verses to give a complete enumeration of all the things
which are subjected to man's dominion, and of which he had spoken generally in
the preceding verse, but he brings forward an example of this subjection only in
one part or particular; yea, he has especially chosen that part which affords a
clear and manifest evidence of the truth he intended to establish, even to those
whose minds are uncultivated and slow of apprehension. There is no man of a mind
so dull and stupid but may se if he will be at the trouble to open his eyes,
that it is by the wonderful providence of God that horses and oxen yield their
service to men, — that sheep produce wool to clothe theme — and that
all sorts of animals supply them with food for their nourishment and support,
even from their own flesh. And the more that this dominion is apparent, the more
ought we to be affected with a sense of the goodness and grace of our God as
often as we either eat food, or enjoy any of the other comforts of life. We are,
therefore, not to understand David as meaning that it is a proof that man is
invested with dominion over all the works of God, because he clothes
himself with the wool and the skins of beasts, because he lives upon their
flesh, and because he employs their labor for his own advantage; for this would
be inconclusive reasoning. He only brings forward this as an example, and as a
mirror in which we may behold and contemplate the dominion over the works of his
hands, with which God has honored man. The sum is this:God, in creating man,
gave a demonstration of his infinite grace and more than fatherly love towards
him, which ought justly to strike us with amazement; and although, by the fall
of man, that happy condition has been almost entirely ruined, yet there is still
in him some remains of the liberality which God then displayed towards him,
which should suffice to fill us with admiration. In this mournful and wretched
overthrow, it is true, the legitimate order which God originally established no
longer shines forth, but the faithful whom God gathers to himself, under Christ
their head, enjoy so much of the fragments of the good things which they lost in
Adam, as may furnish them with abundant matter of wonder at the singularly
gracious manner in which God deals with them. David here confines his attention
to God's temporal benefits, but it is our duty to rise higher, and to
contemplate the invaluable treasures of the kingdom of heaven which he has
unfolded in Christ, and all the gifts which belong to the spiritual life, that
by reflecting upon these our hearts may be inflamed with love to God, that we
may be stirred up to the practice of godliness, and that we may not suffer
ourselves to become slothful and remiss in celebrating his
praises.
Psalm
9
David, after having recounted the former victories
which he had gained, and exalted in lofty strains the grace and power of God in
their happy issue, now again, when he sees new enemies and dangers rising up,
implores the protection of the same God by whom he had before been delivered,
and beseeches him to overthrow the pride of his enemies.
To the chief
musician Almuth Laben. A Psalm of David.
This inscription is variously explained. Some
translate it, Upon the death of Laben, and are of opinion that he was one
of the chief captains of David's enemies. Others are inclined to think it was
rather a fictitious name, and that Goliath is the person spoken of in this
psalm. According to others, it was a musical instrument. But to me it seems a
more correct, or, at least, (as I am accustomed to speak when the matter is
obscure,
fa140 a more probable opinion, that it was
the beginning of some well-known song, to the tune of which the psalm was
composed. The disputes of interpreters as to what victory David here celebrates,
in my judgment, are unnecessary, and serve no good purpose. In the first place,
their opinion that it is a song of victory, in which David simply gives thanks
to God, is confuted, and shown to be erroneous from the scope of the psalm. The
greater part is indeed occupied in singing the praises of God, but the whole
ought to be considered as a prayer; in which, for the purpose of elevating his
mind to confidence in God, he calls to his remembrance, according to his usual
manner, by what wonderful displays of the power of God he had formerly been
delivered from the violence and power of his enemies. It is therefore a mistake
to limit to one victory this thanksgiving, in which he intended to comprehend
many deliverances.
Psalm
9:1-3
1. I will praise Jehovah with
my whole heart; I will tell of thy marvellous works. 2. I will rejoice
and exult
fa141 in thee; yea, I will celebrate in songs
thy name, O thou Most High. 3. When my enemies are turned back, they fall
down, and are put to flight
fa142 at thy
presence.
1.
I will praise the
Lord. David begins the psalm in this
way, to induce God to succor him in the calamities with which he was now
afflicted. As God continues his favor towards his own people without
intermission, all the good he has hitherto done to us should serve to inspire us
with confidence and hope, that he will be gracious and merciful to us in the
time to come.
fa143 There is, indeed, in these words a
profession of gratitude for the favors which he has received from
God;
fa144 but, in remembering his past mercies,
he encourages himself to expect succor and aid in future emergencies; and by
this means he opens the gate of prayer. The whole heart is taken for an
upright or sincere heart, which is opposed to a double heart. Thus he
distinguishes himself not only from gross hypocrites, who praise God only with
their lips outwardly, without having their hearts in any way affected, but also
acknowledges that whatever he had hitherto done which was commendable, proceeded
entirely from the pure grace of God. Even irreligious men, I admit, when they
have obtained some memorable victory, are ashamed to defraud God of the praise
which is due to him; but we see that as soon as they have uttered a single
expression in acknowledgement of the assistance God has afforded them, they
immediately begin to boast loudly, and to sing triumphs in honor of their own
valor, as if they were under no obligations whatever to God. In short, it is a
piece of pure mockery when they profess that their exploits have been done by
the help of God; for, after having made oblation to Him, they sacrifice to their
own counsels, skill, courage, and resources. Observe how the prophet Habakkuk,
under the person of one presumptuous king, wisely reproves the ambition which is
common to all,
(<350116>Habakkuk
1:16.) Yea, we see that the famous generals of antiquity, who, upon returning
victorious from some battle, desired public and solemn
thanksgivings
fa145 to be decreed in their name to the
gods, thought of nothing less than of doing honor to their false deities; but
only abused their names under a false pretense, in order thereby to obtain an
opportunity of indulging in vain boasting, that their own superior prowess might
be acknowledged.
fa146 David, therefore, with good reason,
affirms that he is unlike the children of this world, whose hypocrisy or fraud
is discovered by the wicked and dishonest distribution which they make between
God and themselves,
fa147 arrogating to themselves the greater
part of the praise which they pretended to ascribe to God. He praised God with
his whole heart, which they did not; for certainly it is not praising God with
the whole heart when a mortal man dares to appropriate the smallest portion of
the glory which God claims for himself. God cannot bear with seeing his glory
appropriated by the creature in even the smallest degree, so intolerable to him
is the sacrilegious arrogance of those who by praising themselves, obscure his
glory as far as they can.
I
will tell of all thy marvellous works.
Here David confirms what I have already said, that he does not treat in this
psalm of one victory or one deliverance only; for he proposes to himself in
general all the miracles which God had wrought in his behalf, as subjects of
meditation. He applies the term marvellous not to all the benefits which
he had received from God, but to those more signal and memorable deliverances in
which was exhibited a bright and striking manifestation of the divine power. God
would have us to acknowledge him as the author of all our blessings; but on some
of his gifts he has engraven more evident marks in order the more effectually to
awaken our senses, which are otherwise as if asleep or dead. David's language,
therefore, is an acknowledgement that he was preserved of God, not by ordinary
means, but by the special power of God, which was conspicuously displayed in
this matter; inasmuch as he had stretched forth his hand in a miraculous manner,
and above the common and usual
way.
2.
I will rejoice and exult in thee.
Observe how the faithful praise God sincerely and without hypocrisy, when
they do not rest on themselves for happiness, and are not intoxicated with
foolish and carnal presumption, but rejoice in God alone; which is nothing else
than to seek the matter of their joy from the favor of God, and from no other
source, since in it perfect happiness consists.
I will rejoice in
thee. We ought to consider how great is
the difference and opposition between the character of the joy which men
endeavor to find in themselves, and the character of the joy which they seek in
God. David, the more forcibly to express how he renounces every thing which may
keep hold of or occupy him with vain delight, adds the word exult, by
which he means that he finds in God a full and an overflowing abundance of joy,
so that he is not under the necessity of seeking even the smallest drop in any
other quarter. Moreover, it is of importance to remember what I have previously
observed, that David sets before himself the testimonies of the divine goodness
which he had formerly experienced, in order to encourage himself with the more
alacrity to lay open his heart
fa148 to God, and to present his prayers
before him. He who begins his prayer by affirming that God is the great source
and object of his joy, fortifies himself before-hand with the strongest
confidence, in presenting his supplications to the hearer of
prayer.
3.
While my enemies are turned
back. In these words he assigns the
reason why he undertakes to sing the praises of God, namely, because he
acknowledges that his frequent victories had been achieved, not by his own
power, nor by the power of his soldiers, but by the free favor of God. In the
first part of the verse he narrates historically how his enemies were
discomfited or put to flight; and then he adds, what faith alone could enable
him to say, that this did not take place by the power of man or by chance, but
because God fought for him,
fa149 and stood against them in the battle.
He says, they
fall,
fa150
and are put to flight At
Thy Presence. David therefore acted wisely, when,
upon seeing his enemies turn their backs, he lifted up the eyes of his mind to
God, in order to perceive that victory flowed to him from no other source than
from the secret and incomprehensible aid of God. And, doubtless, it is He only
who guides the simple by the spirit of wisdom, while he inflicts madness on the
crafty, and strikes them with amazement, — who inspires with courage the
faint and timid, while he causes the boldest to tremble with fear, — who
restores to the feeble their strength, while he reduces the strong to weakness,
— who upholds the fainthearted by his power, while he makes the sword to
fall from the hands of the valiant; - and, finally, who brings the battle to a
prosperous or disastrous issue, just as he pleases. When, therefore, we see our
enemies overthrown, we must beware of limiting our view to what is visible to
the eye of sense, like ungodly men, who, while they see with their bodily eyes,
are yet blind; but let us instantly call to our remembrance this truth, that
when our enemies turn back, they are put to flight by the presence of the
Lord.
fa151 The verbs, fall and put to
flight, in the Hebrew, are in the future tense, but I have translated them
in the present, because David anew presents to his own view the goodness of God
which had formerly been manifested towards
him.
Psalm
9:4-5
4. For thou hast maintained my
right and my cause; thou sittest upon the throne a righteous
judge.
fa152 5. Thou hast rebuked the
nations; thou hast destroyed the wicked; thou hast blotted out their name for
ever and ever.
The Psalmist proceeds a step
farther in the 4th verse, declaring that God stretched forth his hand to give
him succor, because he was unrighteously afflicted by his enemies. And surely if
we desire to be favored with the assistance of God, we ought to see to it that
we fight under his standard. David, therefore, calls him
a judge of
righteousness, or, which is the
same thing, a righteous judge; as if he had said, God has acted towards
me according to his ordinary manner and constant principle of acting, for it is
his usual way to undertake the defense of good causes. I am more inclined to
render the words, Thou sittest a
just judge, than to render them,
O just judge, thou
sittest,
fa153 because the form of expression,
according to the first reading, is more emphatic. The import of it is this:God
at length has assumed the character of judge, and is gone up into his
judgment-seat to execute the office of judge. On this account he glories in
having law and right on his side, and declares that God was the maintainer of
his right and cause. What follows in the next verse,
Thou hast
destroyed [or discomfited,]
the wicked, belongs also to the same subject. When he beholds his enemies
overthrown, he does not rejoice in their destruction, considered simply in
itself; but in condemning them on account of their unrighteousness, he says that
they have received the punishment which they deserved. Under the name of
nations he means, that it was not a small number of ungodly persons who
were destroyed, but great armies, yea, even all who had risen up against him
from different quarters. And the goodness of God shines forth the brighter in
this, that, on account of the favor which he bare to one of his servants, he
spared not even whole nations. When he says,
Thou hast blotted out their name
for ever, it may be understood as
meaning, that they were destroyed without any hope of ever being able to rise
again, and devoted to everlasting shame. We could not otherwise discern how God
buries the name of the ungodly with themselves, did we not hear him declare that
the memory of the righteous shall be for ever blessed,
(<201007>Proverbs
10:7.)
Psalm
9:6-8
6. O thou enemy, desolations
are come to an end for ever; and thou hast destroyed [or
demolished
fa154] cities; their memory has perished with
them. 7. And Jehovah sitteth for ever, he hath prepared his throne for
judgment. 8. And he shall judge the world in righteousness, he shall
judge the nations in
uprightness.
6.
O thou enemy, desolations are
come to an end for ever. This sixth
verse is explained in different ways. Some read it interrogatively, viewing the
letter
h,
as a mark of interrogation, as if David, addressing his discourse to his
enemies, asked whether they had completed their work of devastation, even as
they had resolved to destroy every thing; for the verb
µmt,
tamam, signifies sometimes to complete, and sometimes to put an
end to any thing. And if we here take it in this sense, David, in the
language of sarcasm or irony, rebukes the foolish confidence of his enemies.
Others, reading the verse without any interrogation, make the irony still more
evident, and think that David describes, in these three verses, a twofold state
of matters; that, in the first place, (verse 6,) he introduces his enemies
persecuting him with savage violence, and persevering with determined obstinacy
in their cruelty, so that it seemed to be their fixed purpose never to desist
until the kingdom of David should be utterly destroyed; and that, in the second
place, (verses 7, 8) he represents God as seated on his judgment-seat, directly
over against them, to repress their outrageous attempts. If this sense is
admitted, the copulative, in the beginning of the seventh verse, which we have
translated and, must be rendered by the adversative particle but,
in this way:Thou, O enemy, didst seek after nothing except slaughter and the
destruction of cities; but, at length, God has shown that he sits in heaven on
his throne as judge, to put into proper order the things which are in confusion
on the earth. According to others, David gives thanks to God, because, when the
ungodly were fully determined to spread universal ruin around them, he put an
end to their devastations. Others understand the words in a more restricted
sense, as meaning that the desolations of the ungodly were completed, because
God, in his just judgment, had made to fall upon their own heads the calamities
and ruin which they had devised against David. According to others, David, in
the 6th verse, complains that God had, for a long time, silently suffered the
miserable devastation of his people, so that the ungodly, being left unchecked,
wasted and destroyed all things according to their pleasure; and in the seventh
verse, they think he subjoins for his consolation that God, notwithstanding,
presides over human affairs. I have no objection to the view, that there is
first described ironically how dreadful the power of the enemy was, when they
put forth their highest efforts; and next, that there is set in opposition to it
the judgment of God, which suddenly brought their proceedings to an abrupt
termination, contrary to their expectation. They anticipated no such issue; for
we know that the ungodly, although they may not presume openly to deprive God of
his authority and dominion, yet run headlong to every excess of wickedness, not
less boldly than if he were bound with
fetters.
fa155 We have taken notice of an almost
similar manner of speaking in a preceding psalm,
(<190713>Psalm
7:13)
This contrast between the power of the
enemies of God and his people, and the work of God in breaking up their
proceedings, very well illustrates the wonderful character of the succor which
he granted to his people. The ungodly had set to themselves no limit in the work
of doing mischief, save in the utter destruction of all things, and at the
commencement complete destruction seemed to be at hand; but when things were in
this state of confusion, God seasonably made his appearance for the help of his
people.
fa156 As often, therefore, as nothing but
destruction presents itself to our view, to whatever side we may
turn,
fa157 let us remember to lift up our eyes to
the heavenly throne, whence God beholds all that is done here below. In the
world our affairs may have been brought to such an extremity, that there is no
longer hope in regard to them; but the shield with which we ought to repel all
the temptations by which we are assailed is this, that God, nevertheless, sits
Judge in heaven. Yea, when he seems to take no notice of us, and does not
immediately remedy the evils which we suffer, it becomes us to realize by faith
his secret providence. The Psalmist says, in the first place, God sitteth for
ever, by which he means, that however high the violence of men may be
carried, and although their fury may burst forth without measure, they can never
drag God from his seat. He farther means by this expression, that it is
impossible for God to abdicate the office and authority of judge; a truth which
he expresses more clearly in the second clause of the verse,
He hath prepared his throne for
judgment, in which he declares that God
reigns not only for the purpose of making his majesty and glory surpassingly
great, but also for the purpose of governing the world in
righteousness.
8.
And he shall judge the world
in righteousness. As David has just now
testified, that the power of God is not inactive, so that he dwells in heaven
only indulging himself in pleasures; but that it is a constantly operating power
which he exercises in preserving his authority, and governing the world in
righteousness and equity; so in this verse he adds the use of this doctrine,
which is this, that the power of God is not shut up in heaven, but manifests
itself in succouring men. The true doctrine on this subject, is not, like
Epicurus, to imagine that God is a being wholly devoted to ease and pleasures,
and who, satisfied with himself alone, has no care whatever about mankind, but
to place him on the throne of power and equity, so that we may be fully
persuaded, that although he does not immediately succor those who are
unrighteously oppressed, yet there is not a moment in which he ceases to take a
deep interest in them. And when he seems for a time to take no notice of things,
the conclusion to which we should come most assuredly is, not that he deserts
his office, but that he wishes hereby to exercise the patience of his people,
and that, therefore, we should wait the issue in patience, and with tranquillity
of mind. The demonstrative pronoun He, in my opinion, is of great weight.
The import of it is, as if David had said, No one can deprive God of his office
as Judge of the world, nor prevent him from extending his judgments to all
nations. Whence it follows, that he will much more be the judge of his own
people. David declares these judgments to be righteous, in order to
induce us, when we are unrighteously and cruelly molested, to ask assistance
from God, in the confident expectation of obtaining it; for since he judges the
nations in righteousness, he will not suffer injustice and oppression always to
reign with impunity in the world, nor deny his aid to the
innocent.
Psalm
9:9-12
9. And Jehovah will be a
refuge to the poor, and a protection in seasonable times in trouble. 10.
And they that know thy name will put their trust in thee:for thou forsakest not
them that seek thee, O Jehovah. 11. Sing unto Jehovah, who dwelleth in
Sion, and proclaim his doings among the nations. 12. For in requiring
blood, he hath remembered it:he hath not forgotten the cry of the
afflicted.
9.
And Jehovah will be a refuge
for the poor. David here furnishes a
remedy for the temptation which greatly afflicts the weak, when they see
themselves, and those who are like them, abandoned to the will of the ungodly,
while God keeps silence.
fa158 He puts us in mind that God delays his
aid, and to outward appearance forsakes his faithful ones, in order at length to
succor them at a more convenient season, according to the greatness of their
necessity and affliction. From this it follows, that he by no means ceases from
the exercise of his office, although he suffer the good and the innocent to be
reduced to extreme poverty, and although he exercise them with weeping and
lamentations; for by doing this he lights up a lamp to enable them to see his
judgments the more clearly. Accordingly, David expressly declares, that God
interposes his protection seasonably in the afflictions of his people.
The Lord will be a protection to
the poor in seasonable times in trouble.
From this we are taught the duty of giving his providence time to make
itself at length manifest in the season of need. And if protection by the power
of God, and the experience of his fatherly favor, is the greatest blessing which
we can receive, let us not feel so uneasy at being accounted poor and miserable
before the world, but let this consolatory consideration assuage our grief, that
God is not far from us, seeing our afflictions call upon him to come to our aid.
Let us also observe, that God is said to be at hand in seasonable times
when he succours the faithful during their
affliction.
fa159 The Hebrew word
hrxb,
batsarah, which occurs in the end of the 9th verse, is understood by some
as if it were the simple word which signifies defense; but here they
render it metaphorically distress, denoting those trying circumstances in
which a person is so closely shut up, and reduced to such extremity, that he can
find no escape. I, however, think there is more probability in the opinion of
those who take
b,
the first letter of
hrxb,
batsarah, as a servile letter meaning in, which is its ordinary
signification.
fa160 What is here said, then, is, that God
assists his own people in the time of need, namely, in affliction, or when they
are weighed down with it, for then assistance is most necessary and most
useful.
In the tenth verse, the Psalmist teaches
us, that when the Lord delivers the righteous, the fruit which results from it
is, that they themselves, and all the rest of the righteous, acquire increasing
confidence in his grace; for, unless we are fully persuaded that God exercises a
care about men and human affairs, we must necessarily be troubled with constant
disquietude. But as most men shut their eyes that they may not see the judgments
of God, David restricts this advantage to the faithful alone, and, certainly,
where there is no godliness, there is no sense of the works of God. It is also
to be observed, that he attributes to the faithful the knowledge of God;
because from this religion proceeds, whereas it is extinguished through the
ignorance and stupidity of men. Many take the name of God simply for God
himself; but, as I have observed in my remarks on a preceding psalm, I think
something more is expressed by this term. As God's essence is hidden and
incomprehensible, his name just means his character, so far as he has been
pleased to make it known to us. David next explains the ground of this trust in
God to be, that he does not
forsake those who seek him. God is
sought in two ways, either by invocation and prayers, or by studying to live a
holy and an upright life; and, indeed, the one is always inseparably joined with
the other. But as the Psalmist is here treating of the protection of God, on
which the safety of the godly depends, to seek God, as I understand it,
is to betake ourselves to him for help and relief in danger and
distress.
11.
Sing unto
Jehovah. David, not contented with
giving thanks individually, and on his own account, exhorts the faithful to
unite with him, praising God, and to do this not only because it is their duty
to stir up one another to this religious exercise, but because the deliverances
of which he treats were worthy of being publicly and solemnly celebrated; and
this is expressed more clearly in the second clause, where he commands them to
be published among the nations. The meaning is, that they are not published or
celebrated as they deserve, unless the whole world is filled with the renown of
them. To proclaim God's doings among the nations was indeed, as it were, to sing
to the deaf; but by this manner of speaking, David intended to show that the
territory of Judea was too narrow to contain the infinite greatness of Jehovah's
praises. He gives God this title,
He who dwelleth in
Sion, to distinguish him from all the
false gods of the Gentiles. There is in the phrase a tacit comparison between
the God who made his covenant with Abraham and Israel, and all the gods who, in
every other part of the world except Judea, were worshipped according to the
blinded and depraved fancies of men. It is not enough for persons to honor and
reverence some deity indiscriminately or at random; they must distinctly yield
to the only living and true God the worship which belongs to him, and which he
commands. Moreover, as God had particularly chosen Sion as the place where his
name might be called upon, David very properly assigns it to him as his peculiar
dwelling-place, not that it is lawful to attempt to shut up, in any particular
place, Him whom "the heaven of heavens cannot contain,"
(<110801>1
Kings 8:1.) but because, as we shall afterwards see,
(<19D212>Psalm
132:12) he had promised to make it his rest for ever. David did not, according
to his own fancy, assign God a dwelling-place there; but he understood, by a
revelation from heaven, that such was the pleasure of God himself, as Moses had
often predicted,
(<051201>Deuteronomy
12:1.) This goes far to prove what I have said before, that this psalm was not
composed upon the occasion of David's victory over Goliath; for it was only
towards the close of David's reign that the ark of the covenant was removed to
Sion according to the commandment of God. The conjecture of some that David
spake by the Spirit of prophecy of the residence of the ark on Sion, as a future
event, appears to me to be unnatural and forced. Farther, we see that the holy
fathers, when they resorted to Sion to offer sacrifices to God, did not act
merely according to the suggestion of their own minds; but what they did
proceeded from faith in the word of God, and was done in obedience to his
command; and they were, therefore, approved of by him for their religious
service. Whence it follows, that there is no ground whatever to make use of
their example as an argument or excuse for the religious observances which
superstitious men have, by their own fancy, invented for themselves. Besides, it
was not enough for the faithful, in those days, to depend upon the word of God,
and to engage in those ceremonial services which he required, unless, aided by
external symbols, they elevated their minds above these, and yielded to God
spiritual worship. God, indeed, gave real tokens of his presence in that visible
sanctuary, but not for the purpose of binding the senses and thoughts of his
people to earthly elements; he wished rather that these external symbols should
serve as ladders, by which the faithful might ascend even to heaven. The design
of God from the commencement in the appointment of the sacraments, and all the
outward exercises of religion, was to consult the infirmity and weak capacity of
his people. Accordingly, even at the present day, the true and proper use of
them is, to assist us in seeking God spiritually in his heavenly glory, and not
to occupy our minds with the things of this world, or keep them fixed in the
vanities of the flesh, a subject which we shall afterwards have a more suitable
opportunity of discussing more fully. And as the Lord, in ancient times, when he
called himself, He who dwelleth
in Sion, intended to give his people
full and solid ground of trust, tranquillity, and joy; so even now, after the
law has come out of Sion, and the covenant of grace has flowed to us from that
fountain, let us know and be fully persuaded, that wherever the faithful, who
worship him purely and in due form, according to the appointment of his word,
are assembled together to engage in the solemn acts of religious worship, he is
graciously present, and presides in the midst of
them.
12.
For in requiring
blood. In the original, it is bloods,
in the plural number, and, therefore, the relative which follows immediately
after, And remembereth THEM, may very properly be referred to that word
in this way, He requireth bloods, and remembereth them. But as it is
sufficiently common in Hebrew to invert the order of the antecedent and the
relative, and to put them before the word to which it
refers,
fa161 some explain it of the poor,
thus:In requiring blood, he hath remembered them, namely, the poor, of whom
he speaks a little after. As to the sum and substance of the matter, it is of
small importance in which of these ways we explain the relative; but the former
is, in my view, the more natural explanation. There is here a repetition of what
the Psalmist had said a little before, that we ought especially to consider
God's power, as it is manifested in the mercy which he exercises towards his
servants, who are unrighteously persecuted by wicked men. From the numerous
works of God, he selects one which he commends as especially worthy of being
remembered, namely, his work in delivering the poor from death. God sometimes
leaves them in his holy providence to be persecuted by men; but at length he
takes vengeance for the wrongs inflicted upon them. The words which David uses
denote a continued act; but I have no doubt that he intends from those examples,
which he has related in the preceding part of the psalm, to lead men to
acknowledge that God requireth innocent blood, and remembers the cry of his
people.
He again insists on what I adverted to
before, that God does not always put a stop to injuries so speedily as we would
wish, nor break the attempts of the wicked at the first, but rather withholds
and delays his assistance, so that it may seem that we cry to him in vain, a
truth which it is of importance for us to understand; for if we measure the help
of God according to our senses, our courage will ever and anon fail us, and in
the end our hope will be entirely extinguished, and will give place to
despondency and despair. We would fondly wish him, as I have said, to stretch
forth his hand to a distance, and drive back the troubles which he sees to be
prepared for us; yet he seems to take no notice, and does not prevent the blood
of the innocent from being shed. Let this consolatory consideration, however,
sustain us, that he will at length actually show how precious our blood was in
his sight. If it is objected, that God's assistance comes too late, after we
have endured all calamities, I answer, God delays to interfere no longer than he
knows it to be of advantage for us to be humbled under the cross, and if he
chooses rather to take vengeance after we have suffered outrage, than to aid us
previous to the infliction of evil, it is not because he is not always willing
and ready to succor us; but because he knows it is not always a proper time for
manifesting his grace. By the way, it is a striking evidence, not only of his
fatherly love towards us, but of the blessed immortality which is the portion of
all the children of God, that he has a care about them even after they are dead.
Were he always by his grace to prevent affliction from befalling us, who is
there amongst us who would not be wholly attached to the present life? When,
however, he avenges our death, from this it appears that, though dead, we still
remain alive in his presence. For he does not, after the manner of men, hold in
estimation the memory of those whom he could not preserve
alive,
fa162 but he actually shows that he cherishes
in his bosom, and gives protection to those who seem to be no more, viewing them
according to the flesh. And this is the reason why David says that he
remembereth blood when he requireth it; for although he may not presently
deliver his servants from the swords of the wicked, yet he suffers not their
murder to pass unpunished. To the same purpose is the last clause
He forgetteth not the cry of the
afflicted. God may not show, by granting
instant deliverance or relief, that he lends an immediate ear to the complaints
of his servants; but at length he proves unanswerably that he has regarded them.
Express mention is made of crying, to encourage all who desire to
experience God as their deliverer and protector, to direct their wishes,
groanings, and prayers to him.
Psalm
9:13-14
13. Have mercy upon me, O
Jehovah, see my affliction which I suffer from those who persecute me, thou that
liftest me up from the gates of death. 14. That I may recount all thy
praises in the gates of the daughter of Sion; and that I may rejoice in thy
salvation.
13.
Have mercy upon me, O
Jehovah. I think that this is the second
part of the psalm. Others, however, are of a different opinion, and consider
that David, according to his frequent practice, while giving thanks to God for
the deliverance wrought for him, mingles with his thanksgiving an account of
what had been the matter of his prayer in the extremity of his distress; and
examples of the same kind, I confess, are every where to be met with in the
Psalms. But when I consider all the circumstances more attentively, I am
constrained to incline to the other opinion, namely, that in the commencement he
celebrated the favors conferred upon him in order to make way for prayer; and
the psalm is at last concluded with a prayer. He does not, therefore, in passing
here insert the prayers which he had formerly made in the midst of his dangers
and anxieties; but he purposely implores help from God at the present
time,
fa163 and asks that He, whom he had
often experienced as his deliverer, would continue the exercise of the same
grace towards him. His enemies, perhaps, whom he had already vanquished on
various occasions, having gathered new courage, and raised new forces, made a
desperate effort, as we often see those who are driven to despair rush upon
their enemies just with the greater impetuosity and rage. It is indeed certain,
that David, when he offered this prayer, was seized with the greatest fear; for
he would not, on account of a small matter, have called upon God to witness his
affliction in the way he here does. It ought to be observed, that while he
humbly betakes himself to the mercy of God, he bears, with a patient and
submissive mind, the cross which was laid upon
him.
fa164 But we ought chiefly to mark the title
which he gives to God, calling him
his lifter up from the gates of
death; for we could not find a more
appropriate expression than to lift up for the Hebrew word
µmwrm,
meromem. By this the Psalmist, in the first place, strengthens his faith
from his past experience, inasmuch as he had often been delivered from the
greatest dangers. And, in the second place, he assures himself of deliverance,
even in the very jaws of death; because God is accustomed not only to succor his
servants, and to deliver them from their calamities by ordinary means, but also
to bring them from the grave, even after all hope of life is cut off; for the
gates of death is a metaphorical expression, denoting the utmost perils
which threaten destruction, or rather, which lay the grave open before us. In
order, therefore, that neither the weight of the calamities which we presently
endure, nor the fear of those which we see impending over us, may
overwhelm our faith, or interrupt our prayers, let us call to our remembrance
that the office of lifting up his people from the gates of death is not ascribed
to God in vain.
14.
That I may
recount. David's meaning simply is, that
he will celebrate the praises of God in all assemblies, and, wherever there is
the greatest concourse of people, (for at that time it was the custom to hold
assemblies at the gates of cities;) but, at the same time, there seems to be an
allusion to the gates of death, of which he has just spoken, as if he had said,
After I am delivered from the grave, I will do my endeavor to bear testimony, in
the most public manner, to the goodness of God, manifested in my deliverance.
As, however, it is not sufficient to utter the praises of God with our tongues,
if they do not proceed from the heart, the Psalmist, in the last clause of the
verse, expresses the inward joy with which he would engage in this exercise,
And that I may rejoice in thy
salvation; as if he had said, I desire
to live in this world for no other purpose than to rejoice in having been
preserved by the grace of God. Under the name of daughter, as is well known, the
Jews meant a people or city, but he here names the city from its principal part,
namely, Sion.
Psalm
9:15-16
15. The heathen are sunk
into the pit which they made; in the net which they have hid are their own feet
taken. 16. Jehovah is known by executing judgment. The wicked is snared
in the work of his own hands. Higgaion.
Selah.
15.
The heathen are sunk.
David being now raised up to holy confidence,
triumphs over his enemies. In the first place, he says metaphorically, that they
were taken in their own craftiness and snares. He next expresses the same thing
without figure, that they were snared in their own wickedness. And he affirms
that this happened not by chance, but was the work of God, and a striking proof
of his judgment. When he compares his enemies to hunters or fowlers, it is not
without having just ground for doing so. The wicked, it is true, often commit
violence and outrage, yet in deceits and cunning artifices they always imitate
their father Satan, who is the father of lies, and, therefore, whatever
ingenuity they have, they employ it in practising wickedness and in devising
mischief. As often, therefore, as wicked men cunningly plot our destruction, let
us remember that it is no new thing for them to lay nets and snares for the
children of God. At the same time, let us comfort ourselves from the reflection,
that whatever they may attempt against us, the issue is not in their power, and
that God will be against them, not only to frustrate their designs, but also to
surprise them in the wicked devices which they frame, and to make all their
resources of mischief to fall upon their own
heads.
16.
The Lord is known in
executing judgment. The reading of the
words literally is this, The known Lord has done judgment. This manner of
speech is abrupt, and its very brevity renders it obscure. It is
therefore explained in two ways. Some explain it thus:- God begins then to be
known when he punishes the wicked. But the other sense suits the passage better,
namely, that it is a thing obvious and manifest to all that God executes the
office of judge, as often as he ensnares the wicked in their own maliciousness.
In short, whenever God turns back upon themselves whatever schemes of mischief
they devise, David declares that in this case the divine judgment is so evident,
that what happens can be ascribed neither to nature nor to fortune. If God,
therefore, in this way manifestly display, at any time, the power of his hand,
let us learn to open our eyes, that from the judgments which he executes upon
the enemies of his Church our faith may be confirmed more and more. As to the
word Higgaion, which properly signifies meditation, I cannot at
present assign a better reason why it has been inserted than this, that David
intended to fix the minds of the godly in meditation upon the judgments of God.
The word Selah was intended to answer the same purpose, and as I have
said before, regulated the singing in such a manner as to make the music
correspond to the words and the
sentiment.
Psalm
9:17-18
17. The wicked shall be
turned into hell, and all the nations that forget God. 18. For the poor
shall not always be forgotten; the hope of the humble shall not perish for
ever.
17.
The wicked shall be turned into
hell. Many translate the verb in the
optative mood, Let the wicked be turned into hell, as if it were an
imprecation. But, in my judgment, David here rather confirms himself and all the
godly with respect to the future, declaring that whatever the wicked may
attempt, it will have a termination disastrous to themselves. By the word
turn he means that the issue will be far otherwise than what they
imagine; for there is implied in it a tacit contrast between the height of their
presumption and the depth of their fall. As they have no fear of God, they exalt
themselves above the clouds; and then, as if they had "made a covenant with
death," according to the language of Isaiah,
(<232815>Isaiah
28:15) they become so much the more arrogant and presumptuous. But when we see
them raging without apprehension of danger, the prophet warns us that their
madness carries them headlong, so that, at length, they fall into the grave,
from which they thought themselves to be a great way off. Here, then, is
described to us the sudden and unexpected change, by which God, when he pleases,
restores to order things which were in confusion. When, therefore, we see the
wicked flying aloft devoid of all fear, let us, by the eyes of faith, behold the
grave which is prepared for them; and rest assured that the hand of God,
although it is unseen, is very near, which can turn them back in the midst of
their course in which they aim at reaching heaven, and make them tumble into
hell in a moment. The meaning of the Hebrew word
hlwaç,
sheolah, is doubtful, but I have not hesitated to translate it
hell.
fa165 I do not find fault with those who
translate it the grave, but it is certain that the prophet means
something more than common death, otherwise he would here say nothing else with
respect to the wicked than what would also happen to all the faithful in common
with them. Though then, he does not speak in express terms of eternal
destruction, but only says, They shall be turned into the grave, yet,
under the metaphor of the grave, he intimates that all the ungodly shall
perish, and that the presumption with which, by every unlawful means, they raise
themselves on high to trample righteousness under foot, and to oppress the
innocent, shall bring upon them ruin and perdition. The faithful, also, it is
true, descend into the grave, but not with such fearful violence as plunges them
into it without hope of coming out again. So far is this from being the case,
that even when shut up in the grave, they dwell already in heaven by
hope.
18.
For the poor shall not always
be forgotten. The assertion that God
will not forsake the poor and afflicted for ever, is a confirmation of the
preceding sentence. By it he intimates, that they may indeed seem to be forsaken
for a time. Let us, therefore, remember that God has promised his assistance to
us, not in the way of preventing our afflictions, but of at length succouring us
after we have been long subdued under the cross. David speaks expressly of
hope or expectation, thereby to encourage us to prayer. The reason
why God seems to take no notice of our afflictions is, because he would have us
to awaken him by means of our prayers; for when he hears our requests, (as if he
began but then to be mindful of us,) he stretches forth his powerful hand to
help us. David again repeats that this is not done immediately, in order that we
may persevere in hoping well, even although our expectations may not be
instantly gratified.
Psalm
9:19-20
19. Arise, O Jehovah; let
not man
fa166 prevail: let the nations be judged in
thy sight. 20. Put them in fear, O Jehovah; that the nations may know
that they are men.
19.
Arise, O
Jehovah. When David beseeches God to
arise, the expression does not strictly apply to God, but it refers to external
appearance and to our senses; for we do not perceive God to be the deliverer of
his people except when he appears before our eyes, as it were sitting upon the
judgment-seat. There is added a consideration or reason to induce God to avenge
the injuries done to his people, namely,
that man may not
prevail; for when God arises, all the
fierceness
fa167 of the ungodly must immediately fall
down and give way. Whence is it that the wicked become so audaciously insolent,
or have so great power to work mischief, if it is not because God is still, and
gives them loose reins? But, as soon as he shows some token of his judgment, he
immediately puts a stop to their proud
tumults,
fa168 and breaks their strength and power
with his nod alone.
fa169 We are taught, by this manner of
praying, that however insolently and proudly our enemies may boast of what they
will do, yet they are in the hand of God, and can do no more than what he
permits them; and farther, that God can doubtless, whenever he pleases, render
all their endeavors vain and ineffectual. The Psalmist, therefore, in speaking
of them, calls them man. The word in the original is
çwna,
enosh, which is derived from a root signifying misery or wretchedness,
and, accordingly, it is the same thing as if he had called them mortal or frail
man. Farther, the Psalmist beseeches God
to judge the heathen before his
face. God is said to do this when he
compels them, by one means or another, to appear before his judgment-seat. We
know that unbelievers, until they are dragged by force into the presence of God,
turn their backs upon him as much as they can, in order to exclude from their
minds all thought of him as their
Judge.
20.
Put them in fear, O
Jehovah. The Septuagint translates
hrwm,
morah,
[nomoqe>thv,]
a lawgiver, deriving it from
hry,
yarah, which sometimes signifies to teach.
fa170
But the scope of the passage requires that we should understand it of fear
or dread; and this is the opinion of all sound expositors. Now, it is to be
considered of what kind of fear David speaks. God commonly subdues even his
chosen ones to obedience by means of fear. But as he moderates his rigour
towards them, and, at the same time, softens their stony hearts, so that they
willingly and quietly submit themselves to him, he cannot be properly said to
compel them by fear. With respect to the reprobate, he takes a different way of
dealing. As their obduracy is inflexible, so that it is easier to break than to
bend them, he subdues their desperate obstinacy by force; not, indeed, that they
are reformed, but, whether they will or no, an acknowledgement of their own
weakness is extorted from them. They may gnash their teeth and boil with rage,
and even exceed in cruelty wild beasts, but when the dread of God seizes upon
them, they are thrown down with their own violence, and fall with their own
weight. Some explain these words as a prayer that God would bring the nations
under the yoke of David, and make them tributaries to his government; but this
is a cold and forced explanation. The word fear comprehends in general
all the plagues of God, by which is repulsed, as by the heavy blows of a
hammer,
fa171 the rebellion of those who would never
obey him except by compulsion.
There follows
next the point to which the nations must be brought, namely, to acknowledge
themselves to be mortal men. This, at first sight, seems to be a matter of small
importance; but the doctrine which it contains is far from being trifling. What
is man, that he dares of himself to move a finger? And yet all the ungodly run
to excess as boldly and presumptuously as if there were nothing to hinder them
from doing whatever they please. It is certainly through a distempered
imagination that they claim to themselves what is peculiar to God; and, in
short, they would never run to so great excess if they were not ignorant of
their own condition. David, when he beseeches God to strike the nations with
terror, that they may know that they are
men,
fa172 does not mean that the ungodly will
profit so much under the rods and chastisements of God as to humble themselves
truly and from the heart; but the knowledge of which he speaks just means an
experience of their own weakness. His language is as if he had said, Lord, since
it is their ignorance of themselves which hurries them into their rage against
me, make them actually to experience that their strength is not equal to their
infatuated presumption, and after they are disappointed of their vain hopes, let
them lie confounded and abased with shame. It may often happen that those who
are convinced of their own weakness do not yet reform; but much is gained when
their ungodly presumption is exposed to mockery and scorn before the world, that
it may appear how ridiculous was the confidence which they presumed to place in
their own strength. With respect to the chosen of God, they ought to profit
under his chastisements after another manner. It becomes them to be humbled
under a sense of their own weakness, and willingly to divest themselves of all
vain confidence and presumption. And this will be the case if they remember that
they are but men. Augustine has well and wisely said, that the whole humility of
man consists in the knowledge of himself. Moreover, since pride is natural to
all, God requires to strike terror into all men indiscriminately, that, on the
one hand, his own people may learn to be humble, and that, on the other hand,
the wicked, although they cease not to elevate themselves above the condition of
man, may be put back with shame and confusion.
PSALM
10.
David here complains, in his own name, and in the
name of all the godly, that fraud, extortion, cruelty, violence, and all kind of
injustice, prevailed every where in the world; and the cause which he assigns
for this is, that ungodly and wicked men, being intoxicated with their
prosperity, have shaken off all fear of God, and think they may do whatever they
please with impunity. Accordingly, he earnestly beseeches God to help him, and
to remedy his desperate calamities. In the close, he comforts himself and the
rest of the faithful with the hope of obtaining deliverance in due time. This
description represents, as in a mirror, a lively image of a widely corrupt and
disorganised state of society. When, therefore, we see iniquity breaking out
like a flood, that the strangeness of such a temptation may not shake the faith
of the children of God and cause them to fall into despair, let them learn to
look into this mirror. It tends greatly to lighten grief, to consider that
nothing befalls us at this day which the Church of God has not experienced in
the days of old; yea, rather that we are just called to engage in the same
conflicts with which David and the other holy patriarchs were exercised.
Farther, the faithful are admonished to have recourse to God in such a confused
state of things; for unless they are convinced that it belongs to God to succor
them, and to remedy such a state of matters, they will gain nothing by indulging
in confused murmurings, and rending the air with their cries and
complaints.
Psalm
10:1-2
1. Why standest thou afar
off, O Jehovah? and winkest at seasonable times in
trouble?
fa173 2. The ungodly in his pride doth
persecute the poor;
fa174 let them be caught in the
devices
fa175 which they
imagine.
1.
Lord, why standest thou afar
off? We here see how the prophet,
seeking a remedy for his calamities, which were apparently past hope, directly
addresses himself to God at the very commencement. And the rule which we should
observe, when we are in trouble and sorrow, is this:We should seek comfort and
solace in the providence of God; for amidst our agitations, vexations, and
cares, we ought to be fully persuaded that it is his peculiar office to give
relief to the wretched and afflicted. It is in an improper sense, and by
anthropathy,
fa176 that the Psalmist speaks of God as
standing afar off. Nothing can be hid from his eyes; but as God permits us to
speak to him as we do to one another, these forms of expression do not contain
any thing absurd, provided we understand them as applied to God, not in a strict
sense, but only figuratively, according to the judgment which mere sense forms
from the present appearance of things. It is possible that a righteous man may
not check an injury which is done to a poor man before his eyes, because he is
destitute of the power; but this cannot be the case with respect to God, who is
always armed with invincible power. If, therefore, he act as if he took no
notice, it is the same as if he withdrew himself afar off. The word
µyl[t,
taelim, which signifies to hide, is explained in two ways.
According to some, David here complains of God for hiding himself, as if he
accounted the care of human affairs beneath him. Others understand it as meaning
to shut the eyes; and this appears to me to be the more simple view. It
is to be observed, that although David here complains that God kept himself afar
off, he was, notwithstanding, fully persuaded of his presence with him,
otherwise it would have been in vain to have called upon him for aid. The
interrogation which he employs is to this effect:Lord, since it is thy
prerogative to govern the world, and also to regulate it by thy righteousness as
thou sustainest it by thy power, why is it that thou dost not more quickly show
thyself a defender of thine own people against the arrogance and incredible
pride of the ungodly? David, however, speaks thus not so much in the way of
complaining, as to encourage himself in the confidence of obtaining what he
desired. Through the infirmity of sense, he says, that it is unbecoming of God
to cease so long from executing his office; and yet, at the same time, he fails
not to yield to him the honor which is his due, and by his prayers he deposits
into his bosom the great burden of trouble with which he was laden. The
expression which follows, at needful times, relates to the same subject.
Although God may not stretch forth his hand to take
vengeance
fa177 at every moment, yet when he beholds
the simple and innocent oppressed, it is not time for him to defer any longer.
David briefly defines the fit time for putting the hand to the work to be when
the faithful are in distress. Of this form of speech we have spoken in the
preceding psalm, at the tenth
verse.
2.
The ungodly in his pride,
etc. Before uttering his prayer against
the ungodly, the Psalmist briefly sets forth their wickedness in cruelly vexing
the afflicted, for no other reason but because they disdain and despise them,
through the pride with which they are inflated. And their cruelty is not a
little enhanced from this, that, forgetful of all humanity, they contemptuously
triumph over the poor and afflicted, mocking them and inflicting injuries upon
them.
fa178 Cruelty is, indeed, always proud, yea,
rather, pride is the mother of all wrongs; for if a man did not through pride
magnify himself above his neighbors, and through an overweening conceit of
himself despise them, even common humanity would teach us with what humility and
justice we ought to conduct ourselves towards each other. But David here
intended to state that the only cause why the ungodly, whom he accuses, exercise
their cruelty against the wretched and the needy, from whom they receive no
provocation, is the pride and arrogance of their own spirits. Let every one,
therefore, who desires to live justly and unblameably with his brethren, beware
of indulging or taking pleasure in treating others disdainfully; and let him
endeavor, above all things, to have his mind freed from the disease of pride.
The word
qld,
dalak, signifies to suffer persecution, as well as to
persecute; and, therefore, some prefer translating the words, The poor is
persecuted in the pride of the
ungodly.
fa179 They may also not improperly be
rendered thus, The poor burns in the pride of the ungodly, because this
is the more common signification of the word. The pride of the wicked, like
fire, devours the poor and
afflicted.
Psalm
10:3-4
3. For the ungodly praiseth
himself on account of the desire of his own soul; and the violent man blesseth
himself; he despiseth Jehovah. 4. The ungodly, in the pride of his
countenance,
fa180 inquireth not:all his devices say,
There is no God.
3.
For the ungodly praiseth
himself. This verse is variously
explained. Literally the reading is, For praiseth the wicked or ungodly;
and it is therefore necessary to supply some word, but what word is
disputed.
fa181 Some translate the words, ungodly
and violent man, in the accusative case, thus:He praiseth the
ungodly, and blesseth the violent man; because they think it strange that
after "praiseth" the sentence should end abruptly, without any thing being said
of who or what was praised. But since it is quite common in Hebrew, when the
agent and the subject are one and the same person, to express the word only
once, while we repeat it in order to complete the sense, the interpretation
which I have followed appears to me the most proper, namely, that the ungodly
man praises himself, and boasts of the desire of his soul, and blesses himself.
Now, it may be asked, What is
this desire of
soul? It is usually understood in this
sense,
fa182 that the ungodly flatter and applaud
themselves, while fortune smiles on them, and they obtain their wishes, and
enjoy whatever they desire; just as David adds, a little after, that they abuse
their prosperity, in attempting whatever comes into their fancy. But, in my
opinion, desire of
soul here denotes rather lust, and the
intemperate gratification of passion and appetite; and thus the meaning is, that
they indulge themselves with delight in their depraved desires, and, despising
the judgment of God, fearlessly absolve themselves from all guilt, maintain
their innocence,
fa183 and justify their impiety. Moses uses a
similar form of expression in
<052919>Deuteronomy
29:19,
"I shall have peace,
though I walk in the imagination of mine heart."
David, indeed, says a little after, that the ungodly
abuse their prosperity, by flattering themselves; but here, in my judgment, he
expresses something more weighty, namely, that they acquire praise from their
presumptuousness, and glory in their wickedness; and this foolish confidence, or
bold assurance, is the cause of their throwing off all restraint and breaking
forth into every kind of excess. Accordingly, I interpret the words praise
and bless as having the same meaning, just as the words, ungodly
and violent man, are synonymous in this place, although they differ
from each other as genus and species. With these statements agrees what is
immediately added in the end of the verse that these ungodly persons despise
God. To translate the verb, to blaspheme, as has been done by some,
or to provoke to anger, as has been done by others, is too remote from
the scope of the passage. David rather teaches, that the cause of their careless
indulgence in the gratification of their lusts, is their base contempt of God.
He who duly reflects that God will be his judge is so much alarmed by this
reflection, that he dares not bless his soul while his conscience accuses him of
guilt and of being given to the practice of
sin.
fa184
4.
The ungodly, in the pride of his countenance,
etc. Others translate the words, The
ungodly man, by reason of the violence of his anger, or, in the pride
which he displays, does not inquire after God. But this partly perverts the
meaning, and partly weakens the force of what David intended to express. In the
first place, the word inquire, which is here put absolutely, that is,
without any noun which it governs, is, according to this translation, improperly
limited to God. David simply means, that the ungodly, without examination,
permit themselves to do any thing, or do not distinguish between what is lawful
and unlawful, because their own lust is their law, yea, rather, as if superior
to all laws, they fancy that it is lawful for them to do whatever they please.
The beginning of well-doing in a man's life is inquiry; in other words, we can
only begin to do well when we keep ourselves from following, without choice and
discrimination, the dictates of our own fancy, and from being carried away by
the wayward propensities of our flesh. But the exercise of inquiring proceeds
from humility, when we assign to God, as is reasonable, the place of judge and
ruler over us. The prophet, therefore, very properly says, that the reason why
the ungodly, without any regard or consideration, presume to do whatever they
desire, is because, being lifted up with pride, they leave to God nothing
whatever of the prerogative of a judge. The Hebrew word
ãp,
aph, which we have translated countenance, I have no doubt is here
taken in its proper and natural signification, and not metaphorically for
anger; because haughty persons show their effrontery even by their
countenance.
In the second clause, the prophet
more severely, or, at least, more openly, accuses them, declaring that all their
wicked imaginations show that they have no God.
All his devices say, There is no
God.
fa185 By these words I understand,
that through their heaven-daring presumption, they subvert all piety and
justice, as if there were no God sitting in heaven. Did they truly believe that
there is a God, the fear of the judgment to come would restrain them. Not that
they plainly and distinctly deny the existence of a God, but then they strip him
of his power. Now, God would be merely like an idol, if, contented with an
inactive existence, he should divest himself of his office as judge. Whoever,
therefore, refuse to admit that the world is subject to the providence of God,
or do not believe that his hand is stretched forth from on high to govern it, do
as much as in them lies to put an end to the existence of God. It is not,
however, enough to have some cold and unimpressive knowledge of him in the head;
it is only the true and heartfelt conviction of his providence which makes us
reverence him, and which keeps us in
subjection
fa186 to him. The greater part of
interpreters understand the last clause as meaning generally, that all the
thoughts of a wicked man tend to the denial of a God. In my opinion, the Hebrew
word
twmzm,
mezimmoth, is here, as in many other places, taken in a bad sense for
cunning and wicked thoughts,
fa187 so that the meaning, as I have noticed
already, is this:Since the ungodly have the hardihood to devise and perpetrate
every kind of wickedness, however atrocious, it is from this sufficiently
manifest, that they have cast off all fear of God from their
hearts.
Psalm
10:5-6
5. His ways are prosperous at
all times; on high are thy judgments before him; he puffeth at all his enemies.
6. He saith in his heart, I shall not be moved from generation to
generation, because he is not in
adversity.
There is a great diversity of
opinion among interpreters respecting the first clause of this verse. The
translators of the Septuagint version, thinking the word
wlyjy,
yachilu, which is in the future tense, derived from the root
llj,
chalal, which it is not, have rendered it, his ways are defiled.
But it is agreed among the Jewish expositors, that it is derived from the
root
lwj,
chol. Many among them, however, take it actively for to put one in
fear, or to put one to trouble, as if it had been said, The ways of
the ungodly are dreadful to the good, and torment them.
fa188
Some also apply the words to God, reading the sentence thus, His ways come,
that is to say, have their course, or prosper at all times.
This, however, in my judgment, is too forced. But as this word, in other
texts of Scripture, means to be prosperous, I am surprised that there
should be any difference of opinion among the learned concerning this passage,
when immediately, in the next clause, the prophet clearly shows that he is
speaking of the prosperous condition of the ungodly, and the continued course of
pleasure which intoxicates them. He not only complains of this their prosperity,
but from it he aggravates their guilt, in that they take occasion, from the
goodness of God, to harden themselves in their wickedness. I would, therefor
explain the verse thus:As they enjoy a continued course of prosperity, they
dream that God is bound or plighted to them, and hence they put his judgments
far from them; and if any man oppose them, they are confident they can
immediately put him down, or dash him to pieces with a puff or breath. Now, we
understand the simple meaning of the prophet to be, that the ungodly mock God,
taking encouragement from his forbearance; as that base tyrant, Dionysius,
because he had a prosperous voyage, after having plundered the temple of
Proserpine,
fa189 boasted that God favored the
sacrilegious.
fa190 Hence it is, that they put far from
them the judgments of God.
In the opinion of
some, these words, On high are
thy judgments before him, mean much the
same thing as if the prophet had said, God treats them with too much clemency,
and spares them; just as he elsewhere complains of their being exempted from the
common afflictions of life. But this interpretation does not so well agree with
the words; yea, it appears to be unnatural and forced.
The judgments of
God then are said to be on high to
the ungodly, because, presuming upon the great distance of God from
them,
fa191 they promise themselves not only a
truce with death during their whole life, but also an everlasting covenant with
it. We see how, by procrastinating the evil day, they harden themselves, and
become more and more obstinate in
evil;
fa192 yea, persuading themselves that God is
shut up in heaven, as if they had nothing to do with him, they strengthen
themselves in the hope of escaping
unpunished;
fa193 as we see them, in Isaiah,
(<232213>Isaiah
22:13) jesting at the threatenings of the prophets, saying, "Let us eat and
drink, for to-morrow we shall die." When the prophets, in order to inspire the
people with terror, denounced the dreadful vengeance of God, which was ready to
be inflicted upon them, these wicked men cried out that it was all whims or idle
stories. God therefore bitterly inveighs against them, because, when he called
the people to mourning, ashes, and sackcloth, these mockers encouraged them to
minstrelsy and feasting; and at length he swears, "As I live, surely this
iniquity shall not be purged from you till ye die." The faithful, indeed, lift
up their eyes to heaven to behold the judgments of God; and they are not less
afraid of them than if they were just ready to fall upon their heads. The
ungodly, on the contrary, despise them, and yet, in order not to be disturbed or
tormented with the fear or apprehension of them, they would banish them into
heaven; just as the Epicureans, although they did not presume avowedly to deny
the existence of a God, yet imagined that he is confined to heaven, where he
indulges himself in idleness, without taking any concern about what is done here
below.
fa194 From this infatuation flows their
presumptuous confidence of which David speaks, by which they assure themselves
of being able to destroy, with a puff or blast alone, all who are enemies to
them. The word
jwp,
phuach, which sometimes signifies to ensnare, is here more properly
taken for to puff, or to blow
out.
The Psalmist confirms these statements
in the next verse, where he tells us that the persons of whom he speaks are
fully persuaded in their hearts that they are beyond all danger of change.
He saith in his heart, I shall
not be moved from generation to generation.
The ungodly often pour forth proud language to this effect. David, however,
only touches the hidden ulcer of their vile arrogance, which they cherish in
their own breasts, and therefore he does not say what they speak with their
mouth, but what they persuade themselves of in their hearts. It may here be
asked, Why does David blame in others what he professes concerning himself in so
many places?
fa195 for trusting to the protection of God,
he courageously triumphs over all
dangers.
fa196 And surely it becomes the children of
God effectually to provide for their safety, so that, although the world should
a hundred times fall into ruins, they may have the comfortable assurance that
they will remain unmoved. The answer to this question is easy, and it is this,
The faithful promise themselves security in God, and no where else; and yet
while they do this, they know themselves to be exposed to all the storms of
affliction, and patiently submit to them. There is a very great difference
between a despiser of God who, enjoying prosperity today, is so forgetful of the
condition of man in this world, as through a distempered imagination to build
his nest above the clouds, and who persuades himself that he shall always enjoy
comfort and repose,
fa197 — there is a very great
difference between him and the godly man, who, knowing that his life hangs only
by a thread, and is encompassed by a thousand deaths, and who, ready to endure
any kind of afflictions which shall be sent upon him, and living in the world as
if he were sailing upon a tempestuous and dangerous sea, nevertheless, bears
patiently all his troubles and sorrows, and comforts himself in his afflictions,
because he leans wholly upon the grace of God, and entirely confides in
it.
fa198 The ungodly man says, I shall not be
moved, or I shall not shake for ever; because he thinks himself sufficiently
strong and powerful to bear up against all the assaults which shall be made upon
him. The faithful man says, What although I may happen to be moved, yea, even
fall and sink into the lowest depths? my fall will not be fatal, for God will
put his hand under me to sustain me. By this, in like manner, we are furnished
with an explanation of the different effects which an apprehension of danger has
upon the good and the bad. Good men may tremble and sink into despondency, but
this leads them to flee with all haste to the sanctuary of God's
grace;
fa199 whereas the ungodly, while they are
affrighted even at the noise of a falling
leaf,
fa200 and live in constant uneasiness,
endeavor to harden themselves in their stupidity, and to bring themselves into
such a state of giddy frenzy, that being, as it were, carried out of themselves,
they may not feel their calamities. The cause assigned for the confidence with
which the prosperous ungodly man persuades himself that no change shall come
upon him is, because he is not in
adversity. This admits of two senses. It
either means, that the ungodly, because they have been exempted from all
calamity and misery during the past part of their life, entertain the hope of a
peaceful and joyful state in the time to come; or it means, that through a
deceitful imagination they exempt themselves from the common condition of men;
just as in Isaiah,
(<232815>Isaiah
28:15) they say,
"When the overflowing
scourge shall pass through,
it
shall not come upon us."
Psalm
10:7-10
7. His mouth is full of
cursing, and deceit, and malice:under his tongue are mischief and iniquity.
8. He will sit in the ensnaring places of the villages; in his lurking
places will he murder the innocent:his eyes will take their aim against the
poor. 9. He will lie in wait secretly, as a lion in his den; he will lie
in wait to catch the poor; he will catch the poor by drawing him into his net.
10. He will crouch low, and cast himself down, and then shall an army of
the afflicted fall by his strengths.
fa201
7.
His mouth is full of
cursing. The scope of these four verses
is this:If God intends to succor his servants, it is now a proper time for doing
so, inasmuch as the lawlessness of the ungodly has burst forth to the utmost
possible excess. In the first place, he complains that their tongues are full of
perjuries and deceits, and that they carry or hide mischief and wrongs, it being
impossible to have any dealings with them in any matter without loss and damage.
The word
hla,
alah, which some render cursing, does not signify the execrations
which they throw out against others, but rather those which they call down upon
their own heads:for they do not scruple to utter the most awful imprecations
against themselves, that thereby they may the better succeed in deceiving
others. It is, therefore, not improperly rendered by some, perjury, for
this word ought to be joined to the other two, deceit and malice. Thus
the wicked are described as cursing or swearing falsely, so far as it
contributes to forward their purposes of deceiving and doing injury. Hence
follow mischief and injustice, because it is impossible for the simple, without
suffering detriment, to escape their snares, which are woven of deceits,
perjuries, and malice.
8.
He will sit in the ensnaring
places of the villages.
fa202 I have purposely avoided changing the
verbs of the future tense into another tense, because they imply a continued
act, and also because this Hebrew idiom has extended even to other languages.
David, therefore, describes what ungodly men are accustomed to do. And, in the
first place, he compares them to highwaymen, who lie in wait at the narrow parts
of roads, and choose for themselves hiding-places from which they may fall upon
travelers when off their guard. He says also, that
their eyes are bent or
leering,
fa203 by a similitude borrowed from
the practice of dart-shooters, who take their aim with leering, or half shut
eyes, in order to hit the mark the surer. Nor does he here speak of the common
sort of highwaymen who are in the
woods;
fa204 but he directs his language against
those great robbers who hide their wickedness under titles of honor, and pomp,
and splendor. The word
µyrxj,
chatserim, therefore, which we have rendered villages, is by some
translated palaces; as if David had said, they have converted their royal
mansions into places of robbery, where they may cut the throats of their unhappy
victims. But granting the word to have this allusion, I consider that it refers
principally to the practice of robbers, to which there is a reference in the
whole verse, and I explain it thus:Like as robbers lie in wait at the egresses
of villages, so these persons lay their snares wherever they
are.
In the next verse, he sets forth their
cruelty in a light still more aggravated, by another comparison, saying, that
they thirst for their prey like
lions in their dens. Now, it is a step
higher in wickedness to equal in cruelty wild beasts than to make havoc after
the manner of robbers. It is worthy of remark, that he always joins deceits and
snares with violence, in order the better to show how miserable the children of
God would be, unless they were succoured by help from heaven. There is also
added another similitude, which expresses more clearly how craft in catching
victims is mingled with cruelty.
They catch
them, says he but it is by
drawing them into their
net. By these words he means, that they
not only rush upon them with open force and violence, but that, at the same time
also, they spread their nets in order to
deceive.
He again repeats all this in the tenth
verse, giving a beautiful and graphic description of the very mien or gesture of
such wicked men, just as if he set before our eyes a picture of them.
They crouch
low, says he,
and cast themselves
down,
fa205 that they may not, by their cruelty,
frighten away their victims to a distance; for they would fain catch in their
entanglements those whom they cannot hurt without coming close to them. We see
how he joins these two things together, first snares or gins, and then sudden
violence, as soon as the prey has fallen into their hands. For, by the second
clause, he means, that whenever they see the simple to be fully in their power,
they rush upon them by surprise with a savage violence, just as if a lion should
furiously rise from his couch to tear in pieces his
prey.
fa206 The obvious meaning of the Psalmist is,
that the ungodly are to be dreaded on all sides, because they dissemble their
cruelty, till they find those caught in their toils whom they wish to devour.
There is some obscurity in the words, to which we shall briefly advert. In the
clause which we have rendered an
army of the
afflicted, the Hebrew word
µyaklj,
chelcaim, an army, in the opinion of some, is a word of four
letters.
fa207 Those, however, think more accurately
who hold it to be compound, and equivalent to two
words.
fa208 Although, therefore, the verb
lpn,
naphal, is in the singular number, yet the prophet, doubtless, uses
XXX,
chel caim, collectively, to denote a great company of people who are
afflicted by every one of these lions. I have rendered
µyak
lj, atsumim, his strengths, as if it were a
substantive; because the prophet, doubtless, by this term, intends the talons
and teeth of the lion, in which the strength of that beast chiefly consists. As,
however, the word is properly an adjective in the plural number, signifying
strong, without having any substantive with which it agrees, we may
reasonably suppose that, by the talons and teeth of the lion, he means to
express metaphorically a powerful body of soldiers. In short, the meaning is
this:These wicked men hide their strength, by feigned humility and crafty
courteous demeanour, and yet they will always have in readiness an armed band of
satellites, or claws and teeth, as soon as an opportunity of doing mischief is
presented to them.
Psalm
10:11-13
11. He hath said in his
heart, God hath forgotten it:he hideth his face that he may never see it.
12. Arise, O Jehovah God, lift up thine hand:forget not the poor.
13. Why do the wicked despise God? He saith in his heart, Thou wilt not
require it.
11.
He hath said in his
heart. The Psalmist again points out the
source from which the presumption of the ungodly proceeds. Because God seems to
take no notice of their wicked practices, they flatter themselves with the hope
of escaping unpunished. As, however, they do not openly utter with their mouth
the detestable blasphemy, that
God hath forgotten their conduct,
and hath shut his eyes that he may never see
it, but hide their thoughts in the deep recesses of their own hearts, as
Isaiah declares,
(<232915>Isaiah
29:15) the Psalmist uses the same form of expression which he used before, and
which he repeats a little after the third time, namely, that the ungodly say to
themselves, in their hearts, that God takes no concern whatever in the affairs
of men. And it is to be observed, that the ungodly, when all things happen to
them according to their wishes, form such a judgment of their prosperity as to
persuade themselves that God is in a manner bound or obliged to
them.
fa209 Whence it comes to pass, that they live
in a state of constant security,
fa210 because they do not reflect, that after
God has long exercised patience towards them, they will undergo a solemn
reckoning, and that their condemnation will be the more terrible, the greater
the long-suffering of God.
12.
Arise, O
Jehovah. It is a disease under which men
in general labor, to imagine, according to the judgment of the flesh, that when
God does not execute his judgments, he is sitting idle, or lying at ease. There
is, however, a great difference with respect to this between the faithful and
the wicked. The latter cherish the false opinion which is dictated by the
weakness of the flesh, and in order to soothe and flatter themselves in their
vices, they indulge in slumbering, and render their conscience
stupid,
fa211 until at length, through their wicked
obstinacy, they harden themselves into a gross contempt of God. But the former
soon shake from their minds that false imagination, and chastise themselves,
returning of their own accord to a due consideration of what is the truth on
this subject.
fa212 Of this we have here set before us a
striking example. By speaking of God after the manner of men, the prophet
declares that the same error which he has just now condemned in the despisers of
God had gradually stolen in upon his own mind. But he proceeds at once to
correct it, and resolutely struggles with himself, and restrains his mind from
forming such conceptions of God, as would reflect dishonor upon his
righteousness and glory. It is therefore a temptation to which all men are
naturally prone, to begin to doubt of the providence of God, when his hand and
judgment are not seen. The godly, however, differ widely from the wicked. The
former, by means of faith, check this apprehension of the flesh; while the
latter indulge themselves in their froward imagination. Thus David, by the word
Arise, does not so much stir up God, as he awakens himself, or endeavors
to awaken himself, to hope for more of the assistance of God than he presently
experienced. Accordingly, this verse contains the useful doctrine, that the more
the ungodly harden themselves, through their slothful ignorance, and endeavor to
persuade themselves that God takes no concern about men and their affairs, and
will not punish the wickedness which they commit, the more should we endeavor to
be persuaded of the contrary; yes, rather their ungodliness ought to incite us
vigorously to repel the doubts which they not only admit, but studiously frame
for themselves.
13.
Why doth the wicked despise
God? It is, indeed, superfluous to bring
arguments before God, for the purpose of persuading him to grant us what we ask;
but still he permits us to make use of them, and to speak to him in prayer, as
familiarly as a son speaks to an earthly father. It should always be observed,
that the use of praying is, that God may be the witness of all our affections;
not that they would otherwise be hidden from him, but when we pour out our
hearts before him, our cares are hereby greatly lightened, and our confidence of
obtaining our requests increases. Thus David, in the present passage, by setting
before himself how unreasonable and intolerable it would be for the wicked to be
allowed to despise God according to their pleasure, thinking he will never bring
them to an account,
fa213 was led to cherish the hope of
deliverance from his calamities. The word which is here rendered despise,
is the same as that which he had used before. Some translate it to
provoke, and others to blaspheme. But the signification which I have
preferred certainly agrees much better with the context; for when persons take
from God the power and office of judging, this is ignominiously to drag him from
his throne, and to degrade him, as it were, to the station of a private
individual.
fa214 Moreover, as David had a little before
complained that the ungodly deny the existence of a God, or else imagine him to
be constantly asleep, having no care about mankind, so now he complains to the
same purpose that they say, God will not require
it.
Psalm
10:14-15
14. Thou hast seen it; for
thou considerest mischief and
vexation,
fa215 that thou mayest take the matter into
thine own hand:upon thee shall the poor leave, for thou wilt be the helper of
the fatherless. 15. Break thou the arm of the wicked and the evil man;
thou shalt seek his wickedness, and shalt not find
it.
14.
Thou hast seen it; for thou,
etc. Here David, suddenly kindled with a
holy zeal, enters into conflict, and, armed with the shield of faith,
courageously repels these execrable opinions; but as he could derive no
advantage by making his appeal to men, he has recourse to God, and addresses
him. As the ungodly, in the hope of enjoying unrestrained license in the
commission of all kinds of wickedness, withdraw to the greatest possible
distance from God,
fa216 and through the dictates of a perverse
mind, imagine themselves to be far beyond his reach; so, on the contrary, the
faithful ought carefully to keep themselves aloof from those wild opinions,
which are afloat in the world, and with minds lifted upward, to speak to God as
if present with them. Accordingly, David, in order to prevent himself from being
overcome by the blasphemies of men, very properly turns away his attention from
them. There is added a reason in confirmation of the first sentence of the
verse, namely, because God
considers mischief and
vexation. Since it is the peculiar
province of God to take cognisance of all wrongs, David concludes that it is
impossible for God to shut his eyes when the ungodly are recklessly and without
restraint committing their outrages. Moreover, he descends from the general to
the particular, which ought to be attentively marked:for nothing is easier than
to acknowledge in general terms that God exercises a care about the world, and
the affairs of men; but it is very difficult to apply this doctrine to its
various uses in every-day life. And yet, all that the Scripture says concerning
the power and righteousness of God will be of no advantage to us, and, as it
were, only matter of meagre
speculation,
fa217 unless every one apply these statements
to himself, as his necessity may require. Let us therefore learn, from the
example of David, to reason thus:that, since it belongs to God to take notice of
all the mischief and injuries which are inflicted on the good and simple, He
considers our trouble and sorrows even when he seems for a time to take no
notice of them. The Psalmist also adds, that God does not look down from heaven
upon the conduct of men here below as an idle and unconcerned spectator, but
that it is his work to pass judgment upon it; for
to take the matter into his own
hand, is nothing else than duly and
effectually to examine and determine it as a
judge.
It is, however, our duty to wait
patiently so long as vengeance is reserved in the hand of God, until he stretch
forth his arm to help us. We see, therefore, the reason why it is immediately
added, Upon thee shall the poor
leave. By these words David means, that
we ought to give the providence of God time to manifest itself. The godly, when
they are afflicted, may with confidence cast their cares into his bosom, and
commit themselves to his protection. They ought not, however, to be in haste for
the accomplishment of their wishes; but, being now disburdened, they should take
their breath till God manifestly declare that the fit time of interfering in
their behalf is come. The man, therefore,
leaves upon
God who betakes himself to his
protection, and who, fully persuaded of his faithfulness in keeping what is
entrusted to him, quietly waits till the fit time of his deliverance come. Some
read the verb passively, The poor shall be left upon thee. The first
reading, however, is more correct, and it agrees with the rules of grammar; only
it is a defective form of expression, inasmuch as the thing which the poor
leaves is not expressed. But this defect is common in Hebrew; and there is no
obscurity in the thing itself, namely, that, when the godly commit themselves
and their concerns to God by prayer, their prayers will not be in vain; for
these two clauses are closely connected,
Upon thee shall the poor
leave, and,
Thou shalt be a helper to the
fatherless. By a metaphor he terms the
person fatherless whom he had in the preceding clause called poor. And the verb
being in the future tense denotes a continued
act.
15.
Break thou the
arm. This form of expression just means
breaking the power of the wicked. And it is not simply a prayer; it may also be
regarded as a prophecy. As the ungovernable fury of our enemies very often makes
us lose courage, as if there were no means by which it could be restrained,
David, in order to support his faith, and preserve it from failing through the
fears which presented themselves, sets before himself the consideration, that
whenever it shall please God to break the power of the ungodly, he will bring to
nothing both themselves and all their schemes. To make the meaning the more
evident, the sentence may be explained in this way, — Lord, as soon as it
shall seem good to thee to break the arm of the wicked, thou wilt destroy him in
a moment, and bring to nought his powerful and violent efforts in the work of
doing mischief. David, indeed, beseeches God to hasten his assistance and his
vengeance; but, in the meantime, while these are withheld, he sustains himself
by the consolatory reflection, that the ungodly cannot break forth into violence
and mischief except in so far as God permits them; since it is in his power,
whenever he ascends into the judgment-seat, to destroy them even with his look
alone. And certainly, as the rising sun dissipates the clouds and vapours by his
heat, and clears up the dark air, so God, when he stretches forth his hand to
execute the office of a Judge, restores to tranquillity and order all the
troubles and confusions of the world. The Psalmist calls the person of whom he
speaks not only wicked, but the wicked and the evil man, and he
does so, in my judgment, for the purpose of setting forth in a stronger light
the greatness of the wickedness of the character which he describes. His words
are as if he had said, Wicked men may even be frantic in their malice and
impiety; but God can promptly and effectually remedy this evil whenever he
pleases.
Psalm
10:16-18
16. Jehovah is King for
ever and ever:the heathen are perished out of his land. 17. Thou hast
heard the desire of the needy, O Jehovah:thou, wilt
direct
fa218 their hearts, and thine ear shall hear
them. 18. To judge the fatherless and the poor, that the man who is of
earth may no more terrify
them.
16.
Jehovah is King for ever and
ever. David now, as if he had obtained
the desires of his heart, rises up to holy rejoicing and thanksgiving. When he
calls God King for ever and
ever, it is a token of his confidence
and joy. By the title of King, he vindicates God's claim to the
government of the world, and when he describes him as
King for ever and
ever, this shows how absurd it is to
think to shut him up within the narrow limits of time. As the course of human
life is short, even those who sway the scepter over the greatest empires, being
but mortal men, very often disappoint the expectations of their
servants,
fa219 as we are taught in
<19E603>Psalm
146:3, 4,
"Put not your
trust in princes, nor in the son of man, in whom there is no help. His breath
goeth forth, he returneth to his earth; in that very day his thoughts
perish."
Often the power of giving assistance to
others fails them, and while they are delaying to give it, the opportunity slips
away from them. But we ought to entertain more exalted and honorable conceptions
of our heavenly King; for although he does not immediately execute his
judgments, yet he has always the full and the perfect power of doing so. In
short, he reigns, not for himself in particular; it is for us that he reigns for
ever and ever. As this, then, is the duration of his reign, it follows that a
long delay cannot hinder him from stretching forth his hand in due season to
succor his people, even when they are, as it were, dead, or in a condition
which, to the eye of sense and reason, is hopeless. —
The heathen are perished out of
the land. The meaning is, that the holy
land was at length purged from the abominations and impurities with which it had
been polluted. It was a dreadful profanation, when the land which had been given
for an inheritance to the people of God, and allotted to those who purely
worshipped him, nourished ungodly and wicked inhabitants. By the heathen
he does not mean foreigners, and such as did not belong to the race of
Abraham according to the flesh,
fa220 but hypocrites, who falsely boasted
that they belonged to the people of God, just as at this day many, who are
Christians only in name, occupy a place in the bosom of the Church. It is no new
thing for the prophets to call apostates, who have degenerated from the virtues
and holy lives of their fathers, by the reproachful name of heathen, and
to compare them not only to the uncircumcised, but also to the Canaanites, who
were the most detestable among all the heathen.
"Thy father was an
Amorite, and thy mother an Hittite,"
(<261603>Ezekiel
16:3)
Many other similar passages are to be met with in
Scripture. David, therefore, in applying the dishonorable name of heathen
to the false and bastard children of Abraham, gives God thanks for having
expelled such a corrupt class out of his Church. By this example we are taught,
that it is no new thing if we see in our own day the Church of God polluted by
profane and irreligious men. We ought, however, to beseech God quickly to purge
his house, and not leave his holy temple exposed to the desecration of swine and
dogs, as if it were a dunghill.
17.
O Jehovah, thou hast heard
the desire of the needy. In these words
the prophet confirms what I have just now said, that when hypocrites prevail in
the Church, or exceed the faithful in number, we ought, unceasingly, to beseech
God to root them out; for such a confused and shameful state of things ought
surely to be matter of deep grief to all the true servants of God. By these
words, also, the Holy Spirit assures us, that what of old God granted to the
fathers in answer to their prayers, we at the present day will obtain, provided
we have that anxious solicitude about the deliverance of the Church which we
ought to entertain. The clause which follows,
Thou wilt direct their
hearts, is variously interpreted by
expositors. Some think it signifies the same thing, as if it had been said, Thou
wilt give success to their desires. According to others, the meaning is, Thou
wilt frame and sanctify their hearts by thy grace, that they may ask nothing in
prayer but what is right and according to the divine will, as Paul teaches us
that the Holy Spirit
"stirs up within
us groanings which cannot be uttered,"
(<450826>Romans
8:26)
Both these expositions are perhaps too forced. David,
in this clause, magnifies the grace of God in sustaining and comforting his
servants in the midst of their troubles and distresses, that they may not sink
into despondency, — in furnishing them with fortitude and patience, - in
inspiring them with good hope, - and in stirring them up also to prayer. This is
the import of the verb
ˆyk,
Kin, which signifies not only to direct, but also to establish.
It is a singular blessing which God confers upon us, when, in the midst of
temptation, he upholds our hearts, and does not suffer them to recede from him,
or to turn aside to any other quarter for support and deliverance. The meaning
of the clause which immediately follows, Thou wilt cause thine ear to hear,
is, that it is not in vain that God directs the hearts of his people, and
leads them, in obedience to his command, to look to Himself, and to call upon
him in hope and patience — it is not in vain, because his ears are never
shut against their groanings. Thus the mutual harmony between two religious
exercises is here commended. God does not suffer the faith of his servants to
faint or fail, nor does he suffer them to desist from praying; but he keeps them
near him by faith and prayer, until it actually appear that their hope has been
neither vain nor ineffectual. The sentence might, not improperly, be rendered
thus:Thou shalt establish their heart, until thine ear hear
them.
18.
That thou mayest
judge. Here the Psalmist applies the
last sentence of the preceding verse to a special purpose, namely, to prevent
the faithful, when they are unjustly oppressed, from doubting that God will at
length take vengeance on their enemies, and grant them deliverance. By these
words he teaches us, that we ought to bear with patience and fortitude the
crosses and afflictions which are laid upon us, since God often withholds
assistance from his servants until they are reduced to extremity. This is,
indeed, a duty of difficult performance, for we would all desire to be entirely
exempted from trouble; and, therefore, if God does not quickly come to our
relief, we think him remiss and inactive. But if we are anxiously desirous of
obtaining his assistance, we must subdue our passion, restrain our impatience,
and keep our sorrows within due bounds, waiting until our afflictions call forth
the exercise of his compassion, and excite him to manifest his grace in
succouring us.
That the man
who is of earth may no more terrify them.
David again commends the power of God in destroying the ungodly; and he does
it for this purpose, - that in the midst of their tumultuous assaults we may
have this principle deeply fixed in our minds, that God, whenever he pleases,
can bring all their attempts to nothing. Some understand the verb
˜ra,
arots, which we have translated to terrify, as neuter, and read the
words thus, — that mortal man may be no more afraid. But it agrees
better with the scope of the passage to render it transitively, as we have done.
And although the wicked prosper in their wicked course, and lift up their heads
above the clouds, there is much truth in describing them as mortal, or
men liable to many calamities. The design of the Psalmist is indirectly
to condemn their infatuated presumption, in that, forgetful of their condition,
they breathe out cruel and terrible threatenings, as if it were beyond the power
of even God himself to repress the violence of their rage. The phrase, of
earth, contains a tacit contrast between the low abode of this world and the
height of heaven. For whence do they go forth to assault the children of God?
Doubtless, from the earth, just as if so many worms should creep out of the
crevices of the ground; but in so doing, they attack God himself, who promises
help to his servants from heaven.
PSALM
11.
This psalm consists of two parts. In the first part,
David recounts the severe assaults of temptation which he had encountered, and
the state of distressing anxiety to which he had been reduced during the time of
his persecution by Saul. In the second, he congratulates himself on the
deliverance which God had granted him, and magnifies the righteousness of God in
the government of the world.
To the chief
musician. A Psalm of David.
Psalm
11:1-3
1. In Jehovah do I put my
trust:how then say ye to my soul, Flee ye into your mountain as a bird?
2. Surely, behold! the ungodly shall
bend
fa221 their bow, they have fixed their arrows
upon the string, to shoot secretly at the upright in heart. 3. Truly, the
foundations are destroyed:what
fa222 hath the righteous One
done?
1.
In Jehovah do I put my
trust. Almost all interpreters think
that this is a complaint which David brings against his countrymen, that while
seeking in every quarter for hiding-places, he could find nowhere even common
humanity. And it is indeed true, that in the whole course of his wanderings,
after betaking himself to flight to escape the cruelty of Saul, he could find no
secure place of retreat, at least, none where he might continue for any length
of time undisturbed. He might, therefore, justly complain of his own countrymen,
in that none of them deigned to shelter him when he was a fugitive. But I think
he has a respect to something higher. When all men were striving, as it were,
with each other, to drive him to despair, he must, according to the weakness of
the flesh, have been afflicted with great and almost overwhelming distress of
mind; but fortified by faith, he confidently and steadfastly leaned on the
promises of God, and was thus preserved from yielding to the temptations to
which he was exposed. These spiritual conflicts, with which God exercised him in
the midst of his extreme perils, he here recounts. Accordingly, as I have just
now observed, the psalm should be divided into two parts. Before celebrating the
righteousness of God, which he displays in the preservation of the godly, the
Psalmist shows how he had encountered even death itself, and yet, through faith
and an upright conscience, had obtained the victory. As all men advised him to
leave his country, and retire into some place of exile, where he might be
concealed, inasmuch as there remained for him no hope of life, unless he should
relinquish the kingdom, which had been promised to him; in the beginning of the
psalm, he opposes to this perverse advice the shield of his trust in
God.
But before entering farther upon the
subject, let us interpret the words. The word
dwn,
nud, which we have rendered to flee, is written in the plural
number, and yet it is read in the
singular;
fa223 but, in my opinion, this is a corrupt
reading. As David tells us that this was said to himself only, the Jewish
doctors, thinking the plural number unsuitable, have taken it upon them to read
the word in the singular. Some of them, wishing to retain the literal sense as
it is called, perplex themselves with the question, why it is said, Flee ye,
rather than Flee thou; and, at length, they have recourse to a very
meagre subtilty, as if those who counselled him to betake himself to flight
addressed both his soul and his body. But it was unnecessary labor to put
themselves to so much trouble in a matter where there is no difficulty; for it
is certain that those who counselled David did not say that he alone should
flee, but that he should flee, together with all his attendants, who were in the
same danger with himself. Although, therefore, they addressed themselves
especially to David, yet they included his companions, who had a common cause
with him, and were exposed to the like danger. Expositors, also, differ in their
interpretation of what follows. Many render it
from your
mountain, as if it were
µkrhm,
meharkem; and, according to them, there is a change of person, because
those who spoke to him must have said, flee thou from Our mountain.
But this is harsh and strained. Nor does it appear to me that they have any
more reason on their side, when they say that Judea is here called mountain.
Others think we should read rwpx
wmk rh, har kemo
tsippor,
fa224 that is, into the mountain as a
bird, without a pronoun.
fa225 But if we follow what I have said, it
will agree very well with the scope of the passage to read thus,
Flee ye into your
mountain, for you are not permitted to
dwell in your own country. I do not, however, think that any particular mountain
is pointed out, but that David was sent away to the desert rocks wherever chance
might lead him. Condemning those who gave him this advice, he declares that he
depends upon the promise of God, and is not at all disposed thus to go away into
exile. Such, then, was the condition of David, that, in his extreme necessity,
all men repelled and chased him far away into desert
places.
But as he seems to intimate that it
would be a sign of distrust were he to place his safety in flight, it may be
asked, whether or not it would have been lawful for him to flee; yea, we know
that he was often forced to retire into exile, and driven about from place to
place, and that he even sometimes hid himself in caves. I answer, it is true he
was unsettled like a poor fearful bird, which leaps from branch to
branch,
fa226 and was compelled to seek for different
bypaths, and to wander from place to place to avoid the snares of his enemies;
yet still his faith continued so steadfast that he never alienated himself from
the people of God. Others accounted him a lost man, and one whose affairs were
in a hopeless condition, setting no more value upon him than if he had been a
rotten limb,
fa227 yet he never separated himself from the
body of the Church. And certainly these words, Flee ye, tended only to
make him yield to utter despair. But it would have been wrong for him to have
yielded to these fears, and to have betaken himself to flight, as if uncertain
of what would be the issue. He therefore says expressly, that this was spoken
to his soul, meaning that his heart was deeply pierced by such an
ignominious rejection, since he saw (as I have said) that it tended only to
shake and to weaken his faith. In short, although he had always lived
innocently, as it became a true servant of God, yet these malignant men would
have doomed him to remain for ever in a state of exile from his native country.
This verse teaches us, that however much the world may hate and persecute
us,
fa228 we ought nevertheless to continue
steadfast at our post, that we may not deprive ourselves of a right to lay claim
to the promises of God, or that these may not slip away from us; and that,
however much and however long we may be harassed, we ought always to continue
firm and unwavering in the faith of our having the call of
God.
2.
Surely, behold! the
ungodly. Some think that this is added
as the excuse made by those who desired David to save himself by flight.
According to others, David expostulates with his countrymen, who saw death
menacing him on all sides, and yet denied him shelter. But, in my judgment, he
here continues his account of the trying circumstances in which he was placed.
His design is not only to place before our view the dangers with which he was
surrounded, but to show us that he was exposed even to death itself. He
therefore says, that wherever he might hide himself, it was impossible for him
to escape from the hands of his enemies. Now, the description of so miserable a
condition illustrates the more strikingly the grace of God in the deliverance
which he afterwards granted him. With respect to the words,
they have fixed their arrows upon
the string, to Shoot Secretly, or in
darkness, some understand them metaphorically of the attempts which David's
enemies made to surprise him by craft and snares. I, however, prefer this
interpretation, as being more simple, - that there was no place so hidden into
which the darts of his enemies did not penetrate, and that, therefore, to
whatever caves he could betake himself for concealment and shelter, death would
follow him as his inseparable
attendant.
3.
Truly, the foundations are
destroyed. Some translate the word
twtçh,
hashathoth, by nets, a sense in which the Scripture in other
places often uses this word; and their explanation of the words is, that the
wicked and deceitful arts which the ungodly practiced against David were
defeated. If we admit this interpretation, the meaning of what he adds
immediately after, What hath the
righteous one done? will be, that his
escape in safety was owing neither to his own exertion, nor to his own skill,
but that, without putting forth any effort, and when, as it were, he was asleep,
he had been delivered from the nets and snares of his enemies by the power of
God. But the word foundations agrees better with the scope of the
passage, for he evidently proceeds to relate into what straits he had been
brought and shut up, so that his preservation was now to all appearance
hopeless. Interpreters, however, who hold that foundations is the proper
translation of the word, are not agreed as to the sense. Some explain it, that
he had not a single spot on which to fix his foot; others, that covenants which
ought to have stability, by being faithfully kept, had been often shamefully
violated by Saul. Some also understand it allegorically, as meaning that the
righteous priests of God, who were the pillars of the land, had been put to
death. But I have no doubt of its being a metaphor taken from buildings, which
must fall down and become a heap of ruins when their foundations are undermined;
and thus David complains, that, in the eyes of the world, he was utterly
overthrown, inasmuch as all that he possessed was completely destroyed. In the
last clause, he again repeats, that to be persecuted so cruelly was what he did
not deserve:What hath the
righteous one done? And he asserts his
own innocence, partly to comfort himself in his calamities from the testimony of
a good conscience, and partly to encourage himself in the hope of obtaining
deliverance. That which encouraged him to trust in God was the belief which he
entertained, that on account of the justice of his cause God was on his side,
and would be favorable to him.
Psalm
11:4-5
4. Jehovah is in the palace
of his holiness:Jehovah has his throne in heaven; his eyes
behold,
fa229 and his eyelids consider the children
of men. 5. Jehovah approves the righteous man; but his soul hateth the
ungodly, and him who loveth
iniquity.
4.
Jehovah is in the palace of
his holiness. In what follows, the
Psalmist glories in the assurance of the favor of God, of which I have spoken.
Being destitute of human aid, he betakes himself to the providence of God. It is
a signal proof of faith, as I have observed elsewhere, to take and to borrow, so
to speak,
fa230 light from heaven to guide us to the
hope of salvation, when we are surrounded in this world with darkness on every
side. All men acknowledge that the world is governed by the providence of God;
but when there comes some sad confusion of things, which disturbs their ease,
and involves them in difficulty, there are few who retain in their minds the
firm persuasion of this truth. But from the example of David, we ought to make
such account of the providence of God as to hope for a remedy from his judgment,
even when matters are in the most desperate condition. There is in the words an
implied contrast between heaven and earth; for if David's attention had been
fixed on the state of things in this world, as they appeared to the eye of sense
and reason, he would have seen no prospect of deliverance from his present
perilous circumstances. But this was not David's exercise; on the contrary, when
in the world all justice lies trodden under foot, and faithfulness has perished,
he reflects that God sits in heaven perfect and unchanged, from whom it became
him to look for the restoration of order from this state of miserable confusion.
He does not simply say that God dwells in heaven; but that he reigns there, as
it were, in a royal palace, and has his throne of judgment there. Nor do we
indeed render to him the honor which is his due, unless we are fully persuaded
that his judgment-seat is a sacred sanctuary for all who are in affliction and
unrighteously oppressed. When, therefore, deceit, craft, treachery, cruelty,
violence, and extortion, reign in the world; in short, when all things are
thrown into disorder and darkness by injustice and wickedness, let faith serve
as a lamp to enable us to behold God's heavenly throne, and let that sight
suffice to make us wait in patience for the restoration of things to a better
state. The temple of his
holiness, or his holy temple,
which is commonly taken for Sion, doubtless here signifies heaven;
and that it does so is clearly shown by the repetition in the next clause,
Jehovah has his throne in
Heaven; for it is certain David
expresses the same thing
twice.
His eyes
behold. Here he infers, from the
preceding sentence, that nothing is hidden from God, and that, therefore, men
will be obliged to render up to him an account of all that they have done. If
God reigns in heaven, and if his throne is erected there, it follows that he
must necessarily attend to the affairs of men, in order one day to sit in
judgment upon them. Epicurus, and such like him as would persuade themselves
that God is idle, and indulges in repose in heaven, may be said rather to spread
for him a couch on which to sleep than to erect for him a throne of judgment.
But it is the glory of our faith that God, the Creator of the world, does not
disregard or abandon the order which he himself at first established. And when
he suspends his judgments for a time, it becomes us to lean upon this one truth
that he beholds from heaven; just as we now see David contenting himself with
this consolatory consideration alone, that God rules over mankind, and observes
whatever is transacted in the world, although his knowledge, and the exercise of
his jurisdiction, are not at first sight apparent. This truth is still more
clearly explained in what is immediately added in the fifth verse, that God
distinguishes between the righteous and the unrighteous, and in such a way as
shows that he is not an idle spectator; for he is said
to approve the righteous, and to
hate the wicked. The Hebrew word
ˆjb,
bachan, which we have rendered to approve, often signifies to
examine or try. But in this passage I explain it as simply meaning,
that God so inquires into the cause of every man as to distinguish the righteous
from the wicked. It is farther declared, that God hates those who are set upon
the infliction of injuries, and upon doing mischief. As he has ordained mutual
intercourse between men, so he would have us to maintain it inviolable. In
order, therefore, to preserve this his own sacred and appointed order, he must
be the enemy of the wicked, who wrong and are troublesome to others. There is
also here contrasted God's hatred of the wicked, and wicked men's love of
iniquity, to teach us that those who please and flatter themselves in their
mischievous practices gain nothing by such flatteries, and only deceive
themselves.
Psalm
11:6-7
6. He will rain upon the
ungodly snares, fire and brimstone, and a storm of whirlwinds:this is the
portion of their cup. 7. For the righteous Jehovah loveth
righteousness;
fa231 his countenance approveth the
upright.
fa232
6.
He will rain upon the
ungodly. David now, in the last place,
lays it down as a certain truth, that although God, for a time, may be still and
delay his judgments, yet the hour of vengeance will assuredly come. Thus
we see how by degrees he rises up to the hope of a happy issue to his present
affliction, and he uses his efforts to attain this, that the social and moral
disorder, which he saw prevailing around him, might not weaken his faith. As the
tribunal of God remains firm and immovable, he, in the first place, sustains and
comforts himself from the consideration, that God from on high beholds all that
is done here below. In the next place, he considers what the office of judge
requires, from which he concludes, that the actions of men cannot escape the
inspection of God's omniscient eye, and that although he does not immediately
punish their evil deeds, he hates all the wicked. Finally, he adds, that since
God is armed with power, this hatred will not be in vain or ineffectual. Thus
while God defers the infliction of punishment, the knowledge of his justice will
have a powerful influence in maintaining our faith, until he actually show that
he has never departed from his watch-tower, from which he beholds the actions of
men.
fa233 He appropriately compares the
punishments which God inflicts to rain. As rain is not constant, but the Lord
sends it forth when he pleases; and, when the weather is calmest and most
serene, suddenly raises a storm of hail or violent showers of rain; in like
manner, it is here intimated that the vengeance which will be inflicted on the
wicked will come suddenly, so that, when they shall be indulging in mirth, and
intoxicated with their pleasures, and "when they shall say, Peace and safety,
sudden destruction will come upon
them."
fa234 At the same time, David here evidently
alludes to the destruction of Sodom and Gomorrah. As the prophets, when they
would promise the grace of God to the elect, remind them of the deliverance from
Egypt, which God wrought in behalf of his ancient people, so when they would
alarm the wicked, they threaten them with a destruction like that which befell
Sodom and Gomorrah, and they do so upon good grounds; since Jude, in his
Epistle, tells us that these cities "are set forth for an example,
suffering the vengeance of eternal fire,"
(<650107>Jude
1:7) The Psalmist, with much beauty and propriety, puts
snares
fa235 before fire and brimstone. We
see that the ungodly, while God spares them, fear nothing, but give themselves
ample scope in their wayward courses, like horses let
loose
fa236 in an open field; and then, if they see
any adversity impending over them, they devise for themselves ways of escape; in
short, they continually mock God, as if they could not be caught, unless he
first entangle and hold them fast in his snares. God, therefore, begins his
vengeance by snares, shutting up against the wicked every way of escape; and
when he has them entangled and bound, he thunders upon them dreadfully and
horribly, like as he consumed Sodom and the neighboring cities with fire from
heaven. The word
twp[lz,
zilaphoth, which we have rendered whirlwinds, is by some
translated kindlings or burnings; and by others, commotions
or terrors.
fa237 But the context requires the
interpretation which I have brought forward; for a tempest is raised by stormy
winds, and then follow thunder and
lightning.
The portion of
their cup. By this expression he
testifies that the judgments of God will certainly take effect, although ungodly
men may delude themselves by deceitful flattery. This metaphor is frequently to
be met with in the Scriptures. As the carnal mind believes nothing with greater
difficulty than that the calamities and miseries which seem to be fortuitous,
happen according to a just distribution from God, he represents himself under
the character of a householder, who distributes to each member his portion or
allowance. David, therefore, here intimates that there is certainly a reward
laid up for the ungodly; that it will be in vain for them to resist, when the
Lord shall reach to them the cup of his wrath to drink; and that the cup
prepared for them is not such as they may sip drop by drop, but a cup, the whole
of which they will be compelled to drink, as the prophet
threatens,
(<262334>Ezekiel
23:34) "Thou shalt drink it off even to the dregs."
7.
For the righteous Jehovah
loveth righteousness. The Psalmist has
just now reasoned from the office of God that he will punish the wicked, and
now, from the nature of God, he concludes, that he will be the defender of the
good and the upright. As he is righteous, David shows that, as the consequence
of this, he must love righteousness, for otherwise he would deny himself.
Besides, it would be a cold speculation to conceive of righteousness as inherent
in God, unless, at the same time, we could come to the settled conclusion that
God graciously owns whatever is his own, and furnishes evidence of this in the
government of the world. Some think that the abstract term righteousness
is put for righteous persons. But, in my opinion, the literal sense
is here more suitable, namely, that righteousness is well pleasing to God, and
that, therefore, he favors good causes. From this the Psalmist concludes, that
the upright are the objects of his
regard:His countenance approveth
the upright. He had said a little before
in a different sense, that God beholds the children of men, meaning that he will
judge the life of every man; but here he means that God graciously exercises a
special care over the upright and the sincere, takes them under his protection,
and keeps them in perfect safety. This conclusion of the psalm sufficiently
shows, that the scope of the whole of it was to make it manifest that all those
who, depending upon the grace of God, sincerely follow after righteousness,
shall be safe under his protection. The Psalmist himself was one of this number
and, indeed, the very chief of them. This last clause,
His countenance approveth the
upright, is, indeed, variously
explained; but the true meaning, I have no doubt, is, that God has always a
regard for the upright, and never turns away his eyes from them. It is a
strained interpretation to view the words as meaning that the upright shall
behold the face of God. But I will not stop to refute the opinions of other
men.
PSALM
12.
David, deploring the wretched and forlorn condition
of his people, and the utter overthrow of good order, beseeches God to afford
them speedy relief. Then, in order to comfort both himself and all the godly,
after having mentioned God's promise of assisting his people, he magnifies his
faithfulness and constancy in performing his promises. From this he concludes,
that at length God will deliver the godly, even when the world may be in a state
of the greatest corruption.
fa238
To the chief
musician upon the eighth. A song of David.
Psalm
12:1-2
1. Save me, O Jehovah; for
the merciful man hath failed, and the faithful are wasted away from among the
children of men, 2. Every one speaketh deceit [or falsehood] with his
neighbor; they speak with lips of flattery, with a double
heart.
fa239
To the chief
musician upon the eighth. With respect
to the word eighth, there are two opinions among interpreters. According
to some, it means a musical instrument; while others are rather inclined to
think that it is a tune. But as it is of no great importance which of these
opinions is adopted, I do not trouble myself much about this matter. The
conjecture of some, that it was the beginning of a song, does not seem to me to
be so probable as that it refers to the tune, and was intended to point out how
the psalm was to be sung.
fa240 In the commencement David complains
that the land was so overspread with wicked men, and persons who had broken
forth into the commission of every kind of wickedness, that the practice of
righteousness and justice had ceased, and none was found to defend the cause of
the good; in short, that there remained no longer either humanity or
faithfulness. It is probable that the Psalmist here speaks of the time when Saul
persecuted him, because then all, from the highest to the lowest, had conspired
to destroy an innocent and an afflicted man. It is a thing very distressing to
relate, and yet it was perfectly true, that righteousness was so utterly
overthrown among the chosen people of God, that all of them, with one consent,
from their hostility to a good and just cause, had broken forth into acts of
outrage and cruelty. David does not here accuse strangers or foreigners, but
informs us that this deluge of iniquity prevailed in the Church of God. Let the
faithful, therefore in our day, not be unduly discouraged at the melancholy
sight of a very corrupt and confused state of the world; but let them consider
that they ought to bear it patiently, seeing their condition is just like that
of David in time past. And it is to be observed, that, when David calls upon God
for succor, he encourages himself in the hope of obtaining it from this, that
there was no uprightness among men; so that from his example we may learn to
betake ourselves to God when we see nothing around us but black despair. We
ought to be fully persuaded of this, that the greater the confusion of things in
the world is, God is so much the readier to aid and succor his
people,
fa241 and that it is then the most proper
season for him to interpose his
assistance.
1.
The merciful man hath
failed. Some think that this is a
complaint that the righteous had been unjustly put to death; as if the Psalmist
had said, Saul has cruelly cut off all who observed justice and faithfulness.
But I would understand the words in a simpler sense, as meaning that there is no
longer any beneficence or truth remaining among men. He has expressed in these
two words in what true righteousness consists. As there are two kinds of
unrighteousness, violence and deceit; so men live righteously when, in their
intercourse with each other, they conscientiously abstain from doing any wrong
or injury to one another, and cultivate peace and mutual friendship; when they
are neither lions nor foxes. When, however, we see the world in such a state of
disorder as is here described, and are afflicted thereby, we ought to be careful
not to howl with the wolves, nor to suffer ourselves to be carried away with the
dissipation and overflowing flood of iniquity which we see prevailing around us,
but should rather imitate the example of
David.
2.
Every man speaketh deceit. David in this
verse sets forth that part of unrighteousness which is contrary to truth. He
says that there is no sincerity or uprightness in their speech, because the
great object upon which they are bent is to deceive. He next describes the
manner in which they deceive, namely, that every man endeavors to ensnare his
neighbor by flattery.
fa242 He also points out the fountain and
first cause of this, They speak
with a double heart. This doubleness of
heart, as I may term it, makes men double and variable in their speech, in order
thereby to disguise themselves in different
ways,
fa243 or to make themselves appear to others
different from what they really are. Hence the Hebrew word
twqlj,
chalakoth, which denotes flattery, is derived from a word which signifies
division. As those who are resolved to act truthfully in their
intercourse with their neighbors, freely and ingenuously lay open their whole
heart; so treacherous and deceitful persons keep a part of their feeling hidden
within their own breasts, and cover it with the varnish of hypocrisy and a fair
outside; so that from their speech we cannot gather any thing certain with
respect to their intentions. Our speech, therefore, must be sincere in order
that it may be as it were a mirror, in which the uprightness of our heart may be
beheld.
Psalm
12:3-4
3. Let Jehovah cut off all
flattering tips, and the tongue that speaketh great [or proud] things:4.
Those who have said we will be strengthened by our tongues; our lips are in our
own power:who is lord over us ?
To his
complaint in the preceding verse he now subjoins an imprecation, that God would
cut off deceitful tongues. It is uncertain whether he wishes that deceitful men
may be utterly destroyed, or only that the means of doing mischief may be taken
from them; but the scope of the passage leads us rather to adopt the first
sense, and to view David as desiring that God, by some means or other, would
remove that plague out of the way. As he makes no mention of malice, while he
inveighs so vehemently against their envenomed tongues, we hence conclude, that
he had suffered much more injury from the latter than from the former; and
certainly falsehood and calumnies are more deadly than swords and all other kind
of weapons. From the second clause of the third verse it appears more clearly
what kind of flatterers they were of whom mention was made in the preceding
verse:The tongue that speaketh
great or proud things. Some flatter in a
slavish and fulsome manner, declaring that they are ready to do and suffer any
thing which they possibly can for our benefit. But David here speaks of another
kind of flatterers, namely, those who in flattering proudly boast of what they
will accomplish, and mingle base effrontery and threatening with their deceitful
arts. He does not, therefore, speak of the herd of mean conceited persons among
the common people who make a trade of flattering, that they may live at other
people's expense;
fa244 but he points his imprecation against
the great calumniators of the court to which he was
attached,
fa245 who not only insinuated themselves by
gentle arts, but also lied designedly in boasting of themselves, and in the big
and haughty discourse with which they overwhelmed the poor and
simple.
fa246
This the Psalmist confirms more
fully in the following verse:Who
have said, we will be strengthened by our
tongues. Those must be possessed of
great authority who think that, in the very falsehood to which they are
addicted, they have enough of strength to accomplish their purposes, and to
protect themselves. It is the utmost height of wickedness for persons to break
out into such presumption, that they scruple not to overthrow all law and equity
by their arrogant and boasting language; for, in doing this, it is just as if
they openly declared war against God himself. Some read, we will strengthen
our tongues. This reading is passable, in so far as the sense is concerned,
but it scarcely agrees with the rules of grammar, because the letter
l,
lamed, is added. Moreover, the sense which is more suitable is this:that
the wicked persons spoken of being armed with their tongues, go beyond all
bounds, and think they can accomplish by this means whatever they please; just
as this set of men so deform every thing with their calumnies, that they would
almost cover the sun himself with
darkness.
Psalm
12:5-6
5. Because of the
spoiling
fa247 of the needy, because of the groaning
of the poor, I will now arise, Jehovah will say; I will set in safety him whom
he snareth.
fa248 6. The words of Jehovah are pure
words:silver melted in an excellent crucible of earth, purified seven
times.
5.
Because of the spoiling of
the needy. David now sets before himself
as matter of consolation, the truth that God will not suffer the wicked thus to
make havoc without end and measure. The more effectually to establish himself
and others in the belief of this truth, he introduces God himself as speaking.
The expression is more emphatic when God is represented as coming forward and
declaring with his own mouth that he is come to deliver the poor and distressed.
There is also great emphasis in the adverb now, by which God intimates
that, although our safety is in his hand, and, therefore, in secure keeping, yet
he does not immediately grant deliverance from affliction; for his words imply
that he had hitherto been, as it were, lying still and asleep, until he was
awakened by the calamities and the cries of his people. When, therefore, the
injuries, the extortions, and the devastations of our enemies leave us nothing
but tears and groans, let us remember that now the time is at hand when God
intends to rise up to execute judgment. This doctrine should also serve to
produce in us patience, and prevent us from taking it ill, that we are reckoned
among the number of the poor and afflicted, whose cause God promises to take
into his own hand.
With respect to the meaning
of the second clause of the verse, expositors differ. According to some, to
set in safety, means the same thing as to give or bring safety, as if
the letter
b,
beth, which signifies in, were superfluous. But the language rather
contains a promise to grant to those who are unjustly oppressed, full
restitution. What follows is attended with more difficulty. The word
hwp,
phuach, which we have rendered to lay snares for, sometimes signifies
to blow out, or to puff, — at other times to
ensnare, or to lay snares for; and sometimes, also, to speak.
Those who think it is here put for to speak also differ among
themselves with respect to the meaning. Some render it God will speak to
himself; that is to say, God will determine with himself; but as the
Psalmist had already declared the determination of God, this would be an
unnecessary and vain repetition. Others refer it to the language of the godly,
as if David introduced them speaking one to another concerning the faithfulness
and stability of the promises of God; for with this word they connect the
following sentence, The words of
the Lord are pure words, etc. But this
view is even more strained than the preceding. The opinion of others, who
suppose, that to the determination of God to arise, there is subjoined
the language which is addressed to the godly, is more admissible. It would not
be sufficient for God to determine with himself what he would do for our safety,
if he did not speak to us expressly, and by name. It is only when God makes us
to understand, by his own voice, that he will be gracious to us, that we can
entertain the hope of salvation. God, it is true, speaks also to unbelievers,
but without producing any good effect, seeing they are deaf; just as when he
treats them with gentleness and liberality, it is without effect, because they
are stupid, and devour his benefits without any sense of their coming from him.
But as I perceive that under the word
rmay,
yomar, will say, the promises of God may be suitably and properly
comprehended, to avoid a repetition of the same thing, I adopt without
hesitation the sense of the last clause, which I have given in the translation,
namely, that God declares he will arise to restore to safety those who seem on
all sides to be environed by the snares of their enemies, and even caught in
them. The import of the language is this:The ungodly may hold the poor and
afflicted entangled in their snares as a prey which they have caught; but I will
set them in safety. If it should be replied, that the reading in the Hebrew is
not for whom, but for him, I would observe, that it is no new
thing for these words, him, for him, to be used instead of whom
and for whom.
fa249 If any one prefer the sense of
puffing at, I am not disposed greatly to oppose him. According to this
reading, David would elegantly taunt the pride of the ungodly, who confidently
imagine they can do any thing,
fa250 even with their breath, as we have seen
in the tenth psalm, at the fifth
verse.
6.
The words of
Jehovah. The Psalmist now declares, that
God is sure, faithful, and steadfast in his promises. But the insertion by the
way of this commendation of the word of God would be to no purpose, if he had
not first called himself, and other believers, to meditate on God's promises in
their afflictions. Accordingly, the order of the Psalmist is to be attended to,
namely, that, after telling us how God gives to his servants the hope of speedy
deliverance, even in their deepest distresses, he now adds, to support their
faith and hope, that God promises nothing in vain, or for the purpose of
disappointing man. This, at first sight, seems a matter of small importance; but
if any person consider more closely and attentively how prone the minds of men
are to distrust and ungodly doubtings, he will easily perceive how requisite it
is for our faith to be supported by this assurance, that God is not deceitful,
that he does not delude or beguile us with empty words, and that he does not
magnify beyond all measure either his power or his goodness, but that whatever
he promises in word he will perform in deed. There is no man, it is true, who
will not frankly confess that he entertains the same conviction which David here
records, that the words of
Jehovah are pure; but those who while
lying in the shade and living at their ease liberally extol by their praises the
truth of God's word, when they come to struggle with adversity in good earnest,
although they may not venture openly to pour forth blasphemies against God,
often charge him with not keeping his word. Whenever he delays his assistance,
we call in question his fidelity to his promises and murmur just as if he had
deceived us. There is no truth which is more generally received among men than
that God is true; but there are few who frankly give him credit for this when
they are in adversity. It is, therefore, highly necessary for us to cut off the
occasion of our distrust; and whenever any doubt respecting the faithfulness of
God's promises steals in upon us, we ought immediately to lift up against it
this shield, that the words of the Lord are pure. The similitude of silver,
which the Psalmist subjoins, is indeed far below the dignity and excellence
of so great a subject; but it is very well adapted to the measure of our limited
and imperfect understanding. Silver, if thoroughly refined, is valued at a high
price amongst us. But we are far from manifesting for the word of God, the price
of which is inestimable, an equal regard; and its purity is of less account with
us than that of a corruptible metal. Yea, a great many coin mere dross in their
own brain, by which to efface or obscure the brightness which shines in the word
of God. The word
lyl[b,
baälil, which we have translated crucible, is interpreted by
many prince, or lord, as if it were a simple word. According to
them, the meaning would be, that the word of God is like the purest silver, from
which the dross has been completely removed with the greatest art and care, not
for common use, but for the service of a great lord or prince of some country.
I, however, rather agree with others who consider that
lyl[b,
baälil, is a word compounded of the letter
b,
beth, which signifies in, and the noun
lyl[,
alil, which signifies a clean or well polished vessel or
crucible.
Psalm
12:7-8
7. Thou, O Jehovah, wilt keep
them; thou wilt preserve him from this generation for ever. 8. The
ungodly walk about on every side; when they are exalted, there is reproach to
the children of
men.
7.
Thou, O Jehovah. Some think that the
language of the Psalmist here is that of renewed prayer; and they, therefore,
understand the words as expressive of his desire, and translate them in the
optative mood, thus, Do thou, O
Jehovah, keep
them.
fa251 But I am rather of opinion that David,
animated with holy confidence, boasts of the certain safety of all the godly, of
whom God, who neither can deceive nor lie, avows himself to be the guardian. At
the same time, I do not altogether disapprove of the interpretation which views
David as renewing his supplications at the throne of grace. Some give this
exposition of the passage, Thou
wilt keep them, namely, thy
words;
fa252 but this does not seem to me to be
suitable. fa253
David, I have no doubt, returns to speak of
the poor, of whom he had spoken in the preceding part of the psalm. With respect
to his changing the number, (for, he says first,
Thou wilt keep
them, and, next,
Thou wilt preserve
him
fa254 it is a thing quite common in
Hebrew, and the sense is not thereby rendered ambiguous. These two sentences,
therefore, Thou wilt keep
them, and
Thou wilt preserve
him, signify the same thing, unless,
perhaps, we may say that, in the second, under the person of one man, the
Psalmist intends to point out the small number of good men. To suppose this is
not unreasonable or improbable; and, according to this view, the import of his
language is, Although only one good man should be left alive in the world, yet
he would be kept in perfect safety by the grace and protection of God. But as
the Jews, when they speak generally, often change the number, I leave my readers
freely to form their own judgment. This, indeed, cannot be controverted, that by
the word generation, or race, is denoted a great multitude of
ungodly persons, and almost the whole body of the people. As the Hebrew word
rwd,
dor, signifies as well the men who live in the same age, as the space of
time itself, David, without doubt, here means that the servants of God cannot
escape, and continue safe, unless God defend them against the malice of the
whole people, and deliver them from the wicked and perverse men of the age in
which they live. Whence we learn that the world, at that time, was so corrupt,
that David, by way of reproach, puts them all, as it were, into one bundle.
Moreover, it is of importance again to remember what we have already stated,
that he does not here speak of foreign nations, but of the Israelites, and God's
chosen people. It is well to mark this carefully, that we may not be discouraged
by the vast multitude of the ungodly, if we should sometimes see an immense heap
of chaff upon the barn-floor of the Lord, while only a few grains of corn lie
hidden underneath. And then, however small may be the number of the good, let
this persuasion be deeply fixed in our minds, that God will be their protector,
and that for ever. The word
µlw[l,
leolam, which signifies for ever, is added, that we may learn to
extend our confidence in God far into the future, seeing he commands us to hope
for succor from him, not only once, or for one day, but as long as the
wickedness of our enemies continues its work of mischief. We are,
however, from this passage, at the same time, admonished that war is not
prepared against us for a short time only, but that we must daily engage in the
conflict. And if the guardianship which God exercises over the faithful is
sometimes hidden, and is not manifest in its effects, let them wait in patience
until he arise; and the greater the flood of calamities which overflows them,
let them keep themselves so much the more in the exercise of godly fear and
solicitude.
8.
The ungodly walk about on
every side. The Hebrew word
bybs,
sabib, which we have translated on every side, signifies a
circuit, or a going round; and, therefore, some explain it
allegorically thus:the ungodly seize upon all the defiles or narrow parts of
roads, in order to shut up or besiege the good on all sides; and others expound
it even more ingeniously, thus:that they lay snares by indirect means, and by
inventions full of art and deception. But I think the simple meaning is, that
they possess the whole land, and range about through every part of it; as if the
Psalmist had said, Wherever I turn my eyes, I see troops of them on every side.
In the next clause he complains that mankind are shamefully and basely oppressed
by their tyranny. This is the meaning, provided the clause is read as a distinct
one by itself, separate from the preceding, a point about which interpreters
differ, although this view seems to come nearer to the mind of the inspired
writer. Some render the verse in one continuous sentence, thus:The ungodly
fly about every where, when the reproaches among the children of men (that
is to say, when the worthless and the refuse of men) are exalted, an
exposition which is not unsuitable. It commonly happens, that as diseases flow
from the head into the members, so corruptions proceed from princes, and infect
the whole people. As, however, the former exposition is more generally received,
and the most learned grammarians tell us that the Hebrew word
twlz,
zuluth, which we have translated reproach, is a noun of the
singular number, I have adopted the former exposition, not that I am
dissatisfied with the latter, but because we must needs choose the one or the
other.
PSALM
13.
The subject of this psalm is almost the same as that
of the preceding. David, being afflicted, not only with the deepest distress,
but also feeling himself, as it were, overwhelmed by a long succession of
calamities and multiplied afflictions, implores the aid and succor of God, the
only remedy which remained for him; and, in the close, taking courage, he
entertains the assured hope of life from the promise of God, even amidst the
terrors of death.
To the chief
musician. A song of David.
Psalm
13:1-2
1. How long, O Jehovah, wilt
thou forget me, for ever? How long wilt thou hide thy face from me? 2.
How long shall I take counsel in my soul? and have sorrow in my heart daily? how
long shall mine enemy be exalted over me
?
1.
How long, O
Jehovah. It is very true that David was
so greatly hated by the generality of people, on account of the calumnies and
false reports which had been circulated against him, that almost all men judged
that God was not less hostile to him than
Saul
fa255 and his other enemies were. But here he
speaks not so much according to the opinion of others, as according to the
feeling of his own mind, when he complains of being neglected by God. Not that
the persuasion of the truth of God's promises was extinguished in his heart, or
that he did not repose himself on his grace; but when we are for a long time
weighed down by calamities, and when we do not perceive any sign of divine aid,
this thought unavoidably forces itself upon us, that God has forgotten us. To
acknowledge in the midst of our afflictions that God has really a care about us,
is not the usual way with men, or what the feelings of nature would prompt; but
by faith we apprehend his invisible providence. Thus, it seemed to David, so far
as could be judged from beholding the actual state of his affairs, that he was
forsaken of God. At the same time, however, the eyes of his mind, guided by the
light of faith, penetrated even to the grace of God, although it was hidden in
darkness. When he saw not a single ray of good hope to whatever quarter he
turned, so far as human reason could judge, constrained by grief, he cries out
that God did not regard him; and yet by this very complaint he gives evidence
that faith enabled him to rise higher, and to conclude, contrary to the judgment
of the flesh, that his welfare was secure in the hand of God. Had it been
otherwise, how could he direct his groanings and prayers to him? Following this
example, we must so wrestle against temptations as to be assured by faith, even
in the very midst of the conflict, that the calamities which urge us to despair
must be overcome; just as we see that the infirmity of the flesh could not
hinder David from seeking God, and having recourse to him:and thus he has united
in his exercise, very beautifully, affections which are apparently contrary to
each other. The words, How long,
for ever? are a defective form of
expression; but they are much more emphatic than if he had put the question
according to the usual mode of speaking, Why for so long a time? By
speaking thus, he gives us to understand, that for the purpose of cherishing his
hope, and encouraging himself in the exercise of patience, he extended his view
to a distance, and that, therefore, he does not complain of a calamity of a few
days' duration, as the effeminate and the cowardly are accustomed to do, who see
only what is before their feet, and immediately succumb at the first assault. He
teaches us, therefore, by his example, to stretch our view as far as possible
into the future, that our present grief may not entirely deprive us of
hope.
2.
How long shall I take counsel
in my soul? We know that men in
adversity give way to discontent, and look around them, first to one quarter,
and then to another, in search of remedies. Especially, upon seeing that they
are destitute of all resources, they torment themselves greatly, and are
distracted by a multitude of thoughts; and in great dangers, anxiety and fear
compel them to change their purposes from time to time, when they do not find
any plan upon which they can fix with certainty. David, therefore, complains,
that while thinking of different methods of obtaining relief, and deliberating
with himself now in one way, and now in another, he is exhausted to no purpose
with the multitude of suggestions which pass through his mind; and by joining to
this complaint the sorrow which he felt daily, he points out the source
of this disquietude. As in severe sickness the diseased would desire to change
their place every moment, and the more acute the pains which afflict them are,
the more fitful and eager are they in shifting and changing; so, when sorrow
seizes upon the hearts of men, its miserable victims are violently agitated
within, and they find it more tolerable to torment themselves without obtaining
relief, than to endure their afflictions with composed and tranquil minds. The
Lord, indeed, promises to give to the faithful "the spirit of counsels"
(<231102>Isaiah
11:2) but he does not always give it to them at the very beginning of any matter
in which they are interested, but suffers them for a time to be embarrassed by
long deliberation without coming to a determinate
decision,
fa256 or to be perplexed, as if they were
entangled among thorns, not knowing whither to
turn,
fa257 or what course to take. Some explain
the Hebrew word
µmwy,
yomam, as meaning all the day long. But it seems to me, that by it
is rather meant another kind of continuance, namely, that his sorrow returned,
and was renewed every day. In the end of the verse he deplores another evil,
that his adversaries triumph over him the more boldly, when they see him wholly
enfeebled, and as it were wasted by continual languor. Now this is an argument
of great weight in our prayers; for there is nothing which is more displeasing
to God, and which he will less bear with, than the cruel insolence which our
enemies display, when they not only feast themselves by beholding us in misery,
but also rise up the higher against us, and treat us the more disdainfully, the
more they see us oppressed and
afflicted.
Psalm
13:3-4
3. Behold, [or look upon me,]
answer me, O Jehovah my God; enlighten mine eyes, lest I sleep in death;
4. Lest my enemy say, I have prevailed against him; and those who afflict
me rejoice if I should fall.
3.
Look upon me, answer
me. As when God does not promptly afford
assistance to his servants, it seems to the eye of sense that he does not behold
their necessities, David, for this reason, asks God, in the first place, to look
upon him, and, in the second place, to succor him. Neither of these things, it
is true, is prior or posterior in respect of God; but it has been already stated
in a preceding psalm, and we will have occasion afterwards frequently to repeat
the statement, that the Holy Spirit purposely accommodates to our understanding
the models of prayer recorded in Scripture. If David had not been persuaded that
God had his eyes upon him, it would have availed him nothing to cry to God; but
this persuasion was the effect of faith. In the meantime, until God actually
puts forth his hand to give relief, carnal reason suggests to us that he shuts
his eyes, and does not behold us. The manner of expression here employed amounts
to the same thing as if he had put the mercy of God in the first place, and then
added to it his assistance, because God then hears us, when, having compassion
upon us, he is moved and induced to succor us. To enlighten the eyes
signifies the same thing in the Hebrew language as to give the breath of
life, for the rigour of life appears chiefly in the eyes. In this sense Solomon
says,
"The poor and the
deceitful man meet together; the Lord lighteneth both their eyes."
(<202913>Proverbs
29:13)
And when Jonathan fainted for hunger, the sacred
history relates that his eyes were overcast with dimness; and again, that when
he had tasted of the honeycomb, his eyes were enlightened,
(<091427>1
Samuel 14:27.) The word sleep, as it is used in this passage, is a
metaphor of a similar kind, being put for death. In short, David confesses, that
unless God cause the light of life to shine upon him, he will be immediately
overwhelmed with the darkness of death, and that he is already as a man without
life, unless God breathe into him new vigor. And certainly our confidence of
life depends on this, that although the world may threaten us with a thousand
deaths, yet God is possessed of numberless means of restoring us to
life.
fa258
4.
Lest my
enemy. David again repeats what he had a
little before said concerning the pride of his enemies, namely, how it would be
a thing ill becoming the character of God were he to abandon his servant to the
mockery of the ungodly. David's enemies lay, as it were, in ambush watching the
hour of his ruin, that they might deride him when they saw him fall. And as it
is the peculiar office of God to repress the audacity and insolence of the
wicked, as often as they glory in their wickedness, David beseeches God to
deprive them of the opportunity of indulging in such boasting. It is, however,
to be observed, that he had in his conscience a sufficient testimony to his own
integrity, and that he trusted also in the goodness of his cause, so that it
would have been unbecoming and unreasonable had he been left without succor in
danger, and had he been overwhelmed by his enemies. We can, therefore, with
confidence pray for ourselves, in the manner in which David here does for
himself, only when we fight under the standard of God, and are obedient to his
orders, so that our enemies cannot obtain the victory over us without wickedly
triumphing over God himself.
Psalm
13:5
5. But I trust in thy goodness;
my heart shall exult in thy salvation. I will sing unto the Lord, because he
hath dealt bountifully with me.
fa259
The Psalmist does not as yet
feel how much he has profited by praying; but depending upon the hope of
deliverance, which the faithful promise of God enabled him to entertain, he
makes use of this hope as a shield to repel those temptations with the terror of
which he might be greatly distressed. Although, therefore, he is severely
afflicted, and a multiplicity of cares urge him to despair, he, notwithstanding,
declares it to be his resolution to continue firm in his reliance upon the grace
of God, and in the hope of salvation. With the very same confidence ought all
the godly to be furnished and sustained, that they may duly persevere in prayer.
Whence, also, we gather what I have formerly adverted to, that it is by faith we
apprehend the grace of God, which is hidden from and unknown to the
understanding of the flesh. As the verbs which the Psalmist uses are not put in
the same tense, different meanings may be drawn from the different tenses; but
David, I have no doubt, here wishes to testify that he continued firm in the
hope of the deliverance promised to him, and would continue so even to the end,
however heavy the burden of temptations which might press upon him. Accordingly,
the word exult is put in the future tense, to denote the continued
exercise of the affection spoken of, and that no affliction shall ever shake out
of his heart the joy of faith. It is to be observed, that he places the
goodness of God first in order, as being the cause of his deliverance, —
I will sing unto the
Lord. I translate this into the future
tense. David, it is true, had not yet obtained what he earnestly desired, but
being fully convinced that God was already at hand to grant him deliverance, he
pledges himself to give thanks to him for it. And surely it becomes us to engage
in prayer in such a frame of mind as at the same time to be ready to sing the
praises of God; a thing which is impossible, unless we are fully persuaded that
our prayers will not be ineffectual. We may not be wholly free from sorrow, but
it is nevertheless necessary that this cheerfulness of faith rise above it, and
put into our mouth a song on account of the joy which is reserved for us in the
future although not as yet experienced by
us;
fa260 just as we see David here preparing
himself to celebrate in songs the grace of God, before he perceives the issue of
his troubles. The word
lmg,
gamal,
fa261 which others render to
reward, signifies nothing else here than to bestow a benefit from pure
grace, and this is its meaning in many other passages of Scripture. What
kind of thanksgiving, I pray you to consider, would that be, to say that God
rewarded and rendered to his servant due recompense? This is sufficient to
refute the absurd and trifling sophism of those who wrest this passage to prove
the merit of works. In short, the only thing which remains to be observed is,
that David, in hastening with promptitude of soul to sing of God's benefits
before he had received them, places the deliverance, which was then apparently
at a distance, immediately before his eyes.
PSALM
14.
In the beginning the Psalmist describes the wicked
contempt of God into which almost the whole people had broken forth. To give the
greater weight to his complaint, he represents God himself as uttering it.
Afterwards he comforts himself and others with the hope of a remedy, which he
assures himself God will very soon provide, although, in the meantime, he groans
and feels deep distress at the disorder which he
beholds. fa262
To the chief
musician of David.
Psalm
14:1
1. The fool hath said in his
heart, There is no God; they have
corrupted;
fa263, They have done abominable work; there
is none that doeth good.
Many of the Jews
are of opinion that in this psalm there is given forth a prediction concerning
the future oppression of their nation:as if David, by the revelation of the Holy
Spirit, bewailed the afflicted condition of the Church of God under the tyranny
of the Gentiles. They therefore refer what is here spoken to the dispersed
condition in which we see them at the present day, as if they were that precious
heritage of God which the wild beasts devour. But it is very apparent, that in
wishing to cover the disgrace of their nation, they wrest and apply to the
Gentiles, without any just ground, what is said concerning the perverse children
of Abraham.
fa264 We cannot certainly find a better
qualified interpreter than the Apostle Paul, and he applies this psalm expressly
to the people who lived under the law,
(<450319>Romans
3:19.) Besides, although we had not the testimony of this Apostle, the structure
of the psalm very clearly shows that David means rather the domestic tyrants and
enemies of the faithful than foreign ones; a point which it is very necessary
for us to understand. We know that it is a temptation which pains us
exceedingly, to see wickedness breaking forth and prevailing in the midst of the
Church, the good and the simple unrighteously afflicted, while the wicked
cruelly domineer according to their pleasure. This sad spectacle almost
completely disheartens us; and, therefore, we have much need to be fortified
from the example which David here sets before us:so that, in the midst of the
greatest desolations which we behold in the Church, we may comfort ourselves
with this assurance, that God will finally deliver her from them. I have no
doubt that there is here described the disordered and desolate state of Judea
which Saul introduced when he began to rage openly. Then, as if the remembrance
of God had been extinguished from the minds of men, all piety had vanished, and
with respect to integrity or uprightness among men, there was just as little of
it as of godliness.
The fool
hath said. As the Hebrew word
lbn,
nabal, signifies not only a fool, but also a perverse, vile, and
contemptible person, it would not have been unsuitable to have translated it so
in this place; yet I am content to follow the more generally received
interpretation, which is, that all profane persons, who have cast off all fear
of God and abandoned themselves to iniquity, are convicted of madness. David
does not bring against his enemies the charge of common foolishness, but rather
inveighs against the folly and insane hardihood of those whom the world accounts
eminent for their wisdom. We commonly see that those who, in the estimation both
of themselves and of others, highly excel in sagacity and wisdom, employ their
cunning in laying snares, and exercise the ingenuity of their minds in despising
and mocking God. It is therefore important for us, in the first place, to know,
that however much the world applaud these crafty and scoffing characters, who
allow themselves to indulge to any extent in wickedness, yet the Holy Spirit
condemns them as being fools; for there is no stupidity more brutish than
forgetfulness of God. We ought, however, at the same time, carefully to mark the
evidence on which the Psalmist comes to the conclusion that they have cast off
all sense of religion, and it is this:that they have overthrown all order, so
that they no longer make any distinction between right and wrong, and have no
regard for honesty, nor love of humanity. David, therefore, does not speak of
the hidden affection of the heart of the wicked, except in so far as they
discover themselves by their external actions. The import of his language is,
How does it come to pass, that these men indulge themselves in their lusts so
boldly and so outrageously, that they pay no regard to righteousness or equity;
in short, that they madly rush into every kind of wickedness, if it is not
because they have shaken off all sense of religion, and extinguished, as far as
they can, all remembrance of God from their minds? When persons retain in their
heart any sense of religion, they must necessarily have some modesty, and be in
some measure restrained and prevented from entirely disregarding the dictates of
their conscience. From this it follows, that when the ungodly allow themselves
to follow their own inclinations, so obstinately and audaciously as they are
here represented as doing, without any sense of shame, it is an evidence that
they have cast off all fear of God.
The Psalmist
says that they speak in their
heart. They may not utter this
detestable blasphemy, There is no
God, with their mouths; but the
unbridled licentiousness of their life loudly and distinctly declares that in
their hearts, which are destitute of all godliness, they soothingly sing to
themselves this song. Not that they maintain, by drawn out arguments or formal
syllogisms, as they term them, that there is no God, (for to render them so much
the more inexcusable, God from time to time causes even the most wicked of men
to feel secret pangs of conscience, that they may be compelled to acknowledge
his majesty and sovereign power;) but whatever right knowledge God instils into
them they partly stifle it by their malice against him, and partly corrupt it,
until religion in them becomes torpid, and at last dead. They may not plainly
deny the existence of a God, but they imagine him to be shut up in heaven, and
divested of his righteousness and power; and this is just to fashion an idol in
the room of God. As if the time would never come when they will have to appear
before him in judgment,
fa265 they endeavor, in all the transactions
and concerns of their life, to remove him to the greatest distance, and to
efface from their minds all apprehension of his
majesty.
fa266 And when God is dragged from his
throne, and divested of his character as judge, impiety has come to its utmost
height; and, therefore, we must conclude that David has most certainly spoken
according to truth, in declaring that those who give themselves liberty to
commit all manner of wickedness, in the flattering hope of escaping with
impunity, deny in their heart that there is a God. As the fifty-third psalm,
with the exception of a few words which are altered in it, is just a repetition
of this psalm, I will show in the proper places, as we proceed, the difference
which there is between the two psalms. David here complains that they have done
abominable
work; but for the word work, the
term there employed is iniquity. It should be observed that David does
not speak of one work or of two; but as he had said, that they have perverted or
corrupted all lawful order, so now he adds, that they have so polluted
their whole life, as to make it abominable, and the proof of this which he
adduces is, that they have no regard to uprightness in their dealings with one
another, but have forgotten all humanity, and all beneficence towards their
fellow-creatures.
Psalm
14:2-3
2. Jehovah looked down from
heaven upon the children of men, to see whether there were any that did
understand, and seek after God. 3. Every one of them has gone aside, they
have altogether become putrid, [or rotten;] there is none that doeth good, not
even
one,
2.
Jehovah looked down from heaven. God
himself is here introduced as speaking on the subject of human depravity, and
this renders the discourse of David more emphatic than if he had pronounced the
sentence in his own person. When God is exhibited to us as sitting on his throne
to take cognisance of the conduct of men, unless we are stupified in an
extraordinary degree, his majesty must strike us with terror. The effect of the
habit of sinning is, that men grow hardened in their sins, and discern nothing,
as if they were enveloped in thick darkness. David, therefore, to teach them
that they gain nothing by flattering and deceiving themselves as they do, when
wickedness reigns in the world with impunity, testifies that God looks down from
heaven, and casts his eyes on all sides, for the purpose of knowing what is done
among men. God, it is true, has no need to make inquisition or search; but when
he compares himself to an earthly judge, it is in adaptation to our limited
capacity, and to enable us gradually to form some apprehension of his secret
providence, which our reason cannot all at once comprehend. Would to God that
this manner of speaking had the effect of teaching us to summon ourselves before
his tribunal; and that, while the world are flattering themselves, and the
reprobate are trying to bury their sins in forgetfulness by their want of
thought, hypocrisy, or shamelessness, and are blinded in their obstinacy as if
they were intoxicated, we might be led to shake off all indifference and
stupidity by reflecting on this truth, that God, notwithstanding, looks down
from his high throne in heaven, and beholds what is going on here
below!
To see if there were
any that did understand. As the whole
economy of a good and righteous life depends upon our being governed and
directed by the light of understanding, David has justly taught us in the
beginning of the psalm, that folly is the root of all wickedness. And in this
clause he also very justly declares, that the commencement of integrity and
uprightness of life consists in an enlightened and sound mind. But as the
greater part misapply their intellectual powers to deceitful purposes, David
immediately after defines, in one word, what true understanding is, namely, that
it consists in seeking after God; by which he means, that unless men
devote themselves wholly to God, their life cannot be well ordered. Some
understand the word
lykçm,
maskil, which we translated, that did understand, in too
restricted a sense; whereas David declares that the reprobate are utterly
destitute of all reason and
judgment.
Every one of them
has gone aside. Some translate the word
rs,
sar, which is here used, to
stink,
fa267 as if the reading were, Every
one of them emits an offensive odour, that it may correspond in meaning with
the verb in the next clause, which in Hebrew signifies to become putrid
or rotten. But there is no necessity for explaining the two words in
the same way, as if the same thing were repeated twice. The interpretation is
more appropriate, which supposes that men are here condemned as guilty of a
detestable revolt, inasmuch as they are estranged from God, or have departed far
from him; and that afterwards there is pointed out the disgusting corruption or
putrescence of their whole life, as if nothing could proceed from apostates but
what smells rank of rottenness and infection. The Hebrew word
rs,
sar, is almost universally taken in this sense. In the 53rd Psalm, the
word
gs,
sag, is used, which signifies the same thing. In short, David declares that
all men are so carried away by their capricious lusts, that nothing is to be
found either of purity or integrity in their whole life. This, therefore, is
defection so complete, that it extinguishes all godliness. Besides, David here
not only censures a portion of the people, but pronounces them all to be equally
involved in the same condemnation. This was, indeed, a prodigy well fitted to
excite abhorrence, that all the children of Abraham, whom God had chosen to be
his peculiar people, were so corrupt from the least to the
greatest.
But it might be asked, how David makes
no exception, how he declares that not a righteous person remains, not even
one, when, nevertheless, he informs us, a little after, that the poor and
afflicted put their trust in God? Again, it might be asked, if all were wicked,
who was that Israel whose future redemption he celebrates in the end of the
psalm? Nay, as he himself was one of the body of that people, why does he not at
least except himself? I answer:It is against the carnal and degenerate body of
the Israelitish nation that he here inveighs, and the small number constituting
the seed which God had set apart for himself is not included among them. This is
the reason why Paul, in his Epistle to the
<450310>Romans
3:10, extends this sentence to all mankind. David, it is true, deplores the
disordered and desolate state of matters under the reign of Saul. At the same
time, however, he doubtless makes a comparison between the children of God and
all who have not been regenerated by the Spirit, but are carried away according
to the inclinations of their flesh.
fa268 Some give a different explanation,
maintaining that Paul, by quoting the testimony of David, did not understand him
as meaning that men are naturally depraved and corrupt; and that the truth which
David intended to teach is, that the rulers and the more distinguished of the
people were wicked, and that, therefore, it was not surprising to behold
unrighteousness and wickedness prevailing so generally in the world. This answer
is far from being satisfactory. The subject which Paul there reasons upon is
not, what is the character of the greater part of men, but what is the character
of all who are led and governed by their own corrupt nature. It is, therefore,
to be observed, that when David places himself and the small remnant of the
godly on one side, and puts on the other the body of the people, in general,
this implies that there is a manifest difference between the children of God who
are created anew by his Spirit, and all the posterity of Adam, in whom
corruption and depravity exercise dominion. Whence it follows, that all of us,
when we are born, bring with us from our mother's womb this folly and filthiness
manifested in the whole life, which David here describes, and that we continue
such until God make us new creatures by his mysterious
grace.
Psalm
14:4
4. Have all the workers of
iniquity no knowledge, who eat up my people as they eat bread? they call not
upon the Lord.
fa269
This question is added to give
a more amplified illustration of the preceding doctrine. The prophet had said
that God observed from heaven the doings of men, and had found all of them gone
out of the way; and now he introduces him exclaiming with astonishment, What
madness is this, that they who ought to cherish my people, and assiduously
perform to them every kind office, are oppressing and falling upon them like
wild beasts, without any feeling of humanity? He attributes this manner of
speaking to God, not because any thing can happen which is strange or unexpected
to him, but in order the more forcibly to express his indignation. The Prophet
Isaiah, in like manner,
(<235916>Isaiah
59:16,) when treating of almost the same subject, says,
"And God saw that there
was no man, and wondered that there was no intercessor."
(<235916>Isaiah
59:16)
God, it is true, does not actually experience in
himself such affections, but he represents himself as invested with them, that
we may entertain the greatest horror and dread on account of our sins, when he
declares them to be of so monstrous a character, that he is as it were thrown
into agitation and disorder by them. And were we not harder than the stones, our
horror at the wickedness which prevails in the world would make the hair of our
head to stand on end,
fa270 seeing God exhibits to us in his own
person such a testimony of the detestation with which he regards it. Moreover,
this verse confirms what I have said in the commencement, that David does not
speak in this psalm of foreign tyrants, or the avowed enemies of the church, but
of the rulers and princes of his people, who were furnished with power and
honor. This description would not apply to men who were altogether strangers to
the revealed will of God; for it would be nothing wonderful to see those who do
not possess the moral law, the rule of life, devoting themselves to the work of
violence and oppression. But the heinousness of the proceedings condemned is not
a little aggravated from this circumstance, that it is the shepherds themselves,
whose office it is to feed and to take care of the
flock,
fa271 who cruelly devour it, and who spare
not even the people and heritage of God. There is a similar complaint in
<330301>Micah
3:1-3,
"And I said, Hear I pray
you, O heads of Jacob, and ye princes of the house of Israel:Is it not for you
to know judgment? Who hate the good and love the evil; who pluck off their skin
from off them; and their flesh from off their bones; who also eat the flesh of
my people, and flay their skin from off
them,"
etc. If those who profess to know and to
serve God were to exercise such cruelty towards the Babylonians or Egyptians, it
would be a piece of injustice which could admit of no excuse; but when they glut
themselves with the blood and flesh of the saints, as they devour bread, this is
such monstrous iniquity, that it may well strike both angels and men with
astonishment. Had such persons a particle of sound understanding remaining in
them, it would restrain them from conduct so fearfully infatuated. They must,
therefore, be completely blinded by the devil, and utterly bereft of reason and
understanding, seeing they knowingly and willingly flay and devour the people of
God with such inhumanity. This passage teaches us how displeasing to God, and
how abominable is the cruelty which is exercised against the godly, by those who
pretend to be their shepherds. In the end of the verse, where he says that
they call not upon the
Lord, he again points out the source and
cause of this unbridled wickedness, namely, that such persons have no reverence
for God. Religion is the best mistress for teaching us mutually to maintain
equity and uprightness towards each other; and where a concern for religion is
extinguished, then all regard for justice perishes along with it. With respect
to the phrase, calling upon God, as it constitutes the principal exercise
of godliness, it includes by synecdoche, (a figure of rhetoric, by which a part
is put for the whole,) not only here, but in many other passages of Scripture,
the whole of the service of
God.
Psalm
14:5-6
5. There did they tremble
with fear,
fa272 for God is in [or with, or
for
fa273] the generation of the righteous.
6. Ye deride the counsel of the poor, because Jehovah is his
hope.
5.
There did they tremble with
fear, The prophet now encourages himself
and all the faithful with the best of all consolations, namely, that God will
not forsake his people even to the end, but will at length show himself to be
their defender. Some explain the adverb of place there, as meaning that
God will take vengeance on the wicked in the presence of his saints, because
they exercised their tyranny upon them. But I rather think that by this word
there is expressed the certainty of their
punishment,
fa274 as if the Psalmist pointed to it with
the finger.
fa275 It may also intimate what we may gather
from Psalm 53, that the judgment of God would come upon them suddenly, and when
they were not thinking about it; for it is there added, where no fear is,
or, where no fear was.
fa276 Expositors, I am aware, differ
in their interpretation of these words. Some supply the word equal or
like, and read, There is no fear equal to it. Others refer them to those
secret alarms with which the ungodly are tormented, even when there may be no
ground for apprehension. God threatens the transgressors of his law with such
mental torment that they "shall flee when none pursueth them," (Leviticus 26:17,
and
<202801>Proverbs
28:1) and that "the sound of a shaking leaf shall chase them,"
(<032636>Leviticus
26:36) just as we see that they are themselves their own tormentors, and are
agitated with mental trouble even when there is no external cause to create it.
But I think the meaning of the prophet is different, namely, that when their
affairs are in a state of the greatest tranquillity and prosperity, God will
suddenly launch against them the bolts of his vengeance.
"For when they shall say,
Peace and safety, then sudden destruction cometh upon them,"
(<520503>1
Thessalonians 5:3.)
The prophet, therefore, encourages and supports the
faithful with this prospect, that the ungodly, when they think themselves free
from all danger, and are securely celebrating their own triumphs, shall be
overwhelmed with sudden destruction.
The reason
of this is added in the last clause of the verse, namely, because God is
determined to defend the righteous, and to take in hand their
cause:For God is in the
generation of the righteous. Now, in
order to preserve them safe, he must necessarily thunder in his wrath from
heaven against their enemies, who unjustly oppress and waste them by violence
and extortion.
fa277 There is, however, some ambiguity in
the word
rwd,
dor, which we have translated generation. As this noun in Hebrew
sometimes signifies an age, or, the course of human life, the
sentence might be explained as follows:Although God for a time may seem to take
no notice of the wrongs inflicted upon his servants by the wicked, yet he is
ever present with them, and exercises his grace towards them during their whole
life. But it seems to me a more simple and natural exposition to interpret the
clause thus:That God is on the side of the righteous, and takes their part, as
we say,
fa278 so that
rwd,
dor, will have the same signification here which the word natio,
[nation,] sometimes has among the Latins.
In
<195305>Psalm
53:5, the Psalmist adds a sentence which does not occur in this psalm,
For God hath scattered the bones
of him that besiegeth thee, thou shalt put them to shame; because God hath
rejected them. By these words the
prophet explains more clearly how God protects the righteous, that it is by
delivering them from the jaws of death, just as if one were to put to flight
those who had laid siege to a town, and were to set at liberty its inhabitants,
who before were in great extremity and quite shut
up.
fa279 Whence it follows, that we must
patiently bear oppression, if we desire to be protected and preserved by the
hand of God, at the time of our greatest danger. The expression, bones,
is used metaphorically for strength or power. The prophet
particularly speaks of their power; for if the wicked were not possessed of
riches, ammunition, and troops, which render them formidable, it would not
appear, with sufficient evidence, that it is the hand of God which at length
crushes them. The Psalmist next exhorts the faithful to a holy boasting, and
bids them rest assured that an ignominious destruction hangs over the heads of
the wicked. The reason of this is, because
God hath rejected
them; and if he is opposed to them, all
things must ultimately go ill with them. As
sam,
maäs, which we have translated to reject, sometimes signifies
to despise, some render it thus, Because God hath despised them;
but this, I think, does not suit the passage. It would be more appropriate
to read, — He hath rendered them contemptible, or, subjected
them to disgrace and ignominy. Whence it follows, that they only draw down
upon themselves dishonor and infamy while they strive to elevate themselves, as
it were, in despite of God.
6.
Ye deride the counsel of the
poor. He inveighs against those giants
who mock at the faithful for their simplicity, in calmly expecting, in their
distresses, that God will show himself to be their deliverer. And, certainly,
nothing seems more irrational to the flesh than to betake ourselves to God when
yet he does not relieve us from our calamities; and the reason is, because the
flesh judges of God only according to what it presently beholds of his grace.
Whenever, therefore, unbelievers see the children of God overwhelmed with
calamities, they reproach them for their groundless confidence, as it appears to
them to be, and with sarcastic jeers laugh at the assured hope with which they
rely upon God, from whom, notwithstanding, they receive no sensible aid. David,
therefore, defies and derides this insolence of the wicked, and threatens that
their mockery of the poor and the wretched, and their charging them with folly
in depending upon the protection of God, and not sinking under their calamities,
will be the cause of their destruction. At the same time, he teaches them that
there is no resolution to which we can come which is better advised than the
resolution to depend upon God, and that to repose on his salvation, and on the
assistance which he hath promised us, even although we may be surrounded with
calamities, is the highest
wisdom.
Psalm
14:7
7. Who shall give salvation [or
deliverance] to Israel out of Sion? When Jehovah shall have brought back the
captivity of his people, Jacob shall rejoice, and Israel shall be
glad.
David, after having laid down the
doctrine of consolation, again returns to prayers and groanings. By this he
teaches us, that although God may leave us for a long time to languish, yet we
ought not to weary, or lose courage, but should always glory in him; and, again,
that while our troubles continue, the most effectual solace we can have is often
to return to the exercise of prayer. When he asks the question,
Who shall give
salvation? this does not imply, that he
was looking either to the right hand or to the left, or that he turned away his
eyes from God in search of another deliverer; he intends only to express the
ardor of his desire, as if he had said, When will the time at length come when
God will display his salvation, and make it fully manifest? By the word Sion,
which he adds, he testifies that his hope is fixed on God; for Sion was the
holy place from which God had promised to hear the prayers of his servants; and
it was the dwelling-place of the ark of the covenant, which was an external
pledge and symbol of the presence of God. He does not, therefore, doubt who
would be the author of his salvation; but he asks, with a sorrowful heart, when
at length that salvation will come forth which is to be expected from no other
source than from God alone. The question may, however, be put, if this prayer
refers to the time of Saul, how can Sion, with propriety, be named as being
already the sanctuary of God? I will not deny that the Psalmist, by the spirit
of prophecy, may have predicted what had not yet actually taken place; but I
think it highly probable, that this psalm was not composed until the ark of the
covenant had been placed on mount Sion. David, as we know, employed his leisure
hours in committing to writing, for the benefit of posterity, events which had
happened long before. Besides, by expressing his desire for the deliverance of
Israel, we are taught that he was chiefly anxious about the welfare of the whole
body of the Church, and that his thoughts were more occupied about this than
about himself individually. This is worthy of being the more carefully marked
when we consider, that, while our attention is engrossed with our own particular
sorrows, we are in danger of almost entirely neglecting the welfare of our
brethren. And yet the particular afflictions with which God visits each of us
are intended to admonish us to direct our attention and care to the whole body
of the Church, and to think of its necessities, just as we see David here
including Israel with
himself.
When the Lord shall
have brought back the captivity of his
people, In these words, David concludes,
that God will not suffer the faithful to languish under continual sorrow,
according as it is said in another psalm,
(<19C605>Psalm
126:5) "They that sow in tears shall reap in joy." He doubtless aims at
confirming and encouraging himself and all the godly to hope for the promised
deliverance. He therefore says, in the first place, that although God may delay,
or at least may not make so much haste as we would wish, he will, nevertheless,
show himself to be the defender of his people, by redeeming them from captivity.
And, in the next place, he assuages their sorrow, by setting forth that the
issue of it will be joyful, seeing it will at length be turned into gladness.
The captivity, of which he makes mention, is not the Babylonish, or the
dispersion of his people among the heathen nations; it rather refers to an
oppression at home, when the wicked exercise dominion like tyrants in the
Church. We are, therefore, taught by these words, that when such furious enemies
waste and destroy the flock of God, or proudly tread it under foot, we ought to
have recourse to God, whose peculiar office it is to gather together his Israel
from all places whither they have been dispersed. And the term captivity,
which he employs, implies, that when the wicked overthrow at their pleasure
all good and lawful order in the midst of the Church, it is converted into a
Babylon or Egypt. Farther, although David defers the joy of the holy people, to
the time of their deliverance, yet the consolatory prospect of this should serve
not only to moderate our grief, but also to mix and season it with
joy.
PSALM
15.
This psalm teaches us upon what condition God made
choice of the Jews to be his people, and placed his sanctuary in the midst of
them. This condition was, that they should show themselves to be a peculiar and
holy people, by leading a just and upright life.
A Song of
David.
Psalm
15:1-2
1. O Jehovah, who shall dwell
in thy tabernacle? Who shall rest in the mountain of thy holiness? 2. He
who walketh in integrity, and doeth righteousness, and who speaketh truth in his
heart.
1.
O Jehovah, who shall dwell in
thy tabernacle? As nothing is more
common in the world than falsely to assume the name of God, or to pretend to be
his people, and as a great part of men allow themselves to do this without any
apprehension of the danger it involves, David, without stopping to speak to men,
addresses himself to God, which he considers the better course; and he
intimates, that if men assume the title of the people of God, without being so
in deed and in truth, they gain nothing by their self-delusion, for God
continues always like himself, and as he is faithful himself, so will he have us
to keep faith with him in return. No doubt, he adopted Abraham freely, but, at
the same time, he stipulated with him that he should live a holy and an upright
life, and this is the general rule of the covenant which God has, from the
beginning, made with his Church. The sum is, that hypocrites, who occupy a place
in the temple of God, in vain pretend to be his people, for he acknowledges none
as such but those who follow after justice and uprightness during the whole
course of their life. David saw the temple crowded with a great multitude of men
who all made a profession of the same religion, and presented themselves before
God as to the outward ceremony; and, therefore, assuming the person of one
wondering at the spectacle, he directs his discourse to God, who, in such a
confusion and medley of characters, could easily distinguish his own people from
strangers.
There is a threefold use of this
doctrine. In the first place, If we really wish to be reckoned among the number
of the children of God, the Holy Ghost teaches us, that we must show ourselves
to be such by a holy and an upright life; for it is not enough to serve God by
outward ceremonies, unless we also live uprightly, and without doing wrong to
our neighbors. In the second place, As we too often see the Church of God
defaced by much impurity, to prevent us from stumbling at what appears so
offensive, a distinction is made between those who are permanent citizens of the
Church, and strangers who are mingled among them only for a time. This is
undoubtedly a warning highly necessary, in order that when the temple of God
happens to be tainted by many impurities, we may not contract such disgust and
chagrin as will make us withdraw from it. By impurities I understand the vices
of a corrupt and polluted life. Provided religion continue pure as to doctrine
and worship, we must not be so much stumbled at the faults and sins which men
commit, as on that account to rend the unity of the Church. Yet the experience
of all ages teaches us how dangerous a temptation it is when we behold the
Church of God, which ought to be free from all polluting stains, and to shine in
uncorrupted purity, cherishing in her bosom many ungodly hypocrites, or wicked
persons. From this the Catharists, Novatians, and Donatists, took occasion in
former times to separate themselves from the fellowship of the godly. The
Anabaptists, at the present day, renew the same schisms, because it does not
seem to them that a church in which vices are tolerated can be a true church.
But Christ, in
<402532>Matthew
25:32, justly claims it as his own peculiar office to separate the sheep from
the goats; and thereby admonishes us, that we must bear with the evils which it
is not in our power to correct, until all things become ripe, and the proper
season of purging the Church arrive. At the same time, the faithful are here
enjoined, each in his own sphere, to use their endeavors that the Church of God
may be purified from the corruptions which still exist within her. And this is
the third use which we should make of this doctrine. God's sacred barn-floor
will not be perfectly cleansed before the last day, when Christ at his coming
will cast out the chaff; but he has already begun to do this by the doctrine of
his gospel, which on this account he terms a fan. We must, therefore, by no
means be indifferent about this matter; on the contrary, we ought rather to
exert ourselves in good earnest, that all who profess themselves Christians may
lead a holy and an unspotted life. But above all, what God here declares with
respect to all the unrighteous should be deeply imprinted on our memory; namely,
that he prohibits them from coming to his sanctuary, and condemns their impious
presumption, in irreverently thrusting themselves into the society of the godly.
David makes mention of the tabernacle, because the temple was not yet
built. The meaning of his discourse, to express it in a few words, is this, that
those only have access to God who are his genuine servants, and who live a holy
life.
2.
He that walketh in
integrity. Here we should mark, that in
the words there is an implied contrast between the vain boasting of those who
are only the people of God in name, or who make only a bare profession of being
so, which consists in outward observances, and this indubitable and genuine
evidence of true godliness which David commends. But it might be asked, As the
service of God takes precedence of the duties of charity towards our neighbors,
why is there no mention here made of faith and prayer; for, certainly, these are
the marks by which the genuine children of God ought to have been distinguished
from hypocrites? The answer is easy:David does not intend to exclude faith and
prayer, and other spiritual sacrifices; but as hypocrites, in order to promote
their own interests, are not sparing in their attention to a multiplicity of
external religious observances, while their ungodliness, notwithstanding, is
manifested outwardly in the life, seeing they are fall of pride, cruelty,
violence, and are given to deceitfulness and extortion, - the Psalmist, for the
purpose of discovering and drawing forth into the light all who are of such a
character, takes the marks and evidences of true and sincere faith from the
second table of the law. According to the care which every man takes to practice
righteousness and equity towards his neighbors, so does he actually show that he
fears God. David, then, is not here to be understood as resting satisfied with
political or social justice, as if it were enough to render to our fellow-men
what is their own, while we may lawfully defraud God of his right; but he
describes the approved servants of God, as distinguished and known by the fruits
of righteousness which they produce. In the first place, he requires
sincerity; in other words, that men should conduct themselves in all
their affairs with singleness of heart, and without sinful craft or cunning.
Secondly, he requires justice; that is to say, that they should study to
do good to their neighbors, hurt nobody, and abstain from all wrong. Thirdly, he
requires truth in their speech, so that they may speak nothing falsely or
deceitfully. To speak in the
heart is a strong figurative expression,
but it expresses more forcibly David's meaning than if he had said from the
heart. It denotes such agreement and harmony between the heart and tongue,
as that the speech is, as it were, a vivid representation of the hidden
affection or feeling within.
Psalm
15:3
3. He that slandereth not with
his tongue, nor doeth evil to his companion, nor raiseth up a calumnious report
against his neighbor.
David, after having
briefly set forth the virtues with which all who desire to have a place in the
Church ought to be endued, now enumerates certain vices from which they ought to
be free. In the first place, he tells them that they must not be slanderers
or detractors; secondly, that they must restrain themselves from
doing any thing mischievous and injurious to their neighbors; and, thirdly, that
they must not aid in giving currency to calumnies and false reports. Other
vices, from which the righteous are free, we shall meet with as we proceed.
David, then, sets down calumny and detraction as the first point of injustice by
which our neighbors are injured. If a good name is a treasure, more precious
than all the riches of the world,
(<202201>Proverbs
22:1,) no greater injury can be inflicted upon men than to wound their
reputation. It is not, however, every injurious word which is here condemned;
but the disease and lust of detraction, which stirs up malicious persons to
spread abroad calumnies. At the same time, it cannot be doubted that the design
of the Holy Spirit is to condemn all false and wicked accusations. In the clause
which immediately follows, the doctrine that the children of God ought to be far
removed from all injustice, is stated more
generally:Nor doeth evil to his
companion. By the words companion and
neighbor, the Psalmist means not only those with whom we enjoy familiar
intercourse, and live on terms of intimate friendship, but all men, to whom we
are bound by the ties of humanity and a common nature. He employs these terms to
show more clearly the odiousness of what he condemns, and that the saints may
have the greater abhorrence of all wrong dealing, since every man who hurts his
neighbor violates the fundamental law of human society. With respect to the
meaning of the last clause, interpreters are not agreed. Some take the phrase,
to raise up a calumnious
report, for to invent, because
malicious persons raise up calumnies from nothing; and thus it would be a
repetition of the statement contained in the first clause of the verse, namely,
that good men should not allow themselves to indulge in detraction. But I think
there is also here rebuked the vice of undue credulity, which, when any evil
reports are spread against our neighbors, leads us either eagerly to listen to
them, or at least to receive them without sufficient reason; whereas we ought
rather to use all means to suppress and trample them under
foot.
fa280 When any one is the bearer of invented
falsehoods, those who reject them leave them, as it were, to fall to the ground;
while, on the contrary, those who propagate and publish them from one person to
another are, by an expressive form of speech, said to raise them
up.
Psalm
15:4
4. In his eyes the offcast [or
reprobate
fa281] is despised; but he honoureth them
that fear the Lord; when he hath sworn to his own hurt, he changeth
not.
The first part of this verse is
explained in different ways. Some draw from it this meaning, that the true
servants of God are contemptible and worthless in their own estimation. If we
adopt this interpretation, the copula and, which David does not express,
must be supplied, making the reading thus, He is vile and despised in his own
eyes. But besides the consideration, that, if this had been the sense, the
words would probably have been joined together by the copula and, I have
another reason which leads me to think that David had a different meaning, He
compares together two opposite things, namely, to despise perverse and worthless
characters, and to honor the righteous and those who fear God. In order that
these two clauses may correspond with each other, the only sense in which I can
understand what is here said about being despised is this, that the
children of God despise the ungodly, and form that low and contemptuous estimate
of them which their character deserves. The godly, it is true, although living a
praiseworthy and virtuous life, are not inflated with presumption, but, on the
contrary, are rather dissatisfied with themselves, because they feel how far
short they are as yet of the perfection which is required. When, however, I
consider what the scope of the passage demands, I do not think that we are here
to view the Psalmist as commending humility or modesty, but rather a free and
upright judgment of human character, by which the wicked, on the one hand, are
not spared, while virtue, on the other, receives the honor which belongs to it;
for flattery, which nourishes vices by covering them, is an evil not less
pernicious than it is common. I indeed admit, that if the wicked are in
authority, we ought not to carry our contempt of them the length of refusing to
obey them in so far as a regard to our duty will permit; but, at the same time,
we must beware of flattery and of accommodating ourselves to them, which would
be to involve us in the same condemnation with them. He who not only seems to
regard their wicked actions with indifference, but also honors them, shows that
he approves of them as much as it is in his power. Paul therefore teaches us,
(<490511>Ephesians
5:11,) that it is a species of fellowship with the unfruitful works of darkness
when we do not reprove them. It is certainly a very perverse way of acting, when
persons, for the sake of obtaining the favor of men, will indirectly mock God;
and all are chargeable with doing this who make it their business to please the
wicked. David, however, has a respect, not so much to persons as to wicked
works. The man who sees the wicked honored, and by the applause of the world
rendered more obstinate in their wickedness, and who willingly gives his consent
or approbation to this, does he not, by so doing, exalt vice to authority, and
invest it with sovereign power? "But woe," says the prophet Isaiah,
(<230520>Isaiah
5:20,) "unto them that call evil good, and good evil; that put darkness for
light, and light for darkness."
Nor ought it to
be regarded as a rude or violent manner of speaking, when David calls base and
wicked persons reprobates, although they may be placed in an exalted and
honorable station. If (as Cicero affirms, in his book entitled The Responses of
the Aruspices) the inspectors of the entrails of the sacrifices, and other
heathen soothsayers, applied to worthless and abandoned characters the term
rejected, although they excelled in dignity and riches, why should not a
prophet of God be permitted to apply the name of degraded outcasts to all
who are rejected by God? The meaning of the Psalmist, to express it in a few
words, is, that the children of God freely judge of every man's doings, and that
for the purpose of obtaining the favor of men, they will not stoop to vile
flattery, and thereby encourage the wicked in their
wickedness.
What follows immediately after,
namely, to honor the righteous and
those who fear
God, is no mean virtue. As they are
often, as it were, the filth and the offscouring of all things in the estimation
of the world, so it frequently happens that those who show them favor and
sympathy, excite against themselves every where the hatred of the world. The
greater part of mankind, therefore, refuse the friendship of good men, and leave
them to be despised, which cannot be done without grievous and heinous injury to
God. Let us learn then not to value men by their estate or their money, or their
transitory honors, but to hold in estimation godliness, or the fear of God. And
certainly no man will ever truly apply his mind to the study of godliness who
does not, at the same time, reverence the servants of God; as, on the other
hand, the love we bear to them incites us to imitate them in sanctity of
life.
When he hath sworn to
his own hurt. The translation of the
LXX. would agree very well with the scope of the passage, were it not that the
points which are under the words in the Hebrew text will not bear such a
sense.
fa282 It is, indeed, no proof of the
inaccuracy of their rendering, that it does not agree with the points; for,
although the Jews have always used the points in reading, it is probable that
they did not always express them in writing. I, however, prefer following the
commonly received reading. And the meaning is, that the faithful will rather
submit to suffer loss than break their word. When a man keeps his promises, in
as far as he sees it to be for his own advantage, there is in this no argument
to prove his uprightness and faithfulness. But when men make a promise to each
other, there is nothing more common than from some slight loss which the
performance of it would occasion, to endeavor to find a pretext for breaking
their engagements. Every one considers with himself what is for his own
advantage, and if it puts him to inconvenience or trouble to stand to his
promises, he is ingenious enough to imagine that he will incur a far greater
loss than there is any reason to apprehend. It seems, indeed, a fair excuse when
a man complains that, if he does not depart from his engagement, he will suffer
great loss. Hence it is, that we generally see so much unfaithfulness among men,
that they do not consider themselves bound to perform the promises which they
have made, except in so far as it will promote their own personal interest.
David, therefore, condemning this inconstancy, requires the children of God to
exhibit the greatest steadfastness in the fulfillment of their promises. Here
the question might be asked, If a man, having fallen into the hands of a
highwayman, promise him a sum of money to save his life, and if, in consequence
of this, he is let go, should he in that case keep his promise? Again, if a man
has been basely deceived, in entering into a contract, is it lawful for him to
break the oath which he shall have made in such an engagement? With respect to
the highwayman, he who confers upon him money falls into another fault, for he
supports at his own expense a common enemy of mankind to the detriment of the
public welfare. David does not impose upon the faithful such an alternative as
this, but only enjoins them to show a greater regard to their promises than to
their own personal interests, and to do this especially when their promises have
been confirmed by an oath. As to the other case, namely, when a person has
sworn, from being deceived and imposed upon by wicked artifice he ought
certainly to hold the holy name of God in such veneration, as rather patiently
to submit to loss than violate his oath. Yet it is perfectly lawful for him to
discover or reveal the fraud which has been practiced upon him, provided he is
not led to do so by a regard to his own personal interest; and there is,
besides, nothing to hinder him from peaceably endeavoring to compromise the
matter with his adversary. Many of the Jewish expositors restrict this passage
to vows, as if David exhorted the faithful to perform their vows when they have
promised to humble and afflict themselves by fasting. But in this they are
mistaken. Nothing is farther from his meaning than this, for he discourses here
only of the second table of the law, and of the mutual rectitude which men
should maintain in their dealings with one
another.
Psalm
15:5
5. He putteth not out his money
to usury, nor taketh bribes upon the innocent. He that doeth these things shall
not be moved for ever.
In this verse David
enjoins the godly neither to oppress their neighbors by usury, nor to suffer
themselves to be corrupted with bribes to favor unrighteous causes. With respect
to the first clause, as David seems to condemn all kinds of usury in general,
and without exception, the very name has been every where held in detestation.
But crafty men have invented specious names under which to conceal the vice; and
thinking by this artifice to escape, they have plundered with greater excess
than if they had lent on usury avowedly and openly. God, however, will not be
dealt with and imposed upon by sophistry and false pretences. He looks upon the
thing as it really is. There is no worse species of usury than an unjust way of
making bargains, where equity is disregarded on both sides. Let us then remember
that all bargains in which the one party unrighteously strives to make gain by
the loss of the other party, whatever name may be given to them, are here
condemned. It may be asked, Whether all kinds of usury are to be put into this
denunciation, and regarded as alike unlawful? If we condemn all without
distinction, there is a danger lest many, seeing themselves brought into such a
strait, as to find that sin must be incurred, in whatever way they can turn
themselves, may be rendered bolder by despair, and may rush headlong into all
kinds of usury, without choice or discrimination. On the other hand, whenever we
concede that something may be lawfully done this way, many will give themselves
loose reins, thinking that a liberty to exercise usury, without control or
moderation, has been granted them. In the first place, therefore, I would, above
all things, counsel my readers to beware of ingeniously contriving deceitful
pretexts, by which to take advantage of their fellow-men, and let them not
imagine that any thing can be lawful to them which is grievous and hurtful to
others.
With respect to usury, it is scarcely
possible to find in the world a usurer who is not at the same time an
extortioner, and addicted to unlawful and dishonorable gain. Accordingly,
Cato
fa283 of old justly placed the practice of
usury and the killing of men in the same rank of criminality, for the object of
this class of people is to suck the blood of other men. It is also a very
strange and shameful thing, that, while all other men obtain the means of their
subsistence with much toil, while husbandmen fatigue themselves by their daily
occupations, and artisans serve the community by the sweat of their brow, and
merchants not only employ themselves in labors, but also expose themselves to
many inconveniences and dangers, — that money-mongers should sit at their
ease without doing any thing, and receive tribute from the labor of all other
people. Besides, we know that generally it is not the rich who are exhausted by
their usury,
fa284 but poor men, who ought rather to be
relieved. It is not, therefore, without cause that God has, in
<032535>Leviticus
25:35, 36, forbidden usury, adding this reason, "And if thy brother be waxen
poor and fallen in decay with thee, then thou shalt relieve him; take thou no
usury of him or increase." We see that the end for which the law was framed was,
that men should not cruelly oppress the poor, who ought rather to receive
sympathy and compassion.
fa285 This was, indeed, a part of the
judicial law which God appointed for the Jews in particular; but it is a common
principle of justice which extends to all nations and to all ages, that we
should keep ourselves from plundering and devouring the poor who are in distress
and want, Whence it follows, that the gain which he who lends his money upon
interest acquires, without doing injury to any one, is not to be included under
the head of unlawful usury. The Hebrew word
°çn,
neshek, which David employs, being derived from another word, which
signifies to bite, sufficiently shows that usuries are condemned in so
far as they involve in them or lead to a license of robbing and plundering our
fellow-men. Ezekiel, indeed,
<261817>Ezekiel
18:17, and
<262212>Ezekiel
22:12, seems to condemn the taking of any interest whatever upon money lent; but
he doubtless has an eye to the unjust and crafty arts of gaining, by which the
rich devoured the poor people. In short, provided we had engraven on our hearts
the rule of equity, which Christ prescribes in
<400712>Matthew
7:12,
"Therefore, all things
whatsoever ye would that men should do to you, do ye even so to
them,"
it would not be necessary to enter into lengthened
disputes concerning usury.
What next follows in
the text properly applies to judges who, being corrupted by presents and
rewards, pervert all law and justice. It may, however, be extended farther,
inasmuch as it often happens, that even private individuals are corrupted by
bribes to favor and defend bad causes. David, therefore, comprehends, in
general, all those corruptions by which we are led away from truth and
uprightness. Some think that what is here intended is the rapacity of judges in
extorting money from the innocent who are accused, as the price of their
deliverance, when they ought rather to have protected and assisted them
gratuitously. But it appears from the passages similar to this in Ezekiel, which
we have quoted, that the sense is
different.
He who doeth these
things. This conclusion warns us again, that
all who thrust themselves into the sanctuary of God are not permanent citizens
of "the holy Jerusalem which is
above;"
fa286 but that hypocrites, and all who
falsely assume the title of saints, shall at length be "cast out" with Ishmael
whom they resemble. That which is ascribed in Psalm 46, to the whole Church,
David here applies to every one of the faithful:He shall not be moved for
ever. The reason of this which is there expressed is, because God dwells in
the midst of Jerusalem. On the contrary, we know that he is far from the
perfidious and the wicked, who approach him only with the mouth, and with
reigned lips.
PSALM
16.
In the beginning David commends himself to the
protection of God. He then meditates upon the benefits which he received from
God, and thereby stirs himself up to thanksgiving. By his service, it is true,
he could in no respect be profitable to God, but he, notwithstanding, surrenders
and devotes himself entirely to him, protesting that he will have nothing to do
with superstitions. He also states the reason of this to be, that full and
substantial happiness consists in resting in God alone, who never suffers his
own people to want any good thing.
Mictam of
David.
As to the meaning of the word mictam, the
Jewish expositors are not of one mind. Some derive it from
µtk,
catham,
fa287 as if it were a golden crest or jewel.
Others think it is the beginning of a song, which at that time was very common.
To others it seems rather to be some kind of tune, and this opinion I am
inclined to adopt.
Psalm
16:1
1. Keep [or
guard
fa288] me, O God; for in thee do I
trust.
fa289
This is a prayer in which David
commits himself to the protection of God. He does not, however, here implore the
aid of God, in some particular emergency, as he often does in other psalms, but
he beseeches him to show himself his protector during the whole course of his
life, and indeed our safety both in life and in death depends entirely upon our
being under the protection of God. What follows concerning trust,
signifies much the same thing as if the Holy Spirit assured us by the mouth
of David, that God is ready to succor all of us, provided we rely upon him with
a sure and steadfast faith; and that he takes under his protection none but
those who commit themselves to him with their whole heart. At the same time, we
must be reminded that David, supported by this trust, continued firm and unmoved
amidst all the storms of adversity with which he was
buffeted.
Psalm
16:2-3
2. Thou shalt say unto
Jehovah, Thou art my Lord, my well-doing extendeth not unto thee. 3. Unto
the saints who are on the earth, and to the excellent; all my delight is in
them.
2.
Thou shalt say unto
Jehovah. David begins by stating that he
can bestow nothing upon God, not only because God stands in no need of any
thing, but also because mortal man cannot merit the favor of God by any service
which he can perform to him. At the same time, however, he takes courage, and,
as God accepts our devotion, and the service which we yield to him, David
protests that he will be one of his servants. To encourage himself the more
effectually to this duty he speaks to his own soul; for the Hebrew word which is
rendered Thou shalt say, is of the feminine gender, which can refer only
to the soul.
fa290 Some may prefer reading the word in the
past tense, Thou hast said, which I think is unobjectionable, for the
Psalmist is speaking of an affliction which had a continued abode in his soul.
The import of his language is, I am, indeed, fully convinced in my heart, and
know assuredly, that God can derive no profit or advantage from me; but
notwithstanding this, I will join myself in fellowship with the saints, that
with one accord we may worship him by the sacrifices of praise. Two things are
distinctly laid down in this verse. The first is, that God has a right to
require of us whatever he pleases, seeing we are wholly bound to Him as our
rightful proprietor and Lord. David, by ascribing to him the power and the
dominion of Lord, declares that both himself and all he possessed are the
property of God. The other particular contained in this verse is, the
acknowledgement which the Psalmist makes of his own indigence.
My well-doing extendeth not unto
thee. Interpreters expound this last
clause in two ways. As
°yl[,
aleyka, may be rendered upon thee, some draw from it this sense,
that God is not brought under obligation, or in the least degree indebted to us,
by any good deeds which we may perform to him; and they understand the term
goodness in a passive sense, as if David affirmed that whatever goodness
he received from God did not proceed from any obligation he had laid God under,
or from any merit which he possessed. But I think the sentence has a more
extensive meaning, namely, that let men strive ever so much to lay themselves
out for God, yet they can bring no advantage to him. Our goodness extendeth not
to him, not only because, having in himself alone an all-sufficiency, he stands
in need of nothing,
fa290a but also because we are empty and
destitute of all good things, and have nothing with which to show ourselves
liberal towards him. From this doctrine, however, the other point which I have
before touched upon will follow, namely, that it is impossible for men, by any
merits of their own, to bring God under obligation to them, so as to make him
their debtor. The sum of the discourse is, that when we come before God, we must
lay aside all presumption. When we imagine that there is any good thing in us,
we need not wonder if he reject us, as we thus take away from him a principal
part of the honor which is his due. But, on the contrary, if we acknowledge that
all the services which we can yield him are in themselves things of nought, and
undeserving of any recompense, this humility is as a perfume of a sweet odour,
which will procure for them acceptance with
God.
3.
Unto the saints who are on
the earth. Almost all are agreed in
understanding this place, as if David, after the sentence which we have just now
been considering, had added, The only way of serving God aright is to endeavor
to do good to his holy servants. And the truth is, that God, as our good deeds
cannot extend to him, substitutes the saints in his place, towards whom we are
to exercise our charity. When men, therefore, mutually exert themselves in doing
good to one another, this is to yield to God right and acceptable service. We
ought, doubtless, to extend our charity even to those who are unworthy of it, as
our heavenly Father
"maketh his sun to rise
on the evil and on the good,"
(<400545>Matthew
5:45;)
but David justly prefers the saints to others, and
places them in a higher rank. This, then, as I have said in the commencement, is
the common opinion of almost all
interpreters.
fa291 But although I do not deny that this
doctrine is comprehended under the words of David, I think he goes somewhat
farther, and intimates that he will unite himself with the devout worshippers of
God, and be their associate or companion; even as all the children of God ought
to be joined together by the bond of fraternal unity, that they may all serve
and call upon their common Father with the same affection and
zeal.
fa292 We thus see that David, after having
confessed that he can find nothing in himself to bring to God, seeing he is
indebted to him for every thing which he has, sets his affections upon the
saints, because it is the will of God that, in this world, he should be
magnified and exalted in the assembly of the just, whom he has adopted into his
family for this end, that they may live together with one accord under his
authority, and under the guidance of his Holy Spirit. This passage, therefore,
teaches us that there is no sacrifice more acceptable to God than when we
sincerely and heartily connect ourselves with the society of the righteous, and
being knit together by the sacred bond of godliness, cultivate and maintain with
them brotherly good-will. In this consists the communion of saints which
separates them from the degrading pollutions of the world, that they may be the
holy and peculiar people of God. He expressly speaks of
the saints who are on the
earth, because it is the will of God
that, even in this world, there should be conspicuous marks, and as it were
visible escutcheons,
fa293 of his glory, which may serve to
conduct us to himself. The faithful, therefore, bear his image, that, by their
example, we may be stirred up to meditation upon the heavenly life. For the same
reason, the Psalmist calls them excellent, or honorable, because there is
nothing which ought to be more precious to us than righteousness and holiness,
in which the brightness of God's Spirit shines forth; just as we are commanded
in the preceding psalm to prize and honor those who fear God. We ought,
therefore, highly to value and esteem the true and devoted servants of God, and
to regard nothing as of greater importance than to connect ourselves with their
society; and this we will actually do if we wisely reflect in what true
excellence and dignity consist, and do not allow the vain splendor of the world
and its deceitful pomps to dazzle our
eyes.
Psalm
16:4
4. Their sorrows shall be
multiplied who offer to a stranger.
fa294 I will not
taste
fa295 their
libations
fa296 of blood, nor will I take their names
in my lips.
The Psalmist now describes the
true way of maintaining brotherly concord with the saints, by declaring that he
will have nothing to do with unbelievers and the superstitious. We cannot be
united into the one body of the Church under God, if we do not break off all the
bonds of impiety, separate ourselves from idolaters, and keep ourselves pure and
at a distance from all the pollutions which corrupt and vitiate the holy service
of God. This is certainly the general drift of David's discourse. But as to the
words there is a diversity of opinion among expositors. Some translate the first
word of the verse
twbx[,
atsboth, by idols,
fa297 and according to this rendering
the meaning is, that after men in their folly have once begun to make to
themselves false gods, their madness breaks forth without measure, until they
accumulate an immense multitude of deities. As, however, this word is
here put in the feminine gender, I prefer translating it sorrows or troubles,
although it may still have various meanings. Some think it is an
imprecation, and they read, Let
their sorrows be multiplied; as if
David, inflamed with a holy zeal, denounced the just vengeance of God against
the superstitious. Others, whose opinions I prefer, do not change the tense of
the verb, which in the Hebrew is future,
Their sorrows shall be
multiplied; but to me they do not seem
to express, with sufficient clearness, what kind of sorrows David intends. They
say, indeed, that wretched idolaters are perpetually adding to their new
inventions, in doing which, they miserably torment themselves. But I am of
opinion, that by this word there is, at the same time, denoted the end and issue
of the pains which they take in committing it; it points out that they not only
put themselves to trouble without any profit or advantage, but also miserably
harass and busy themselves to accomplish their own destruction. As an incitement
to him to withdraw himself farther from their company, he takes this as an
incontrovertible principle, that, so far from deriving any advantage from their
vain superstitions, they only, by their strenuous efforts in practising them,
involve themselves in greater misery and wretchedness. For what must be the
issue with respect to those miserable men who willingly surrender themselves as
bond-slaves to the devil, but to be disappointed of their hope? even as God
complains in Jeremiah,
(<240213>Jeremiah
2:13,)
"They have forsaken me
the fountain of living waters, and hewed them out cisterns, broken cisterns,
that can hold no water."
In the next clause there is also some ambiguity. The
Hebrew word
rhm,
mahar, which we have translated to offer, in the conjugation
kal signifies to endow, or to give. But as, in the
conjugation hiphil, it is more frequently taken for to run, or
to make haste,
fa298 many have preferred this latter
meaning, and interpret the clause thus, that superstitious persons eagerly
hasten after strange gods. And in fact we see them rushing into their idolatries
with all the impetuosity and recklessness of madmen running in the
fields;
fa299 and the prophets often upbraid them for
this inconsiderate frenzy with which they are fired. I would, therefore, be much
disposed to adopt this sense were it supported by the common usage of the
language; but as grammarians observe that there is not to be found another
similar passage in Scripture, I have followed, in my translation, the first
opinion. In short, the sum of what the Psalmist says is this, That unbelievers,
who lavish and squander away their substance upon their idols, not only lose all
the gifts and offerings which they present to them, but also, by provoking the
wrath of God against themselves, are continually increasing the amount of their
miseries. Perhaps, also, the prophet has an allusion to the common doctrine of
Scripture, that idolaters violate the promise of the spiritual marriage
contracted with the true God, and enter into covenant with
idols.
fa300 Ezekiel
(<261633>Ezekiel
16:33) justly upbraids the Jews, in that while the custom is for the lover to
allure the harlot with presents, they, on the contrary, offered rewards to the
idols to whom they prostituted and abandoned themselves. But the meaning which
we have above given brings out the spirit of the passage, namely, that
unbelievers, who honor their false gods by offering to them gifts, not only lose
what is thus expended, but also heap up for themselves sorrows upon sorrows,
because at last the issue will be miserable and ruinous to
them.
I will not taste their
libations of blood. By libations of
blood some understand that there is a reference to sacrifices made of things
acquired by murder or rapine. As, however, the prophet is not here
inveighing against cruel and bloodthirsty men, but condemns, in general, all
false and corrupt religious worship; and again, as he does not directly name
sacrifices, but expressly speaks of the ceremony of taking the cup, and tasting
a little of it, which was observed in offering
sacrifices,
fa301 I have no doubt but that to this
ceremony, as it was observed according to the law of God, he here tacitly
opposes the drinking of blood in heathen sacrifices. We know that God, in order
to teach his ancient people to hold in greater abhorrence murder and all
cruelty, forbade them to eat or to drink blood either in their common food or in
sacrifices. On the contrary, the histories of the heathen nations bear testimony
that the custom of tasting the blood in their sacrifices prevailed among them.
David, therefore, protests, that he will not only keep himself uncontaminated by
the corrupt and false opinions by which idolaters are seduced, but that he will
also take care not to show outwardly any token of his complying with or
approving them. In the same sense we are to understand what follows immediately
after, I will not take their
names in my lips. This implies that he
will hold idols in such hatred and detestation, as to keep himself from naming
them as from execrable treason against the majesty of heaven. Not that it is
unlawful to pronounce their names, which we frequently meet with in the writings
of the prophets, but David felt he could not otherwise more forcibly express the
supreme horror and detestation with which the faithful ought to regard false
gods. This is also shown by the form of expression which he employs, using the
relative only, their names, although he has not expressly stated before
that he is speaking of idols. Thus, by his example, he enjoins believers not
only to beware of errors and wicked opinions, but also to abstain from all
appearance of giving their consent to them. He evidently speaks of external
ceremonies, which indicate either the true religion, or some perverse
superstition. If, then, it is unlawful for the faithful to show any token of
consenting to or complying with the superstitions of idolaters, Nicodemuses (who
falsely call themselves by this name
fa302) must not think to shelter themselves
under the frivolous pretext that they have not renounced the faith, but keep it
hidden within their hearts, when they join in the observance of the profane
superstitions of the Papists. Some understand the words strangers and
their names, as denoting the worshippers of false gods; but in my
judgment David rather means the false gods themselves. The scope of his
discourse is this:The earth is filled with an immense
accumulation
fa303 of superstitions in every possible
variety, and idolaters are lavish beyond all bounds in ornamenting their idols;
but the good and the holy will ever regard all their superstitious inventions
with abhorrence.
Psalm
16:5-6
5. Jehovah is the portion of
mine inheritance, and of my cup; thou sustainest my lot. 6. The lines
have fallen to me in pleasant places; yea, I have a goodly
heritage.
5.
The Lord is the portion of
mine inheritance. Here the Psalmist
explains his sentiments more clearly. He shows the reason why he separates
himself from idolaters, and resolves to continue in the church of God, why he
shuns, with abhorrence, all participation in their errors, and cleaves to the
pure worship of God; namely, because he rests in the only true God as his
portion. The unhappy restlessness of those blind
idolaters
fa304 whom we see going astray, and running
about as if stricken and impelled by madness, is doubtless to be traced to their
destitution of the true knowledge of God. All who have not their foundation and
trust in God must necessarily be often in a state of irresolution and
uncertainty; and those who do not hold the true faith in such a manner as to be
guided and governed by it, must be often carried away by the overflowing floods
of errors which prevail in the world.
fa305 This passage teaches us, that none are
taught aright in true godliness but those who reckon God alone sufficient for
their happiness. David, by calling God the portion of his lot, and his
inheritance, and his cup, protests that he is so fully satisfied with
him alone, as neither to covet any thing besides him, nor to be excited by any
depraved desires. Let us therefore learn, when God offers himself to us, to
embrace him with the whole heart, and to seek in him only all the ingredients
and the fullness of our happiness. All the superstitions which have ever
prevailed in the world have undoubtedly proceeded from this source, that
superstitious men have not been contented with possessing God alone. But we do
not actually possess him unless "he is the portion of our inheritance;" in other
words, unless we are wholly devoted to him, so as no longer to have any desire
unfaithfully to depart from him. For this reason, God, when he upbraids the Jews
who had wandered from him as
apostates,
fa306 with having run about after idols,
addresses them thus, "Let them be thine inheritance, and thy portion." By
these words he shows, that if we do not reckon him alone an all-sufficient
portion for us, and if we will have idols along with
him,
fa307 he gives place entirely to them, and
lets them have the full possession of our hearts. David here employs three
metaphors; he first compares God to an inheritance; secondly, to a cup; and,
thirdly, he represents him as He who defends and keeps him in possession of his
inheritance. By the first metaphor he alludes to the heritages of the land of
Canaan, which we know were divided among the Jews by divine appointment, and the
law commanded every one to be content with the portion which had fallen to him.
By the word cup is denoted either the revenue of his own proper
inheritance, or by synecdoche, ordinary food by which life is sustained, seeing
drink is a part of our nourishment.
fa308 It is as if David had said, God is mine
both in respect of property and enjoyment. Nor is the third comparison
superfluous. It often happens that rightful owners are put out of their
possession because no one defends them. But while God has given himself to us
for an inheritance, he has engaged to exercise his power in maintaining us in
the safe enjoyment of a good so inconceivably great. It would be of little
advantage to us to have once obtained him as ours, if he did not secure our
possession of him against the assaults which Satan daily makes upon us. Some
explain the third clause as if it had been said, Thou art my ground in which
my portion is situated; but this sense appears to me to be cold and
unsatisfactory.
6.
The
lines
fa309 have fallen to
me. The Psalmist confirms more fully
what he had already said in the preceding verse with respect to his resting,
with a composed and tranquil mind, in God alone; or rather, he so glories in God
as nobly to despise all that the world imagines to be excellent and desirable
without him. By magnifying God in such honorable and exalted strains, he gives
us to understand that he does not desire any thing more as his portion and
felicity. This doctrine may be profitable to us in many ways. It ought to draw
us away not only from all the perverse inventions of superstition, but also from
all the allurements of the flesh and of the world. Whenever, therefore, those
things present themselves to us which would lead us away from resting in God
alone, let us make use of this sentiment as an antidote against them, that we
have sufficient cause for being contented, since he who has in himself an
absolute fullness of all good has given himself to be enjoyed by us. In this way
we will experience our condition to be always pleasant and comfortable; for he
who has God as his portion is destitute of nothing which is requisite to
constitute a happy life.
Psalm
16:7
7. I will magnify Jehovah, who
giveth me counsel; even in the night my reins instruct
me.
fa310
Last of all, David confesses
that it was entirely owing to the pure grace of God that he had come to possess
so great a good, and that he had been made a partaker of it by faith. It would
be of no advantage to us for God to offer himself freely and graciously to us,
if we did not receive him by faith, seeing he invites to himself both the
reprobate and the elect in common; but the former, by their ingratitude, defraud
themselves of this inestimable blessing. Let us, therefore, know that both these
things proceed from the free liberality of God; first, his being our
inheritance, and next, our coming to the possession of him by faith. The
counsel of which David makes mention is the inward illumination of the
Holy Spirit, by which we are prevented from rejecting the salvation to which he
calls us, which we would otherwise certainly do, considering the blindness of
our flesh.
fa311 Whence we gather, that those who
attribute to the free will of man the choice of accepting or rejecting the grace
of God basely mangle that grace, and show as much ignorance as impiety. That
this discourse of David ought not to be understood of external teaching appears
clearly from the words, for he tells us that
he was instructed in the
night when he was removed from the sight
of men. Again, when he speaks of this being done
in his
reins, he doubtless means secret
inspirations.
fa312 Farther, it ought to be carefully
observed, that, in speaking of the time when he was instructed, he uses the
plural number, saying, it was done in the nights. By this manner of
speaking, he not only ascribes to God the beginning of faith, but acknowledges
that he is continually making progress under his tuition; and, indeed, it is
necessary for God, during the whole of our life, to continue to correct the
vanity of our minds, to kindle the light of faith into a brighter flame, and by
every means to advance us higher in the attainments of spiritual
wisdom.
Psalm
16:8-9
8. I have set Jehovah
continually before me; because he is at my right hand, I shall not be moved.
9. Therefore my heart
fa313 is glad, my tongue rejoiceth; my flesh
also dwelleth in confidence, [or in
security.]
8.
I have set Jehovah,
etc. The Psalmist again shows the
firmness and stability of his faith. To set God before us is nothing else than
to keep all our senses bound and captive, that they may not run out and go
astray after any other object. We must look to him with other eyes than those of
the flesh, for we shall seldom be able to perceive him unless we elevate our
minds above the world; and faith prevents us from turning our back upon him. The
meaning, therefore, is, that David kept his mind so intently fixed upon the
providence of God, as to be fully persuaded, that whenever any difficulty or
distress should befall him, God would be always at hand to assist him. He adds,
also, continually, to show us how he constantly depended upon the
assistance of God, so that, amidst the various conflicts with which he was
agitated, no fear of danger could make him turn his eyes to any other quarter
than to God in search of succor. And thus we ought so to depend upon God as to
continue to be fully persuaded of his being near to us, even when he seems to be
removed to the greatest distance from us. When we shall have thus turned our
eyes towards him, the masks and the vain illusions of this world will no longer
deceive us.
Because he is at
my right hand. I read this second clause
as a distinct sentence from the preceding. To connect them together as some do
in this way, I have set the Lord
continually before me, because he is at my right
hand, would give a meagre meaning to the
words, and take away much of the truth which is taught in them, as it would make
David to say, that he measured God's presence according to the experience he had
of it; a mode of speaking which would not be at all becoming. I consider,
therefore, the words, I have set
the Lord continually before me, as a
complete sentence, and David set the Lord before him for the purpose of
constantly repairing to him in all his dangers. For his greater encouragement to
hope well, he sets before himself what it is to have God's assistance and
fatherly care, namely, that it implies his keeping firm and unmoved his own
people with whom he is present. David then reckons himself secure against all
dangers, and promises himself certain safety, because, with the eyes of faith,
he beholds God as present with him. From this passage we are furnished with an
argument which overthrows the fabrication of the
Sorbonists,
fa314 that the faithful are in doubt with
respect to their final perseverance; for David, in very plain terms, extends
his reliance on the grace of God to the time to come. And, certainly, it would
be a very miserable condition to be in, to tremble in uncertainty every moment,
having no assurance of the continuance of the grace of God towards
us.
9.
Therefore my heart is
glad. In this verse the Psalmist
commends the inestimable fruit of faith, of which Scripture every where makes
mention, in that, by placing us under the protection of God, it makes us not
only to live in the enjoyment of mental tranquillity, but, what is more, to live
joyful and cheerful. The principal, the essential part of a happy life, as we
know, is to possess tranquillity of conscience and of mind; as, on the contrary,
there is no greater infelicity than to be tossed amidst a multiplicity of cares
and fears.
But the ungodly, however much
intoxicated with the spirit of thoughtlessness or stupidity, never experience
true joy or serene mental peace; they rather feel terrible agitations within,
which often come upon them and trouble them, so much as to constrain them to
awake from their lethargy. In short, calmly to rejoice is the lot of no man but
of him who has learned to place his confidence in God alone, and to commit his
life and safety to his protection. When, therefore, encompassed with innumerable
troubles on all sides, let us be persuaded, that the only remedy is to direct
our eyes towards God; and if we do this, faith will not only tranquillise our
minds, but also replenish them with fullness of joy. David, however, not only
affirms that he is glad inwardly; he also makes his tongue, yea, even
his flesh, sharers of this joy. And not without cause, for true believers
not only have this spiritual joy in the secret affection of their heart, but
also manifest it by the tongue, inasmuch as they glory in God as He who protects
them and secures their salvation. The word
dwbk,
kabod, properly signifies glory and excellence. I have, however, no doubt
of its being here taken for the
tongue,
fa315 as it is in
<014906>Genesis
49:6; for otherwise the division which is obviously made in this verse of the
person into three parts is not so distinct and evident. Farther, although the
body is not free from inconveniences and troubles, yet as God defends and
maintains not only our souls, but also our bodies, David does not speak
groundlessly when he represents the blessing of dwelling in safety as extending
to his flesh in common with his
soul.
Psalm
16:10
10. For thou wilt not leave my
soul in the grave; neither wilt thou make thy Holy One to see the
pit.
fa316
The Psalmist goes on to explain
still more fully the preceding doctrine, by declaring that as he is not afraid
of death, there is nothing wanting which is requisite to the completion of his
joy. Whence it follows, that no one truly trusts in God but he who takes such
hold of the salvation which God has promised him as to despise death. Moreover,
it is to be observed, that David's language is not to be limited to some
particular kind of deliverance, as in
<194915>Psalm
49:15, where he says, "God hath redeemed my soul from the power of the grave,"
and in other similar passages; but he entertains the undoubted assurance of
eternal salvation, which freed him from all anxiety and fear. It is as if he had
said, There will always be ready for me a way of escape from the grave, that I
may not remain in corruption. God, in delivering his people from any danger,
prolongs their life only for a short time; but how slender and how empty a
consolation would it be to obtain some brief respite, and to take breath for a
short time, until death, coming at last, should terminate the course of our
life,
fa317 and swallow us up without any hope of
deliverance? Hence it appears that when David spake thus, he raised his mind
above the common lot of mankind. As the sentence has been pronounced upon all
the children of Adam, "Dust thou art, and unto dust shalt thou return,"
(<010319>Genesis
3:19,) the same condition in this respect awaits them all without exception. If,
therefore, Christ, who is the first-fruits of those who rise again, does not
come forth from the grave, they will remain for ever under the bondage of
corruption. From this Peter justly concludes,
(<440230>Acts
2:30,) that David could not have gloried in this manner but by the spirit of
prophecy; and unless he had had a special respect to the Author of life, who was
promised to him, who alone was to be honored with this privilege in its fullest
sense. This, however, did not prevent David from assuring himself of exemption
from the dominion of death by right, seeing Christ, by his rising from the dead,
obtained immortality not for himself individually, but for us all. As to the
point, that Peter
(<440230>Acts
2:30) and Paul
(<441333>Acts
13:33) contend that this prophecy was fulfilled in the person of Christ
alone,
fa318 the sense in which we must understand
them is this, that he was wholly and perfectly exempted from the corruption of
the grave, that he might call his members into his fellowship, and make them
partakers of this blessing,
fa319 although by degrees, and each according
to his measure. As the body of David, after death, was, in the course of time,
reduced to dust, the apostles justly conclude that he was not exempted from
corruption. It is the same with respect to all the faithful, not one of whom
becomes a partaker of incorruptible life without being first subjected to
corruption. From this it follows that the fullness of life which resides in the
head alone, namely, in Christ, falls down upon the members only in drops, or in
small portions. The question, however, may be asked, as Christ descended into
the grave, was not he also subject to corruption? The answer is easy. The
etymology or derivation of the two words here used to express the grave should
be carefully attended to. The grave is called
lwaç,
sheol, being as it were an insatiable gulf, which devours and consumes all
things, and the pit is called
tjç,
shachath, which signifies corruption. These words, therefore, here
denote not so much the place as the quality and condition of the place, as if it
had been said, The life of Christ will be exempted from the dominion of the
grave, inasmuch as his body, even when dead, will not be subject to corruption.
Besides, we know that the grave of Christ was filled, and as it were embalmed
with the life-giving perfume of his Spirit, that it might be to him the gate to
immortal glory. Both the Greek and Latin Fathers, I confess, have strained these
words to a meaning wholly different, referring them to the bringing back of the
soul of Christ from hell. But it is better to adhere to the natural simplicity
of the interpretation which I have given, that we may not make ourselves objects
of ridicule, to the Jews; and farther, that one subtilty, by engendering many
others, may not involve us in a labyrinth. In the second clause mention is
without doubt made of the body; and we know it to be a mode of speaking very
common with David intentionally to repeat the same thing twice, making a slight
variation as to words. It is true, we translate
çpn,
nephesh, by soul, but in Hebrew it only signifies the vital
breath, or life
itself
Psalm
16:11
11. Thou wilt make me to know
the path of life; fullness of joy is in thy countenance, pleasures are at thy
right hand for evermore.
The Psalmist
confirms the statement made in the preceding verse, and explains the way in
which God will exempt him from the bondage of death, namely, by conducting and
bringing him at length safely to the possession of eternal life. Whence we again
learn what I have already observed, that this passage touches upon the
difference which there is between true believers and aliens, or reprobates, with
respect to their everlasting state. It is a mere cavil to say, that when David
here speaks of the path of
life being shown to him, it means the
prolongation of his natural life. It is to form a very low estimate, indeed, of
the grace of God to speak of him as a guide to his people in the path of life
only for a very few years in this world. In this case, they would differ nothing
from the reprobate, who enjoy the light of the sun in common with them. If,
therefore, it is the special grace of God which he communicates to none but his
own children, that David here magnifies and exalts, the showing of the way of
life, of which he speaks, must undoubtedly be viewed as extending to a blessed
immortality; and, indeed, he only knows the way of life who is so united to God
that he lives in God, and cannot live without
him.
David next adds, that when God is
reconciled to us, we have all things which are necessary to perfect happiness.
The phrase, the countenance of God, may be understood either of our being
beheld by him, or of our beholding him; but I consider both these ideas as
included, for his fatherly favor, which he displays in looking upon us with a
serene countenance, precedes this joy, and is the first cause of it, and yet
this does not cheer us until, on our part, we behold it shining upon us. By this
clause David also intended distinctly to express to whom those pleasures
belong, of which God has in his hand a full and an overflowing abundance. As
there are with God pleasures sufficient to replenish and satisfy the whole
world, whence comes it to pass that a dismal and deadly darkness envelopes the
greater part of mankind, but because God does not look upon all men equally with
his friendly and fatherly countenance, nor opens the eyes of all men to seek the
matter of their joy in him, and no where else? Fulness of joy is
contrasted with the evanescent allurements and pleasures of this transitory
world, which, after having diverted their miserable votaries for a time, leave
them at length unsatisfied, famished, and disappointed. They may intoxicate and
glut themselves with pleasures to the greatest excess, but, instead of being
satisfied, they rather become wearied of them through loathing; and, besides,
the pleasures of this world vanish away like dreams. David, therefore, testifies
that true and solid joy in which the minds of men may rest will never be found
any where else but in God; and that, therefore, none but the faithful, who are
contented with his grace alone, can be truly and perfectly
happy.
PSALM
17.
This psalm contains a mournful complaint against the
cruel pride of David's enemies. He protests that he did not deserve to be
persecuted with such inhumanity, inasmuch as he had given them no cause for
exercising their cruelty against him. At the same time, he beseeches God, as his
protector, to put forth his power for his deliverance. The inscription of the
psalm does not refer to any particular time, but it is probable that David here
complains of Saul and his associates.
fa320
A prayer of
David.
Psalm
17:1-2
1. Hear my
righteousness,
fa321 O Jehovah, attend to my cry; hearken to
my prayer, which proceedeth not from deceitful lips. 2. Let my judgment
[or judgment in my favor] come forth from the presence of thy
countenance;
fa322 let thine eyes look upon my
uprightness.
1.
Hear my righteousness, O
Jehovah. The Psalmist begins the psalm
by setting forth the goodness of his cause. He does this because God has
promised that he will not suffer the innocent to be oppressed, but will always,
at length, succor them. Some explain the word
righteousness
as denoting righteous prayer, an interpretation which appears to me
unsatisfactory. The meaning rather is, that David, confiding in his own
integrity, interposes God as a Judge between himself and his enemies, to
cognosce or determine in his cause. We have already seen, in a preceding psalm,
that when we have to deal with wicked men, we may warrantably protest our
innocence before God. As, however, it would not be enough for the faithful to
have the approving testimony of a good conscience, David adds to his
protestation earnest prayer. Even irreligious persons may often be able justly
to boast of having a good cause; but as they do not acknowledge that the world
is governed by the providence of God, they content themselves with enjoying the
approbation of their own conscience, as they speak, and, gnawing the bit, bear
the injuries which are done to them rather obstinately than steadfastly, seeing
they do not seek for any consolation in faith and prayer. But the faithful not
only depend upon the goodness of their cause, they also commit it to God that he
may defend and maintain it; and whenever any adversity befalls them, they betake
themselves to him for help. This, therefore, is the meaning of the passage; it
is a prayer that God, who knew David to have done justly, and to have performed
his duty without giving occasion to any to blame
him,
fa323 and, therefore, to be unrighteously
molested by his enemies, would graciously look upon him; and that he would do
this especially, since, confiding in his aid, he entertained good hope, and, at
the same time, prays to him with a sincere heart. By the words cry and
prayer he means the same thing; but the word cry, and the
repetition of what it denotes, by a different expression, serve to show his
vehement, his intense earnestness of soul. Farther, as hypocrites talk loftily
in commendation of themselves, and to show to others a token of the great
confidence which they have in God, give utterance to loud cries, David protests
concerning himself that he does not speak deceitfully; in other words,
that he does not make use of his crying and prayer as a pretext for covering his
sins, but comes into the presence of God with sincerity of heart. By this form
of prayer the Holy Spirit teaches us, that we ought diligently to endeavor to
live an upright and innocent life, so that, if there are any who give us
trouble, we may be able to boast that we are blamed and persecuted
wrongfully.
fa324 Again, whenever the wicked assault us,
the same Spirit calls upon us to engage in prayer; and if any man, trusting to
the testimony of a good conscience which he enjoys, neglects the exercise of
prayer, he defrauds God of the honor which belongs to him, in not referring his
cause to him, and in not leaving him to judge and determine in it. Let us learn,
also, that when we present ourselves before God in prayer, it is not to be done
with the ornaments of an artificial eloquence, for the finest rhetoric and the
best grace which we can have before him consists in pure
simplicity.
2.
From the presence of thy
countenance. Literally it is, from
before thy face, or, before thy face. By these words David intimates
that if God does not rise up as the vindicator of his cause, he will be
overwhelmed with calumnies though innocent, and will be looked upon as a guilty
and condemned person. The cognisance which God will take of his cause is tacitly
set in opposition to the dark inventions of falsehood which were spread against
him.
fa325 His language is as if he had said, I do
not ask for any other judge but God, nor do I shrink from standing before his
judgment-seat,
fa326 since I bring with me both a pure heart
and a good cause. What he immediately adds with respect to God's looking upon
his uprightness is of similar import. He does not mean to say that God is
blind, but only beseeches him actually to show that he does not connive at the
wickedness of men, and that it is not to him a matter of indifference when he
beholds those who have not the means of defending
themselves
fa327 receiving evil treatment undeservedly.
Some take the word judgment in too restricted a sense for the right to
the kingdom which was promised to David, as if he petitioned to be placed on the
royal throne by the power of God, inasmuch as he had been chosen by him to be
king, and had also, in his name and by his authority, been anointed to this
office by the hand of Samuel. The meaning which I attach to David's language is
simply this, that being oppressed with many and varied wrongs, he commits
himself to the protection and defense of
God.
Psalm
17:3-4
3. Thou hast proved my heart;
thou hast visited it by night; thou hast examined it, thou shalt find nothing;
my thoughts shall not pass beyond my
mouth.
fa328 4. As for the works of men, by
the word of thy lips I have taken heed of [or watched] the ways of the
destroyer.
fa329
3.
Thou hast proved my
heart. Some are of opinion that in the
three first verbs the past tense is put for the future. Others more correctly
and more clearly resolve the words thus:If thou provest my heart, and visitest
it by night, and examinest it thoroughly, there will not be found any deceit
therein. But without making any change upon the words, they may be suitably
enough explained in this way:Thou, Lord, who understandest all the secret
affections and thoughts of my heart, even as it is thy peculiar prerogative to
try men, knowest very well that I am not a double man, and do not cherish any
deceit within. What David intended to express is certainly very evident. As he
was unjustly and falsely charged with crime, and could obtain neither justice
nor humanity at the hands of men, he appeals to God, requesting he would become
judge in the matter.
fa330 But not to do this rashly, he subjects
himself to an impartial examination, seeing God, whose prerogative it is
to search the secret recesses of the heart, cannot be deceived by the external
appearance. The time when he declares God to have visited him is during the
night, because, when a man is withdrawn from the presence of his
fellow-creatures, he sees more clearly his sins, which otherwise would be hidden
from his view; just as, on the contrary, the sight of men affects us with shame,
and this is, as it were, a veil before our eyes, which prevents us from
deliberately examining our faults. It is, therefore, as if David had said, O
Lord, since the darkness of the night discovers the conscience more fully, all
coverings being then taken away, and since, at that season, the affections,
either good or bad, according to men's inclinations, manifest themselves more
freely, when there is no person present to witness and pronounce judgment upon
them; if thou then examinest me, there will be found neither disguise nor deceit
in my heart.
fa331 Hence we conclude how great was David's
integrity, seeing that, when purposely and leisurely taking account of his
inmost thoughts, he presents himself so boldly, to be tried by the judgment of
God. And he not only declares himself to be innocent of outward crimes, but also
free from all secret malice. So far from cherishing malicious designs, while he
covered them over with fair pretences, as his enemies alleged, he protests that
his words were a frank and undisguised representation of what was passing in his
heart:My thought shall not pass
beyond my mouth. Our thought is said to
pass beyond our mouth when, for the purpose of deceiving, the mind thinks
differently from what the tongue
expresses.
fa332 The word
hmz,
zimmah, which we have translated simply thought, may also be taken in
a bad sense for deceitful and malicious
devices.
4.
As for the works of men, by
the word of thy lips. Interpreters
explain this verse in different senses. Some thinking that the letter
b,
beth, which commonly signifies in or by, is taken for
against, render it thus:As for the works of men which they practice
against thy word. But I rather incline to the opinion of others who consider
that there is here commended a right judgment of the actions of men which is
formed according to the rule of the word of God. There are some shrewd and
ingenious persons who carefully mark the works of men, but they do not judge of
them according to the word of God. What we have as yet said does not, however,
fully give us the sense of the passage. We must still consider what the Psalmist
means when he speaks of the paths of the
destroyer.
fa333 Some think he refers to the men
of his own company, who, if he had not restrained them, would have instantly
rushed like robbers to commit depredation; since being reduced to the greatest
distress, and seeing no prospect of an alteration to the better in their
affairs, they were become bold through despair; and we know how sharp a spur
necessity is in goading men forward in any course. But this exposition seems to
me to be forced, and therefore I rather refer the words to his enemies. Farther,
there is a diversity of opinion among interpreters with respect to the meaning
of the word watched or observed. Some understand it in this sense,
that David had done his duty in strenuously opposing outrageous men, and those
who were wickedly engaged in the work of disturbing the repose and tranquillity
of their fellow-men.
fa334 Others understand it thus, that he was
careful to distinguish between good and evil, or right and wrong, that he might
not be corrupted by bad examples,
fa335 but avoid them, and, on the contrary,
practice those things which he saw to be agreeable to the word of God. But
David, I have no doubt, had a different meaning, and intended to declare, that
although wicked and malicious men provoked him to evil, he had, nevertheless,
been always restrained by the word of God, so that he kept himself from
exercising violence and inflicting injuries, or from rendering evil for
evil.
fa336 He therefore tells us, that whatever
may have been the works of men, he had been always so devoted to the word of
God, and so hung, as it were, upon his mouth, that he could not think of
allowing himself, when provoked by the injuries his enemies inflicted on him, to
act towards them as they acted towards him. We know how severe a temptation it
is, and how difficult to overcome, to disregard the manner in which men behave
themselves towards us, and to consider only what God forbids or commands us.
Even those who are naturally inclined to gentleness and
humanity,
fa337 who desire to do good to all men, and
wish to hurt nobody, whenever they are provoked, burst forth into a revengeful
mood, carried away by a blind impetuosity; especially when we see all right and
equity overthrown, the confusion so blinds us, that we begin to howl with the
wolves. If, therefore, we would have a good rule for governing ourselves, when
our enemies, by their mischievous actions, provoke us to treat them in a similar
manner, let us learn, after the example of David, to meditate upon the word of
God, and to keep our eyes fixed upon it. By this means our minds will be
preserved from ever being blinded, and we shall always avoid the paths of
wickedness, seeing God will not only keep our affections under restraint by his
commandments, but will also train them to patience by his promises. He withholds
us from doing evil to our neighbors,
fa338 not only by forbidding us, but by
declaring, at the same time, that he will take into his own hand the execution
of vengeance on those who injure us,
fa339 he admonishes us to "give place unto
wrath,"
(<451219>Romans
12:19.)
Psalm
17:5-6
5. Uphold my steps in thy
paths, that the soles of my feet may not slide. 6. I have called upon
thee, surely thou wilt hear me, O God; incline thine ear unto me, and hear my
words.
5.
Uphold my
steps. If we take God's paths for
the precepts of his law, the sense will be evident, namely, that although David
had spoken according to truth, in boasting of having, in the midst of the most
grievous temptations which assailed him, constantly practiced righteousness with
a pure heart, yet, conscious of his own weakness, he commits himself to God to
be governed by him, and prays for grace to enable him to persevere. His language
is as if he had said, Since hitherto, under thy guidance, I have proceeded
onward in the right path, I beseech thee, in like manner, to keep my steps from
sliding with respect to the time to come. And certainly the more any one excels
in grace,
fa340 the more ought he to be afraid of
falling; for it is the usual policy of Satan to endeavor, even from the virtue
and strength which God has given us,
fa341 to produce in us carnal confidence
which may induce carelessness. I do not altogether reject this sense, but I
think it more probable that David here beseeches God to bring his affairs to a
prosperous issue, however dark the aspect of matters was at present. The import
of his language is this, Lord, since thou seest that I walk in uprightness and
sincerity of heart, govern thou me in such a manner as to make all men see that
thou art my protector and guardian, and leave me not to be cast down at the will
of my enemies. Thus, by the paths of the Lord, he will mean not the
doctrine by which our life is regulated, but the power by which God upholds us,
and the protection by which he preserves us. And he addresses God in this
manner, not only because all events are in his hand, but because when he takes
care of us all things in our lot go on prosperously. When he adds,
that the soles of my feet may not
slide, he refers to the many adverse
events which threaten us every moment, and to the danger we are in of perishing,
if not sustained by the hand of
God.
6.
I have called upon thee,
etc. This verb being put in the past
tense denotes a continued act; and, therefore, it includes the present time. The
Hebrew word
yk,
ki, which we translate surely, often signifies because, and
if it is so understood in this passage, the meaning will be, that David took
encouragement to pray, because, depending upon the promise of God, he hoped that
his prayers would not be in vain. But, perhaps, it may be thought preferable to
change the tense of the verb as some do, so as to give this meaning, I will
pray, because I have hitherto experienced that thou hast
heard
fa342 my prayers. I have, however, chosen the
exposition what appears to me the more simple. David, in my judgment, here
encourages and animates himself to call upon God, from the confident hope of
being heard, as if he had said, Since I call upon thee, surely, O God, thou wilt
not despise my prayers. Immediately after he beseeches God to bestow upon him
the blessings of which he told us he entertained an assured
hope.
Psalm
17:7-9
7. Make marvellous thy
mercies, O thou preserver of those who trust [in
thee,
fa343] from those that exalt themselves
against thy right hand. 8. Keep me as the apple, the daughter of the
eye
fa344 hide me in the shadow of thy wings.
9. From the face of the ungodly, who go about to destroy me; and of mine
enemies, who besiege [or encompass] my
soul.
7.
Make marvellous thy
mercies. As the word
hlph,
haphleh, signifies sometimes to make wonderful, or remarkable,
and sometimes to separate and set apart, both these senses will be
very suitable to this passage. In
<193119>Psalm
31:19, the "goodness" of God is said to be "laid up" in store as a peculiar
treasure "for them that fear him," that he may bring it forth at the proper
season, even when they are brought to an extremity, and when all things seem to
be desperate. If, then, the translation, separate and set apart thy mercy,
is preferred, the words are a prayer that God would display towards his
servant David the special grace which he communicates to none but his chosen
ones. While God involves both the good and the bad in danger indiscriminately,
he at length shows, by the different issue of things, in regard to the two
classes, that he does not confusedly mingle the chaff and the wheat together,
seeing he gathers his own people into a company by themselves,
(<400312>Matthew
3:12, and
<402532>Matthew
25:32.) I, however, prefer following another exposition. David, in my judgment,
perceiving that he could only be delivered from the perilous circumstances in
which he was placed by singular and extraordinary means, betakes himself to the
wonderful or miraculous power of God. Those who think he desires God to withhold
his grace from his persecutors do too great violence to the scope of the
passage. By this circumstance there is expressed the extreme danger to which
David was exposed; for otherwise it would have been enough for him to have been
succoured in the ordinary and common way in which God is accustomed daily to
favor and to aid his own people. The grievousness of his distress, therefore,
constrained him to beseech God to work miraculously for his deliverance. The
title with which he here honors God,
O thou preserver of those who
trust [in thee,] serves to confirm him
in the certain hope of obtaining his requests. As God takes upon him the charge
of saving all who confide in him, David being one of their number, could upon
good ground assure himself of safety and deliverance. Whenever, therefore, we
approach God, let the first thought impressed on our minds be, that as he is not
in vain called the preserver of those who trust in him, we have no reason
whatever to be afraid of his not being ready to succor us, provided our faith
continue firmly to rely upon his grace. And if every way of deliverance is shut
up, let us also at the same time remember that he is possessed of wonderful and
inconceivable means of succouring us, which serve so much the more conspicuously
to magnify and manifest his power. But as the participle trusting, or
hoping, is put without any additional word expressing the object of this
trust or hope,
fa345 some interpreters connect it with the
last words of the verse, thy
right hand, as if the order of the words
were inverted. They, therefore, resolve them thus,
O thou preserver of those who
trust in thy right hand, from those who rise up against
them. As this, however, is harsh and
strained, and the exposition which I have given is more natural, and more
generally received,
fa346 let us follow it. To express,
therefore, the meaning in one sentence, the Psalmist attributes to God the
office of defending and preserving his own people from all the ungodly who rise
up to assault them, and who, if it were in their power, would destroy them. And
the ungodly are here said to
exalt themselves against the hand of God,
because, in molesting the faithful whom God has taken under his protection,
they openly wage war against him. The doctrine contained in these words, namely,
that when we are molested, an outrage is committed upon God in our person, is a
very profitable one; for having once declared himself to be the guardian and
protector of our welfare, whenever we are unjustly assailed, he puts forth his
hand before us as a shield of defense.
The two
similitudes which David has subjoined in the following verse, respecting the
apple of the eye, and the little birds which the mother keeps under her
wings,
fa347 are introduced for illustrating
the same subject. God, to express the great care which he has of his own people,
compares himself to a hen and other fowls, which spread out their wings to
cherish and cover their young, and declares them to be no less dear to him than
the apple of the eye, which is the tenderest part of the body, is to man; it
follows, therefore, that whenever men rise up to molest and injure the
righteous, war is waged against him. As this form of prayer was put into the
mouth of David by the Holy Spirit, it is to be regarded as containing in it a
promise. We have here presented to our contemplation a singular and an
astonishing proof of the goodness of God, in humbling himself so far, and in a
manner so to speak, transforming himself, in order to lift up our faith above
the conceptions of the flesh.
9.
From the face of the
ungodly. The Psalmist, by again accusing
his enemies, intends to set forth his own innocence, as an argument for his
obtaining the favor of God. At the same time, he complains of their cruelty,
that God may be the more inclined to aid him. First, he says that they burn with
an enraged desire to waste and to destroy him; secondly, he adds, that they
besiege him in his soul, by which he means, that they would never rest
satisfied until they had accomplished his death. The greater, therefore, the
terror with which we are stricken by the cruelty of our enemies, the more ought
we to be quickened to ardor in prayer. God, indeed, does not need to receive
information and incitement from us; but the use and the end of prayer is, that
the faithful, by freely declaring to God the calamities and sorrows which
oppress them, and in disburdening them, as it were, into his bosom, may be
assured beyond all doubt that he has a regard to their
necessities.
Psalm
17:10-12
10. They have inclosed
themselves in their own fat,
fa348 they have spoken proudly with their
mouth. 11. They have now compassed me round about in our steps; they have
fixed their eyes to cast down to the ground. 12. The likeness of him is
as a lion that desireth to tear in pieces, and as a lion's whelp which lurketh
in secret places.
10.
They have inclosed themselves in
their own fat. If the translation which
is given by others is considered preferable,
They have inclosed their own
fat, the meaning will be quite the same.
Some Jewish interpreters explain the words thus:that being stuffed with fat, and
their throat being, as it were, choked with it, they were unable to speak
freely; but this is a very meagre and unsatisfactory exposition. By the word
fat, I think, is denoted the pride with which they were filled and
swollen, as it were, with fatness. It is a very appropriate and expressive
metaphor to represent them as having their hearts choked up with pride, in the
manner in which corpulent persons are affected from the fat within
them.
fa349 David complains of their being puffed
up with their wealth and pleasures, and accordingly we see the ungodly, the more
luxuriously they are pampered, conducting themselves the more outrageously and
proudly. But I think there is described by the word fat an inward vice
namely, their being inclosed on all sides with arrogance and presumption, and
their having become utter strangers to every feeling of
humanity.
fa350 The Psalmist next declares that this is
abundantly manifested in their language. In short, his meaning is, that inwardly
they swell with pride, and that they take no pains to conceal it, as appears
from the high swelling words to which they give utterance. When it is said,
They have spoken proudly with
their mouth, the word mouth is
not a pleonasm, as it often is in other places; for David means, that with
mouths widely opened they pour forth scornful and contemptuous language, which
bears testimony to the pride which dwells within
them.
11.
They have now compassed me round
about in our steps. The Psalmist
confirms what he has said before concerning the furious passion for doing
mischief with which his enemies were inflamed. He says they were so cruelly bent
on accomplishing his destruction, that in whatever way he directed or altered
his course, they ceased not to follow close upon him. When he says our steps,
he doubtless comprehends his own companions, although he immediately after
returns to speak of himself alone; unless, perhaps, another reading is
preferred, for some copies have
wnwbbs,
sebabunu, They have
compassed us, in the plural number.
This, however, is not a matter of great importance. David simply complains, that
unless God stretch forth his hand from heaven to deliver him, there now remains
for him no way of escape, seeing his enemies, whenever he stirs his foot to
avoid their fury, immediately pursue him, and watch all his steps. By the adverb
now, he intimates not only that he is at present in very great danger,
but also that at every moment his enemies, in whatever way he turns himself,
pursue and press hard upon him. In the last clause,
They have fixed their eyes to
cast down to the ground, some consider
David as comparing his enemies to hunters, who, with eyes fixed on the ground,
are silently looking with eager desire for their prey. They, therefore, think
that by the eyes fixed on the ground is denoted the gesture or attitude of
David's adversaries, and certainly crafty and malicious men have their
countenance often fixed on the ground. According to others, whose opinion is
nearer the spirit of the passage, this form of expression signifies the
continual and unwearied ardor by which the ungodly are impelled to turn all
things upside down. To fix their
eyes, therefore, is nothing else than to
apply all their ingenuity, and put forth all their efforts. What follows,
to cast down to the
ground, is the same thing as to
overthrow. The ungodly, as if they must necessarily fall, should the world
continue to stand, would wish all mankind thrown down or destroyed, and,
therefore, they exert themselves to the utmost to bring down and ruin all men.
This is explained more fully by the figurative illustration introduced in the
following verse, where they are said to be like lions and lions'
whelps.
fa351 But we ought always to keep this
truth in remembrance, that the more proudly wicked men exercise their cruelty
against us, the hand of God is so much the nearer to us to oppose itself to
their savage fury; for to him alone belongs the praise of subduing and
restraining these wild beasts who delight in shedding blood. David speaks of
dens, or secret lurking places, because his enemies were deeply
skilled in artful stratagem, and had various methods of doing mischief, while
they had also at hand the power and means of executing them, so that it was
difficult to resist them.
Psalm
17:13-14
13. Arise, O Jehovah,
prevent [or go before] his face, lay him prostrate on the
ground;
fa352 deliver my soul from the ungodly man by
thy sword:14. From men by thy hand, O Jehovah, from men who are of long
duration, [or who are from an age,
fa353] whose portion is in life, whose belly
thou fillest with thy secret goods; their children are filled with them, and
they leave the rest to their
babes.
13.
Arise, O
Jehovah. The more furiously David was
persecuted by his enemies, he beseeches God the more earnestly to afford him
immediate aid; for he uses the word face to denote the swift impetuosity
of his adversary, to repress which there was need of the greatest haste. By
these words, the Holy Spirit teaches us, that when death shows itself to be just
at hand, God is provided with remedies perfectly prepared, by which he can
effect our deliverance in a moment. The Psalmist not only attributes to God the
office of delivering his people; he at the same time arms him with power to
crush and break in pieces the wicked. He does not, however, wish them to be cast
down farther than was necessary to their being humbled, that they might cease
from their outrageous and injurious conduct towards him, as we may gather from
the following clause, where he again beseeches God
to deliver his
soul. David would have been contented to see
them continuing in the possession of their outward ease and prosperity, had they
not abused their power by practising injustice and cruelty. Let us know then,
that God consults the good of his people when he overthrows the ungodly, and
breaks their strength; when he does this, it is for the purpose of delivering
from destruction the poor innocents who are molested by these wretched
men.
fa354 Some expositors read the passage thus,
From the ungodly man, who is thy
sword,
fa355 and also, From the men who
are thy hand; but this does not seem to me to be a proper translation. I
admit, that from whatever quarter afflictions come to us, it is the hand of God
which chastises us, and that the ungodly are the scourges he employs for this
purpose; and farther, that this consideration is very well fitted to lead us to
exercise patience. But as this manner of speaking would here be somewhat harsh,
and, at the same time, not very consistent with the prayer, I prefer adopting
the exposition which represents David's words as a prayer that God would deliver
him by his sword, and smite with his hand those men who, for too long a time,
had been in possession of power and prosperity. He contrasts God's sword with
human aids and human means of relief; and the import of his words is, If God
himself does not come forth to take vengeance, and draw his sword, there remains
for me no hope of deliverance.
14.
From men by thy hand, O Jehovah,
from men who are from an age. I connect
these words thus:O Lord, deliver me by thy hand, or by thy heavenly aid, from
men; I say from men whose tyranny has prevailed too long, and whom thou hast
suffered to wallow too long in the filth and draft of their prosperity. This
repetition is very emphatic; David's voice being stifled, as it were, with the
indignation which he felt at seeing such villany continuing for so long a
period, he stops all at once after uttering the first word, without proceeding
farther in the sentence which he meant to express; then, after having recovered
his breath, he declares what it is that so greatly distressed him. In the
preceding verse he had spoken in the singular number; but now he gives us to
understand that he had not only one enemy but many, and that those who were set
against him were strong and powerful, so that he saw no hope of deliverance
remaining for him except in the aid of
God.
These words, from world, or age,
(for such is the exact literal
rendering,
fz336) are expounded in different ways. Some
understand them as meaning men who have their time, as if David intended
to say that their prosperous condition would not be of long duration; but this
does not appear to me to be the proper explanation. Others suppose he means by
this expression such as are wholly devoted to the world, and whose whole
attention and thoughts are absorbed in the things of earth; and, according to
their opinion, David compares his enemies to brute beasts. In the same sense
they explain what follows immediately after, Their portion is in life,
language which they consider as applied to them, because, being
entirely destitute of the Spirit, and cleaving with their whole hearts to
transitory good things, they think of nothing better than this world. For that
in which each man places his felicity is termed his portion. As, however, the
Hebrew word
dlj,
cheled, signifies an age, or the course of a man's life,
David, I doubt not, complains that his enemies had lived and enjoyed
prosperity longer than the ordinary term allotted to the life of man. The
audacity and the outrages
fz337 committed by wicked men might be borne
with for a short time, but when they wax wanton against God, it is very strange
indeed to see them continuing stable in their prosperous condition. That this is
the sense appears from the preposition
ˆm,
min, which we have translated from, by which David expresses that
they were not sprung up only a few days before or lately, but that their
prosperity, which should have vanished away in a moment, had lasted for a very
long time. Such, then, is the meaning of the Psalmist, unless, perhaps, we may
understand him as denominating them of the world, or age, because
they bear the chief authority among men, and are exalted in honors and riches,
as if this world had been made for them
alone.
When he says,
Their portion is in
life, I explain it as meaning that they
are exempted from all troubles, and abound in pleasures; in short, that they do
not experience the common condition of other men; as, on the contrary, when a
man is oppressed with adversities, it is said of him that his portion is in
death. David therefore intimates, that it is not a reasonable thing that the
ungodly should be permitted to gad about in joy and gaiety without having any
fear of death, and to claim for themselves, as if by hereditary right, a
peaceful and happy life.
What he adds
immediately after, Whose belly
thou fillest with thy secret goods, is
of the same import. We see these persons not only enjoying, in common with other
men, light, breath, food, and all other commodities of life, but we also see God
often treating them more delicately and more bountifully than others, as if he
fed them on his lap, holding them tenderly like little babes, and fondling them
more than all the rest of mankind.
fz338 Accordingly, by the secret goods of
God, we are here to understand the rare and more exquisite dainties which he
bestows upon them. Now, this is a severe temptation, if a man estimates the love
and favor of God by the measure of earthly prosperity which he bestows; and,
therefore, it is not to be wondered at, though David was greatly afflicted in
contemplating the prosperous condition of ungodly men. But let us remember that
he makes this holy complaint to console himself, and to mitigate his distress,
not in the way of murmuring against God and resisting his will; - let us
remember this, I say, that, after his example, we may learn also to
direct our groanings to heaven. Some give a more subtile exposition of what is
here called God's secret goods, viewing it as meaning the good things
which the ungodly devour without thinking of or regarding him who is the author
of them; or they suppose the good things of God to be called secret,
because the reason why God pours them forth so abundantly upon the wicked is
not apparent. But the exposition which I have given, as it is both simple and
natural, so of itself it sufficiently disproves the others. The last point in
this description is, that, by continual succession, these persons transmit their
riches to their children and their children's children. As they are not among
the number of the children of God, to whom this blessing is promised, it
follows, that when they are thus fattened, it is for the day of slaughter which
he hath appointed. The object which David therefore has in view in making this
complaint is, that God would make haste to execute vengeance, seeing they have
so long abused his liberality and gentle
treatment.
Psalm
17:15
15. But as for me, I shall
behold thy face in righteousness:I shall be satisfied, when I shall awake, with
thy image, [or likeness.]
Having with
anguish of heart declared before God the troubles which afflicted and tormented
him, that he might not be overwhelmed with the load of temptations which pressed
upon him, he now takes, as it were, the wings of faith and rises up to a region
of undisturbed tranquillity, where he may behold all things arranged and
directed in due order. In the first place, there is here a tacit comparison
between the well regulated state of things which will be seen when God by his
judgment shall restore to order those things which are now embroiled and
confused, and the deep and distressing darkness which is in the world, when God
keeps silence, and hides his face. In the midst of those afflictions which he
has recounted, the Psalmist might seem to be plunged in darkness from which he
would never obtain deliverance.
fz339 When we see the ungodly enjoying
prosperity, crowned with honors, and loaded with riches, they seem to be in
great favor with God. But David triumphs over their proud and presumptuous
boasting; and although, to the eye of sense and reason, God has cast him off,
and removed him far from him, yet he assures himself that one day he will enjoy
the privilege of familiarly beholding him. The pronoun I is emphatic, as
if he had said, The calamities and reproaches which I now endure will not
prevent me from again experiencing fullness of joy from the fatherly love of God
manifested towards me. We ought carefully to observe, that David, in order to
enjoy supreme happiness, desires nothing more than to have always the taste and
experience of this great blessing that God is reconciled to him. The wicked may
imagine themselves to be happy, but so long as God is opposed to them, they
deceive themselves in indulging this imagination.
To behold God's
face, is nothing else than to have a
sense of his fatherly favor, with which he not only causes us to rejoice by
removing our sorrows, but also transports us even to heaven. By the word
righteousness, David means that he will not be disappointed of the reward
of a good conscience. As long as God humbles his people under manifold
afflictions, the world insolently mocks at their simplicity, as if they deceived
themselves, and lost their pains in devoting themselves to the cultivation and
practice of purity and innocence.
fz340
Against such kind of mockery and derision David is here struggling, and in
opposition to it he assures himself that there is a recompense laid up for his
godliness and uprightness, provided he continue to persevere in his obedience to
the holy law of God; as Isaiah, in like manner,
(<230310>Isaiah
3:10,) exhorts the faithful to support themselves from this consideration, that
"it shall be well with the righteous:for they shall eat the fruit of
their doings." We ought not, however, from this to think that he represents
works as the cause of his salvation. It is not his purpose to treat of what
constitutes the meritorious ground upon which he is to be received into the
favor of God. He only lays it down as a principle, that they who serve God do
not lose their labor, for although he may hide his face from them for a time, he
causes them again in due season to behold his bright
countenance
fz341 and compassionate eye beaming upon
them.
I shall be
satisfied. Some interpreters, with more
subtility than propriety, restrict this to the resurrection at the last day, as
if David did not expect to experience in his heart a blessed
joy
fz342 until the life to come, and suspended
every longing desire after it until he should attain to that life. I readily
admit that this satisfaction of which he speaks will not in all respects be
perfect before the last coming of Christ; but as the saints, when God causes
some rays of the knowledge of his love to enter into their hearts, find great
enjoyment in the light thus communicated, David justly calls this peace or joy
of the Holy Spirit satisfaction. The ungodly may be at their ease, and
have abundance of good things, even to bursting, but as their desire is
insatiable, or as they feed upon wind, in other words, upon earthly things,
without tasting spiritual things, in which there is
substance,
fz343 or being so stupified through the
pungent remorse of conscience with which they are tormented, as not to enjoy the
good things which they possess, they never have composed and tranquil minds, but
are kept unhappy by the inward passions with which they are perplexed and
agitated. It is therefore the grace of God alone which can give us
contentment,
fz344 and prevent us from being distracted by
irregular desires. David, then, I have no doubt, has here an allusion to the
empty joys of the world, which only famish the soul, while they sharpen and
increase the appetite the more,
fz345 in order to show that those only are
partakers of true and substantial happiness who seek their felicity in the
enjoyment of God alone. As the literal rendering of the Hebrew words is, I
shall be satisfied in the awaking of thy face, or, in awaking by thy
face; some, preferring the first exposition, understand by the awaking of
God's face the breaking forth, or manifestation of the light of his grace, which
before was, as it were, covered with clouds. But to me it seems more suitable to
refer the word awake to David,
fz346 and to view it as meaning the same
thing as to obtain respite from his sorrow. David had never indeed been
overwhelmed with stupor; but after a lengthened period of fatigue, through the
persecution of his enemies, he must needs have been brought into such a state as
to appear sunk into a profound sleep. The saints do not sustain and repel all
the assaults which are made upon them so courageously as not, by reason of the
weakness of their flesh, to feel languid and feeble for a time, or to be
terrified, as if they were enveloped in darkness. David compares this
perturbation of mind to a sleep. But when the favor of God shall again have
arisen and shone brightly upon him, he declares that then he will recover
spiritual strength and enjoy tranquillity of mind. It is true, indeed, as Paul
declares, that so long as we continue in this state of earthly pilgrimage, "we
walk by faith, not by sight;" but as we nevertheless behold the image of God not
only in the glass of the gospel, but also in the numerous evidences of his grace
which he daily exhibits to us, let each of us awaken himself from his lethargy,
that we may now be satisfied with spiritual felicity, until God, in due time,
bring us to his own immediate presence, and cause us to enjoy him face to
face.
PSALM
18.
We all know through what difficulties and almost
insurmountable obstacles David came to the kingdom. Even to the time of Saul's
death he was a fugitive, and, as it were, an outlaw, and wearily passed his life
in fear, amidst many threatenings and dangers of death. After God had, with his
own hand, placed him on the royal throne, he was immediately harassed with the
tumults and insurrections of his own subjects, and the hostile faction being
superior to him in power, he was often at the point of being completely
overthrown. Foreign enemies, on the other hand, severely tried him even to his
old age. These calamities he would never have surmounted had he not been aided
by the power of God. Having therefore obtained many and signal victories, he
does not, as irreligious men are accustomed to do, sing a song of triumph in
honor of himself, but exalts and magnifies God the author of these victories, by
a train of striking and appropriate epithets, and in a style of surpassing
grandeur and sublimity. This psalm, therefore, is the first of those psalms in
which David celebrates, in lofty strains, the wonderful grace which God had
shown towards him, both in putting him in possession of the kingdom, and in
afterwards maintaining him in it. He also shows that his reign was an image and
type of the kingdom of Christ, to teach and assure the faithful that Christ, in
spite of the whole world, and of all the resistance which it can make, will, by
the stupendous and incomprehensible power of the Father, be always
victorious.
To the chief
musician of David, the servant of Jehovah, who sung to Jehovah the words of this
song in the day that Jehovah delivered him from the hand of all his enemies, and
from the hand of Saul.
We ought carefully to mark the particular time when
this psalm was composed, as it shows us that David, when his affairs were
brought to a state of peace and prosperity, was not intoxicated with extravagant
joy like irreligious men, who, when they have obtained deliverance from their
calamities, shake off from their minds the remembrance of God's benefits, and
plunge themselves into gross and degrading pleasures, or erect their crests, and
obscure the glory of God by their proud and vain boasting. David, as the sacred
history relates,
(<102201>2
Samuel 22:1,) sung this song to the Lord, when he was now almost spent with age,
and when, being delivered from all his troubles, he enjoyed tranquillity. The
inscription here agrees with that account, and, from What is there stated, we
conclude, that it has not been improperly or incorrectly prefixed to this psalm.
David points out the time when it was sung, namely,
after God had delivered him from
all his enemies, to show us that he was
then in perfectly quiet possession of his kingdom, and that God had assisted him
not once, nor against one kind of enemies only; seeing his conflicts were from
time to time renewed, and the end of one war was the commencement of another;
yea, many armies often rose up against him at the same time. Since the creation
of the world, we will scarcely find another individual in it whom God has tried
by so many and so varied afflictions. As Saul had persecuted him with more
cruelty, and with greater fury and determination than all others, his name on
that account is here expressly mentioned, although, in the preceding clause, the
Psalmist had spoken in general terms of all his enemies. Saul is not put last,
as if he had been one of his later
enemies,
fz347 for his death had taken place about
thirty years previous to this time; and since that event David had discomfited
many foreign enemies, and had also suppressed the rebellion of his own son
Absalom. But, persuaded that it was a singular manifestation of the grace of God
towards him, and eminently worthy of being remembered, that he had for so many
years escaped from innumerable deaths, or rather that as many days as he had
lived under the reign of Saul, God had wrought, as it were, so many miracles for
his deliverance, he firstly mentions and celebrates in particular his
deliverance from the hands of this relentless enemy. By calling himself
the servant of
God, he doubtless intended to bear
testimony to his call to be king, as if he had said, I have not rashly, and by
my own authority, usurped the kingdom, but have only acted in obedience to the
oracle of heaven. And, indeed, amidst the many storms which he had to encounter,
it was a support highly necessary to be well assured in his own mind of having
undertaken nothing but by the appointment of God; or rather, this was to him a
peaceful haven, and a secure retreat in the midst of so many broils and strange
calamities.
fz348 There is not a more wretched object
than mail in adversity, when he has brought himself into distress by acting
according to the mere impulse of his own mind, and not by acting in obedience to
the call of God. David, therefore, had a good reason for wishing it to be known
that it was not ambition which impelled him to enter into those contests which
were so painful and difficult for him to bear, and that he had not attempted any
thing unlawful or by wicked means, but had always kept steadily in view the will
of God, which served as a light to guide him in his path. This is a point which
it is highly useful for us to know, in order that we may not expect to be
exempted from all trouble, when we follow the call of God, but may rather
prepare ourselves for a condition of warfare painful and disagreeable to our
flesh. The name servant, therefore, in this passage, as in many others,
relates to his public office; just as when the prophets and apostles call
themselves the servants of God, they have a reference to their official
character. It is as if he had said, I am not a king of my own creation, but have
been chosen by God to fill that high station. At the same time, we ought
particularly to notice the humility of David, who, although distinguished by so
many victories, and the conqueror of so many nations, and possessed of so great
dignity and wealth, honors himself with no other title than this,
The servant of
God; as if he meant to show that
he accounted it more honorable to have faithfully performed the duties of the
office with which God had invested him, than to possess all the honors and
excellence of the world.
Psalm
18:1-2
1. And he said, I will
affectionately love thee,
fz349 O Jehovah, my strength. 2.
Jehovah is my rock,
fz350 a my fortress, and my deliverer; my
God, my rock, I will trust in him my shield, and the
horn
fz351 of my salvation, my
refuge.
1.
And he said,
etc. I will not stop to examine too minutely
the syllables, or the few words, in which this psalm differs from the song which
is recorded in the twenty-second chapter of the Second Book of Samuel. When,
however, we meet with any important difference, we shall advert to it in the
proper place; and we find one in the remarkable sentence with which this psalm
commences, I will love thee
affectionately, O Jehovah, my strength,
which is omitted in the song in Samuel. As the Scripture does not use the
verb
µhr,
racham, for to love, except in the conjugation pihel, and
as it is here put in the conjugation kal, some of the Jewish expositors
explain it as here meaning to seek mercy; as if David had said, Lord,
since I have so often experienced thee to be a merciful God, I will trust to and
repose in thy mercies for ever. And certainly this exposition would not be
unsuitable, but I am unwilling to depart from the other, which is more generally
received. It is to be observed, that love to God is here laid down as
constituting the principal part of true godliness; for there is no better way of
serving God than to love him. No doubt, the service which we owe him is better
expressed by the word reverence, that thus his majesty may prominently
stand forth to our view in its infinite greatness. But as he requires nothing so
expressly as to possess all the affections of our heart, and to have them going
out towards him, so there is no sacrifice which he values more than when we are
bound fast to him by the chain of a free and spontaneous love; and, on the other
hand, there is nothing in which his glory shines forth more conspicuously than
in his free and sovereign goodness. Moses, therefore,
(<051012>Deuteronomy
10:12,) when he meant to give a summary of the law, says,
"And now, Israel, what
doth the Lord thy God require
of
thee but to love him?"
In speaking thus, David, at the same time, intended
to show that his thoughts and affections were not so intently fixed upon the
benefits of God as to be ungrateful to him who was the author of them, a sin
which has been too common in all ages. Even at this day we see how the greater
part of mankind enjoy wholly at their ease the gifts of God without paying any
regard to him, or, if they think of him at all, it is only to despise him.
David, to prevent himself from falling into this ingratitude, in these words
makes as it were a solemn vow, Lord, as thou art my strength, I will continue
united and devoted to thee by unfeigned
love.
2.
Jehovah is my rock,
etc. When David thus heaps together many
titles by which to honor God, it is no useless or unnecessary accumulation of
words. We know how difficult it is for men to keep their minds and hearts stayed
in God. They either imagine that it is not enough to have God for them, and,
consequently, are always seeking after support and succor elsewhere, or, at the
first temptation which assails them, fall from the confidence which they placed
in him. David, therefore, by attributing to God various methods of saving his
people, protests that, provided he has God for his protector and defender, he is
effectually fortified against all peril and assault; as if he had said, Those
whom God intends to succor and defend are not only safe against one kind of
dangers, but are as it were surrounded by impregnable ramparts on all sides, so
that, should a thousand deaths be presented to their view, they ought not to be
afraid even at this formidable array.
fz352 We see, then, that the design of David
here is not only to celebrate the praises of God, in token of his gratitude, but
also to fortify our minds with a firm and steadfast faith, so that, whatever
afflictions befall us, we may always have recourse to God, and may be fully
persuaded that he has virtue and power to assist us in different ways, according
to the different methods of doing us mischief which the wicked devise. Nor, as I
have observed before, does David insist so much on this point, and express the
same thing by different terms without cause. God may have aided us in one way,
and yet whenever a new tempest arises, we are immediately stricken with terror,
as if we had never experienced any thing of his aid. And those who in one
trouble expect protection and succor from him, but who afterwards circumscribe
his power, accounting it limited in other respects, act like a man who upon
going into battle, considers himself well secured as to his breast, because he
has a breastplate and a shield to defend him, and yet is afraid of his head,
because he is without a helmet. David, therefore, here furnishes the faithful
with a complete suit of armor,
fz353 that they may feel that they are in no
danger of being wounded, provided they are shielded by the power of God. That
such is the object he has in view, is apparent from the declaration which he
makes of his confidence in God:I
will trust in him. Let us, therefore,
learn from his example, to apply to our own use those titles which are here
attributed to God, and to apply them as an antidote against all the perplexities
and distresses which may assail us; or rather, let them be deeply imprinted upon
our memory, so that we may be able at once to repel to a distance whatever fear
Satan may suggest to our mind. I give this exhortation, not only because we
tremble under the calamities with which we are presently assailed, but also
because we groundlessly conjure up in our own imaginations dangers as to the
time to come, and thus needlessly disquiet ourselves by the mere creations of
fancy. In the song, as recorded in
<102203>2
Samuel 22:3, instead of these words, My God, my rock, it is, God of my
rock. And after the word refuge, there is, My fortress, my savior,
thou shalt preserve me from violence; words which make the sentence fuller,
but the meaning comes to the same
thing.
Psalm
18:3-6
3. I will call upon the
praised Jehovah, and I shall be saved from mine enemies. 4. The
cords
fz354 of death had compassed me about; the
torrents of wickedness
fz355 had made me afraid. 5. The cords
of the grave
fa356 had compassed me about; the snares of
death had prevented me. 6. In my distress I called upon Jehovah, and
cried to my God:and he heard my voice from his temple, and my cry came before
him, even into his
ears.
3.
I will call upon the praised Jehovah.
Calling upon God, as has been observed elsewhere, frequently comprehends the
whole of his service; but as the effect or fruit of prayer is particularly
mentioned in what follows, this phrase in the passage before us, I have no
doubt, signifies to have recourse to God for protection, and to ask by prayer
deliverance from him. David having said in the second verse, that he trusted in
God, now subjoins this as an evidence of his trust; for every one who confides
in God will earnestly beseech his aid in the time of need. He therefore
declares, that he will be saved, and prove victorious over all his
enemies, because he will have recourse to God for help. He calls God the
praised Jehovah, not only to intimate that he is worthy of being praised,
as almost all interpreters explain it, but also to point out, that, when he came
to the throne of grace, his prayers would be mingled and interwoven with
praises.
fa357 The scope of the passage seems to
require that it be understood as meaning, that giving thanks to God for the
benefits which he has received from him in times past, he will ask his
assistance by renewed supplications. And certainly no man will ever invoke God
in prayer freely and frankly unless he animate and encourage himself by the
remembrance of the grace of God. Accordingly Paul, in
<500406>Philippians
4:6, exhorts the faithful
"in every thing by prayer
and supplication with thanksgiving, to make their requests known unto God"
(Philippians 4:6)
and to disburden their cares, as it were, into his
bosom. All those whose prayers are not accompanied with the praises of God are
chargeable with clamouring and complaining against him, when engaged in that
solemn exercise.
4.
The
cords
fa358 of death had
compassed me about. David now begins to
recount the undoubted and illustrious proofs by which he had experienced that
the hand of God is sufficiently strong and powerful to repel all the dangers and
calamities with which he may be assailed. And we need not wonder that those
things which might have been described more simply, and in an unadorned style,
are clothed in poetical forms of expression, and set forth with all the
elegancies and ornaments of language. The Holy Spirit, to contend against and
make an impression upon the wicked and perverse dispositions of men, has here
furnished David with eloquence full of majesty, energy, and wonderful power, to
awaken mankind to consider the benefits of God. There is scarcely any assistance
God bestows, however evident and palpable it may be to our senses, which our
indifference or proud disdain does not obscure. David, therefore, the more
effectually to move and penetrate our minds, says that the deliverance and
succor which God had granted him had been conspicuous in the whole frame-work of
the world. This his intention it is needful for us to take into view, lest we
should think that he exceeds due bounds in expressing himself in a style so
remarkable for sublimity. The sum is, that, when in his distresses he had been
reduced to extremity, he had betaken himself to God for help, and had been
wonderfully preserved.
We shall now make a few
observations with respect to the words. The Hebrew word
ylbj,
chebley, means cords or sorrows, or any deadly
evil,
fa359 which consumes a man's health and
strength, and which tends to his destruction. That the psalm may correspond with
the song recorded in 2nd Samuel, formerly referred to, I do not disapprove of
this word being here taken for contrition, because the phrase there
employed is twm
yrbçm, mishberey
maveth,
fa360 and the noun
yrbçm,
mishberey, is derived from a verb which signifies to break.
But as the metaphor taken from cords or snares agrees better with the verb
compass about, the import of which is, that David was on all sides
involved and entangled in the perils of death, I am disposed rather to adopt
this interpretation. What follows concerning torrents implies that he had
been almost overwhelmed by the violence and impetuosity of his enemies against
him, even as a man who is covered over the head with floods of water is almost
lost. He calls them the torrents
of Belial, because it was wicked and
perverse men who had conspired against him. The Hebrew word Belial has a
wide signification. With respect to its etymology there are different opinions
among expositors. Why Jerome has rendered it without
yoke,
fa361 I know not. The more generally
received opinion is, that it is compounded of these two words,
ylb,
beli, not, and
l[y,
yaäl,
fa362 to denote that the wicked do not
rise, in other words, ultimately gain nothing, and obtain no advantage by their
infatuated course. The Jews certainly employed this word to designate every kind
of detestable wickedness, and from this it is highly probable that David by it
meant to describe his enemies, who basely and wickedly plotted his
destruction.
fa363 If, however, any prefer translating the
phrase, by deadly torrents, I am not disposed to oppose this rendering.
In the following verse he again repeats, that the corruptions or
cords of the grave had compassed
him about. As the Hebrew word is the
same which he had employed in the preceding verse, I have thought it proper to
translate it cords here, as I have done there, not only because he uses a
verb which signifies to beset, to inclose, or to surround, but
also because he adds immediately after,
the snares of
death, which, in my opinion, is to be
understood in the same sense. This, then, is the description of the dangerous
circumstances into which he was brought, and it enhances and magnifies so much
the more the glory of his deliverance. As David had been reduced to a condition
so desperate that no hope of relief or deliverance from it was apparent, it is
certain that he was delivered by the hand of God, and that it was not a thing
effected by the power of
man.
6.
In my distress, etc. It was a very
evident proof of uncommon faith in David, when, being almost plunged into the
gulf of death, he lifted up his heart to heaven by prayer. Let us therefore
learn, that such an example is set before our eyes, that no calamities, however
great and oppressive, may hinder us from praying, or create an aversion to it.
It was prayer which brought to David the fruits or wonderful effects of which he
speaks a little after, and from this it appears still more clearly that his
deliverance was effected by the power of God. In saying that he cried, he
means, as we have observed elsewhere, the ardor and earnestness of affection
which he had in prayer. Again, by calling God his God, he separates
himself from the gross despisers of God, or hypocrites, who, when constrained by
necessity, call upon the Divine Majesty in a confused and tumultuous manner, but
do not come to God familiarly and with a pure heart, as they know nothing of his
fatherly favor and goodness. When, therefore, as we approach to God, faith goes
before to illumine the way, giving us the full persuasion that He is our Father,
then is the gate opened, and we may converse freely with Him and he with us.
David, by calling God his God, and putting him on his side, also intimates that
God was opposed to his enemies; and this serves to show that he was actuated by
true piety and the fear of God. By the word temple we are not here to
understand the sanctuary as in many other places, but heaven; for the
description which immediately follows cannot be applied to the sanctuary.
Accordingly, the sense is, that when David was forsaken and abandoned in the
world, and all men shut their ears to his cry for help, God stretched forth his
hand from heaven to save him.
Psalm
18:7-11
7. Then the earth shook and
trembled; the foundations of the mountains were troubled, and were shaken,
because he was wroth. 8. There went up a smoke by [or out of] his
nostrils, and fire proceeding from his mouth devoured; coals were kindled by it.
9. And he bowed the heavens and came down:and thick darkness was under
his feet. 10. He rode also upon a cherub, and did fly; and was carried
upon the wings of the wind. 11. He made darkness his secret [or hiding]
place; his pavilion [or tent] round about him was dark waters, and the clouds of
the skies.
7.
Then the earth
shook. David, convinced that the aid of
God, which he had experienced, was of such a character, that it was impossible
for him to extol it sufficiently and as it deserved, sets forth an image of it
in the sky and the earth, as if he had said, It has been as visible as the
changes which give different appearances to the sky and the earth. If natural
things always flowed in an even and uniform course, the power of God would not
be so perceptible. But when he changes the face of the sky by sudden rain, or by
loud thunder, or by dreadful tempests, those who before were, as it were, asleep
and insensible, must necessarily be awakened, and be tremblingly conscious of
the existence of a presiding God.
fa364 Such sudden and unforeseen changes
manifest more clearly the presence of the great Author of nature. No doubt, when
the sky is unclouded and tranquil, we see in it sufficient evidences of the
majesty of God, but as men will not stir up their minds to reflect upon that
majesty, until it come nearer to them, David, the more powerfully to affect us,
recounts the sudden changes by which we are usually moved and dismayed, and
introduces God at one time clothed with a dark cloud, — at another,
throwing the air into confusion by tempests, — now rending it by the
boisterous violence of winds, — now launching the lightnings, — and
anon darting down hailstones and thunderbolts. In short, the object of the
Psalmist is to show that the God who, as often as he pleases, causes all parts
of the world to tremble by his power, when he intended to manifest himself as
the deliverer of David, was known as openly and by signs as evident as if he had
displayed his power in all the creatures both above and
beneath.
In the first place, he says,
The earth
shook, and nothing is more dreadful than
an earthquake. Instead of the words,
the foundations of the
mountains, it is in the song, as
recorded in 2nd Samuel, the foundations of the heavens; but the meaning
is the same, namely, that there was nothing in the world so settled and
steadfast which did not tremble, and which was not removed out of its place.
David, however, as I have already observed in the beginning, does not relate
this as a piece of history, or as what had actually taken place, but he employs
these similitudes for the purpose of removing all doubt, and for the greater
confirmation of faith as to the power and providence of God; because men, from
their slowness of understanding, cannot apprehend God except by means of
external signs. Some think that these miracles were actually wrought, and
performed exactly as they are here related; but it is not easy to believe this,
since the Holy Spirit, in the narrative given of David's life, makes no mention
whatever of such wonderful displays of divine power in his behalf. We cannot,
however, justly censure or find fault with this hyperbolic manner of speaking,
when we consider our slowness of apprehension, and also our depravity, to which
I have just now called your attention. David, who was much more penetrating and
quick of understanding than ordinary men, finding he could not sufficiently
succeed in impressing and profiting people of sluggish and weak understandings
by a simple manner of speaking, describes under outward figures the power of
God, which he had discovered by means of faith, and the revelation of the Holy
Spirit. He doubtless hereby apprehended and knew more distinctly the omnipresent
majesty of God, than the dull sort of common people perceive the hand of God in
earthquakes, tempests, thunders, the gloomy lowerings of the heavens, and the
boisterous winds. At the same time, it is proper to consider, that although God
had, in a wonderful manner, displayed his grace in defending and maintaining
David, many, nevertheless, thought that it was by his own skill, or by chance,
or by other natural means, that all his affairs had come to a prosperous issue;
and it was such stupidity or depravity as this which he saw in the men of his
own time, that constrained him to mention and to summon together all parts of
creation as witnesses for God. Some also justly and judiciously consider that,
in the whole of this description, David has an allusion to the common
deliverance of God's chosen people from Egypt. As God then designed and
established that event to be a perpetual memorial, from which the faithful might
learn that he was the guardian and protector of their welfare, so all the
benefits which, from that period, he bestowed upon his people, either as a
public body or as private individuals, were, so to speak, appendages of that
first deliverance. Accordingly David, in other places as well as here, with the
view of exalting the succor which God had granted to his people, sets forth that
most memorable instance of the goodness of God towards the children of Israel,
as if it were the archtype or original copy of the grace of God. And surely,
while many, seeing him an exile from his country, held him in derision as a man
expelled from the family of God, and many murmured that he had violently and
unrighteously usurped the kingdom, he had good ground to include, under the
deliverance which had been common to all the people, the protection and safety
which God had afforded to himself; as if he had said, I have been wrongfully
cast off as an alien or stranger, seeing God has sufficiently shown, in the
deliverance which he has wrought for me, that by him I am owned and acknowledged
to be a distinguished and valuable member of the Church. We see how the
prophets, whenever they would inspire the people with the hope of salvation,
call their thoughts back to the contemplation of that first covenant which had
been confirmed by those miracles which were wrought in Egypt, in the passage
through the Red Sea and in Mount Sinai. When he says, The earth trembled,
because he was wroth, it is to be understood as referring to the ungodly. It
is a form of speech which God often employs, to say, that, being inflamed with
indignation, he arms himself to maintain the safety of his people against their
persecutors.
8.
There went up a smoke by [or out of] his nostrils,
etc. The Hebrew word
ãa,
aph, properly signifies the nose, or the nostrils. But as it
is sometimes taken metaphorically for wrath, some translate it thus,
There went up a smoke in his wrath, which, in my opinion, is not at all
appropriate. David compares the mists and vapours which darken the air to the
thick smoke which a man sends forth from his nostrils when he is angry. And when
God, by his very breath, covers the heaven with clouds, and taking away from us
the brightness of the sun and of all the stars, overwhelms us in darkness, by
this we are very impressively taught how dreadful is his wrath. By the rendering
which I have given, the figure here strikingly harmonises with the one in the
clause which immediately follows, namely,
that fire proceeding from his
mouth consumed. The Psalmist means, that
God, without great labor or effort, as soon as he shall have sent forth a breath
or blast from his nostrils, and opened his mouth, will kindle such a fire that
its smoke will darken the whole world, and its intense heat devour it. What he
adds, Coals were kindled by
it, serves to distinguish this dreadful
fire from a flame which blazes for a moment, and then is extinguished.
The bowing of the
heavens, denotes a time when the heavens
are covered and obscured with clouds. When dense vapours occupy the middle of
the air, the clouds seem to us to come down and to lie upon our heads. And not
only so, but the majesty of God then approaching, as it were, nearer us, strikes
us with dread dismay, and greatly distresses us, although before, when the sky
was fair, agreeable, and tranquil, we took ample scope, and enjoyed ourselves
with much gaiety. Again, let us remember, that the Scripture, under these
descriptions of a clouded and darkened sky, pourtray to us the anger of God.
When the sky is clear and unclouded, it seems as if it were the pleasant and
benignant countenance of God beaming upon us, and causing us to rejoice;
whereas, on the other hand, when the atmosphere is troubled, we feel a
depression of the animal spirits which constrains us to look sad, as if we saw
God coming against us with a threatening aspect. At the same time, we are taught
that no change takes place either in the atmosphere or in the earth, but what is
a witness to us of the presence of
God.
10.
He rode also upon a
cherub. The Psalmist having exhibited to
us a sign of the wrath of God in the clouds, and in the darkening of the air,
representing him as if he breathed out
smoke,
fa365 from his nostrils, and descended with a
threatening countenance, to afflict men by the dreadful weight of his power; and
having also represented lightnings and thunderbolts as flaming fire proceeding
from his mouths — he now introduces him as riding upon the winds and
tempests, to take a survey of the whole world with rapid speed, or rather with
the swiftness of flying. We meet with a similar description in
<19A403>Psalm
104:3, where God is said to "walk upon the wings of the winds," and to
send them forth in every direction as his swift messengers. David does not,
however, simply represent God as the governor of the winds, who drives them by
his power whithersoever he pleases; he at the same time tells us that he rides
upon a cherub, to teach us that the very violence of the winds is
governed by angels as God has ordained. We know that the angels were represented
under the figure of the cherubim. David, therefore, I have no doubt, here
intended to make an allusion to the ark of the covenant. In proposing for our
consideration the power of God as manifested in the wonders of nature, he does
it in such a manner as all the time to have an eye to the temple, where he knew
God had made himself known in a peculiar manner to the children of Abraham. He
therefore celebrates God not only as creator of the world, but as He who entered
into covenant with Israel, and chose for himself a holy dwelling-place in the
midst of that people. David might have called the angels by their common name,
but he has expressly made use of a term which has a reference to the visible
symbol of the ark, that true believers, in singing this psalm, might always have
their minds directed to the service of God which was performed in the temple.
What follows with respect, to God's dark pavilion or tent, is a
repetition of the preceding sentence in different words, namely, that when God
covers the air with dark clouds, it is as if he spread a thick veil between him
and men, to deprive them of the sight of his
countenance,
fa366 just as if a king, incensed against his
subjects, should retire into his secret chamber and hide himself from them.
Those take a mistaken view of this verse who bring it forward to prove, in
general, the hidden and mysterious character of the glory of God, as if David,
with the view of restraining the presumption of human curiosity, had said that
God is hidden in darkness in regard to men. God, it is true, is said to dwell in
the light which no man can approach unto"
(<540616>1
Timothy 6:16;) but the form of expression which David here employs, I have no
doubt, ought to be restricted, according to the scope of the passage, to the
sense which I have given.
Psalm
18:12-19
12. At the brightness which
was before him, his clouds passed away; there was hail-storm and coals of fire.
13. Jehovah thundered in the heavens, and the Highest sent forth his
voice; there was hail-storm and coals of fire. 14. He sent out his
arrows, and scattered them, [or put them to flight;] he multiplied
lightnings,
fa367 and put them into confusion. 15.
The sources of the waters were seen, and the foundations of the world were
disclosed at thy rebuke, O Jehovah! at the blast of the breath of thy
nostrils.
fa368 16. He sent from on high, he
took me, and drew me out of great waters. 17. He delivered me from my
strong enemy, and from my adversary; for they were too strong for me. 18.
They had prevented me in the day of my calamity; but Jehovah was my support.
19. He brought me forth also into a large place; he delivered me, because
he had a good will to me, [or because he loved
me.]
12.
At the brightness,
etc. The Psalmist again returns to the
lightnings which, by dividing and as it were cleaving the clouds, lay open the
heaven; and, therefore, he says, that the clouds of God (that is to say, those
which he had set before him, in token of his anger, for the purpose of depriving
men of the enjoyment of the light of his countenance) passed away
at the brightness which was
before him. These sudden changes affect
us with a much more lively sense of the power and agency of God than natural
phenomena which move on in one uniform course. He adds, that there followed
hail-storm and coals of
fire; for when the thunder separates and
rends asunder the clouds, it either breaks out in lightnings, or the clouds
resolve themselves into hail.
13.
Jehovah
thundered. David here repeats the same
thing in different words, declaring that God thundered from heaven; and he calls
the thunder the yoke of God, that we may not suppose it is produced
merely by chance or by natural causes, independent of the appointment and will
of God. Philosophers, it is true, are well acquainted with the intermediate or
secondary causes, from which the thunder proceeds, namely, that when the cold
and humid vapours obstruct the dry and hot exhalations in their course upwards,
a collision takes place, and by this, together with the noise of the clouds
rushing against each other, is produced the rumbling
thunder-peal.
fa369 But David, in describing the phenomena
of the atmosphere, rises, under the guidance of the Holy Spirit, above the mere
phenomena themselves, and represents God to us as the supreme governor of the
whole, who, at his will, penetrates into the hidden veins of the earth, and
thence draws forth exhalations; who then, dividing them into different sorts,
disperses them through the air; who again collects the vapours together, and
sets them in conflict with the subtile and dry heats, so that the thunder which
follows seems to be a loud pealing voice proceeding from his own mouth. The song
in 2nd Samuel also contains the repetition to which we have referred in the
commencement of our remarks on this verse; but the sense of this and the
preceding verse, and of the corresponding verses in Samuel, are entirely
similar. We should remember what I have said before, that David, under
these figures, describes to us the dreadful power of God, the better to exalt
and magnify the divine grace, which was manifested in his deliverance. He
declares a little after, that this was his intention; for, when speaking of his
enemies, he says, (verse 14,) that they were scattered, or put to
flight, by the arrows of God; as if he had said, They have been overthrown,
not by the hands or swords of men, but by God, who openly launched his
thunderbolts against them. Not that he means to affirm that this happened
literally, but he speaks in this metaphorical language, because those who were
uninstructed and slow to acknowledge the power of
God,
fa370 could not otherwise be brought to
perceive that God was the author of his deliverance. The import of his words is,
Whoever does not acknowledge that I have been preserved by the hand of God, may
as well deny that it is God who thunders from heaven, and abolish his power
which is manifested in the whole order of nature, and especially in those
wonderful changes which we see taking place in the atmosphere. As God shoots
lightnings as if they were arrows, the Psalmist has, in the first place,
employed this metaphor; and then he has expressed the thing simply by its proper
name.
15.
And the sources of the waters
were seen. In this verse, David
doubtless alludes to the miracle which was wrought when the chosen tribes passed
through the Red Sea. I have before declared the purpose for which he does this.
As all the special benefits which God in old time conferred upon any of the
children of Abraham as individuals, were so many testimonies by which he
recalled to their remembrance the covenant which he had once entered into with
the whole people, to assure them that he would always continue his grace towards
them, and that one deliverance might be to them a token or pledge of their
perpetual safety, and of the protection of God, David fitly conjoins with that
ancient deliverance of the Church the assistance which God had sent from heaven
to him in particular. As the grace which he declares God had shown towards him
was not to be separated from that first deliverance, since it was, so to speak,
a part and an appendage of it, he beholds, as it were at a glance, or in an
instant, both the ancient miracle of the drying up of the Red Sea, and the
assistance which God granted to himself. In short, God, who once opened up for
his people a way through the Red Sea, and then showed himself to be their
protector upon this condition, that they should assure themselves of being
always maintained and preserved under his keeping, now again displayed his
wonderful power in the defense and preservation of one man, to renew the
remembrance of that ancient history. From this it appears the more evidently,
that David, in using these apparently strange and exaggerated hyperboles, does
not recite to us the mere creations of romance to please the fancy, after the
manner of the heathen poets,
fa371 but observes the style and manner which
God had, as it were, prescribed to his people. At the same time, we ought
carefully to mark the reason already adverted to, which constrained him to
magnify the grace of God in a style of such splendid imagery, namely, because
the greater part of the people never made the grace of God the subject of
serious consideration, but, either through wickedness or stupidity, passed over
it with shut eyes. The Hebrew word
µyqypa,
aphikim, which I have rendered sources, properly signifies the
channels of rivers; but David, in this passage, evidently means that the
very springs or sources of the waters were laid open, and that thus it could be
discerned whence proceeds the great and inexhaustible abundance of waters which
supply the rivers, and by which they always continue to flow on in their
course.
16.
He sent down from
above. Here there is briefly shown the
drift of the sublime and magnificent narrative which has now passed under our
review, namely, to teach us that David at length emerged from the profound abyss
of his troubles, neither by his own skill, nor by the aid of men, but that he
was drawn out of them by the hand of God. When God defends and preserves us
wonderfully and by extraordinary means, he is said in Scripture language to send
down succor from above; and this sending is set in opposition to human
and earthly aids, on which we usually place a mistaken and an undue confidence.
I do not disapprove of the opinion of those who consider this as referring to
the angels, but I understand it in a more general sense; for by whatever means
we are preserved, it is God who having his creatures ready at his nod to do his
will, appoints them to take charge of us, and girds or prepares them for
succouring us. But, although every kind of aid comes from heaven, David, with
good reason, affirms that God had stretched out his hand from on high to deliver
him. In speaking thus, he meant to place the astonishing benefit referred to, by
way of eminence, above others of a more common kind; and besides, there is in
this expression a tacit comparison between the unusual exercise of the power of
God here celebrated, and the common and ordinary means by which he succours his
people. When he says, that God
drew him out of great waters, it is a
metaphorical form of expression. By comparing the cruelty of his enemies to
impetuous torrents, by which he might have been swallowed up a hundred times, he
expresses more clearly the greatness of the danger; as if he had said, I have,
contrary to the expectation of men, escaped, and been delivered from a deep
abyss in which I was ready to be overwhelmed. In the following verse he
expresses the thing simply and without a figure, declaring that he had been
delivered from a strong enemy,
fa372 who mortally hated and
persecuted him. The more to exalt and magnify the power of God, he directs our
attention to this circumstance, that no strength or power of men had been able
to prevent God from saving him, even when he was reduced to the greatest
extremity of distress. As in the end of the verse there is the Hebrew particle
yk,
ki, which generally denotes the cause of what is predicated, almost all
interpreters agree in explaining the verse thus:God has succoured me from above,
because my enemies were so numerous and so strong that no relief was to be
expected by the mere aid of men. From this we deduce a very profitable doctrine,
namely, that the most seasonable time for God to aid his people is when they are
unable to sustain the assaults of their enemies, or rather, when, broken and
afflicted, they sink under their violence, like the wretched man who having in a
shipwreck lost all hope of being able to swim to the shore, sinks with great
rapidity to the bottom of the deep. The particle
ky,
ki, however, might also be explained by the adversative particle
although, in this way:Although the enemies of David were superior to him
in number and power, he nevertheless was
saved.
18.
They had prevented me in the
day of my calamity.
fa373 The Psalmist here confirms in
different words the preceding sentence, namely, that he had been sustained by
the aid of God, when there was no way of escaping by the power of man. He tells
us how he had been besieged on all sides, and that not by an ordinary siege,
inasmuch as his enemies, in persecuting him, always molested him most in the
time of his calamity. From this circumstance it is the more evident that he had
obtained enlargement by no other means than by the hand of God. Whence proceeded
so sudden a restoration from death to life, but because God intended to show
that he has in his hand, and under his absolute control, the issues of death? In
short, the Psalmist ascribes his deliverance to no other cause than the mere
good pleasure of God, that all the praise might redound to him
alone:He delivered me, because he
loved me, or had a good will to me.
In mentioning the good pleasure of God, he has a special respect to his own
calling to be king. The point on which he principally insisted is, that the
assaults which were made upon him, and the conflicts which he had to sustain,
were stirred up against him for no other reason but because he had obeyed the
call of God, and followed with humble obedience the revelation of his oracle.
Ambitious and turbulent men, who are carried headlong by their unruly lusts,
inconsiderately to attempt any thing, and who, by their rashness, involve
themselves in dangers, may often accomplish their undertakings by vigorous and
resolute efforts, but at length a reverse takes place, and they are stopt short
in their career of success, for they are unworthy of being sustained and
prospered by God, since, without having any warrant or foundation for what they
do in his call, they would raise their insane structures even to heaven, and
disturb all around them. In short, David testifies, by this expression, that the
assistance of God had never failed him, because he had not thrust himself into
the office of king of his own accord, but that when he was contented with his
humble condition, and would willingly have lived in obscurity, in the
sheep-cotes, or in his father's hut, he had been anointed by the hand of Samuel,
which was the symbol of his free election by God to fill the
throne.
Psalm
18:20-24
20. Jehovah rewarded me
according to my righteousness; he recompensed me according to the cleanness of
my hands. 21. For I have kept the ways of Jehovah, and have not wickedly
departed from my God. 22. For all his judgments were before me, nor did I
put away his statutes [or ordinances] from me. 23. I was also upright
with him,
fa374 and kept myself from my iniquity.
24. Therefore Jehovah hath recompensed me according to my righteousness,
according to the cleanness of my hands before his
eyes.
20.
Jehovah rewarded
me. David might seem at first sight to
contradict himself; for, while a little before he declared that all the
blessings which he possessed were to be traced to the good pleasure of God, he
now boasts that God rendered to him a just recompense. But if we remember for
what purpose he connects these commendations of his own integrity with the good
pleasure of God, it will be easy to reconcile these apparently conflicting
statements. He has before declared that God was the sole author and originator
of the hope of coming to the kingdom which he entertained, and that he had not
been elevated to it by the suffrages of men, nor had he rushed forward to it
through the mere impulse of his own mind, but accepted it because such was the
will of God. Now he adds, in the second place, that he had yielded faithful
obedience to God, and had never turned aside from his will. Both these things
were necessary; first, that God should previously show his favor freely towards
David, in choosing him to be king; and next, that David, on the other hand,
should, with an obedient spirit, and a pure conscience, receive the kingdom
which God thus freely gave him; and farther, that whatever the wicked might
attempt, with the view of overthrowing or shaking his faith, he should
nevertheless continue to adhere to the direct course of his calling. Thus, then,
we see that these two statements, so far from disagreeing with each other,
admirably harmonise. David here represents God as if the
president
fa375 of a combat, under whose authority and
conduct he had been brought forth to engage in the combats. Now that depended
upon election, in other words, upon this, that God having embraced him with his
favor, had created him king. He adds in the verses which immediately follow,
that he had faithfully performed the duties of the charge and office committed
to him even to the uttermost. It is not, therefore, wonderful if God maintained
and protected David, and even showed, by manifest miracles, that he was the
defender of his own champion,
fa376 whom he had, of his own free choice,
admitted to the combat, and who he saw had performed his duty with all fidelity.
We ought not, however, to think that David, for the sake of obtaining praise
among men, has here purposely indulged in the language of vain boasting; we
ought rather to view the Holy Spirit as intending by the mouth of David to teach
us the profitable doctrine, that the aid of God will never fail us, provided we
follow our calling, keep ourselves within the limits which it prescribes, and
undertake nothing without the command or warrant of God. At the same time, let
this truth be deeply fixed in our minds, that we can only begin an upright
course of life when God of his good pleasure adopts us into his family, and in
effectually calling, anticipates us by his grace, without which neither we nor
any creature would give him an opportunity of bestowing this blessing upon
us.
fa377
There, however, still remains one
question. If God rendered to David a just recompense, it may be said, does it
not seem, when he shows himself liberal towards his people, that he is so in
proportion as each of them has deserved? I answer, When the Scripture uses the
word reward or recompense, it is not to show that God owes us any
thing, and it is therefore a groundless and false conclusion to infer from this
that there is any merit or worth in works. God, as a just judge, rewards every
man according to his works, but he does it in such a manner, as to show that all
men are indebted to him, while he himself is under obligation to no one. The
reason is not only that which St Augustine has assigned, namely, that God finds
no righteousness in us to recompense, except what he himself has freely given
us, but also because, forgiving the blemishes and imperfections which cleave to
our works, he imputes to us for righteousness that which he might justly reject.
If, therefore, none of our works please God, unless the sin which mingles with
them is pardoned, it follows, that the recompense which he bestows on account of
them proceeds not from our merit, but from his free and undeserved grace. We
ought, however, to attend to the special reason why David here speaks of God
rewarding him according to his righteousness. He does not presumptuously thrust
himself into the presence of God, trusting to or depending upon his own
obedience to the law as the ground of his justification; but knowing that God
approved the affection of his heart, and wishing to defend and acquit himself
from the false and wicked calumnies of his enemies, he makes God himself the
judge of his cause. We know how unjustly and shamefully he had been loaded with
false accusations, and yet these calumnies did not so much bear against the
honor and name of David as against the welfare and estate of the whole Church in
common. It was indeed mere private spite which stirred up Saul, and drove him
into fury against David, and it was to please the king that all other men were
so rancorous against an innocent individual, and broke forth so outrageously
against him; but Satan, there is no doubt, had a prime agency in exciting these
formidable assaults upon the kingdom of David, and by them he endeavored to
accomplish his ruin, because in the person of this one man God had placed, and,
as it were, shut up the hope of the salvation of the whole people. This is the
reason why David labors so carefully and so earnestly to show and to maintain
the righteousness of his cause. When he presents and defends himself before the
judgment-seat of God against his enemies, the question is not concerning the
whole course of his life, but only respecting one certain cause, or a particular
point. We ought, therefore, to attend to the precise subject of his discourse,
and what he here debates. The state of the matter is this:His adversaries
charged him with many crimes; first, of rebellion and treason, accusing him of
having revolted from the king his father-in-law; in the second place, of plunder
and robbery, as if, like a robber, he had taken possession of the kingdom;
thirdly, of sedition, as if he had thrown the kingdom into confusion when it
enjoyed tranquillity; and, lastly, of cruelty and many flagitious actions, as if
he had been the cause of murders, and had prosecuted his conspiracy by many
dangerous means and unlawful artifices. David, in opposition to these
accusations, with the view of maintaining his innocence before God, protests and
affirms that he had acted uprightly and sincerely in this matter, inasmuch as he
attempted nothing without the command or warrant of God; and whatever hostile
attempts his enemies made against him, he nevertheless always kept himself
within the bounds prescribed by the Divine Law. It would be absurd to draw from
this the inference that God is merciful to men according as he judges them to be
worthy of his favor. Here the object in view is only to show the goodness of a
particular cause, and to maintain it in opposition to wicked calumniators; and
not to bring into examination the whole life of a man, that he may obtain favor,
and be pronounced righteous before God. In short, David concludes from the
effect and the issue, that his cause was approved of by God, not that one
victory is always and necessarily the sign of a good cause, but because God, by
evident tokens of his assistance, showed that he was on the side of
David.
21.
For I have kept the ways of
Jehovah. He had spoken in the preceding
verse of the cleanness of his hands, but finding that men judged of him
perversely, and were very active in spreading evil reports concerning
him,
fa378 he affirms that he had kept the ways of
the Lord, which is equivalent to his appealing the matter to the judgment-seat
of God. Hypocrites, it is true, are accustomed confidently to appeal to God in
the same way; yea, there is nothing which they are more forward in doing than in
dallying with the sacred name of God, and making it a cover to conceal their
hypocrisy; but David brings forward nothing which men might not have certainly
known to be true, if any regard to justice had existed among them. Let us,
therefore, from his example, endeavor above all things to have a good
conscience. And, in the second place, let us have the magnanimity to despise the
false judgments of men, and to look up to heaven for the vindicator of our
character and cause. He adds, I
have not wickedly departed from my God.
This implies, that he always aimed directly at the mark of his calling,
although the ungodly attempted many things to overthrow his faith. The verb
which he uses does not denote one fall only, but a defection which utterly
removes and alienates a man from God. David, it is true, sometimes fell into sin
through the weakness of the flesh, but he never desisted from following after
godliness, nor deserted the service to which God had called
him.
22.
For all his judgments were
before me. He now shows how he came to
possess that unbending rectitude of character, by which he was enabled to act
uprightly amidst so many and so grievous temptations, namely, because he always
applied his mind to the study of the law of God. As Satan is daily making new
assaults upon us, it is necessary for us to have recourse to arms, and it is
meditation upon the Divine Law which furnishes us with armor to resist. Whoever,
therefore, would desire to persevere in uprightness and integrity of life, let
them learn to exercise themselves daily in the study of the word of God; for,
whenever a man despises or neglects instruction, he easily falls into
carelessness and stupidity, and all fear of God vanishes from his mind. I do not
intend here to make any subtle distinction between these two words, judgments
and ordinances. If, however, any person is inclined to make a
distinction between them, the best distinction is to refer judgments to
the second table of the law, and ordinances, or statutes, which in
Hebrew are called
twkwj,
chukoth, to the duties of piety and the exercises immediately connected
with the worship of God.
23.
I was also upright with
him. All the verbs in this verse are put
by David in the future tense, I
will be upright, etc. because he does
not boast of one act only, or of a good work performed by fits and starts, but
of steady perseverance in an upright course. What I have said before, namely,
that David takes God for his judge, as he saw that he was wrongfully and
unrighteously condemned by men, appears still more clearly from what he here
says, "I have been upright with him." The Scriptures, indeed, sometimes
speak in similar terms of the saints, to distinguish them from hypocrites, who
content themselves with wearing the outward mask of religious observances; but
it is to disprove the false reports which were spread against him that David
thus confidently appeals to God with respect to them. This is still more fully
confirmed by the repetition of the same thing which is made a little after,
According to the cleanness of my
hands before his eyes. In these words
there is evidently a contrast between the eyes of God and the blinded or
malignant eyes of the world; as if he had said, I disregard false and wicked
calumnies, provided I am pure and upright in the sight of God, whose judgment
can never be perverted by malevolent or other vicious and perverse affections.
Moreover, the integrity which he attributes to himself is not perfection but
sincerity, which is opposed to dissimulation and hypocrisy. This may be gathered
from the last clause of the 23rd verse, where he says,
I have kept myself from my
iniquity. In thus speaking, he tacitly
acknowledges that he had not been so pure and free from sinful affections as
that the malignity of his enemies did not frequently excite indignation within
him, and gall him to the heart. He had therefore to fight in his own mind
against many temptations, for as he was a man, he must have felt in the flesh on
many occasions the stirrings of vexation and anger. But this was the proof of
his virtue, that he imposed a restraint upon himself, and refrained from
whatever he knew to be contrary to the word of God. A man will never persevere
in the practice of uprightness and of godliness, unless he carefully keep
himself from his iniquity.
Psalm
18:25-27
25. With the merciful thou
wilt deal mercifully,
fa379 with an upright man thou wilt show
thyself upright. 26. With the
pure
fa380 thou wilt be pure, and with the
perverse thou wilt show thyself perverse. 27 For thou wilt save the
afflicted people,
fa381 and wilt bring down the haughty
eyes.
fa382
25.
With the merciful,
etc. David here prosecutes the same
subject. In considering the grace of God by which he had been delivered, he
brings it forward as a proof of his integrity, and thus triumphs over the
unfounded and disgraceful calumnies of his enemies. Hypocrites, I confess, are
also accustomed to act in the same way; for prosperity and the success of their
affairs so elates them that they are not ashamed proudly to vaunt themselves not
only against men, but even against God. As such persons, however, openly mock
God, when, by his long-suffering, he allures them to repentance, their wicked
and unhappy presumption has no resemblance to the boasting by which we here see
David encouraging himself. He does not abuse the forbearance and mercy of God by
palliating or spreading a specious varnish over his iniquities, because God
bears with them; but having, by the manifold aids he had received from God,
experienced beyond doubt that he was merciful to him, he justly viewed them as
evident testimonies of the divine favor towards him. And we ought to mark well
this difference between the ungodly and the faithful, namely, that the former,
intoxicated with prosperity, unblushingly boast of being acceptable to God,
while yet they disregard him, and rather sacrifice to Fortune, and make it their
God;
fa383 whereas the latter in their prosperity
magnify the grace of God, from the deep sense of his grace with which their
consciences are affected. Thus David here boasts that God had succoured him on
account of the justice of his cause. For, in the first place, we must adapt the
words to the scope of the whole discourse, and view them as implying that God,
in so often delivering an innocent man from death, when it was near him, showed,
indeed, that he is merciful towards the merciful, and pure towards the pure. In
the second place, we must view the words as teaching the general doctrine, that
God never disappoints his servants, but always at length deals graciously with
them, provided they wait for his aid with meekness and patience. To this purpose
Jacob said, in
<013033>Genesis
30:33,
"God will make my
righteousness to return upon me."
The scope of the discourse is, that the people of God
should entertain good hope, and encourage themselves to practice uprightness and
integrity, since every man shall reap the fruit of his own
righteousness.
The last clause of the 26th
verse, where it is said, With the
perverse thou wilt show thyself perverse,
seems to convey a meaning somewhat strange, but it does not imply any thing
absurd; yea, rather, it is not without good reason that the Holy Spirit uses
this manner of speaking; for he designs thereby to awaken hypocrites and the
gross despisers of God, who lull themselves asleep in their vices without any
apprehension of danger.
fa384 We see how such persons, when the
Scripture proclaims the sore and dreadful judgments of God, and when also God
himself denounces terrible vengeance, pass over all these things, without giving
themselves any trouble about them. Accordingly, this brutish, and, as it were,
monstrous stupidity which we see in men, compels God to invent new forms of
expression, and, as it were, to clothe himself with a different character. There
is a similar sentence in
<032621>Leviticus
26:21-24, where God says, "And if ye walk contrary unto [or perversely
with] me, then will I also walk contrary unto [or perversely or roughly,
or at random against] you;" as if he had said, that their obstinacy and
stubbornness would make him on his part forget his accustomed forbearance and
gentleness, and cast himself recklessly or at random against
them.
fa385 We see, then, what the stubborn at
length gain by their obduracy; it is this, that God hardens himself still more
to break them in pieces, and if they are of stone, he causes them to feel that
he has the hardness of iron. Another reason which we may assign for this manner
of speaking is, that the Holy Spirit, in addressing his discourse to the wicked,
commonly speaks according to their own apprehension. When God thunders in good
earnest upon them, they transform him, through the blind terrors which seize
upon them, into a character different from his real one, inasmuch as they
conceive of nothing as entering into it but barbarity, cruelty, and ferocity. We
now see the reason why David does not simply attribute to God the name and
office of judge, but introduces him as armed with impetuous violence, for
resisting and overcoming the perverse, according as it is said in the common
proverb, A tough knot requires a stout
wedge.
27.
For thou wilt save the
afflicted people. This verse contains
the correction of a mistake into which we are very ready to fall. As experience
shows that the merciful are often severely afflicted, and the sincere involved
in troubles of a very distressing description, to prevent any from regarding the
statement as false that God deals mercifully with the merciful, David admonishes
us that we must wait for the end; for although God does not immediately run to
succor the good, yet, after having exercised their patience for a time, he lifts
them up from the dust on which they lay prostrate, and brings effectual relief
to them, even when they were in despair. Whence it follows, that we ought only
to judge by the issue how God shows himself merciful towards the merciful and
pure towards the pure. If he did not keep his people in suspense and waiting
long for deliverance from affliction, it could not be said that it is his
prerogative to save the afflicted. And it is no small consolation, in the midst
of our adversities, to know that God purposely delays to communicate his
assistance, which otherwise is quite prepared, that we may experience his
goodness in saving us after we have been afflicted and brought
low.
fa386 Nor ought we to reckon the wrongs which
are inflicted upon us too bitter, since they excite God to show towards us his
favor which bringeth salvation. As to the second clause of this verse, the
reading is a little different in the song in the 2nd Book of Samuel, where the
words are, Thine eyes are against the proud to cast them down. But this
difference makes no alteration as to the meaning, except that the Holy Spirit
there more plainly threatens the proud, that, as God is on the watch to
overthrow them, it is impossible for them to escape destruction. The substance
of both places is this:The more the ungodly indulge in gratifying their own
inclinations, without any fear of danger, and the more proudly they despise the
afflicted poor who are under their feet, they are so much the nearer to
destruction. Whenever, therefore, they cruelly break forth against us with
mockery and contempt, let us know that there is nothing which prevents God from
repelling their headstrong pertinacity, but that their pride is not yet come to
its height.
Psalm
18:28-32
28. For thou shalt light my
lamp, O Jehovah; my God shall enlighten my darkness. 29. For by
thee
fa387 I shall break through the
wedge
fa388 of a troop, and by my God I shall leap
over a wall. 30. The way of God is perfect; the word of Jehovah is
refined, [or purified;] he is a shield to all those who trust in him. 31.
For who is God besides Jehovah? and who is strong except our God? 32. It
is God who hath girded me with strength, and hath made my way
perfect.
28.
For thou shalt light my
lamp. In the song in Samuel, the form of
the expression is somewhat more precise; for there it is said not that God
lights our lamp, but that he himself is our lamp. The meaning, however, comes to
the same thing, namely, that it was by the grace of God that David, who had been
plunged in darkness, returned to the light. David does not simply give thanks to
God for having lighted up a lamp before him, but also for having converted his
darkness into light. He, therefore, acknowledges that he had been reduced to
such extremity of distress, that he was like a man whose condition was forlorn
and hopeless; for he compares the confused and perplexed state of his affairs to
darkness. This, indeed, by the transference of material things to things
spiritual, may be applied to the spiritual illumination of the understanding;
but, at the same time, we must attend to the subject of which David treats, that
we may not depart from the true and proper meaning. Now, as he acknowledges that
he had been restored to prosperity by the favor of God, which was to him, as it
were, a life-giving light, let us, after his example, regard it as certain that
we will never have the comfort of seeing our adversities brought to an end,
unless God disperse the darkness which envelops us, and restore to us the light
of joy. Let it not, however, be distressing to us to walk through darkness,
provided God is pleased to perform to us the office of a lamp. In the following
verse, David ascribes his victories to God, declaring that, under his conduct,
he had broken through the
wedges or phalanxes of his enemies, and
had taken by storm their fortified
cities.
fa389 Thus we see that, although he was a
valiant warrior, and skilled in arms, he arrogates nothing to himself. As to the
tenses of the verbs, we would inform our readers once for all, that in this
psalm David uses the past and the future tenses indifferently, not only because
he comprehends different histories, but also because he presents to himself the
things of which he speaks as if they were still taking place before his eyes,
and, at the same time, describes a continued course of the grace of God towards
him.
30.
The way of God is
perfect. The phrase,
The way of
God, is not here taken for his revealed
will, but for his method of dealing towards his people. The meaning, therefore,
is, that God never disappoints or deceives his servants, nor forsakes them in
the time of need, (as may be the case with men who do not aid their dependants,
except in so far as it contributes to their own particular advantage,) but
faithfully defends and maintains those whom he has once taken under his
protection. But we will never have any nearness to God, unless he first come
near to us by his word; and, for this reason, David, after having asserted that
God aids his people in good earnest, adds, at the same time, that his word is
purified. Let us, therefore, rest assured that God will actually show
himself upright towards us, seeing he has promised to be the guardian and
protector of our welfare, and his promise is certain and infallible truth. That
by the word we are not here to understand the commandments, but the
promises of God, is easily gathered from the following clause, where it is said,
He is a shield to all those who
trust in him. It seems, indeed, a common
commendation to say, that the word of God is pure, and without any mixture of
fraud and deceit, like silver which is well refined and purified from all its
dross. But our unbelief is the cause why God, so to speak, is constrained to use
such a similitude, for the purpose of commending and leading us to form exalted
conceptions of the steadfastness and certainty of his promises; for whenever the
issue does not answer our expectation, there is nothing to which we are
naturally more prone than forthwith to begin to entertain unhallowed and
distrustful thoughts of the word of God. For a farther explanation of these
words, we would refer our readers to our remarks on Psalm
12:6.
31.
For who is God besides
Jehovah? David here, deriding the
foolish inventions of men, who, according to their own fancy, make for
themselves tutelary gods,
fa390 confirms what I have said before, that
he never undertook any thing but by the authority and command of God. If he had
passed beyond the limits of his calling, he could not with such confidence have
said that God was on his side. Besides, although in these words he opposes to
the true God all the false gods invented by men, his purpose, at the same time,
is to overthrow all the vain hopes in which the world is wrapped up, and by
which it is carried about, and prevented from resting in God. The question which
David here treats of is not the bare title and name of God, but he
declares that whatever assistance we need we should seek it from God, and from
no other quarter, because he alone is endued with
power:Who is strong except our
God? We should, however, attend to the design
of David, which I have first adverted to, namely, that, by confidently
representing God as opposed to all his enemies, and as the leader, under whose
standard he had valiantly fought against them, he means to affirm that he had
attempted nothing according to his own fancy, or with an evil and condemning
conscience.
32.
It is God who hath
girded. This is a metaphor taken either
from the belt or girdle of a warrior, or from the reins, in which the Scripture
sometimes places a man's vigor or strength. It is, therefore, as if he had said,
I, who would otherwise have been feeble and effeminate, have been made strong
and courageous by the power of God. He afterwards speaks of the success itself
with which God had favored him; for it would not be enough for persons to have
prompt and active courage, nor even to excel in strength, if their undertakings
were not at the same time crowned with a prosperous issue. Irreligious men
imagine that this proceeds from their own prudence, or from fortune; but David
ascribes it to God alone:It is
God who hath made my way perfect. The word
way is here to be understood of the course of our actions, and the
language implies, that whatever David undertook, God, by his blessing, directed
it to a successful issue.
Psalm
18:33-36
33. Making my feet like
hinds'
fa391 feet, and he hath set me upon my high
places. 34. Teaching my hands to war:and a bow of
steel
fa392 will be broken by my arms. 35.
Thou hast also given me the shield of thy salvation; and thy right hand hath
holden me up, and thy clemency hath increased me. 36. Thou hast enlarged
my steps under me, and my feet have not
staggered.
David, having taken many
strongholds which, on account of their steep and difficult access, were believed
to be impregnable, extols the grace of God in this particular. When he says that
God had given him feet like hinds' feet, he means that he had given him
unusual swiftness, and such as does not naturally belong to men. The sense,
therefore, is, that he had been aided by God in an extraordinary manner, so that
like a roe he climbed with amazing speed over inaccessible rocks. He calls the
strongholds, which, as conqueror, he had obtained by right of war,
his high
places; for he could justly boast that
he took possession of nothing which belonged to another man, inasmuch as he knew
that he had been called to occupy these fortresses by God. When he says that
his hands had been taught and framed to war, he confesses that he
had not acquired his dexterity in fighting by his own skill, nor by exercise and
experience, but had obtained it as a gift through the singular goodness of God.
It is true in general, that strength and skill in war proceed only from a secret
virtue communicated by God; but David immediately after shows that he had been
furnished with greater strength for carrying on his wars than what men commonly
possess, inasmuch as his arms were sufficiently strong
to break even bows of brass in
pieces. True, he had by nature a
vigorous and powerful bodily frame; but the Scripture describes him as a man of
low stature, and the similitude itself which he here uses implies something
surpassing the natural strength of man. In the following verse, he declares that
it was by the grace of God alone that he had escaped, and been kept in perfect
safety:Thou hast also given me
the shield of thy salvation. By the
phrase, the shield of God's
salvation, he intimates, that if God had
not wonderfully preserved him, he would have been exposed unprotected to many
deadly wounds; and thus God's shield of salvation is tacitly opposed to all the
coverings and armor with which he had been provided. He again ascribes his
safety to the free goodness of God as its cause, which he says had increased
him, or more and more carried him forward in the path of honor and success;
for, by the word increase, he means a continuation and an unintermitted
and ever growing augmentation of the tokens of the divine favor towards
him.
By the enlargement of his
steps, he intimates that God had opened
up to him an even and an accommodating pathway through places to which there was
before no means of access; for there is in the words an implied contrast between
a large and spacious place and a narrow spot, out of which a person cannot move
his foot. The meaning is, that when David was reduced to the greatest distress,
and saw no way of escape, God had graciously brought him out of his straits and
difficulties. This is a lesson which may be highly useful for correcting our
distrust. Unless we see before us a beautiful and pleasant plain, in which the
flesh may freely enjoy itself, we tremble as if the earth would sink under our
feet. Let us, therefore, remember, that the office of enlarging our ways and
making them level belongs to God, and is here justly ascribed to him. In short,
the Psalmist subjoins the effect of this instance of the grace of God towards
him, namely, that his feet had
not staggered or slipped; in
other words, no resistance, adversity, or calamity, which had befallen him, had
been able to deprive him of courage or cast him into
despair.
Psalm
18:37-40
37. I will pursue my
enemies, and will overtake them; nor will I return till I have consumed them.
38. I have afflicted [or smitten] them, so that they were not able to
rise; they have fallen under my feet. 39. Thou hast girded me with
strength
fa393 for the war; thou hast bowed down my
enemies under me. 40. And thou hast given me the neck of my enemies, and
those who hated me I have destroyed.
fa394
The point on which David
insists so much is, that of showing from the effect or issue, that all his
victories were to be traced to the favor of God; and from this it follows that
his cause was good and just. God, no doubt, sometimes grants successes even to
the ungodly and wicked; but he at length shows by the issue, that he was all the
while opposed to them and their enemy. It is his servants alone who experience
such tokens of his favor as he shewed towards David, and he intends by these to
testify that they are approved and accepted by him. We are apt to think that
David here speaks too much after the manner of a soldier, in declaring that he
will not cease from the work of slaughter until he has destroyed all his
enemies; or rather that he has forgotten the gentleness and meekness which ought
to shine in all true believers, and in which they should resemble their heavenly
Father; but as he attempted nothing without the command of God, and as his
affections were governed and regulated by the Holy Spirit, we may be assured
that these are not the words of a man who was cruel, and who took pleasure in
shedding blood, but of a man who faithfully executed the judgment which God had
committed to him. And, indeed, we know that he was so distinguished for
gentleness of disposition as to abhor the shedding of even a single drop of
blood, except in so far as duty and the necessity of his office required. We
must, therefore, take into consideration David's vocation, and also his pure
zeal, which was free from all perturbation of the flesh. Moreover, it should be
particularly attended to that the Psalmist here calls those his enemies
whose indomitable and infatuated obstinacy merited and called forth such
vengeance from God. As he represented the person of Christ, he inflicted the
punishment of death only on those who were so inflexible that they could not be
reduced to order by the exercise of a mild and humane authority; and this of
itself shows, that there was nothing in which he more delighted than to pardon
those who repented and reformed themselves. He thus resembled Christ, who gently
allures all men to repentance, but breaks in pieces, with his iron rod, those
who obstinately resist him to the last. The sum of these verses is, that David,
as he fought under the authority of God, being chosen king by him, and engaging
in no undertaking without his warrant, was assisted by him, and rendered
invincible against the assaults of all his enemies, and enabled even to
discomfit vast and very powerful armies. Farther, let us remember, that under
this type there is shadowed forth the invincible character and condition of the
kingdom of Christ, who, trusting to, and sustained by, the power of God,
overthrows and destroys his enemies, — who, in every encounter, uniformly
comes off victorious, — and who continues king in spite of all the
resistance which the world makes to his authority and power. And as the
victories secured to him involve a security of similar victories to us, it
follows that there is here promised us an impregnable defense against all the
efforts of Satan, all the machinations of sin, and all the temptations of the
flesh. Although, therefore, Christ can only obtain a tranquil kingdom by
fighting, let us not on that account be troubled, but let it be enough to
satisfy us, that the hand of God is always ready to be stretched forth for its
preservation. David was, for a time, a fugitive, so that it was with difficulty
he could save his life, by taking shelter in the dens of wild beasts; but God,
at length, made his enemies turn their backs, and not only put them to flight,
but also delivered them over to him, that he might pursue and utterly discomfit
them. In like manner, our enemies for a time may be, as it were, just ready to
put the knife to our throat
fa395 to destroy us, but God, at length, will
make them not only to flee before us, but also to perish in our presence, as
they deserve. At the same time, let us remember what kind of warfare it is to
which God is calling us, against what kind of persons he will have us to
contend, and with what armor he furnishes us, that it may suffice us to have the
devil, the flesh, and sin overthrown and placed under our feet by his spiritual
power. With respect to those to whom he has given the power of the sword, he
will also defend them, and not suffer them to be unrighteously opposed, provided
they reign under Christ, and acknowledge him as their head. As to the words,
interpreters almost unanimously render the beginning of the 40th verse,
My enemies have turned
the back, a phrase of the same import
as, They have been put to flight; but as the Hebrew word
ãr[,
oreph, properly signifies the head or neck, we may very suitably
view the words as meaning that God gave David the neck of his enemies, inasmuch
as he delivered them into his hands to be
slain.
Psalm
18:41-45
41. They shall cry, but
there shall be no savior for them; even unto Jehovah, but he shall not answer
them. 42. And I will beat [or grind] them small as the dust which is
driven by the wind;
fa396 as the mire of the streets I will tread
them under foot. 43. Thou shalt deliver me from the contentions of the
people; thou shalt make me the head of the nations; a people whom I have not
known shall serve me. 44. At the hearing of the
ear,
fa397 they shall obey me; the children of
strangers
fa398 shall lie to
me.
fa399 45. The children of strangers
shall lose their courage, and tremble out of their places of
concealment.
41.
They shall cry,
etc. The change of the tense in the verb
from the past to the future does not break the continuity of the narration; and,
therefore, the words should be explained thus:Although they cried to God, yet
their prayers were rejected by him. He pursues the same subject which it was his
object to illustrate before, namely, that it was at length manifest from the
issue that his enemies falsely boasted of having the support and countenance of
God, who showed that he had turned away from them. It is true, that when their
affairs continued to go on prosperously, they sometimes received such applause
and commendation, that it was commonly believed that God was favorable to them,
while, at the same time he seemed to be opposed to David, who although he cried
night and day to him, found it of no avail. But after God had sufficiently tried
the patience of his servant, he cast them down, and disappointed them of their
vain hope; yea, rather he would not deign to hear their prayers. We now perceive
the design of David in these words. As the ungodly had long wickedly abused the
name of God, by pretending that he favored their unjust proceedings, the
Psalmist derides their vain boasting, in which they were completely
disappointed. It is to be observed, that he here speaks of hypocrites, who never
call upon God in sincerity and truth. For this promise shall never
fail,
"The Lord is nigh unto
all them that call upon him, to all that call upon him in truth,"
(<19E518>Psalm
145:18.)
David does not, therefore, say that his enemies were
repulsed when they had recourse to God with sincere affection of heart, but only
when, with their accustomed effrontery, they thought that God was, so to speak,
bound to conduct and advance their wicked enterprises. When the ungodly, in the
extremity of their distress, pour forth prayers, and when, cast down with fear,
and trembling with the dread of impending evils, they show an appearance of
humility, they, notwithstanding, do not change their purpose so as truly to
repent and amend the evil of their ways. Besides, instead of being influenced by
faith, they are actuated by presumption and hardness of heart, or they pour
forth their complaints in doubt, rather for the purpose of murmuring against
God, than of familiarly and confidently placing their trust in him. from this
passage we may gather a profitable warning, namely, that all who treat the
afflicted poor with cruel mockery, and who proudly thrust back those who come to
them as humble suppliants, will experience that God is deaf to their prayers. We
are farther taught by the following verse, that after God has cast off the
ungodly, he leaves them to be treated with every kind of indignity, and gives
them up to be trampled under foot, as the mire of the streets. He not
only declares, that when the proud and the cruel cry to him in their affliction,
he will shut his ears against their cry; but he also threatens, that, in the
course of his retributive providence, they shall be treated in the same manner
in which they treat others.
43.
Thou shalt deliver me from the
contentions of the people. David states,
in a few words, that he had experienced the assistance of God in all variety of
ways. He was in great danger from the tumults which sometimes arose among his
own subjects, if God had not wonderfully allayed them, and subdued the
fierceness of the people. It also happened, contrary to the general expectation,
that David, as is stated in the second clause of the verse, was victorious far
and wide, and overthrew the neighboring nations who had a little before
discomfited all Israel by their forces. It was an astonishing renovation of
things, when he not only suddenly restored to their former estate the people of
Israel, who had been greatly reduced by defeat and slaughter, but also made his
tributaries the neighboring nations, with whom before, on account of their
hostility to the nation of Israel, it was impossible to live in peace. It would
have been much to see the kingdom, after having sustained so grievous a
calamity, still surviving, and after having again collected strength recovering
its former state; but God, contrary to all expectation, conferred upon the
people of Israel more than this; he enabled them even to subdue those who before
had been their conquerors. David makes mention of both these; he tells us, in
the first place, that when the people rose up in tumult against him, it was none
other but God who stilled these commotions which took place within the kingdom;
and, in the second place, that it was under the authority, and by the conduct
and power of God, that powerful nations were subjected to him, and that the
limits of the kingdom, which, in the time of Saul, had been weak and half
broken, were greatly enlarged. Hence it is evident that David was assisted by
God, not less with respect to his domestic affairs, that is to say, within his
own kingdom, than against foreign enemies. As the kingdom of David was a type
under which the Holy Spirit intended to shadow forth to us the kingdom of
Christ, let us remember that, both in erecting and preserving it, it is
necessary for God not only to stretch forth his arm and fight against avowed
enemies, who from without rise up against him, but also to repress the tumults
and strifes which may take place within the Church. This was clearly shown in
the person of Christ from the beginning. In the first place, he met with much
opposition from the infatuated obstinacy of those of his own nation. In the next
place, the experience of all ages shows that the dissensions and strifes with
which hypocrites rend and mangle the Church, are not less hurtful in undermining
the kingdom of Christ, (if God do not interpose his hand to prevent their
injurious effects,) than the violent efforts of his enemies. Accordingly God, to
advance and maintain the kingdom of his own Son, not only overthrows before him
external enemies, but also delivers him from domestic contentions; that is to
say, from those within his kingdom, which is the
Church.
fa400 In the song in 2nd Samuel, instead of
these words, Thou hast made me the head of the nations, the word employed
is
ynrmçt,
tishmereni, which signifies to keep or guard, and is therefore
to be understood in this sense, that David will be securely, and for a long
time, maintained in possession of the kingdom. He knew how difficult it is to
keep under discipline and subjection those who have not been accustomed to the
yoke; and, accordingly, nothing is of more frequent occurrence than for kingdoms
which have been lately acquired by conquest to be shaken with fresh commotions.
But David, in the song in Samuel, declares that God, having elevated him to such
a high degree of power as to make him the head of the nations, will also
maintain him in the possession of the sovereignty he had been pleased to confer
upon him.
A people whom I have
not known shall serve me. The whole of
this passage strongly confirms what I have just now touched upon, that the
statements here made are not to be restricted to the person of David, but
contain a prophecy respecting the kingdom of Christ which was to come. David, it
is true, might have boasted that nations, with whose manners and dispositions he
was only very imperfectly acquainted, were subject to him; but it is
nevertheless certain, that none of the nations which he conquered were
altogether unknown to him, nor removed at so great a distance as to render it
difficult for him to acquire some knowledge of them. The conquests of David,
therefore, and the submission of the people to him, were only an obscure figure
in which God has exhibited to us some faint representation of the boundless
dominion of his own Son, whose kingdom extends
"from the rising of the
sun, even unto the going down of the
same,"
(<390111>Malachi
1:11,)
and comprehends the whole
world.
44.
At the simple fame of my name
they shall obey me. This is of the same
import with the last clause of the preceding verse. Although David, by his
victories, had acquired such reputation and renown, that many laid down their
arms and came voluntarily to surrender themselves to him; yet, as they also had
been subdued through the dread of the power of his arms, which they saw their
neighbors had experienced to their smart, it cannot be said, properly speaking,
that at the simple fame of the name of David they submitted themselves to him.
This applies more truly to the person of Christ, who, by means of his word,
subdues the world to himself, and, at the simple hearing of his name, makes
those obedient to him who before had been rebels against him. As David was
intended to be a type of Christ, God subjected to his authority distant nations,
and such as before had been unknown to Israel in so far as familiar intercourse
was concerned. But that was only a prelude, and, as it were, preparatory to the
dominion promised to Christ, the boundaries of which must be extended to the
uttermost ends of the earth. In like manner, David had acquired to himself so
great a name by arms and warlike prowess, that many of his enemies, subdued by
fear, submitted themselves to him. And in this God exhibited a type of the
conquest which Christ would make of the Gentiles, who, by the preaching of the
Gospel alone, were subdued, and brought voluntarily to submit to his dominion;
for the obedience of faith in which the dominion of Christ is founded "cometh
by hearing,"
(<451017>Romans
10:17.)
The children of
strangers shall lie to me. Here there is
described what commonly happens in new dominions acquired by conquest, namely,
that those who have been vanquished pay homage with great reverence to their
conqueror; but it is by a reigned and forced humility. They obey in a slavish
manner, and not willingly or cheerfully. This is evidently the sense. Some
interpreters, indeed, give a different explanation of the word lie,
viewing David as meaning by it that his enemies had either been disappointed
in their expectation, or that, in order to escape the punishment which they were
afraid he might inflict upon them, they had lied in declaring that they had
never devised any thing hostile against him; but it appears to me, that this
does not sufficiently express what David intended. In my opinion, therefore, the
words to lie are here to be understood generally as in other places, for
to be humbled after a slavish manner. The Hebrew word
çhk,
cachash, here used, which signifies to lie, is sometimes to be
understood metaphorically for to be humbled, to submit to, to take upon one's
self the yoke of subjection;
fa401 but still in a feigned and servile
manner. Those whom he terms the
children of the
stranger, or of strangers, are
the nations who did not belong to the people of Israel, but who, previous to
their being conquered by him, formed a distinct and an independent community by
themselves. This also we see fulfilled in Christ, to whom many come with
apparent humility; not, however, with true affection, but with a double and
false heart, whom, on that account, the Holy Spirit fitly terms strangers.
They are, indeed, mingled among the chosen people, but they are not united
to the same body with them by a true faith, and, therefore, ought not to be
accounted children of the Church. It is very true that all the Gentiles, when in
the beginning they were called into the Church, were strangers; but when they
began to entertain new feelings and new affections towards Christ, they who
before were "strangers and foreigners" became
"fellow-citizens with the
saints, and of the household of God,"
(<490219>Ephesians
2:19.)
What is added immediately after, (verse 45,) the
children of strangers shall fade
away; they shall tremble
fa402
from within their places of
concealment, serves to place, in a still
more striking light, the great fame and formidable name which we have said David
had acquired. It is no ordinary sign of reverence when those who are protected
in hiding-places, and shut up within steep fortifications, are so stricken with
terror as to come forth of their own accord and surrender themselves. As fear
made the enemies of David to come forth from their places of concealment, to
meet him with submission, so the Gospel strikes the unbelieving with such fear,
as compels them to yield obedience to Christ. Such is the power of prophecy,
that is to say, the preaching of the word, as Paul testifies in
<461424>1
Corinthians 14:24, that, convincing the consciences of men, and making manifest
the secrets of their hearts, it causes those who before were rebels to prostrate
themselves with fear, and to give glory to
God.
Psalm
18:46-50
46. Let Jehovah
live,
fa403 and blessed be my
strength:fa404
and let the God of my salvation be exalted; 47. The God who giveth me
vengeance, and subdueth peoples [or nations] under me. 48. My deliverer
from my enemies; yea, thou hast lifted me up from those who had risen up against
me; thou hast delivered me from the man of violence. 49. Therefore will I
praise thee, O Jehovah, among the heathen, and will sing to thy name. 50.
He worketh great deliverances for his king, and showeth mercy to David, his
anointed, and to his seed for ever.
46.
Let Jehovah
live. If it is thought proper to adopt this
reading, which is in the optative mood expressing a wish that God might live,
the manner of expression may seem somewhat strange; but it may be alleged in
defense of it, that it is a metaphor borrowed from the custom of men, who not
only use this manner of speaking when they wish well to any one, but likewise
utter it with loud and applauding acclamation, when they intend to receive their
princes with due honor. According to this view, it would be an expression in
which praise is ascribed to God, and suitable for a triumphal
song.
fa405 It may, however, be very properly
considered as a simple affirmation, in which David declares that God lives,
in other words, that he is endued with sovereign power. Farther, the life
which David attributes to God is not to be restricted to the being or essence of
God, but is rather to be understood of the evidence of it deducible from his
works, which manifest to us that he liveth. Whenever he withdraws the working of
his power from before our eyes, the sense and cognisance of the truth, "God
liveth," also evanishes from our minds. He is, therefore, said to live,
inasmuch as he shows, by evident proofs of his power, that it is he who
preserves and upholds the world. And as David had known, by experience, this
life of God, he celebrates it with praises and thanksgiving. If we read the
first clause in the present tense, The Lord liveth, the copula and,
which follows, has the force of an inference; and, accordingly, the words
should be resolved thus:—
Jehovah liveth, and,
therefore, blessed be my strength. The
epithet, My strength, and the other which occurs in verse 48th,
My
deliverer, confirm what I have already
stated, that God does not simply live in himself, and in his secret place, but
displays his vital energy in the government of the whole world. The Hebrew word,
yrwx,
tsuri, which we have translated my strength, is here to be understood
in a transitive sense for Him who bestows
strength.
47.
The God who giveth me
vengeance. The Psalmist again attributes
to God the victories which he had obtained. As he could never have expected to
obtain them unless he had been confident that he would receive the aid of God,
so now he acknowledges God to be the sole author of them. That he may not seem
carelessly to bestow upon him, as it were, in passing, only a small sprinkling
of the praise of his victories, he repeats, in express terms, that he had
nothing but what God had given him. In the first place, he acknowledges that
power was given him from above, to enable him to inflict on his enemies the
punishment which they deserved. It may seem at first sight strange that God
should arm his own people to execute vengeance; but as I have previously shown
you, we ought always to remember David's vocation. He was not a private person,
but being endued with royal power and authority, the judgment which he executed
was enjoined upon him by God. If a man, upon receiving injury, breaks forth to
avenge himself, he usurps the office of God; and, therefore, it is rash and
impious for private individuals to retaliate the injuries which have been
inflicted upon them. With respect to kings and magistrates, God, who declares
that vengeance belongeth to him, in arming them with the sword, constitutes them
the ministers and executioners of his vengeance. David, therefore, has put the
word vengeance for the just punishments which it was lawful for him to
inflict by the commandment of God, provided he was led under the influence of a
zeal duly regulated by the Holy Spirit, and not under the influence of the
impetuosity of the flesh. Unless this moderation is exemplified in performing
the duties of their calling, it is in vain for kings to boast that God has
committed to them the charge of taking vengeance; seeing it is not less
unwarrantable for a man to abuse, according to his own fancy and the lust of the
flesh, the sword which he is allowed to use, than to seize it without the
command of God. The Church militant, which is under the standard of Christ, has
no permission to execute vengeance, except against those who obstinately refuse
to be reclaimed. We are commanded to endeavor to overcome our enemies by doing
them good, and to pray for their salvation. It becomes us, therefore, at the
same time, to desire that they may be brought to repentance, and to a right
state of mind, until it appear beyond all doubt that they are irrecoverably and
hopelessly depraved. In the meantime, in regard to vengeance, it must be left to
God, that we may not be carried headlong to execute it before the time. David
next concludes, from the perils and distresses in which he had been involved,
that if he had not been preserved by the hand of God, he could not in any other
way have escaped in safety:My
deliverer from my enemies; yea, thou hast lifted me up from those who had risen
up against me. The sense in which we are
to understand the lifting up of which he speaks is, that he was
wonderfully raised up above the power and malice of his enemies that he might
not sink under their violence, and that they might not be victorious over
him.
49.
Therefore will I praise thee, O
Jehovah! In this verse he teaches us
that the blessings God had conferred upon him, of which he had spoken, are
worthy of being celebrated with extraordinary and unusual praises, that the fame
of them might reach even the heathen. There is in the words an implied contrast
between the ordinary worship of God which the faithful were then accustomed to
perform in the temple, and this thanksgiving of which David speaks, which could
not be confined within so narrow limits. The meaning, therefore, is, O Lord, I
will not only give thee thanks in the assembly of thy people, according to the
ritual which thou hast appointed in thy law, but thy praises shall extend to a
greater distance, even as thy grace towards me is worthy of being recounted
through the whole world. Moreover, from these words we conclude that this
passage contains a prophecy concerning the kingdom of Christ, which was to come.
Unless the heathen had been allured into the fellowship of the chosen people,
and united into one body with them, to praise God among them would have been to
sing his praises among the deaf, which would have been foolish work and lost
labor. Accordingly, Paul very properly and suitably proves from this text, that
the calling of the Gentiles was not a thing which happened by chance, or at a
venture,
(<451509>Romans
15:9.) We shall afterwards see in many places that the Church is appointed to be
the sacred dwelling-place for showing forth the praises of God. And, therefore,
the name of God could not have been rightly and profitably celebrated elsewhere
than in Judea, until the ears of the Gentiles were opened, which was done when
God adopted them, and called them to himself by the
gospel.
50.
He worketh great deliverances,
etc. This concluding verse clearly shows
why God had exercised such goodness and liberality towards David, namely,
because he had anointed him to be king. By calling himself God's king,
David testifies that he had not rashly rushed into that office, nor was
thrust into it by conspiracies and wicked intrigues, but, on the contrary,
reigned by lawful right, inasmuch as it was the will of God that he should be
king. This he proves by the ceremony of anointing; for God, in anointing him by
the hand of Samuel, had asserted his right to reign not less than if he had
visibly stretched forth his hand from heaven to place and establish him on the
royal throne. This election, he says, was confirmed by a continued series of
great deliverances; and from this it follows, that all who enter on any course
without having the call of God, are chargeable with avowedly making war against
him. At the same time, he attributes these deliverances to the goodness of God
as their cause, to teach us, that that kingdom was founded purely and simply
upon the good pleasure of God. Farther, from the concluding sentence of the
psalm, it appears, as I have said before, that David does not here so much
recount by way of history the singular and varied instances of the grace of God
which he had personally experienced, as predict the everlasting duration of his
kingdom. And it is to be observed, that by the word seed we are not to
understand all his descendants indiscriminately; but we are to consider it as
particularly referring to that successor of David of whom God had spoken in
<100712>2
Samuel 7:12, promising that he would be a father to him. As it had been
predicted that his kingdom would continue as long as the sun and the moon should
shine in the heavens, the prophecy must necessarily be viewed as descending to
him who was to be king not for a time, but for ever. David, therefore, commends
his seed to us, as honored by that remarkable promise, which fully applies
neither to Solomon nor to any other of his successors, but to the only begotten
Son of God; as the apostle, in his Epistle to the Hebrews,
(<580104>Hebrews
1:4,) teaches us, that this is a dignity in which he excels the angels. In
conclusion, we shall then only duly profit in the study of this psalm, when we
are led by the contemplation of the shadow and type to him who is the
substance.
PSALM
19
To the chief musician. A
song of David.
David, with the view of encouraging the faithful to
contemplate the glory of God, sets before them in the first place, a mirror of
it in the fabric of the heavens, and in the exquisite order of their workmanship
which we behold; and in the second place, he recalls our thoughts to the Law, in
which God made himself more familiarly known to his chosen people. Taking
occasion from this, he continues to discourse at considerable length on this
peculiar gift of Heaven, commending and exalting the use of the law. Finally, he
concludes the psalm with a
prayer.
Psalm
19:1-6
1. The heavens declare the
glory of God; and the expanse
fa406 proclaims the works of his hands.
2. Day unto day uttereth speech, and night unto night publishes
knowledge.
fa407 3. There is no language and no
speech [where] their voice is not heard. 4. Their writing has gone forth
through all the earth, and their words to the end of the world:he hath set in
them a tabernacle for the sun. 5. And he goeth forth as a bridegroom out
of his chamber:he rejoiceth as a strong man to run his race. 6. His going
forth is from the end of the heavens, and his circuit is to their utmost limits,
and none is hidden from his heat.
1.
The heavens declare the glory
of God.
fa408 I have already said, that this
psalm consists of two parts, in the first of which David celebrates the glory of
God as manifested in his works; and, in the other, exalts and magnifies the
knowledge of God which shines forth more clearly in his word. He only makes
mention of the heavens; but, under this part of creation, which is the noblest,
and the excellency of which is more conspicuous, he doubtless includes by
synecdoche the whole fabric of the world. There is certainly nothing so obscure
or contemptible, even in the smallest corners of the earth, in which some marks
of the power and wisdom of God may not be seen; but as a more distinct image of
him is engraven on the heavens, David has particularly selected them for
contemplation, that their splendor might lead us to contemplate all parts of the
world. When a man, from beholding and contemplating the heavens, has been
brought to acknowledge God, he will learn also to reflect upon and to admire his
wisdom and power as displayed on the face of the earth, not only in general, but
even in the minutest plants. In the first verse, the Psalmist repeats one thing
twice, according to his usual manner. He introduces the heavens as witnesses and
preachers of the glory of God, attributing to the dumb creature a quality which,
strictly speaking, does not belong to it, in order the more severely to upbraid
men for their ingratitude, if they should pass over so clear a testimony with
unheeding ears. This manner of speaking more powerfully moves and affects us
than if he had said, The heavens show or manifest the glory of
God. It is indeed a great thing, that in the splendor of the heavens there is
presented to our view a lively image of God; but, as the living voice has a
greater effect in exciting our attention, or at least teaches us more surely and
with greater profit than simple beholding, to which no oral instruction is
added, we ought to mark the force of the figure which the Psalmist uses when he
says, that the heavens by their preaching declare the glory of
God.
The repetition which he makes in the second
clause is merely an explanation of the first. David shows how it is that the
heavens proclaim to us the glory of God, namely, by openly bearing testimony
that they have not been put together by chance, but were wonderfully created by
the supreme Architect. When we behold the heavens, we cannot but be elevated, by
the contemplation of them, to Him who is their great Creator; and the beautiful
arrangement and wonderful variety which distinguish the courses and station of
the heavenly bodies, together with the beauty and splendor which are manifest in
them, cannot but furnish us with an evident proof of his providence. Scripture,
indeed, makes known to us the time and manner of the creation; but the heavens
themselves, although God should say nothing on the subject, proclaim loudly and
distinctly enough that they have been fashioned by his hands:and this of itself
abundantly suffices to bear testimony to men of his glory. As soon as we
acknowledge God to be the supreme Architect, who has erected the beauteous
fabric of the universe, our minds must necessarily be ravished with wonder at
his infinite goodness, wisdom, and
power.
2.
Day unto day uttereth
speech. Philosophers, who have more
penetration into those matters than others, understand how the stars are
arranged in such beautiful order, that notwithstanding their immense number
there is no confusion; but to the ignorant and unlettered, the continual
succession of days is a more undoubted proof of the providence of God. David,
therefore, having spoken of the heavens, does not here descend from them to
other parts of the world; but, from an effect more sensible and nearer our
apprehension, he confirms what he has just now said, namely, that the glory of
God not only shines, but also resounds in the heavens. The words may be
variously expounded, but the different expositions which have been given of them
make little difference as to the sense. Some explain them thus, that no day
passes in which God does not show some signal evidence of his power. Others are
of opinion that they denote the augmentations of instruction and knowledge, -
that every succeeding day contributes something new in proof of the existence
and perfections of God. Others view them as meaning that the days and nights
talk together, and reason concerning the glory of their Creator', but this is a
somewhat forced interpretation. David, I have no doubt, here teaches, from the
established alternations of days and nights, that the course and revolutions of
the sun, and moon, and stars, are regulated by the marvellous wisdom of God.
Whether we translate the words Day after day, or one day to another
day, is of little consequence; for all that David means is the beautiful
arrangement of time which the succession of days and nights effects. If, indeed,
we were as attentive as we ought to be, even one day would suffice to bear
testimony to us of the glory of God, and even one night would be sufficient to
perform to us the same office. But when we see the sun and the moon performing
their daily revolutions, — the sun by day appearing over our heads, and
the moon succeeding in its turns — the sun ascending by degrees, while at
the same time he approaches nearer us, — and afterwards bending his course
so as to depart from us by little and little; — and when we see that by
this means the length of the days and nights is regulated, and that the
variation of their length is arranged according to a law so uniform, as
invariably to recur at the same points of time in every successive year, we have
in this a much brighter testimony to the glory of God. David, therefore, with
the highest reason, declares, that although God should not speak a single word
to men, yet the orderly and useful succession of days and nights eloquently
proclaims the glory of God, and that there is now left to men no pretext for
ignorance; for since the days and nights perform towards us so well and so
carefully the office of teachers, we may acquire, if we are duly attentive, a
sufficient amount of knowledge under their
tuition.
3.
There is no language nor
speech [where] their voice is not heard.
This verse receives two almost contrary interpretations, each of which,
however, has the appearance of probability. As the words, when rendered
literally, read thus — No
language, and no words, their voice is not
heard — some connect the third and
fourth verses together, as if this sentence were incomplete without the clause
which follows in the beginning of the fourth verse,
Their writing has gone forth
through all the earth, etc. According to
them, the meaning is this:— The heavens, it is true, are mute and are not
endued with the faculty of speech; but still they proclaim the glory of God with
a voice sufficiently loud and distinct. But if this was David's meaning, what
need was there to repeat three times that they have not articulate speech? It
would certainly be spiritless and superfluous to insist so much upon a thing so
universally known. The other exposition, therefore, as it is more generally
received, seems also to be more suitable. In the Hebrew tongue, which is
concise, it is often necessary to supply some word; and it is particularly a
common thing in that language for the relatives to be omitted, that is to say,
the words which, in which, etc., as here, There is no language, there
is no speech, [where
fa409] their voice is not
heard.
fa410 Besides, the third negation,
ylb,
beli,
fa411 rather denotes an exception to what is
stated in the preceding members of the sentence, as if it had been said, The
difference and variety of languages does not prevent the preaching of the
heavens and their language from being heard and understood in every quarter of
the world. The difference of languages is a barrier which prevents different
nations from maintaining mutual intercourse, and it makes him who in his own
country is distinguished for his eloquence, when he comes into a foreign country
either dumb or, if he attempt to speak, barbarous. And even although a man could
speak all languages, he could not speak to a Grecian and a Roman at the same
time; for as soon as he began to direct his discourse to the one, the other
would cease to understand him. David, therefore, by making a tacit comparison,
enhances the efficacy of the testimony which the heavens bear to their Creator.
The import of his language is, Different nations differ from each other as to
language; but the heavens have a common language to teach all men without
distinction, nor is there any thing but their own carelessness to hinder even
those who are most strange to each other, and who live in the most distant parts
of the world, from profiting, as it were, at the mouth of the same
teacher.
4.
Their writing has gone forth, etc. Here
the inspired writer declares how the heavens preach to all nations
indiscriminately, namely, because men, in all countries and in all parts of the
earth, may understand that the heavens are set before their eyes as witnesses to
bear testimony to the glory of God. As the Hebrew word
wq,
kav signifies sometimes a line, and sometimes a building,
some deduce from it this meaning, that the fabric of the heavens being
framed in a regular manner, and as it were by line, proclaims the glory of God
in all parts of the world. But as David here metaphorically introduces the
splendor and magnificence of the heavenly bodies, as preaching the glory of God
like a teacher in a seminary of learning, it would be a meagre and unsuitable
manner of speaking to say, that the line of the heavens goes forth to the
uttermost ends of the earth. Besides, he immediately adds, in the following
clause, that their words are every where heard; but what relation is
there between words and the beauty of a building? If, however, we render
wq,
kav, writing, these two things will very well agree, first, that the
glory of God is written and imprinted in the heavens, as in an open volume which
all men may read; and, secondly, that, at the same time, they give forth a loud
and distinct voice, which reaches the ears of all men, and causes itself to be
heard in all places.
fa412 Thus we are taught, that the language
of which mention has been made before is, as I may term it, a visible language,
in other words, language which addresses itself to the sight; for it is to the
eyes of men that the heavens speak, not to their ears; and thus David justly
compares the beautiful order and arrangement, by which the heavenly bodies are
distinguished, to a writing. That the Hebrew word
wq,
kav, signifies a line in
writing,
fa413 is sufficiently evident from
<232810>Isaiah
28:10, where God, comparing the Jews to children who are not yet of sufficient
age to make great proficiency, speaks thus:
"For precept must be upon
precept, precept upon precept; line upon line, line upon line; here a little,
and there a little."
In my judgment, therefore, the meaning is, that the
glory of God is not written in small obscure letters, but richly engraven in
large and bright characters, which all men may read, and read with the greatest
ease. Hitherto I have explained the true and proper meaning of the inspired
writer. Some have wrested this part of the psalm by putting upon it an
allegorical interpretation; but my readers will easily perceive that this has
been done without reason. I have shown in the commencement, and it is also
evident from the scope of the whole discourse, that David, before coming to the
law, sets before us the fabric of the world, that in it we might behold the
glory of God. Now, if we understand the heavens as meaning the apostles, and the
sun Christ, there will be no longer place for the division of which we have
spoken; and, besides, it would be an improper arrangement to place the gospel
first and then the law. It is very evident that the inspired poet here treats of
the knowledge of God, which is naturally presented to all men in this world as
in a mirror; and, therefore, I forbear discoursing longer on that point. As,
however, these allegorical interpreters have supported their views from the
words of Paul, this difficulty must be removed. Paul, in discoursing upon the
calling of the Gentiles, lays down this as an established principle, that,
"Whoever shall call upon the name of the Lord, shall be saved;" and then
he adds, that it is impossible for any to call upon him until they know him by
the teaching of the gospel. But as it seemed to the Jews to be a kind of
sacrilege that Paul published the promise of salvation to the Gentiles, he asks
whether the Gentiles themselves had not heard? And he answers, by quoting this
passage, that there was a school open and accessible to them, in which they
might learn to fear God, and serve him, inasmuch as "the
writing
fa414 of the heavens has gone forth
through all the earth, and their words unto the ends of the world,"
(<451018>Romans
10:18.) But Paul could not at that time have said with truth, that the voice of
the gospel had been heard through the whole world from the mouth of the
apostles, since it had scarcely as yet reached even a few countries. The
preaching of the other apostles certainly had not then extended to far distant
parts of the world, but was confined within the boundaries of Judea. The design
of the apostle it is not difficult to comprehend. He intended to say that God,
from ancient times, had manifested his glory to the Gentiles, and that this was
a prelude to the more ample instruction which was one day to be published to
them. And although God's chosen people for a time had been in a condition
distinct and separate from that of the Gentiles, it ought not to be thought
strange that God at length made himself known indiscriminately to both, seeing
he had hitherto united them to himself by certain means which addressed
themselves in common to both; as Paul says in another passage, that when
God,
"in times past, suffered
all nations to walk in their own ways, he nevertheless left not himself without
a
witness,"
(<441416>Acts
14:16, 17.)
Whence we conclude, that those who have imagined that
Paul departed from the genuine and proper sense of David's words are grossly
mistaken. The reader will understand this still more clearly by reading my
commentaries on the above passage of St.
Paul.
He hath set in them a
tabernacle [or pavilion] for the sun. As
David, out of the whole fabric of the world, has especially chosen the heavens,
in which he might exhibit to our view an image of God, because there it is more
distinctly to be seen, even as a man is better seen when set on an elevated
stage; so now he shows us the sun as placed in the highest rank, because in his
wonderful brightness the majesty of God displays itself more magnificently than
in all the rest. The other planets, it is true, have also their motions, and as
it were the appointed places within which they run their
race,
fa415 and the firmament, by its own
revolution, draws with it all the fixed stars, but it would have been lost time
for David to have attempted to teach the secrets of astronomy to the rude and
unlearned; and therefore he reckoned it sufficient to speak in a homely style,
that he might reprove the whole world of ingratitude, if, in beholding the sun,
they are not taught the fear and the knowledge of God. This, then, is the reason
why he says that a tent or pavilion has been erected for the sun, and also why
he says, that he goes forth from one end of the heaven, and quickly passes to
the other and opposite end. He does not here discourse scientifically (as he
might have done, had he spoken among philosophers) concerning the entire
revolution which the sun performs, but, accommodating himself to the rudest and
dullest, he confines himself to the ordinary appearances presented to the eye,
and, for this reason, he does not speak of the other half of the sun's course,
which does not appear in our hemisphere. He proposes to us three things to be
considered in the sun, — the splendor and excellency of his forms —
the swiftness with which he runs his course, — and the astonishing power
of his heat. The more forcibly to express and magnify his surpassing beauty and,
as it were, magnificent attire, he employs the similitude of a bridegroom. He
then adds another similitude, that of a valiant man who enters the lists as a
racer to carry off the prize of the course. The swiftness of those who in
ancient times contended in the stadium, whether on chariots or on foot, was
wonderful; and although it was nothing when compared with the velocity with
which the sun moves in his orbit, yet David, among all that he saw coming under
the ordinary notice of men, could find nothing which approached nearer to it.
Some think that the third clause, where he speaks of the heat of the sun, is to
be understood of his vegetative heat, as it is called; in other words, that by
which the vegetating bodies which are in the earth have their vigor, support,
and growth.
fa416 But I do not think that this sense
suits the passage. It is, indeed, a wonderful work of God, and a signal evidence
of his goodness, that the powerful influence of the sun penetrating the earth
renders it fruitful. But as the Psalmist says, that no man or
nothing is hidden from his
heat, I am rather inclined to understand
it of the violent heat which scorches men and other living creatures as well as
plants and trees. With respect to the enlivening heat of the sun, by which we
feel ourselves to be invigorated, no man desires to avoid
it.
Psalm
19:7-9
7. The law of the
Lord
fa417 is perfect, restoring the soul; the
testimony of Jehovah is faithful, [or
true,
fa418] instructing the babes in wisdom.
8. The statutes of Jehovah are right, rejoicing the heart; the
commandment of the Lord
fa419 is pure, enlightening the eyes.
9. The fear of Jehovah is clean, enduring for ever; the judgments of
Jehovah are truth, and justified together.
7.
The law of the Lord. Here the second
part of the psalm commences. After having shown that the creatures, although
they do not speak, nevertheless serve as instructors to all mankind, and teach
all men so clearly that there is a God, as to render them inexcusable, the
Psalmist now turns towards the Jews, to whom God had communicated a fuller
knowledge of himself by means of his word. While the heavens bear witness
concerning God, their testimony does not lead men so far as that thereby they
learn truly to fear him, and acquire a well-grounded knowledge of him; it serves
only to render them inexcusable. It is doubtless true, that if we were not very
dull and stupid, the signatures and proofs of Deity which are to be found on the
theater of the world, are abundant enough to incite us to acknowledge and
reverence God; but as, although surrounded with so clear a light, we are
nevertheless blind, this splendid representation of the glory of God, without
the aid of the word, would profit us nothing, although it should be to us as a
loud and distinct proclamation sounding in our ears. Accordingly, God vouchsafes
to those whom he has determined to call to salvation special grace, just as in
ancient times, while he gave to all men without exception evidences of his
existence in his works, he communicated to the children of Abraham alone his
Law, thereby to furnish them with a more certain and intimate knowledge of his
majesty. Whence it follows, that the Jews are bound by a double tie to serve
God. As the Gentiles, to whom God has spoken only by the dumb creatures, have no
excuse for their ignorance, how much less is their stupidity to be endured who
neglect to hear the voice which proceeds from his own sacred mouth? The end,
therefore, which David here has in view, is to excite the Jews, whom God had
bound to himself by a more sacred bond, to yield obedience to him with a more
prompt and cheerful affection. Farther, under the term law, he not only
means the rule of living righteously, or the Ten Commandments, but he also
comprehends the covenant by which God had distinguished that people from the
rest of the world, and the whole doctrine of Moses, the parts of which he
afterwards enumerates under the terms testimonies, statutes, and other
names. These titles and commendations by which he exalts the dignity and
excellence of the Law would not agree with the Ten Commandments alone, unless
there were, at the same time, joined to them a free adoption and the promises
which depend upon it; and, in short, the whole body of doctrine of which true
religion and godliness consists. As to the Hebrew words which are here used, I
will not spend much time in endeavoring very exactly to give the particular
signification of each of them, because it is easy to gather from other passages,
that they are sometimes confounded or used indifferently.
Twd[,
eduth, which we render testimony, is generally taken for the
covenant, in which God, on the one hand, promised to the children of Abraham
that he would be their God, and on the other required faith and obedience on
their part. It, therefore, denotes the mutual covenant entered into between God
and his ancient people. The word
µydwqp,
pikkudim, which I have followed others in translating statutes, is
restricted by some to ceremonies, but improperly in my judgment:for I find that
it is every where taken generally for ordinances and edicts. The word
hwxm,
mitsvah, which follows immediately after, and which we translate
commandment, has almost the same signification. As to the other words, we
shall consider them in their respective
places.
The first commendation of the law of God
is, that it is perfect. By this word David means, that if a man is duly
instructed in the law of God, he wants nothing which is requisite to perfect
wisdom. In the writings of heathen authors there are no doubt to be found true
and useful sentences scattered here and there; and it is also true, that God has
put into the minds of men some knowledge of justice and uprightness; but in
consequence of the corruption of our nature, the true light of truth is not to
be found among men where revelation is not enjoyed, but only certain mutilated
principles which are involved in much obscurity and doubt. David, therefore,
justly claims this praise for the law of God, that it contains in it perfect and
absolute wisdom. As the conversion of the soul, of which he speaks
immediately after, is doubtless to be understood of its restoration, I
have felt no difficulty in so rendering it. There are some who reason with too
much subtilty on this expression, by explaining it as referring to the
repentance and regeneration of man. I admit that the soul cannot be restored by
the law of God, without being at the same time renewed unto righteousness; but
we must consider what is David's proper meaning, which is this, that as the soul
gives vigor and strength to the body, so the law in like manner is the life of
the soul. In saying that the soul is restored, he has an allusion to the
miserable state in which we are all born. There, no doubt, still survive in us
some small remains of the first creation; but as no part of our constitution is
free from defilement and impurity, the condition of the soul thus corrupted and
depraved differs little from death, and tends altogether to death. It is,
therefore, necessary that God should employ the law as a remedy for restoring us
to purity; not that the letter of the law can do this of itself, as shall be
afterwards shown more at length, but because God employs his word as an
instrument for restoring our souls.
When the
Psalmist declares, The testimony
of Jehovah is faithful, it is a
repetition of the preceding sentence, so that the integrity or
perfection of the law and the faithfulness or
truth of his
testimony, signify the same thing;
namely, that when we give ourselves up to be guided and governed by the word of
God, we are in no danger of going astray, since this is the path by which he
securely guides his own people to salvation.
Instruction in
wisdom seems here to be added as the
commencement of the restoration of the soul. Understanding is the most excellent
endowment of the soul; and David teaches us that it is to be derived from the
law, for we are naturally destitute of it. By the word babes, he is not
to be understood as meaning any particular class of persons, as if others were
sufficiently wise of themselves; but by it he teaches us, in the first place,
that none are endued with right understanding until they have made progress in
the study of the law. In the second place, he shows by it what kind of scholars
God requires, namely, those who are fools in their own estimation,
(<460318>1
Corinthians 3:18,) and who come down to the rank of children, that the loftiness
of their own understanding may not prevent them from giving themselves up, with
a spirit of entire docility, to the teaching of the word of
God.
8.
The statutes of Jehovah are
right. The Psalmist at first view may
seem to utter a mere common-place sentiment when he calls the statutes of the
Lord right. If we, however, more attentively consider the contrast which
he no doubt makes between the rectitude of the law and the crooked ways in which
men entangle themselves when they follow their own understandings, we will be
convinced that this commendation implies more than may at first sight appear. We
know how much every man is wedded to himself, and how difficult it is to
eradicate from our minds the vain confidence of our own wisdom. It is therefore
of great importance to be well convinced of this truth, that a man's life cannot
be ordered aright unless it is framed according to the law of God, and that
without this he can only wander in labyrinths and crooked bypaths. David adds,
in the second place, that God's statutes rejoice the heart. This implies
that there is no other joy true and solid but that which proceeds from a good
conscience; and of this we become partakers when we are certainly persuaded that
our life is pleasing and acceptable to God. No doubt, the source from which true
peace of conscience proceeds is faith, which freely reconciles us to God. But to
the saints who serve God with true affection of heart there arises unspeakable
joy also, from the knowledge that they do not labor in his service in vain, or
without hope of recompense, since they have God as the judge and approver of
their life. In short, this joy is put in opposition to all the corrupt
enticements and pleasures of the world, which are a deadly bait, luring wretched
souls to their everlasting destruction. The import of the Psalmist's language
is, Those who take delight in committing sin procure for themselves abundant
matter of sorrow; but the observance of the law of God, on the contrary, brings
to man true joy. In the end of the verse, the Psalmist teaches that
the commandment of God is pure,
enlightening the eyes. By this he gives
us tacitly to understand that it is only in the commandments of God that we find
the difference between good and evil laid down, and that it is in vain to seek
it elsewhere, since whatever men devise of themselves is mere filth and refuse,
corrupting the purity of the life. He farther intimates that men, with all their
acuteness, are blind, and always wander in darkness, until they turn their eyes
to the light of heavenly doctrine. Whence it follows, that none are truly wise
but those who take God for their conductor and guide, following the path which
he points out to them, and who are diligently seeking after the peace which he
offers and presents by his word.
But here a
question of no small difficulty arises; for Paul seems entirely to overthrow
these commendations of the law which David here recites. How can these things
agree together:that the law restores the souls of men, while yet it is a dead
and deadly letter? that it rejoices men's hearts, and yet, by bringing in the
spirit of bondage, strikes them with terror? that it enlightens the eyes, and
yet, by casting a veil before our minds, excludes the light which ought to
penetrate within? But, in the first place, we must remember what I have shown
you at the commencement, that David does not speak simply of the precepts of the
Moral Law, but comprehends the whole covenant by which God had adopted the
descendants of Abraham to be his peculiar people; and, therefore, to the Moral
Law, the rule of living well — he joins the free promises of salvation, or
rather Christ himself, in whom and upon whom this adoption was founded. But
Paul, who had to deal with persons who perverted and abused the law, and
separated it from the grace and the Spirit of Christ, refers to the ministry of
Moses viewed merely by itself, and according to the letter. It is certain, that
if the Spirit of Christ does not quicken the law, the law is not only
unprofitable, but also deadly to its disciples. Without Christ there is in the
law nothing but inexorable rigour, which adjudges all mankind to the wrath and
curse of God. And farther, without Christ, there remains within us a
rebelliousness of the flesh, which kindles in our hearts a hatred of God and of
his law, and from this proceed the distressing bondage and awful terror of which
the Apostle speaks. These different ways in which the law may be viewed, easily
show us the manner of reconciling these passages of Paul and David, which seem
at first view to be at variance. The design of Paul is to show what the law can
do for us, taken by itself; that is to say, what it can do for us when, without
the promise of grace, it strictly and rigorously exacts from us the duty which
we owe to God; but David, in praising it as he here does, speaks of the whole
doctrine of the law, which includes also the gospel, and, therefore, under the
law he comprehends Christ.
9.
The fear of Jehovah is
clean. By the fear of God we are
here to understand the way in which God is to be served; and therefore it is
taken in an active sense for the doctrine which prescribes to us the manner in
which we ought to fear God. The way in which men generally manifest their fear
of God, is by inventing false religions and a vitiated worship; in doing which
they only so much the more provoke his wrath. David, therefore, here indirectly
condemns these corrupt inventions, about which men torment themselves in
vain,
fa420 and which often sanction impurity; and
in opposition to them he justly affirms, that in the keeping of the law there is
an exemption from every thing which defiles. He adds, that it endures for
ever; as if he had said, This is the treasure of everlasting happiness. We
see how mankind, without well thinking what they are doing, pursue, with
impetuous and ardent affections, the transitory things of this world; but, in
thus catching at the empty shadow of a happy life, they lose true happiness
itself. In the second clause, by calling the commandments of God truth,
David shows that whatever men undertake to do at the mere suggestion of
their own minds, without having a regard to the law of God as a rule, is error
and falsehood. And, indeed, he could not have more effectually stirred us up to
love, and zealously to live according to the law, than by giving us this
warning, that all those who order their life, without having any respect to the
law of God, deceive themselves, and follow after mere delusions. Those who
explain the word judgments, as referring only to the commandments of the
second table, are, in my opinion, mistaken:for David's purpose was to commend,
under a variety of expressions, the advantages which the faithful receive from
the law of God. When he says,
They are justified
together, the meaning is, They are all
righteous from the greatest to the least, without a single exception. By this
commendation he distinguishes the law of God from all the doctrines of men, for
no blemish or fault can be found in it, but it is in all points absolutely
perfect.
Psalm
19:10-11
10. More to be desired are
they than gold, yea, than much fine gold; sweeter also than honey, and the
droppings of honeycombs.
fa421 11. Moreover, by them is thy
servant made circumspect; and in the keeping of them there is great reward.
10.
More to be desired are they
than gold. The Psalmist now exalts the
law of God both on account of its price and sweetness. This commendation depends
on the commendations given in the preceding verses; for the many and great
advantages which he has just now enumerated, ought justly to make us account
heavenly truth the highest and most excellent treasure, and to despise, when
compared with it, all the gold and silver of the world. Instead of the word
fine gold, which the Latins have called Aurum
obryzum,
fa422 some render the Hebrew word a
jewel, or precious stones,
fa423 but the other translation is
more generally received, namely, fine gold, that is, gold which is pure
and well refined in the furnace; and there are many passages of Scripture by
which this rendering is confirmed.
fa424 The Hebrew word
zp,
paz, is derived from
hzp,
pazah, which signifies to
strengthen;
fa425 from which we may conjecture
that the Psalmist does not mean the gold of any particular country, as if one
should say the gold of Ophir, but gold completely refined and purified by art.
So far is
zp,
paz, from being derived from the name of a country, that, on the
contrary, it appears from
<241009>Jeremiah
10:9, that the land of Uphaz took its name from this Hebrew word, because it had
in it mines of the finest gold. As to the origin of the word obrizum,
which the Latins have used, we cannot say any thing with certainty, except
that, according to the conjecture of Jerome, it signifies brought from the
land of Ophir, as if it had been said, aurum Ophrizum. In short, the
sense is, that we do not esteem the law as it deserves, if we do not prefer it
to all the riches of the world. If we are once brought thus highly to prize the
law, it will serve effectually to deliver our hearts from an immoderate desire
of gold and silver. To this esteem of the law there must be added love to it,
and delight in it, so that it may not only subdue us to obedience by constraint,
but also allure us by its sweetness; a thing which is impossible, unless, at the
same time, we have mortified in us the love of carnal pleasures, with which it
is not wonderful to see us enticed and ensnared, so long as we reject, through a
vitiated taste, the righteousness of God. From this we may again deduce another
evidence, that David's discourse is not to be understood simply of the
commandments, and of the dead letter, but that he comprehends, at the same time,
the promises by which the grace of God is offered to us. If the law did nothing
else but command us, how could it be loved, since in commanding it terrifies us,
because we all fail in keeping it?
fa426 Certainly, if we separate the law from
the hope of pardon, and from the Spirit of Christ, so far from tasting it to be
sweet as honey, we will rather find in it a bitterness which kills our wretched
souls.
11.
Moreover, by them is thy
servant made circumspect. These words
may be extended generally to all the people of God; but they are properly to be
understood of David himself, and by them he testifies that he knew well, from
his own experience, all that he had stated in the preceding verses respecting
the law. No man will ever speak truly and in good earnest of heavenly truth, but
he who has it deeply fixed in his own heart. David therefore acknowledges, that
whatever prudence he had for regulating and framing his life aright, he was
indebted for it to the law of God. Although, however, it is properly of himself
that he speaks, yet by his own example he sets forth a general rule, namely,
that if persons wish to have a proper method for governing the life well, the
law of God alone is perfectly sufficient for this purpose; but that, on the
contrary, as soon as persons depart from it, they are liable to fall into
numerous errors and sins. It is to be observed that David, by all at once
turning his discourse to God, appeals to him as a witness of what he had said,
the more effectually to convince men that he speaks sincerely and from the
bottom of his heart. As the Hebrew word
rhz,
zahar, which I have translated made circumspect, signifies to
teach, as well as to be on one's guard, some translate it in this
place, Thy servant is taught, or warned, by the commandments of
the law. But the sentence implies much more, when it is viewed as meaning that
he who yields himself to God to be governed by him is made circumspect and
cautious, and, therefore, this translation seems to me to be preferable. In the
second clause the Psalmist declares, that whoever yield themselves to God to
observe the rule of righteousness which he prescribes, do not lose their labor,
seeing he has in reserve for them a great and rich
reward:In keeping of them there
is great reward. It is no mean commendation of
the law when it is said, that in it God enters into covenant with us, and, so to
speak, brings himself under obligation to recompense our obedience. In requiring
from us whatever is contained in the law, he demands nothing but what he has a
right to; yet such is his free and undeserved liberality, that he promises to
his servants a reward, which, in point of justice, he does not owe them. The
promises of the law, it is true, are made of no effect; but it is through our
fault:for even he who is most perfect amongst us comes far short of full and
complete righteousness; and men cannot expect any reward for their works until
they have perfectly and to the full satisfied the requirements of the law. Thus
these two doctrines completely harmonize:first, that eternal life shall be given
as the reward of works to him who fulfils the law in all points; and, secondly,
that the law notwithstanding denounces a curse against all men, because the
whole human family are destitute of the righteousness of works. This will
presently appear from the following verse. David, after having celebrated this
benefit of the law - that it offers an abundant reward to those who serve God
— immediately changes his discourse, and cries out,
Who can understand his
errors? by which he pronounces all men
liable to eternal death, and thus utterly overthrows all the confidence which
men may be disposed to place in the merit of their works. It may be objected,
that this commendation, In the
keeping of thy commandments there is great
reward, is in vain ascribed to the law,
seeing it is without effect. The answer is easy, namely, that as in the covenant
of adoption there is included the free pardon of sins, upon which depends the
imputation of righteousness, God bestows a recompense upon the works of his
people, although, in point of justice, it is not due to them. What God promises
in the law to those who perfectly obey it, true believers obtain by his gracious
liberality and fatherly goodness, inasmuch as he accepts for perfect
righteousness their holy desires and earnest endeavors to
obey.
Psalm
19:12-14
12. Who can understand his
errors?
fa427 Cleanse thou me from my secret sins.
13. Keep back thy servant also from presumptuous
sins,
fa428 that they may not have dominion over
me; then shall I be upright and clean from much
wickedness.
fa429 14. Let the words of my mouth,
and the meditations of my heart, be acceptable in thy sight, O Jehovah, my
strength and my redeemer.
12.
Who can understand his
errors? This exclamation shows us what
use we should make of the promises of the law, which have a condition annexed to
them. It is this: As soon as they come forth, every man should examine his own
life, and compare not only his actions, but also his thoughts, with that perfect
rule of righteousness which is laid down in the law. Thus it will come to pass,
that all, from the least to the greatest, seeing themselves cut off from all
hope of reward from the law, will be constrained to flee for refuge to the mercy
of God. It is not enough to consider what the doctrine of the law contains; we
must also look into ourselves, that we may see how far short we have come in our
obedience to the law. Whenever the Papists hear this promise,
"He who doeth
these things shall live in
them,"
(<031805>Leviticus
18:5,)
they do not hesitate at once to connect eternal life
with the merit of their works, as if it were in their own power to fulfill the
law, of which we are all transgressors, not only in one point, but in all its
parts. David, therefore, being involved as it were in a labyrinth on all sides,
acknowledges with astonishment that he is overwhelmed under a sense of the
multitude of his sins. We ought then to remember, in the first place, that as we
are personally destitute of the righteousness which the law requires, we are on
that account excluded from the hope of the reward which the law has promised;
and, in the next place, that we are guilty before God, not of one fault or of
two, but of sins innumerable, so that we ought, with the bitterest sorrow, to
bewail our depravity, which not only deprives us of the blessing of God, but
also turns to us life into death. This David did. There is no doubt that when,
after having said that God liberally offers a reward to all who observe his law,
he cried out, Who can understand
his errors? it was from the terror with which
he was stricken in thinking upon his sins. By the Hebrew word
twaygç,
shegioth, which we have translated errors, some think David
intends lesser faults; but in my judgment he meant simply to say, that Satan has
so many devices by which he deludes and blinds our minds, that there is not a
man who knows the hundredth part of his own sins. The saints, it is true, often
offend in lesser matters, through ignorance and inadvertence; but it happens
also that, being entangled in the snares of Satan, they do not perceive even the
grosser faults which they have committed. Accordingly, all the sins to the
commission of which men give themselves loose reins, not being duly sensible of
the evil which is in them, and being deceived by the allurements of the flesh,
are justly included under the Hebrew word here used by David, which signifies
faults or ignorances.
fa430 In summoning himself and others
before the judgment-seat of God, he warns himself and them, that although their
consciences do not condemn them, they are not on that account absolved; for God
sees far more clearly than men's consciences, since even those who look most
attentively into themselves, do not perceive a great part of the sins with which
they are chargeable.
After making this
confession, David adds a prayer for pardon,
Cleanse thou me from my secret
sins. The word cleanse is to be
referred not to the blessing of regeneration, but to free forgiveness; for the
Hebrew verb
hqn,
nakah, here used, comes from a word which signifies to be
innocent. The Psalmist explains more clearly what he intended by the word
errors, in now calling them secret sins; that is to say, those
with respect to which men deceive themselves, by thinking that they are no sins,
and who thus deceive themselves not only purposely and by expressly aiming at
doing so, but because they do not enter into the due consideration of the
majesty of the judgment of God. It is in vain to attempt to justify ourselves
under the pretext and excuse of ignorance. Nor does it avail any thing to be
blind as to our faults, since no man is a competent judge in his own cause. We
must, therefore, never account ourselves to be pure and innocent until we are
pronounced such by God's sentence of absolution or acquittal. The faults which
we do not perceive must necessarily come under the review of God's judgment, and
entail upon us condemnation, unless he blot them out and pardon them; and if so,
how shall he escape and remain unpunished who, besides these, is chargeable with
sins of which he knows himself to be guilty, and on account of which his own
conscience compels him to judge and condemn himself? Farther, we should remember
that we are not guilty of one offense only, but are overwhelmed with an immense
mass of impurities. The more diligently any one examines himself, the more
readily will he acknowledge with David, that if God should discover our secret
faults, there would be found in us an abyss of sins so great as to have neither
bottom nor shore, as we say;
fa431 for no man can comprehend in how many
ways he is guilty before God. From this also it appears, that the Papists are
bewitched, and chargeable with the grossest hypocrisy, when they pretend that
they can easily and speedily gather all their sins once a year into a bundle.
The decree of the Lateran Council commands every one to confess all his sins
once every year, and at the same time declares that there is no hope of pardon
but in complying with that decree. Accordingly, the blinded Papist, by going to
the confessional, to mutter his sins into the ear of the priest, thinks he has
done all that is required, as if he could count upon his fingers all the sins
which he has committed during the course of the whole year; whereas, even the
saints, by strictly examining themselves, can scarcely come to the knowledge of
the hundredth part of their sins, and, therefore, with one voice unite with
David in saying, Who can
understand his errors? Nor will it do to
allege that it is enough if each performs the duty of reckoning up his sins to
the utmost of his ability. This does not diminish, in any degree, the absurdity
of this famous decree.
fa432 As it is impossible for us to do what
the law requires, all whose hearts are really and deeply imbued with the
principle of the fear of God must necessarily be overwhelmed with despair, so
long as they think themselves bound to enumerate all their sins, in order to
their being pardoned; and those who imagine they can disburden themselves of
their sins in this way must be persons altogether stupid. I know that some
explain these words in a different sense, viewing them as a prayer, in which
David beseeches God, by the guidance of his Holy Spirit, to recover him from all
his errors. But, in my opinion, they are to be viewed rather as a prayer for
forgiveness, and what follows in the next verse is a prayer for the aid of the
Holy Spirit, and for success to overcome
temptations.
13.
Keep back thy servant also
from presumptuous sins. By
presumptuous sins he means known and evident
transgressions,
fa433 accompanied with proud contempt and
obstinacy. By the word keep back, he intimates, that such is the natural
propensity of the flesh to sin, that even the saints themselves would
immediately break forth or rush headlong into it, did not God, by his own
guardianship and protection, keep them back. It is to be observed, that while he
calls himself the servant of God, he nevertheless acknowledges that he
had need of the bridle, lest he should arrogantly and rebelliously break forth
in transgressing the law of God. Being regenerated by the Spirit of God, he
groaned, it is true, under the burden of his sins; but he knew, on the other
hand, how great is the rebellion of the flesh, and how much we are inclined to
forgetfulness of God, from which proceed contempt of his majesty and all
impiety. Now, if David, who had made so much progress in the fear of God, was
not beyond the danger of transgressing, how shall the carnal and unrenewed man,
in whom innumerable lusts exercise dominion, be able to restrain and govern
himself by his own free will? Let us learn, then, even although the unruliness
of our wayward flesh has been already subdued by the denial of ourselves, to
walk in fear and trembling; for unless God restrain us, our hearts will
violently boil with a proud and insolent contempt of God. This sense is
confirmed by the reason added immediately after,
that they may not have dominion
over me. By these words he expressly
declares, that unless God assist him, he will not only be unable to resist, but
will be wholly brought under the dominion of the worst vices. This passage,
therefore, teaches us not only that all mankind are naturally enslaved to sin,
but that the faithful themselves would become the bond-slaves of sin also, if
God did not unceasingly watch over them to guide them in the path of holiness,
and to strengthen them for persevering in it. There is also another useful
lesson which we have here to attend to, namely, that we ought never to pray for
pardon, without, at the same time, asking to be strengthened and fortified by
the power of God for the time to come, that temptations, in future, may not gain
advantage over us. And although we may feel in our hearts the incitements of
concupiscence goading and distressing us, we ought not, on that account, to
become discouraged. The remedy to which we should have recourse is to pray to
God to restrain us. No doubt, David could have wished to feel in his heart no
stirrings of corruption; but knowing that he would never be wholly free from the
remains of sin, until at death he had put off this corrupt nature, he prays to
be armed with the grace of the Holy Spirit for the combat, that iniquity might
not reign victorious over him. In the end of the verse there are two things to
be observed. David, in affirming that
he shall then be upright and
clean from much wickedness, attributes,
in the first place, the honor of preserving him innocent to the spiritual
assistance of God; and depending upon it, he confidently assures himself of
victory over all the armies of Satan. In the second place, he acknowledges, that
unless he is assisted by God, he will be overwhelmed with an immense load, and
plunged as it were into a boundless abyss of wickedness:for he says, that aided
by God, he will be clear not of one fault or of two, but of many. From this it
follows, that as soon as we are abandoned by the grace of God, there is no kind
of sin in which Satan may not entangle us. Let this confession of David then
quicken us to earnestness in prayer; for in the midst of so many and various
snares, it does not become us to fall asleep or to be indolent. Again, let the
other part of the Psalmist's exercise predominate in our hearts — let us
boast with him, that although Satan may assault us by many and strong armies, we
will nevertheless be invincible, provided we have the aid of God, and will
continue, in despite of every hostile attempt, to hold fast our
integrity.
14.
Let the words of my mouth,
and the meditation of my heart. David
asks still more expressly to be fortified by the grace of God, and thus enabled
to live an upright and holy life. The substance of the verse is this:I beseech
thee, O God, not only to keep me from breaking forth into the external acts of
transgression, but also to frame my tongue and my heart to the obedience of thy
law. We know how difficult it is, even for the most perfect, so to bridle their
words and thoughts, as that nothing may pass through their heart or mouth which
is contrary to the will of God; and yet this inward purity is what the law
chiefly requires of us. Now, the rarer this virtue — the rarer this strict
control of the heart and of the tongue is, let us learn so much the more the
necessity of our being governed by the Holy Spirit, in order to regulate our
life uprightly and honestly. By the word acceptable, the Psalmist shows
that the only rule of living well is for men to endeavor to please God, and to
be approved of him. The concluding words, in which he calls God
his strength and his
redeemer, he employs to confirm himself
in the assured confidence of obtaining his requests.
PSALM
20.
This psalm contains a common prayer of the Church in
behalf of the King of Israel, that God would succor him in danger; and in behalf
of his kingdom, that God would maintain it in safety, and cause it to
prosper:for in the person of David the safety and well-being of the whole
community centred. To this there is added a promise, that God will preside over
that kingdom of which he was the founder, and so effectually watch over it as to
secure its continual preservation.
To the chief
musician. A Psalm of David.
Psalm
20:1-2
1. May Jehovah hear thee in
the day of trouble! may the name of the God of Jacob defend thee! 2. May
he send thee help from his sanctuary, and sustain thee out of
Sion!
The inscription shows that the psalm
was composed by David; but though he was its author, there is no absurdity in
his speaking of himself in the person of others. The office of a prophet having
been committed to him, he with great propriety prepared this as a form of prayer
for the use of the faithful. In doing this, his object was not so much to
commend his own person, by authoritatively issuing a royal ordinance enjoining
upon the people the use of this prayer, as to show, in the exercise of his
office as a teacher, that it belonged to the whole Church to concern itself, and
to use its endeavors that the kingdom which God had erected might continue safe
and prosperous. Many interpreters view this prayer as offered up only on one
particular occasion; but in this I cannot agree. The occasion of its composition
at first may have arisen from some particular battle which was about to be
fought, either against the Ammonites, or against some other enemies of Israel.
But the design of the Holy Spirit, in my judgment, was to deliver to the Church
a common form of prayer, which, as we may gather from the words, was to be used
whenever she was threatened with any danger. God commands his people, in
general, to pray for kings, but there was a special reason, and one which did
not apply to any other kingdom, why prayer was to be made in behalf of this
kingdom; for it was only by the hand of David and his seed that God had
determined to govern and maintain his people. It is particularly to be noticed,
that under the figure of this temporal kingdom, there was described a government
far more excellent, on which the whole joy and felicity of the Church depended.
The object, therefore, which David had expressly in view was, to exhort all the
children of God to cherish such a holy solicitude about the kingdom of Christ,
as would stir them up to continual prayer in its
behalf.
1.
May Jehovah hear thee,
etc. The Holy Spirit, by introducing the
people as praying that God would answer the prayers of the king, is to be viewed
as at the same time admonishing kings that it is their duty to implore the
protection of God in all their affairs. When he says,
In the day of
trouble, he shows that they will not be
exempted from troubles, and he does this that they may not become discouraged,
if at any time they should happen to be in circumstances of danger. In short,
the faithful, that the body may not be separated from the head, further the
king's prayers by their common and united supplications.
The name of
God is here put for God himself
and not without good reason; for the essence of God being incomprehensible
to us, it behoves us to trust in him, in so far as his grace and power are made
known to us. From his name, therefore, proceeds confidence in calling upon him.
The faithful desire that the king may be protected and aided by God, whose name
was called upon among the sons of Jacob. I cannot agree with those who
think that mention is here made of that patriarch, because God exercised him
with various afflictions, not unlike those with which he tried his servant
David. I am rather of opinion that, as is usual in Scripture, the chosen people
are denoted by the term Jacob. And from this name, the God of Jacob,
the faithful encourage themselves to pray for the defense of their king;
because it was one of the privileges of their adoption to live under the conduct
and protection of a king set over them by God himself. Hence we may conclude, as
I have said before, that under the figure of a temporal kingdom there is
described to us a government much more
excellent.
fa434 Since Christ our King, being an
everlasting priest, never ceases to make intercession with God, the whole body
of the Church should unite in prayer with
him;
fa435 and farther, we can have no hope of
being heard except he go before us, and conduct us to
God.
fa436 And it serves in no small degree to
assuage our sorrows to consider that Jesus Christ, when we are afflicted,
accounts our distresses his own, provided we, at the same time, take courage,
and continue resolute and magnanimous in tribulation; which we should be
prepared to do, since the Holy Spirit here forewarns us that the kingdom of
Christ would be subject to dangers and
troubles.
2.
May he send thee
help. That is to say, may he succor thee
out of mount Sion, where he commanded the ark of the covenant to be placed, and
chose for himself a dwelling-place. The weakness of the flesh will not suffer
men to soar up to heaven, and, therefore, God comes down to meet them, and by
the external means of grace shows that he is near them. Thus the ark of the
covenant was to his ancient people a pledge of his presence, and the sanctuary
an image of heaven. But as God, by appointing mount Sion to be the place where
the faithful should continually worship him, had joined the kingdom and
priesthood together, David, in putting into the lips of the people a prayer for
help out of Sion, doubtless had an eye to this sacred bond of union. Hence I
conjecture that this psalm was composed by David in his old age, and about the
close of his life. Some think he spake of Sion by the Spirit of prophecy before
it had been appointed that the ark should be placed there; but this opinion
seems strained, and to have little
probability.
Psalm
20:3-5
3. May he remember all thy
offerings; and make thy holocaust [or burnt sacrifice]
fat!
fa437 Selah. 4. May he grant thee
according to thy heart, and fulfill all thy counsel! 5. That we may
rejoice in thy salvation, [or safety;] and set up a banner in the name of our
God, when Jehovah shall fulfill all thy
petitions.
3.
May he
remember. I understand the word
remember
as meaning to have regard to, as it is to be understood in many other
places; just as to forget often signifies to neglect, or not to
deign to regard, nor even to behold, the object to which it is applied. It
is, in short, a prayer that God would actually show that the king's sacrifices
were acceptable to him. Two kinds of them are here mentioned; first, the
hjnm,
mincha, mentioned in the first clause of the verse, which was the appointed
accompaniment of all sacrifices, and which was also sometimes offered by itself;
and, secondly, the holocaust, or whole burnt-sacrifice. But under these two
kinds David intended to comprehend, by synecdoche, all sacrifices; and under
sacrifices he comprehends requests and prayers. We know that whenever the
fathers prayed under the law, their hope of obtaining what they asked was
founded upon their sacrifices; and, in like manner, at this day our prayers are
acceptable to God only in so far as Christ sprinkles and sanctifies them with
the perfume of his own sacrifice. The faithful, therefore, here desire that the
solemn prayers of the king, which were accompanied with sacrifices and
oblations, might have their effect in the prosperous issue of his affairs. That
this is the meaning may be gathered still more clearly from the following verse,
in which they commend to God the desires and counsels of the king. But as it
would be absurd to ask God to grant foolish and wicked desires, it is to be
regarded as certain, that there is here described a king who was neither given
to ambition, nor inflamed with avarice, nor actuated by the desire of whatever
the unruly passions might suggest, but wholly intent on the charge which
was committed to him, and entirely devoted to the advancement of the public
good; so that he asks nothing but what the Holy Spirit dictated to him, and what
God, by his own mouth, commanded him to
ask.
5.
That we may rejoice in thy
salvation. This verse may be explained
in two other ways, besides the sense it bears according to the translation which
I have given. Some consider it to be a prayer, as if it had been said, Lord,
make us to rejoice. Others think that the faithful, after having finished their
prayer, encourage themselves to entertain good
hope;
fa438 or rather, being already inspired with
an assured hope of success, they begin to sing, so to speak, of the victory,
even as it is usual with David to intermingle such kind of rejoicings with his
prayers, thereby to stir up himself to continue with the more alacrity in
prayer. But upon considering the whole more carefully, my opinion is, that what
is meant to be expressed is the effect or fruit which would result from the
bestowment of the grace and favor of God, for which the people prayed; and,
therefore, I have thought it necessary to supply the particle that, in
the beginning of the verse. The faithful, as an argument to obtain the favor of
God towards their king, set forth the joy which they would all experience in
common, in seeing it exercised towards him, and the thanksgiving which they
would with one accord render for it. The import of their language is, It is not
for the preservation and welfare of one man that we are solicitous; it is for
the safety and well-being of the whole Church. The expression,
In thy
salvation, may be referred to God as
well as to the king; for the salvation which God bestows is often called the
salvation of God; but the context requires that it should be rather
understood of the king. The people lived "under the shadow of the king," to use
the words of Jeremiah,
(<250420>Lamentations
4:20;) and, therefore, the faithful now testify, that as long as he is safe and
in prosperity, they will all be joyful and happy. At the same time, to
distinguish their joy from the heathen dancings and rejoicings, they declare
that they will set up their banners in the name of God; for the Hebrew word
lgd,
dagal, here used, means to set or lift up a banner. The
meaning is, that the faithful, in grateful acknowledgement of the grace of God,
will celebrate his praises and triumph in his
name.
Psalm
20:6-9
6. Now I know that Jehovah
hath saved his anointed; he will hear him from the heavens of his sanctuary, in
the mightiness of the salvation of his right
hand.
fa439 7. Some
trust
fa440 in chariots, and some in horses; but we
will remember the name of Jehovah our God. 8. They are bowed down and are
fallen; but we are risen and are erect. 9. Save, O Jehovah! let the king
hear us in the day that we call upon
him.
6.
Now I
know. Here there follows grateful
rejoicing, in which the faithful declare that they have experienced the goodness
of God in the preservation of the king. To this there is at the same time added
a doctrine of faith, namely, that God showed by the effect that he put forth his
power in maintaining the kingdom of David, because it was founded upon his
calling. The meaning is, It appears from certain experience, that God is the
guardian of the kingdom which he himself set up, and of which he is the founder.
For David is called Messiah, or anointed, that the faithful might be
persuaded that he was a lawful and sacred king, whom God had testified, by
outward anointing, to be chosen by himself. Thus, then, the faithful ascribe to
the grace of God the deliverance which had been wrought for David from the
greatest dangers, and at the same time, particularly mention the cause of this
to be, that God had determined to protect and defend him who, by his
commandment, had been anointed king over his people. They confirm still more
clearly their hope, with respect to the future, in the following
clause:God will hear him out of
heaven. I do not translate the verb
which is here used into the past tense, but retain the future:for I have no
doubt, that from the experience which God had already given them of his
goodness, they concluded that it would be hereafter exercised in the continual
preservation of the kingdom. Here the Psalmist makes mention of another
sanctuary,
fa441 namely, a heavenly. As God then
graciously vouchsafed to descend among the Israelites, by the ark of the
covenant, in order to make himself more familiarly known to them; so, on the
other hand, he intended to draw the minds of his people upwards to himself, and
thereby to prevent them from forming carnal and earthly conceptions of his
character, and to teach them that he was greater than the whole world. Thus,
under the visible sanctuary, which was made with hands, there is set forth the
fatherly goodness of God, and his familiarity with his people; while, under the
heavenly sanctuary, there is shown his infinite power, dominion, and majesty.
The words, In the mightiness of
the salvation, mean his mighty
salvation, or his saving power. Thus, in the very expression there is
a transposing of the words. The sense comes to this: May God by his wonderful
power, preserve the king who was anointed by his commandment! The Holy Spirit,
who dictated this prayer, saw well that Satan would not suffer David to live in
peace, but would put forth all his efforts to oppose him, which would render it
necessary for him to be sustained by more than human power. I do not, however,
disapprove of the other exposition which I have marked on the margin, according
to which the faithful, for their greater encouragement, set before themselves
this truth, that the salvation of God's right hand is in mightiness; in other
words, is sufficiently strong to overcome all
impediments.
7.
Some trust in
chariots. I do not restrict this to the
enemies of Israel, as is done by other interpreters. I am rather inclined to
think that there is here a comparison between the people of God and all the rest
of the world. We see how natural it is to almost all men to be the more
courageous and confident the more they possess of riches, power and military
forces. The people of God, therefore, here protest that they do not place their
hope, as is the usual way with men, in their military forces and warlike
apparatus, but only in the aid of God. As the Holy Spirit here sets the
assistance of God in opposition to human strength, it ought to be particularly
noticed, that whenever our minds come to be occupied by carnal confidence, they
fall at the same time into a forgetfulness of God. It is impossible for him, who
promises himself victory by confiding in his own strength, to have his eyes
turned towards God. The inspired writer, therefore, uses the word remember,
to show, that when the saints betake themselves to God, they must cast off
every thing which would hinder them from placing an exclusive trust in him. This
remembrance of God serves two important purposes to the faithful. In the first
place, however much power and resources they may possess, it nevertheless
withdraws them from all vain confidence, so that they do not expect any success
except from the pure grace of God. In the second place, if they are bereft and
utterly destitute of all succor, it notwithstanding so strengthens and
encourages them, that they call upon God both with confidence and constancy. On
the other hand, when ungodly men feel themselves strong and powerful, being
blinded with pride, they do not hesitate boldly to despise God; but when they
are brought into circumstances of distress, they are so terrified as not to know
what to become. In short, the Holy Spirit here recommends to us the remembrance
of God, which, retaining its efficacy both in the want and in the abundance of
power, subdues the vain hopes with which the flesh is wont to be inflated. As
the verb
rykzn,
nazkir, which I have translated we will remember, is in the
conjugation hiphil, some render it transitively, we shall cause to
remember. But it is no new thing in Hebrew for verbs to be used as neuter
which are properly transitive; and, therefore, I have adopted the exposition
which seems to me the most suitable to this
passage.
8.
They are bowed
down. It is probable that there is here
pointed out, as it were with the finger, the enemies of Israel, whom God had
overthrown, when they regarded no event as less likely to happen. There is
contained in the words a tacit contrast between the cruel pride with which they
had been lifted up for a time when they audaciously rushed forward to make havoc
of all things on the one hand, and the oppression of the people of God on the
other. The expression, to rise, is applied only to those who were before
sunk or fallen; and, on the other hand, the expression,
bowed down and
fallen, is with propriety applied to
those who were lifted up with pride and presumption. The prophet therefore
teaches by the event, how much more advantageous it is for us to place all our
confidence in God than to depend upon our own
strength.
9.
Save, O Jehovah!
etc. Some read in one sentence, O
Jehovah! save the king;
fa442 perhaps because they think it
wrong to attribute to an earthly king what is proper to God only, — to be
called upon, and to hear prayer. But if we turn our eyes towards Christ, as it
becomes us to do, we will no longer wonder that what properly belongs to him is
attributed in a certain sense to David and his successors, in so far as they
were types of Christ. As God governs and saves us by the hand of Christ, we must
not look for salvation from any other quarter. In like manner, the faithful
under the former economy were accustomed to betake themselves to their king as
the minister of God's saving grace. Hence these words of
Jeremiah,
"The breath of our
nostrils, the anointed of the Lord, of whom we said, Under his shadow we shall
live among the heathen."
(<250420>Lamentations
4:20)
Whenever, therefore, God promises the
restoration of his church, he sets forth a symbol or pledge of its salvation in
the kingdom. We now see that it is not without very good reason that the
faithful are introduced asking succor from their king, under whose guardianship
and protection they were placed, and who, as the vicegerent of God, presided
over them; as the Prophet Micah says,
(<330213>Micah
2:13,) "Their king shall pass before them, and the Lord on the head of them;" by
which words he intimates, that their king will be as it were a mirror in which
they may see reflected the image of God. To return to the present
passage:— The expression,
Save, O
Jehovah, is elliptical, but it has
greater emphasis than if the object for which salvation is sought had been
mentioned; for by this means David shows that this salvation belongs in common
to the whole body of the church. In
<19B825>Psalm
118:25, there is a prayer in the same words, and it is certain that it is the
very same prayer. In short, this is a prayer, that God, by blessing the king,
would show himself the Savior of the whole people. In the last clause of the
verse there is expressed the means of this salvation. The people pray that the
king may be furnished with power from God to deliver them whenever they are in
distress, and cry to him for help.
Let the king hear us in the day
that we call upon him. God had not
promised that his people would be saved in any other way than by the hand and
conduct of the king whom he had given them. In the present day, when Christ is
now manifested to us, let us learn to yield him this honor — to renounce
all hope of salvation from any other quarter, and to trust to that salvation
only which he shall bring to us from God his Father. And of this we shall then
only become partakers when, being all gathered together into one body, under the
same Head, we shall have mutual care one of another, and when none of us will
have his attention so engrossed with his own advantage and individual interest,
as to be indifferent to the welfare and happiness of others.
PSALM
21.
This psalm contains a public and solemn thanksgiving
for the prosperous and happy condition of the king. Its subject is almost the
same with that of the preceding.
fa443 In the former there was set forth a
common form of prayer, which was designed to excite in the whole people earnest
concern for the preservation of their head. In this it is shown that the safety
and prosperity of the king ought to produce public and general rejoicing through
the whole realm, inasmuch as God by this means intended to preserve the whole
body in safety. But, above all, it was the design of the Holy Spirit here to
direct the minds of the faithful to Christ, who was the end and perfection of
this kingdom, and to teach them that they could not be saved except under the
head which God himself had appointed over them.
To the chief
musician. A psalm of David.
Psalm
21:1-3
1. The king will rejoice in
thy strength, O Yehovah! and in thy salvation how greatly will he rejoice!
2. Thou hast given him the desire of his heart, and hast not denied him
the request of his lips. Selah. 3. For thou wilt prevent him with
blessings of good, thou wilt set a crown of gold upon his
head.
fa444
1.
The king will rejoice in thy
strength, O Jehovah! David could have
given thanks to God in private for the victories and other signal favors which
he had received from him; but it was his intention to testify not only that it
was God who elevated him to the throne, but also that whatever blessings God had
conferred upon him redounded to the public good, and the advantage of all the
faithful. In the beginning of the psalm the believing Israelites express their
firm persuasion that God, who had created David to be king, had undertaken to
defend and maintain him. It therefore appears that this psalm, as well as the
preceding, was composed for the purpose of assuring the faithful that the
goodness of God in this respect towards David would be of long duration, and
permanent; and it was necessary, in order to their being established in a
well-grounded confidence of their safety; to hope well of their king, whose
countenance was as it were a mirror of the merciful and reconciled countenance
of God. The sense of the words is:Lord, in putting forth thy power to sustain
and protect the king, thou wilt preserve him safe; and, ascribing his safety to
thy power, he will greatly rejoice in thee. The Psalmist has doubtless put
strength and salvation for strong and powerful succor;
intimating, that the power of God in defending the king would be such as
would preserve and protect him against all
dangers.
In the second verse there is pointed
out the cause of this joy. The cause was this:that God had heard the prayers of
the king, and had liberally granted him whatever he desired. It was important to
be known, and that the faithful should have it deeply impressed on their minds,
that all David's successes were so many benefits conferred upon him by God, and
at the same time testimonies of his lawful calling. And David, there is no
doubt, in speaking thus, testifies that he did not give loose reins to the
desires of the flesh, and follow the mere impulse of his appetites like worldly
men, who set their minds at one time upon this thing, and at another time upon
that, without any consideration, and just as they are led by their sensual
lusts; but that he had so bridled his affections as to desire nothing save what
was good and lawful. According to the infirmity which is natural to men, he was,
it is true, chargeable with some vices, and even fell shamefully on two
occasions; but the habitual administration of his kingdom was such that it was
easy to see that the Holy Spirit presided over it. But as by the Spirit of
prophecy the Psalmist had principally an eye to Christ, who does not reign for
his own advantage, but for ours, and whose desire is directed only to our
salvation, we may gather hence the very profitable doctrine, that we need
entertain no apprehension that God will reject our prayers in behalf of the
church, since our heavenly King has gone before us in making intercession for
her, so that in praying for her we are only endeavoring to follow his
example.
3.
For thou wilt prevent
him. The change of the tense in the
verbs does not break the connection of the discourse; and, therefore, I have,
without hesitation, translated this sentence into the future tense, as we know
that the changing of one tense into another is quite common in Hebrew. Those who
limit this psalm to the last victory which David gained over foreign nations,
and who suppose that the crown of which mention is here made was the crown of
the king of the Ammonites, of which we have an account in sacred history, give,
in my judgment, too low a view of what the Holy Spirit has here dictated
concerning the perpetual prosperity of this kingdom. David, I have no doubt,
comprehended his successors even to Christ, and intended to celebrate the
continual course of the grace of God in maintaining his kingdom through
successive ages. It was not of one man that it had been said,
"I will be his father,
and he shall be my
son,"
(<100714>2
Samuel 7:14;)
but this was a prophecy which ought to be extended
from Solomon to Christ, as is fully established by the testimony of Isaiah,
(<230906>Isaiah
9:6,) who informs us that it was fulfilled when the Son was given or manifested.
When it is said, Thou wilt
prevent him, the meaning is, that such
will be the liberality and promptitude of God, in spontaneously bestowing
blessings, that he will not only grant what is asked from him, but, anticipating
the requests of the king, will load him with every kind of good things far
beyond what he had ever expected. By blessings we are to understand
abundance or plenteousness. Some translate the Hebrew word
bwf,
tob, goodness;
fa445 but with this I cannot agree. It
is to be taken rather for the beneficence or the free gifts of God.
Thus the meaning will be, The king shall want nothing which is requisite to
make his life in every respect happy, since God of his own good pleasure will
anticipate his wishes, and enrich him with an abundance of all good things. The
Psalmist makes express mention of the crown, because it was the emblem
and ensign of royalty; and he intimates by this that God would be the guardian
of the king, whom he himself had created. But as the prophet testifies, that the
royal diadem, after lying long dishonored in the dust, shall again be put upon
the head of Christ, we come to the conclusion, that by this song the minds of
the godly were elevated to the hope of the eternal kingdom, of which a shadow
only, or an obscure image, was set forth in the person of the successors of
David. The doctrine of the everlasting duration of the kingdom of Christ is,
therefore, here established, seeing he was not placed upon the throne by the
favor or suffrages of men, but by God, who, from heaven, set the royal crown
upon his head with his own
hand.
Psalm
21:4-6
4. He asked life from thee,
and thou hast given him length of days for ever and ever. 5. His glory is
great in thy salvation: thou hast put upon him splendor and
beauty.
fa446 6. For thou hast set him to be
blessings for ever: thou hast gladdened him with joy before thy countenance,
[or, in thy presence.]
4.
He asked life from
thee. This verse confirms what I have
formerly said, that this psalm is not to be limited to the person of any one
man. David's life, it is true, was prolonged to an advanced period, so that,
when he departed from this world, he was an old man, and full of days; but the
course of his life was too short to be compared to this length of days,
which is said to consist of many ages. Even if we reckon the time from the
commencement of David's reign to the captivity of Babylon, this length of days
will not be made up and completed in all David's successors. David, therefore,
without doubt, comprehends the Eternal King. There is here a tacit comparison
between the beginnings of this kingdom, which were obscure and contemptible, or
rather which were fraught with the most grievous perils, and which bordered on
despair; and the incredible glory which followed, when God, exempting it from
the common lot of other kingdoms, elevated it almost above the heavens. For it
is no ordinary commendation of this kingdom, when it is said, that it shall
endure as long as the sun and moon shall shine in the heavens,
(<197201>Psalm
72:1.) David, therefore, in saying that he asked life, tacitly points to
the distressed circumstances to which he had often been reduced; and the meaning
is, Lord, since the time thou hast called thy servant to the hope of the kingdom
by thy holy anointing, his condition has been such that he has accounted it a
singular blessing to be rescued from the jaws of death; but now, he has not
only, by thy grace, escaped in safety the dangers which threatened his life:thou
hast also promised that his kingdom will be continued for many ages in his
successors. And it serves not a little to magnify the grace of God, that he
vouchsafed to confer on a poor and miserable man, who was almost at the point of
death, not only his life, - when, amidst the dangers which threatened it, he
tremblingly asked merely its preservations — but also the inestimable
honor of elevating him to the royal dignity, and of transmitting the kingdom to
his posterity for ever. Some expound the verse thus:— Thou hast given him
the life which he asked, even to the prolonging of his days for ever and ever.
But this seems to me a cold and strained interpretation. We must keep in view
the contrast which, as I have said, is here made between the weak and
contemptible beginnings of the kingdom, and the unexpected honor which God
conferred upon his servant, in calling the moon to witness that his seed should
never fail. The same has been exemplified in Christ, who, from contempt,
ignominy, death, the grave, and despair, was raised up by his Father to the
sovereignty of heaven, to sit at the Father's right hand for ever, and at length
to be the judge of the world.
5.
His glory is
great. By these words the people
intimate that their king, through the protection which God afforded him, and the
deliverances which he wrought for him, would become more renowned than if he had
reigned in peace with the applause of all men, or had been defended by human
wealth and human strength, or, finally, had continued invincible by his own
power and policy; for thereby it appeared the more clearly that he had only
attained to the royal dignity by the favor, conduct, and commandment of God. The
believing Israelites, therefore, leave it to heathen kings to ennoble themselves
by their own achievements, and to acquire fame by their own valor; and they set
more value upon this, that God graciously showed himself favorable towards their
king,
fa447 than upon all the triumphs of the
world. At the same time, they promise themselves such assistance from God as
will suffice for adorning the king with majesty and
honor.
6.
For thou hast set him to be
blessings for ever. Some explain these
words simply thus, That God had chosen David to be king, in order to pour upon
him his blessings in rich abundance. But it is evident that something more is
intended by this manner of speaking. It implies, that the king had such an
exuberant abundance of all good things, that he might justly be regarded as a
pattern of the greatness of the divine beneficence; or that, in praying, his
name would be generally used to serve as an example of how the suppliant wished
to be dealt with. The Jews were accustomed to speak of those being set to be a
curse, who were rendered so detestable, and on whom the dreadful vengeance of
God had been inflicted with such severity, that their very names served for
cursing and direful imprecations. On the other hand, they were accustomed to
speak of those being set to be a blessing, whose names we propose in our prayers
as an example of how we desire to be blessed; as if a man for instance should
say, May God graciously bestow upon thee the same favor which he vouchsafed to
his servant David! I do not reject this interpretation, but I am satisfied with
the other, which views the words as implying that the king, abounding in all
kind of good things, was an illustrious pattern of the liberality of God. We
must carefully mark what is said immediately after concerning
joy:Thou hast gladdened him with
joy before thy
countenance.
fa448 The people not only mean that
God did good to the king, seeing he looked upon him with a benignant and
fatherly eye, but they also point out the proper cause of this joy, telling us
that it proceeded from the knowledge which the king had of his being the object
of the Divine favor. It would not be enough for God to take care of us, and to
provide for our necessities, unless, on the other hand, he irradiated us with
the light of his gracious and reconciled countenance, and made us to taste of
his goodness, as we have seen in the 4th Psalm, "There be many that say, Who
will show us any good? Lord, lift thou up the light of thy countenance upon us,
and we shall be saved." And without all doubt, it is true and solid happiness to
experience that God is so favorable to us that we dwell as it were in his
presence.
Psalm
21:7-10
7. For the king trusteth in
Jehovah, and through the goodness of the Most High, he shall not be moved.
8. Thy hand shall find out all thy enemies, thy right hand shalt find out
those that hate thee. 9. Thou shalt put them as it were into a furnace of
fire, in the time of thy anger;
Jehovah
fa449 in his wrath shall overwhelm them, and
the fire shall consume them. 10. Thou wilt destroy their fruit from the
earth, and their seed from among the children of
men.
7.
For the king
trusteth. Here again the pious
Israelites glory that their king shall be established, because he relies upon
God; and they express at the same time how he relies upon him, namely, by hope
or trust. I read the whole verse as one sentence, so that there is but one
principal verb, and explain it thus:- The king, as he places by faith his
dependence on God and his goodness, will not be subject to the disasters which
overthrow the kingdoms of this world. Moreover, as we have said before, that
whatever blessings the faithful attribute to their king, belong to the whole
body of the Church, there is here made a promise, common to all the people of
God, which may serve to keep us tranquil amidst the various storms which agitate
the world. The world turns round as it were upon a wheel, by which it comes to
pass, that those who were raised to the very top are precipitated to the bottom
in a moment; but it is here promised, that the kingdom of Judah, and the kingdom
of Christ of which it was a type, will be exempted from such vicissitude. Let us
remember, that those only have the firmness and stability here promised, who
betake themselves to the bosom of God by an assured faith, and relying upon his
mercy, commit themselves to his protection. The cause or the ground of this hope
or trust is at the same time expressed, and it is this, that God mercifully
cherishes his own people, whom he has once graciously received into his
favor.
8.
Thy hand shall find. Hitherto the
internal happiness of the kingdom has been described. Now there follows, as it
was necessary there should, the celebration of its invincible strength against
its enemies. What is said in this verse is of the same import as if the king had
been pronounced victorious over all his enemies. I have just now remarked, that
such a statement is not superfluous; for it would not have been enough for the
kingdom to have flourished internally, and to have been replenished with peace,
riches, and abundance of all good things, had it not also been well fortified
against the attacks of foreign enemies. This particularly applies to the kingdom
of Christ, which is never without enemies in this world. True, it is not always
assailed by open war, and there is sometimes granted to it a period of respite;
but the ministers of Satan never lay aside their malice and desire to do
mischief, and therefore they never cease to plot and to endeavor to accomplish
the overthrow of Christ's kingdom. It is well for us that our King, who lifts up
his hand as a shield before us to defend us, is stronger than all. As the Hebrew
word
axm,
matsa, which is twice repeated, and which we have translated, to find,
sometimes signifies to suffice; and, as in the first clause, there is
prefixed to the word
lk,
kal, which signifies all, the letter
l,
lamed, which signifies for, or against, and which is not
prefixed to the Hebrew word which is rendered those that hate thee; some
expositors, because of this diversity, explain the verse as if it had been said,
Thy hand shall be able for all thine enemies, thy right hand shall find out
those that hate thee. Thus the sentence will ascend by degrees, — Thy hand
shall be able to withstand, thy right hand shall lay hold upon thy enemies, so
that they shall not escape
destruction.
9.
Thou shalt put them as it
were into a furnace of fire.
fa450 The Psalmist here describes a
dreadful kind of vengeance, from which we gather, that he does not speak of
every kind of enemies in general, but of the malicious and frantic despisers of
God, who, after the manner of the
giants
fa451 of old, rise up against his only
begotten Son. The very severity of the punishment shows the greatness of the
wickedness. Some think that David alludes to the kind of punishment which he
inflicted upon the Ammonites, of which we have an account in the sacred history;
but it is more probable that he here sets forth metaphorically the dreadful
destruction which awaits all the adversaries of Christ. They may burn with rage
against the Church, and set the world on fire by their cruelty, but when their
wickedness shall have reached its highest pitch, there is this reward which God
has in reserve for them, that he will cast them into his burning furnace to
consume them. In the first clause, the king is called an avenger; in the second,
this office is transferred to God; and in the third, the execution of the
vengeance is attributed to fire; which three things very well agree. We know
that judgment has been committed to Christ, that he may cast his enemies
headlong into everlasting fire; but, it was of importance distinctly to express
that this is not the judgment of man but of God. Nor was it less important to
set forth how extreme and dreadful a kind of vengeance this is, in order to
arouse from their torpor those who, unapprehensive of danger, boldly despise all
the threatenings of God. Besides, this serves not a little for the consolation
of the righteous. We know how dreadful the cruelty of the ungodly is, and that
our faith would soon sink under it, if it did not rise to the contemplation of
the judgment of God. The expression, In the time of thy wrath, admonishes
us that we ought patiently to bear the cross as long as it shall please the Lord
to exercise and humble us under it. If, therefore, he does not immediately put
forth his power to destroy the ungodly, let us learn to extend our hope to the
time which our heavenly Father has appointed in his eternal purpose for the
execution of his judgment, and when our King, armed with his terrible power,
will come forth to execute vengeance. While he now seems to take no notice, this
does not imply that he has forgotten either himself or us. On the contrary, he
laughs at the madness of those who go on in the commission of every kind of sin
without any fear of danger, and become more presumptuous day after day. This
laughter of God, it is true, brings little comfort to us; but we must,
nevertheless, complete the time of our condition of warfare till "the day of the
Lord's vengeance" come, which, as Isaiah declares,
(<233408>Isaiah
34:87) shall also be "the year of our redemption." It does not seem to me
to be out of place to suppose, that in the last clause, there is denounced
against the enemies of Christ a destruction like that which God in old time sent
upon Sodom and Gomorrah. That punishment was a striking and memorable example
above all others of the judgment of God against all the wicked, or rather it
was, as it were, a visible image upon earth of the eternal fire of hell which is
prepared for the reprobate:and hence this similitude is frequently to be met
with in the sacred writings.
10.
Thou shalt destroy their fruit
from the earth. David amplifies the greatness
of God's wrath, from the circumstance that it shall extend even to the children
of the wicked. It is a doctrine common enough in Scripture, that God not only
inflicts punishment upon the first originators of wickedness, but makes it even
to overflow into the bosom of their
children.
fa452 And yet when he thus pursues his
vengeance to the third and fourth generation, he cannot be said indiscriminately
to involve the innocent with the guilty. As the seed of the ungodly, whom he has
deprived of his grace, are accursed, and as all are by nature children of wrath,
devoted to everlasting destruction, he is no less just in exercising his
severity towards the children than towards the fathers. Who can lay any thing to
his charge, if he withhold from those who are unworthy of it the grace which he
communicates to his own children? In both ways he shows how dear and precious to
him is the kingdom of Christ; first, in extending his mercy to the children of
the righteous even to a thousand generations; and, secondly, in causing his
wrath to rest upon the reprobate, even to the third and fourth
generation.
Psalm
21:11-13
11. For they have spread
out
fa453 evil against thee; they have devised a
stratagem against thee, which they could not accomplish. 12.
For
fa454 thou wilt set them as a butt; thou wilt
prepare thy bowstrings to shoot against their faces. 13. Raise thyself, O
Jehovah! In thy strength; then we will sing, and celebrate in psalms thy
power.
11.
For they have spread
out. In this verse David shows that the
ungodly had deserved the awful ruin which he predicted would befall them, since
they had not only molested mortal man, but had also rushed forth in the fury of
their pride to make war against God himself. No man, as has been stated in our
exposition of the second psalm, could offer violence to the kingdom of Israel,
which was consecrated in the person of David, by the commandment of God, without
making foul and impious war against God. Much more when persons directly attack
the kingdom of Christ to overthrow it, is the majesty of God violated, since it
is the will of God to reign in the world only by the hand of his Son. As the
Hebrew word
hfn,
natah, which we have translated to spread out, also sometimes
signifies to turn aside, it may not unsuitably be here rendered either
way. According to the first view the meaning is, that the wicked, as if they had
spread out their nets, endeavored to subject to themselves the power of God.
According to the second the meaning is, that for the purpose of hindering, and
as it were swallowing up his power,
fa455 they turned aside their malice, so as
to make it bear against it, just like a man who, having dug a great ditch,
turned aside the course of some torrent to make it fall within it. The Psalmist
next declares, that they devised a stratagem, or device, which would fail
of its accomplishment. By these words he rebukes the foolish arrogance of those
who, by making war against God, manifest a recklessness and an audacity which
will undertake any thing, however daring.
12.
For thou wilt set them as a
butt. As the Hebrew word
µkç,
shekem, which we have rendered a butt, properly signifies a
shoulder, some understand it in that sense here, and explain the sentence
thus:Their heads shall be smitten with heavy blows, so that having their bodies
bended, their shoulders shall appear sticking out. According to these
interpreters, the subjugation of the enemies of God is here metaphorically
pointed out. But there is another explanation which is more generally received
even among the Jewish expositors, namely, that God will shut them up in some
corner, and there keep them from doing mischief;
fa456
and they take this view, because the Hebrew word
µkç,
shekem, is often used to denote a corner, quarter, or place.
As, however, the sacred writer, in the clause immediately following,
represents God as furnished with a bow, ready to shoot his arrows directly in
their faces, I have no doubt that, continuing his metaphor, he compares them to
a butt, or mound of earth, on which it is customary to plant the mark which is
aimed at, and thus the sense will flow very naturally thus:Lord, thou wilt make
them as it were a butt against which to shoot thine
arrows.
fa457 The great object which the Psalmist has
in view is doubtless to teach us to exercise patience, until God, at the fit
time, bring the ungodly to their end.
13.
Raise thyself, O
Jehovah! The psalm is at length
concluded with a prayer, which again confirms that the kingdom which is spoken
of is so connected with the glory of God, that his power is reflected from it.
This was no doubt true with respect to the kingdom of David; for God in old time
displayed his power in exalting him to the throne. But what is here stated was
only fully accomplished in Christ, who was appointed by the heavenly Father to
be King over us, and who is at the same time God manifest in the flesh. As his
divine power ought justly to strike terror into the wicked, so it is described
as full of the sweetest consolation to us, which ought to inspire us with joy,
and incite us to celebrate it with songs of praise and
thanksgivings.
PSALM
22.
David complains in this psalm, that he is reduced to
such circumstances of distress that he is like a man in despair. But after
having recounted the calamities with which he was so severely afflicted, he
emerges from the abyss of temptations, and gathering courage, comforts himself
with the assurance of deliverance. At the same time, he sets before us, in his
own person, a type of Christ, who he knew by the Spirit of prophecy behoved to
be abased in marvellous and unusual
ways
fa458 previous to his exaltation by the
Father. Thus the psalm, in the two parts of which it consists, explains that
prophecy of Isaiah,
(<235308>Isaiah
53:8,) "He was taken from prison and from judgment:and who shall declare his
generation?"
To the chief
musician. Upon the hind of the morning. A psalm of
David.
This inscription is obscure; but interpreters have
needlessly perplexed themselves in seeking after I know not what sublime mystery
in a matter of small importance. Some are of opinion that the word
tlya,
ayeleth, means the morning
star;
fa459 others that it denotes
strength
fa460 but it is more correctly
rendered hind. As it is evident, from the testimony of the apostles, that
this psalm is a prophecy concerning Christ, the ancient interpreters thought
that Christ would not be sufficiently dignified and honored unless, putting a
mystical or allegorical sense upon the word hind, they viewed it as
pointing out the various things which are included in a sacrifice. Those, also,
who prefer translating the original words,
rjçh
tlya, ayeleth hashachar, the dawn of the day
or morning,
fa461 have endeavored to do the same
thing. But as I find no solidity in these subtleties, it will be better to take
that view of the title which is more simple and natural. I think it highly
probable that it was the beginning of some common song; nor do I see how the
inscription bears any relation to the subject-matter of the psalm. From the
tenor of the whole composition, it appears that David does not here refer merely
to one persecution, but comprehends all the persecutions which he suffered under
Saul. It is, however, uncertain whether he composed this psalm when he peaceably
enjoyed his kingdom, or in the time of his affliction; but there is no doubt
that he here describes the thoughts which passed through his mind in the midst
of his troubles, perplexities, and
sorrows.
Psalm
22:1-2
1. My God! my God! why hast
thou forsaken me? Why art thou far from my help, and from the words of my
roaring? 2. O my God! I cry in the
day-time,
fa462 but thou hearest not: and in the
night-season, and there is no silence to
me.
1.
My
God! The first verse contains two
remarkable sentences, which, although apparently contrary to each other, are yet
ever entering into the minds of the godly together. When the Psalmist speaks of
being forsaken and cast off by God, it seems to be the complaint of a man in
despair; for can a man have a single spark of faith remaining in him, when he
believes that there is no longer any succor for him in God? And yet, in calling
God twice his own God, and depositing his groanings into his bosom, he makes a
very distinct confession of his faith. With this inward conflict the godly must
necessarily be exercised whenever God withdraws from them the tokens of his
favor, so that, in whatever direction they turn their eyes, they see nothing but
the darkness of night. I say, that the people of God, in wrestling with
themselves, on the one hand discover the weakness of the flesh, and on the other
give evidence of their faith. With respect to the reprobate, as they cherish in
their hearts their distrust of God, their perplexity of mind overwhelms them,
and thus totally incapacitates them for aspiring after the grace of God by
faith. That David sustained the assaults of temptation, without being
overwhelmed, or swallowed up by it, may be easily gathered from his words. He
was greatly oppressed with sorrow, but notwithstanding this, he breaks forth
into the language of assurance,
My God! my
God! which he could not have done
without vigorously resisting the contrary
apprehension
fa463 that God had forsaken him. There is not
one of the godly who does not daily experience in himself the same thing.
According to the judgment of the flesh, he thinks he is cast off and forsaken by
God, while yet he apprehends by faith the grace of God, which is hidden from the
eye of sense and reason; and thus it comes to pass, that contrary affections are
mingled and interwoven in the prayers of the faithful. Carnal sense and reason
cannot but conceive of God as being either favorable or hostile, according to
the present condition of things which is presented to their view. When,
therefore, he suffers us to lie long in sorrow, and as it were to pine away
under it, we must necessarily feel, according to the apprehension of the flesh,
as if he had quite forgotten us. When such a perplexing thought takes entire
possession of the mind of man, it overwhelms him in profound unbelief, and he
neither seeks, nor any longer expects, to find a remedy. But if faith come to
his aid against such a temptation, the same person who, judging from the outward
appearance of things, regarded God as incensed against him, or as having
abandoned him, beholds in the mirror of the promises the grace of God which is
hidden and distant. Between these two contrary affections the faithful are
agitated, and, as it were, fluctuate, when Satan, on the one hand, by exhibiting
to their view the signs of the wrath of God, urges them on to despair, and
endeavors entirely to overthrow their faith; while faith, on the other hand, by
calling them back to the promises, teaches them to wait patiently and to trust
in God, until he again show them his fatherly
countenance.
We see then the source from which
proceeded this exclamation, My
God! my God! and from which also
proceeded the complaint which follows immediately after,
Why hast thou forsaken
me? Whilst the vehemence of grief, and the
infirmity of the flesh, forced from the Psalmist these words, I am forsaken
of God; faith, lest he should when so severely tried sink into despair, put
into his mouth a correction of this language, so that he boldly called God, of
whom he thought he was forsaken, his God. Yea, we see that he has given the
first place to faith. Before he allows himself to utter his complaint, in order
to give faith the chief place, he first declares that he still claimed God as
his own God, and betook himself to him for refuge. And as the affections
of the flesh, when once they break forth, are not easily restrained, but rather
carry us beyond the bounds of reason, it is surely well to repress them at the
very commencement. David, therefore, observed the best possible order in giving
his faith the precedency - in expressing it before giving vent to his sorrow,
and in qualifying, by devout prayer, the complaint which he afterwards makes
with respect to the greatness of his calamities. Had he spoken simply and
precisely in these terms, Lord, why forsakest thou me? he would have seemed, by
a complaint so bitter, to murmur against God; and besides, his mind would have
been in great danger of being embittered with discontent through the greatness
of his grief. But, by here raising up against murmuring and discontent the
rampart of faith, he keeps all his thoughts and feelings under restraint, that
they may not break beyond due bounds. Nor is the repetition superfluous when he
twice calls God his God; and, a little after, he even repeats the same
words the third time. When God, as if he had cast off all care about us, passes
over our miseries and groanings as if he saw them not, the conflict with this
species of temptation is arduous and painful, and therefore David the more
strenuously exerts himself in seeking the confirmation of his faith. Faith does
not gain the victory at the first encounter, but after receiving many blows, and
after being exercised with many tossings, she at length comes forth victorious.
I do not say that David was so courageous and valiant a champion as that his
faith did not waver. The faithful may put forth all their efforts to subdue
their carnal affections, that they may subject and devote themselves wholly to
God; but still there is always some infirmity remaining in them. From this
proceeded that halting of holy Jacob, of which Moses makes mention in
<013224>Genesis
32:24; for although in wrestling with God he prevailed, yet he ever after bore
the mark of his sinful defect. By such examples God encourages his servants to
perseverance, lest, from a consciousness of their own infirmity, they should
sink into despair. The means therefore which we ought to adopt, whenever our
flesh becomes tumultuous, and, like an impetuous tempest, hurries us into
impatience, is to strive against it, and to endeavor to restrain its
impetuosity. In doing this we will, it is true, be agitated and sorely tried,
but our faith will, nevertheless, continue safe, and be preserved from
shipwreck. Farther, we may gather from the very form of the complaint which
David here makes, that he did not without cause redouble the words by which his
faith might be sustained. He does not simply say that he was forsaken by
God, but he adds, that God was far from his help, in as-much as when he
saw him in the greatest danger, he gave him no token to encourage him in the
hope of obtaining deliverance. Since God has the ability to succor us, if, when
he sees us exposed as a prey to our enemies, he nevertheless sits still as if he
cared not about us, who would not say that he has drawn back his hand that he
may not deliver us? Again, by the expression,
the words of my
roaring, the Psalmist intimates that he
was distressed and tormented in the highest degree. He certainly was not a man
of so little courage as, on account of some slight or ordinary affliction, to
howl in this manner like a brute
beast.
fa464 We must therefore come to the
conclusion, that the distress was very great which could extort such roaring
from a man who was distinguished for meekness, and for the undaunted courage
with which he endured calamities.
As our Savior
Jesus Christ, when hanging on the cross, and when ready to yield up his soul
into the hands of God his Father, made use of these very words,
(<402746>Matthew
27:46,) we must consider how these two things can agree, that Christ was the
only begotten Son of God, and that yet he was so penetrated with grief, seized
with so great mental trouble, as to cry out that God his Father had forsaken
him. The apparent contradiction between these two statements has constrained
many interpreters to have recourse to evasions for fear of charging Christ with
blame in this matter.
fa465 Accordingly, they have said that Christ
made this complaint rather according to the opinion of the common people, who
witnessed his sufferings, than from any feeling which he had of being deserted
by his father. But they have not considered that they greatly lessen the benefit
of our redemption, in imagining that Christ was altogether exempted from the
terrors which the judgment of God strikes into sinners. It was a groundless fear
to be afraid of making Christ subject to so great sorrow, lest they should
diminish his glory. As Peter, in
<440224>Acts
2:24, clearly testifies that "it was not possible that he should be
holden of the pains of death," it follows that he was not altogether exempted
from them. And as he became our representative, and took upon him our sins, it
was certainly necessary that he should appear before the judgment-seat of God as
a sinner. From this proceeded the terror and dread which constrained him to pray
for deliverance from death; not that it was so grievous to him merely to depart
from this life; but because there was before his eyes the curse of God, to which
all who are sinners are exposed. Now, if during his first conflict "his
sweat was as it were great drops of blood," and he needed an angel to
comfort him,
(<422243>Luke
22:43,) it is not wonderful if, in his last sufferings on the cross, he uttered
a complaint which indicated the deepest sorrow. By the way, it should be marked,
that Christ, although subject to human passions and affections, never fell into
sin through the weakness of the flesh; for the perfection of his nature
preserved him from all excess. He could therefore overcome all the temptations
with which Satan assailed him, without receiving any wound in the conflict which
might afterwards constrain him to halt. In short, there is no doubt that Christ,
in uttering this exclamation upon the cross, manifestly showed, that although
David here bewails his own distresses, this psalm was composed under the
influence of the Spirit of prophecy concerning David's King and
Lord.
2.
O my God! I cry in the
day-time. In this verse the Psalmist
expresses the long continuance of his affliction, which increased his
disquietude and weariness. It was a temptation even still more grievous, that
his crying seemed only to be lost labor; for, as our only means of relief under
our calamities is in calling upon God, if we derive no advantage from our
prayers, what other remedy remains for us? David, therefore, complains that God
is in a manner deaf to his prayers. When he says in the second clause,
And there is no silence to
me, the meaning is, that he experienced
no comfort or solace, nothing which could impart tranquillity to his troubled
mind. As long as affliction pressed upon him, his mind was so disquieted, that
he was constrained to cry out. Here there is shown the constancy of faith, in
that the long duration of calamities could neither overthrow it, nor interrupt
its exercise. The true rule of praying is, therefore, this, that he who seems to
have beaten the air to no purpose, or to have lost his labor in praying for a
long time, should not, on that account, leave off, or desist from that duty.
Meanwhile, there is this advantage which God in his fatherly kindness grants to
his people, that if they have been disappointed at any time of their desires and
expectations, they may make known to God their perplexities and distresses, and
unburden them, as it were, into his
bosom.
Psalm
22:3-8
3. Yet thou art holy, who
inhabitest the praises of Israel. 4. Our fathers trusted in thee: they
trusted, and thou didst deliver them. 5. They cried unto thee, and were
delivered: they trusted in thee, and were not confounded. 6. But I am a
worm, and not a man; the scorn of men, and the contempt of the people. 7.
All those who see me mock at me: they thrust out the lip, and shake the head.
8. "He has committed," say they, "his cause unto [or, devolved his cause
upon] Jehovah:
fa466 let him deliver him, let him deliver
him,
fa467 seeing he delights in
him."
3.
Yet thou art
holy. In the Hebrew, it is properly,
And thou art holy:but the copula
w,
vau, ought, without doubt, to be rendered by the adversative particle
yet. Some think that the eternal and immutable state of God is here set
in opposition to the afflictions which David
experienced;
fa468 but I cannot subscribe to this opinion.
It is more simple and natural to view the language as meaning, that God has
always shown himself gracious to his chosen people. The subject here treated is
not what God is in heaven, but what he has shown himself to be towards men. It
may be asked, whether David, in these words, aggravates his complaint, by
insinuating that he is the only person who obtains nothing from God? or whether,
by holding up these words as a shield before him, he repels the temptation with
which he was assailed, by exhibiting to his view this truth, that God is the
continual deliverer of his people? I admit that this verse is an additional
expression of the greatness of David's grief; but I have no doubt, that in using
this language he seeks from it a remedy against his distrust. It was a dangerous
temptation to see himself forsaken by God; and, accordingly, lest by continually
thinking upon it, he should nourish it, he turned his mind to the contemplation
of the constant evidences afforded of the grace of God, from which he might
encourage himself, in the hope of obtaining succor. He, therefore, not only
meant to ask how it was that God, who had always dealt mercifully with his
people, should now, forgetting as it were his own nature, thus leave a miserable
man without any succor or solace; but he also takes a shield with which to
defend himself against the fiery darts of Satan. He calls God holy,
because he continues always like himself. He says that he
inhabiteth the praises of
Israel; because, in showing such
liberality towards the chosen people, as to be continually bestowing blessings
upon them, he furnished them with matter for continued praise and thanksgiving.
Unless God cause us to taste of his goodness by doing us good, we must needs
become mute in regard to the celebration of his praise. As David belonged to the
number of this chosen people, he strives, in opposition to all the obstacles
which distrust might suggest as standing in the way, to cherish the hope that he
shall at length be united to this body to sing along with them the praises of
God.
4.
Our fathers trusted in
thee. Here the Psalmist assigns the
reason why God sitteth amidst the praises of the tribes of Israel. The reason
is, because his hand had been always stretched forth to preserve his faithful
people. David, as I have just now observed, gathers together the examples of all
past ages, in order thereby to encourage, strengthen, and effectually persuade
himself, that as God had never cast off any of his chosen people, he also would
be one of the number of those for whom deliverance is securely laid up in the
hand of God. He therefore expressly declares that he belongs to the offspring of
those who had been heard, intimating by this, that he is an heir of the same
grace which they had experienced. He has an eye to the covenant by which God had
adopted the posterity of Abraham to be his peculiar people. It would be of
little consequence to know the varied instances in which God has exercised his
mercy towards his own people, unless each of us could reckon himself among their
number, as David includes himself in the Church of God. In repeating three times
that the fathers had obtained deliverance by trusting, there is no doubt
that with all modesty he intends tacitly to intimate that he had the same hope
with which they were inspired, a hope which draws after it, as its effect, the
fulfillment of the promises in our behalf. In order that a man may derive
encouragement from the blessings which God has bestowed upon his servants in
former times, he should turn his attention to the free promises of God's word,
and to the faith which leans upon them. In short, to show that this confidence
was neither cold nor dead, David tells us, at the same time, that they cried
unto God. He who pretends that he trusts in God, and yet is so listless and
indifferent under his calamities that he does not implore his aid, lies
shamefully. By prayer, then, true faith is known, as the goodness of a tree is
known by its fruit. It ought also to be observed, that God regards no other
prayers as right but those which proceed from faith, and are accompanied with
it. It is therefore not without good reason that David has put the word cried
in the middle between these words,
They trusted in thee, they
trusted, in the fourth verse, and these
words, They trusted in
thee, in the fifth
verse.
6.
But I am a worm, and not a
man. David does not murmur against God
as if God had dealt hardly with him; but in bewailing his condition, he says, in
order the more effectually to induce God to show him mercy, that he is not
accounted so much as a man. This, it is true, seems at first sight to have a
tendency to discourage the mind, or rather to destroy faith; but it will appear
more clearly from the sequel, that so far from this being the case, David
declares how miserable his condition is, that by this means he may encourage
himself in the hope of obtaining relief. He therefore argues that it could not
be but that God would at length stretch forth his hand to save him; to save him,
I say, who was so severely afflicted, and on the brink of despair. If God has
had compassion on all who have ever been afflicted, although afflicted only in a
moderate degree, how could he forsake his servant when plunged in the lowest
abyss of all calamities? Whenever, therefore, we are overwhelmed under a great
weight of afflictions, we ought rather to take from this an argument to
encourage us to hope for deliverance, than suffer ourselves to fall into
despair. If God so severely exercised his most eminent servant David, and abased
him so far that he had not a place even among the most despised of men, let us
not take it ill, if, after his example, we are brought low. We ought, however,
principally to call to our remembrance the Son of God, in whose person we know
this also was fulfilled, as Isaiah had
predicted,
"He is despised and
rejected of men; a man of sorrows, and acquainted with grief and we hid as it
were our faces from him; he was despised, and we esteemed him not."
(<235303>Isaiah
53:3)
By these words of the prophet we are
furnished with a sufficient refutation of the frivolous subtlety of those who
have philosophised upon the word worm, as if David here pointed out some
singular mystery in the generation of Christ; whereas his meaning simply is,
that he had been abased beneath all men, and, as it were, cut off from the
number of living beings. The fact that the Son of God suffered himself to be
reduced to such ignominy, yea, descended even to hell, is so far from obscuring,
in any respect, his celestial glory, that it is rather a bright mirror from
which is reflected his unparalleled grace towards
us.
7.
All those who see me mock at
me, etc.,
fa469 This is an explanation of the preceding
sentence. He had said that he was an object of scorn to the lowest of men, and,
as it were, to the refuse of the people. He now informs us of the ignominy with
which he had been treated, — that not content with opprobrious language,
they also showed their insolence by their very gesture, both by shooting out
their lips,
fa470 and by shaking their heads. As the
words which we render they thrust
out the lip, is, in the Hebrew, they
open with the lip,
fa471 some explain them as meaning
to rail. But this view does not appear to me to be appropriate; for the
letter
b,
beth, which signifies with, is here superfluous, as it often is in
the Hebrew. I have therefore preferred rendering the original words,
they thrust out the
lip; which is the gesture of those who
mock openly and injuriously. The reproachful language which follows was much
more grievous when they alleged against him that God, who he openly avowed was
his father, was turned away from him. We know that David, when he saw himself
unjustly condemned of the world, was accustomed to support and console himself
with the assurance, that since he had the approving testimony of a good
conscience, he had God in heaven for his guardian, who was able to execute
vengeance upon his revilers.
fa472 But now, all who saw him reproached
him, that with vain arrogance he had groundlessly boasted of the succor he would
receive from God. Where is that God, say they, on whom he leaned? Where is that
love to which he trusted? Satan has not a more deadly dart for wounding the
souls of men than when he endeavors to dislodge hope from our minds, by turning
the promises of God into ridicule. David's enemies, however, do not simply say
that his prayers were in vain, and that the love of God of which he boasted was
fallacious; but they indirectly charge him with being a hypocrite, in that he
falsely pretended to be one of the children of God, from whom he was altogether
estranged.
How severe a temptation this must
have been to David every man may judge from his own experience. But by the
remedy he used he afforded a proof of the sincerity of his confidence:for unless
he had had God as the undoubted witness and approver of the sincerity of his
heart, he would never have dared to come before him with this complaint.
Whenever, therefore, men charge us with hypocrisy, let it be our endeavor that
the inward sincerity of our hearts may answer for us before God. And whenever
Satan attempts to dislodge faith from our minds, by biting detraction and cruel
derision, let this be our sacred anchors — to call upon God to witness it,
and that, beholding it, he may be pleased to show his righteousness in
maintaining our right, since his holy name cannot be branded with viler
blasphemy than to say that those who put their trust in him are puffed up with
vain confidence, and that those who persuade themselves that God loves them
deceive themselves with a groundless fancy. As the Son of God was assailed with
the same weapon, it is certain that Satan will not be more sparing of true
believers who are his members than of him. They ought, therefore, to defend
themselves from this consideration - that although men may regard them as in a
desperate condition, yet, if they commit to God both themselves and all their
affairs, their prayers will not be in vain. By the verb,
lg,
gol, which is rendered to commit, the nature and efficacy of faith
are very well expressed, which, reposing itself upon the providence of God,
relieves our minds from the burdens of the cares and troubles with which they
are agitated.
Psalm
22:9-11
9. Surely thou didst draw me
forth from the womb, and thou didst cause me to confide upon the breasts of my
mother.
fa473 10. I was cast upon
thee
fa474 from the womb: thou art my God from my
mother's belly. 11. Depart not far from me, for distress is near, and
there is none to help me.
9.
Surely
thou. David again here raises a new
fortress, in order to withstand and repel the machinations of Satan. He briefly
enumerates the benefits which God had bestowed upon him, by which he had long
since learned that he was his father. Yea, he declares that even before he was
born God had shown towards him such evidence of his fatherly love, that although
now overwhelmed with the darkness of death, he might upon good ground venture to
hope for life from him. And it is the Holy Spirit who teaches the faithful the
wisdom to collect together, when they are brought into circumstances of fear and
trouble, the evidences of the goodness of God, in order thereby to sustain and
strengthen their faith. We ought to regard it as an established principle, that
as God never wearies in the exercise of his liberality, and as the most
exuberant bestowment cannot exhaust his riches, it follows that, as we have
experienced him to be a father from our earliest infancy, he will show himself
the same towards us even to extreme old age. In acknowledging that he was
taken from the womb by the hand of God, and that
God had caused him to confide
upon the breasts of his mother, the
meaning is, that although it is by the operation of natural causes that infants
come into the world, and are nourished with their mother's milk, yet therein the
wonderful providence of God brightly shines forth. This miracle, it is true,
because of its ordinary occurrence, is made less account of by us. But if
ingratitude did not put upon our eyes the veil of stupidity, we would be
ravished with admiration at every childbirth in the world. What prevents the
child from perishing, as it might, a hundred times in its own corruption, before
the time for bringing it forth arrives, but that God, by his secret and
incomprehensible power, keeps it alive in its grave? And after it is brought
into the world, seeing it is subject to so many miseries, and cannot stir a
finger to help itself, how could it live even for a single day, did not God take
it up into his fatherly bosom to nourish and protect it? It is, therefore, with
good reason said, that the infant is cast upon him; for, unless he fed
the tender little babes, and watched over all the offices of the nurse, even at
the very time of their being brought forth, they are exposed to a hundred
deaths, by which they would be suffocated in an instant. Finally, David
concludes that God was his God. God, it is true, to all appearance, shows
the like goodness which is here celebrated even to the brute creation; but it is
only to mankind that he shows himself to be a father in a special manner. And
although he does not immediately endue babes with the knowledge of himself, yet
he is said to give them confidence, because, by showing in fact that he
takes care of their life, he in a manner allures them to himself; as it is said
in another place,
"He giveth to the beast
his food, and to the young ravens which cry,"
(<19E709>Psalm
147:9.)
Since God anticipates in this manner, by his grace,
little infants before they have as yet the use of reason, it is certain that he
will never disappoint the hope of his servants when they petition and call upon
him. This is the argument by which David struggled with, and endeavored to
overcome temptation.
11.
Depart not far from
me. Here he employs another argument to
induce God to show him mercy, alleging that he is sorely pressed and hemmed in
by the greatest distress. He doubtless set before his eyes the office which the
Scriptures every where attribute to God of succouring the miserable, and of
being the more ready to help us the more we are afflicted. Even despair itself,
therefore, served as a ladder to elevate his mind to the exercise of devout and
fervent prayer. In like manner, the feeling we have of our afflictions should
excite us to take shelter under the wings of God, that by granting us his aid,
he may show that he takes a deep interest in our
welfare.
Psalm
22:12-16
12. Strong bulls have
encompassed me; the bulls of Bashan have beset me round. 13. They have
opened their mouth against me, as a ravening and a roaring lion. 14. I am
poured out like water, and all my bones are disjointed: my heart is like wax; it
is melted in the midst of my bowels. 15. My strength is dried up like a
potsherd, and my tongue cleaveth to my jaws; and thou hast brought me to the
dust of death. 16. For dogs have encompassed me; the assembly of the
wicked have surrounded me: they have pierced my hands and my
feet.
12.
Strong bulls have encompassed
me. The Psalmist now complains of the
cruelty and barbarous rage of his enemies; and he compares them first to bulls,
secondly to lions, and thirdly to dogs. When the anger of bulls is kindled, we
know how fierce and terrible they are. The lion, also, is a cruel beast, and
dreadful to mankind. And the eager and fierce boldness with which dogs, when
once they are irritated, rush upon a man to do him injury, is well known. In
short, David's enemies were so blood-thirsty and cruel, that they more resembled
wild beasts than men. He calls them not simply bulls, but strong
bulls. Instead of rendering the original word
µybr,
rabbim, strong, as we have done, some would render it many:with
which I cannot agree. David, it is true, was assailed by great hosts of enemies;
but it appears, from the second clause of the verse, that what is here described
is their strength, and not their number. He there terms them the bulls of
Bashan; meaning by that expression, well-fed bulls, and, consequently, large
and strong:for we know that the hill of Bashan was distinguished for rich and
fat pastures.
fa475
14.
I am poured out like
water. Hitherto he has informed us that
being surrounded by wild beasts, he was not far from death, as if he had been at
the point of being devoured every moment. He now bewails, in addition to this,
his inward distress; from which we learn that he was not stupid or insensible in
dangers. It could have been no ordinary fear which made him almost pine away, by
which his bones were disjointed, and his heart poured out like water. We see,
then, that David was not buffeted with the waves of affliction like a rock which
cannot be moved, but was agitated within by sore troubles and temptations,
which, through the infirmity of the flesh, he would never have been able to
sustain had he not been aided by the power of the Spirit of God. How these
sufferings are applicable to Christ I have informed you a little before. Being a
real man, he was truly subject to the infirmities of our flesh, only without the
taint of sin. The perfect purity of his nature did not extinguish the human
affections; it only regulated them, that they might not become sinful through
excess. The greatness of his griefs, therefore, could not so weaken him as to
prevent him, even in the midst of his most excruciating sufferings, from
submitting himself to the will of God, with a composed and peaceful mind. Now,
although this is not the case with respect to us, who have within us turbulent
and disorderly affections, and who never can keep them under such restraint as
not to be driven hither and thither by their impetuosity, yet, after the example
of David, we ought to take courage; and when, through our infirmity, we are, as
it were, almost lifeless, we should direct our groanings to God, beseeching him
that he would be graciously pleased to restore us to strength and
vigor.
fa476
15.
My strength is dried
up. He means the vigor which is imparted
to us by the radical moisture, as physicians call it. What he adds in the next
clause, My tongue cleaveth to my
jaws, is of the same import. We know
that excessive grief not only consumes the vital spirits, but also dries up
almost all the moisture which is in our bodies. He next declares, that in
consequence of this, he was adjudged or devoted to the
grave:Thou hast brought me to the
dust of death. By this he intimates,
that all hope of life was taken from him; and in this sense Paul also says,
(<470109>2
Corinthians 1:9,) that "he had received the sentence of death in himself." But
David here speaks of himself in hyperbolical language, and he does this in order
to lead us beyond himself to Christ. The dreadful encounter of our Redeemer with
death, by which there was forced from his body blood instead of sweat; his
descent into hell, by which he tasted of the wrath of God which was due to
sinners; and, in short, his emptying himself, could not be adequately expressed
by any of the ordinary forms of speech. Moreover, David speaks of death as those
who are in trouble are accustomed to speak of it, who, struck with fear, can
think of nothing but of their being reduced to dust and to destruction. Whenever
the minds of the saints are surrounded and oppressed with this darkness, there
is always some unbelief mixed with their exercise, which prevents them from all
at once emerging from it to the light of a new life. But in Christ these two
things were wonderfully conjoined, namely, terror, proceeding from a sense of
the curse of God; and patience, arising from faith, which tranquillised all the
mental emotions, so that they continued in complete and willing subjection to
the authority of God. With respect to ourselves, who are not endued with the
like power, if at any time, upon beholding nothing but destruction near us, we
are for a season greatly dismayed, we should endeavor by degrees to recover
courage, and to elevate ourselves to the hope which quickens the
dead.
16.
They have pierced my hands and my
feet. The original word, which we have
translated they have pierced, is
yrak,
caari, which literally rendered is, like a lion. As all the Hebrew
Bibles at this day, without exception, have this reading, I would have had great
hesitation in departing from a reading which they all support, were it not that
the scope of the discourse compels me to do so, and were there not strong
grounds for conjecturing that this passage has been fraudulently corrupted by
the Jews. With respect to the Septuagint version, there is no doubt that the
translators had read in the Hebrew text,
wrak,
caaru, that is the letter
w,
vau, where there is now the letter
y,
yod.
fa477 The Jews prate much about the
literal sense being purposely and deliberately overthrown, by our rendering the
original word by they have pierced:but for this allegation there is no
color of truth whatever. What need was there to trifle so presumptuously in a
matter where it was altogether unnecessary? Very great suspicion of falsehood,
however, attaches to them, seeing it is the uppermost desire of their hearts to
despoil the crucified Jesus of his escutcheons, and to divest him of his
character as the Messiah and Redeemer. If we receive this reading as they would
have us to do, the sense will be enveloped in marvellous obscurity. In the first
place, it will be a defective form of expression, and to complete it, they say
it is necessary to supply the verb to surround or to beset. But
what do they mean by besetting the hands and the feet? Besetting belongs
no more to these parts of the human body than to the whole man. The absurdity of
this argument being discovered, they have recourse to the most ridiculous old
wives' fables, according to their usual way, saying, that the lion, when he
meets any man in his road, makes a circle with his tail before rushing upon his
prey:from which it is abundantly evident that they are at a loss for arguments
to support their view.
Again, since David, in
the preceding verse, has used the similitude of a lion, the repetition of it in
this verse would be superfluous. I forbear insisting upon what some of our
expositors have observed, namely, that this noun, when it has prefixed to it the
letter
k,
caph, which signifies as, the word denoting similitude, has
commonly other points than those which are employed in this passage. My object,
however, is not here to labor to convince the Jews who in controversy are in the
highest degree obstinate and opinionative. I only intend briefly to show how
wickedly they endeavor to perplex Christians on account of the different reading
which occurs in this place. When they object, that by the appointment of the law
no man was fastened with nails to a cross, they betray in this their gross
ignorance of history, since it is certain that the Romans introduced many of
their own customs and manners into the provin ces which they had conquered. If
they object that David was never nailed to a cross, the answer is easy, namely,
that in bewailing his condition, he has made use of a similitude, declaring that
he was not less afflicted by his enemies than the man who is suspended on a
cross, having his hands and feet pierced through with nails. We will meet a
little after with more of the same kind of
metaphors.
Psalm
22:17-21
17. I will number all my
bones; they look and stare upon me. 18. They part my garments among them,
and cast the lot upon my vesture. 19. Be not thou then, O Jehovah! far
from me. O thou: who art my strength, make haste to help me. 20. Deliver
my soul from the sword; my only one
fa478 from the hand [or power] of the dog.
21. Save me from the mouth of the lion, and hear me from the horns of the
unicorns.
fa479
17.
I will
number. The Hebrew word
twmx[,
atsmoth which signifies bones, is derived from another word, which
signifies strength; and, therefore, this term is sometimes applied to
friends, by whose defense we are strengthened, or to arguments and reasons which
are, as it were, the sinews and the strength of the defense of a cause. Some,
therefore, put this meaning upon the passage, — I will profit nothing by
reckoning up all my arguments in self-vindication; for my enemies are fully
determined to destroy me by some means or other, whether fair or foul, without
having any regard to the dictates of justice. Others explain it thus:Although I
should gather together all the aids which might seem to be capable of affording
me succor, they would avail me nothing. But the exposition which is more
generally received seems to me to be also the more simple and natural, and,
therefore, I embrace it the more readily. It is this - that David complains that
his body was so lean and wasted, that the bones appeared protruding from all
parts of it; for he adds immediately after, that his enemies took pleasure in
seeing him in so pitiable a condition. Thus the two clauses of the verse are
beautifully connected together. The cruelty of his enemies was so insatiable,
that beholding a wretched man wasted with grief, and as it were pining away,
they took pleasure in feeding their eyes with so sad a
spectacle.
What follows in the next verse
concerning his garments is metaphorical. It is as if he had said, that all his
goods were become a prey to his enemies, even as conquerors are accustomed to
plunder the vanquished, or to divide the spoil among themselves, by casting lots
to determine the share which belongs to each. Comparing his ornaments, riches,
and all that he possessed, to his garments, he complains that, after he had been
despoiled of them, his enemies divided them among themselves, as so much booty,
accompanied with mockery of him; and by this mockery the villany of their
conduct was aggravated, inasmuch as they triumphed over him, as if he had been a
dead man. The Evangelists quote this place to the letter, as we say, and without
figure; and there is no absurdity in their doing so. To teach us the more
certainly that in this psalm Christ is described to us by the Spirit of
prophecy, the heavenly Father intended that in the person of his Son those
things should be visibly accomplished which were shadowed forth in David.
Matthew,
(<400816>Matthew
8:16, 17,) in narrating that the paralytic, the blind, and the lame, were healed
of their diseases, says, that this was done "that it might be fulfilled which
was spoken by Esaias the prophet, saying, Himself took our infirmities, and bear
our sicknesses;" although the prophet, in that place, sets before us the Son of
God in the character of a spiritual physician. We are extremely slow and
backward to believe; and it is not wonderful, that, on account of our dullness
of apprehension, a demonstration of the character of Christ, palpable to our
senses, has been given us,
fa480 which might have the effect of arousing
the sluggishness of our
understandings.
19.
Be not thou, then, far from me, O
Jehovah! We must keep in mind all that
David has hitherto related concerning himself. As his miseries had reached the
utmost height, and as he saw not even a single ray of hope to encourage him to
expect deliverance, it is a wonderful instance of the power of faith, that he
not only endured his afflictions patiently, but that from the abyss of despair
he arose to call upon God. Let us, therefore, particularly mark, that David did
not pour out his lamentations thinking them to be in vain, and of no effect, as
persons who are in perplexity often pour forth their groanings at random. The
prayers which he adds sufficiently show that he hoped for such an issue as he
desired. When he calls God his strength, by this epithet he gives a more
evident proof of his faith. He does not pray in a doubting manner; but he
promises himself the assistance which the eye of sense did not as yet perceive.
By the
sword, by
the hand of the
dog, by
the mouth of the
lion, and by
the horns of the
unicorns, he intimates that he was
presently exposed to the danger of death, and that in many ways. Whence we
gather, that although he utterly fainted in himself when thus surrounded by
death, he yet continued strong in the Lord, and that the spirit of life had
always been vigorous in his heart. Some take the words only soul, or
only life, for dear and
precious;
fa481 but this view does not appear to
me to be appropriate. He rather means, that, amidst so many deaths he found no
help or succor in the whole world; as in
<193517>Psalm
35:17 the words, only soul,
fa482 are used in the same sense for a
person who is alone and destitute of all aid and succor. This will appear more
clearly from
<192516>Psalm
25:16, where David, by calling himself poor and alone, doubtless complains that
he was completely deprived of friends, and forsaken of the whole world. When it
is said in the end of the 21st verse, Answer me, or,
Hear me from the horns of the
unicorns, this Hebrew manner of speaking
may seem strange and obscure to our ears, but the sense is not at all ambiguous.
The cause is only put instead of the effect; for our deliverance is the
consequence or effect of God's hearing us. If it is asked how this can be
applied to Christ, whom the Father did not deliver from death? I answer, in one
word, that he was more mightily delivered than if God had prevented him from
falling a victim to death, even as it is a much greater deliverance to rise
again from the dead than to be healed of a grievous malady. Death, therefore,
did not prevent Christ's resurrection from at length bearing witness that he had
been heard.
Psalm
22:22-24
22. I will declare thy name
to my brethren: in the midst of the assembly will I praise thee. 23.
[Saying,
fa483] Ye who fear Jehovah, praise him: all
ye the seed of Jacob, glorify him; and fear him, all ye the seed of Israel.
24. For he hath not despised nor disdained the poor; nor hath he hidden
his face from him; and when he cried unto him he heard
him.
22.
I will declare thy
name.
fa484 David, in promising that when he
is delivered he will not be ungrateful, confirms what I have previously stated,
that he had never been so cast down by temptation as not to take courage to
resist it. How could he be putting himself in readiness, as he is doing here, to
offer to God the sacrifice of thanksgiving, if he had not beforehand entertained
the assured hope of deliverance? Should we even grant that this psalm was
composed after David had actually obtained what he desired, there is no doubt
that what he afterwards put into writing formed the meditations and reflections
which had passed through his mind during the time of his heavy afflictions. It
ought to be particularly noticed, that it is no ordinary token of gratitude
which he promises, but such as God required for rare blessings; namely, that the
faithful should come into his sanctuary, and there bear solemn testimony to the
grace which they had received. The design of public and solemn thanksgiving is,
that the faithful may employ themselves in all variety of ways, in serving and
honoring God, and that they may encourage one another to act in the same manner.
We know that God's wonderful power shone forth in the protection of David; and
that not only by one miracle, but by many. It is, therefore, not wonderful that
he brings himself under obligation, by a solemn vow, to make open and public
profession of his piety and faithfulness towards God. By his brethren he
means the Israelites; and he gives them this appellation, not only because he
and they were both descended from the same parentage, but rather because the
religion which they had in common, as a sacred bond, kept them united to one
another by a spiritual relationship. The apostle,
(<580212>Hebrews
2:12) in applying this verse to Christ, argues from it, that he was a partaker
of the same nature with us, and joined to us by a true fellowship of the flesh,
seeing he acknowledges us as his brethren, and vouchsafes to give us a title so
honorable. I have already repeatedly stated, (and it is also easy to prove it
from the end of this psalms) that under the figure of David, Christ has been
here shadowed forth to us. The apostle, therefore, justly deduces from this,
that under and by the name of brethren, the right of fraternal alliance
with Christ has been confirmed to us. This, no doubt, to a certain extent
belongs to all mankind, but the true enjoyment thereof belongs properly to
genuine believers alone. For this reason Christ himself, with his own mouth,
limits this title to his disciples, saying,
"Go to my brethren, and
say unto them, I ascend unto my Father and your Father, and to my God and your
God,"
(<432017>John
20:17.)
The ungodly, by means of their unbelief, break off
and dissolve that relationship of the flesh, by which he has allied himself to
us, and thus render themselves utter strangers to him by their own fault. As
David, while he comprehended under the word brethren all the offspring of
Abraham, immediately after (verse 23) particularly addresses his discourse to
the true worshippers of God; so Christ, while he has broken down "the middle
wall of partition" between Jews and Gentiles, and published the blessings of
adoption to all nations, and thereby exhibited himself to them as a brother,
retains in the degree of brethren none but true
believers.
23.
Ye who fear
Jehovah. Here, again, the Psalmist
expresses more distinctly the fruit of public and solemn thanksgiving, of which
I have spoken before, declaring, that by engaging in this exercise, every man in
his own place invites and stirs up the church by his example to praise God. He
tells us, that the end for which he will praise the name of God in the public
assembly is to encourage his brethren to do the same. But as hypocrites commonly
thrust themselves into the church, and as on the barn-floor of the Lord the
chaff is mingled with the wheat, he addresses himself expressly to the godly,
and those who fear God. Impure and wicked men may sing the praises of God
with open mouth, but assuredly, they do nothing else than pollute and profane
his holy name. It were, indeed, an object much to be desired, that men of all
conditions in the world would, with one accord, join in holy melody to the Lord.
But as the chief and most essential part of this harmony proceeds from a sincere
and pure affection of heart, none will ever, in a right manner, celebrate the
glory of God, except the man who worships him under the influence of holy fear.
David names, a little after, the
seed of Jacob and Israel, having a
reference to the common calling of the people; and certainly, he put no obstacle
in the way to hinder even all the children of Abraham from praising God with one
accord. But as he saw that many of the Israelites were bastard and degenerate,
he distinguishes true and sincere Israelites from them; and at the same time
shows that God's name is not duly celebrated, unless where there is true piety
and the inward fear of God. Accordingly, in his exhortation he again joins
together the praises of God and reverence towards him. — Fear him, ye
seed of Israel, says he; for all the fair faces which hypocrites put on in
this matter are nothing but pure mockery. The fear which he recommends is not,
however, such as would frighten the faithful from approaching God, but that
which will bring them truly humbled into his sanctuary, as has been stated in
the fifth psalm. Some may be surprised to find David addressing an exhortation
to praise God,
fa485 to those whom he had previously
commended for doing so. But this is easily explained, for even the holiest men
in the world are never so thoroughly imbued with the fear of God as not to have
need of being continually incited to its exercise. Accordingly, the exhortation
is not at all superfluous when, speaking of those who fear God, he exhorts them
to stand in awe of him, and to prostrate themselves humbly before
him.
24.
For he hath not
despised. To rejoice in one another's
good, and to give thanks in common for each other's welfare, is a branch of that
communion which ought to exist among the people of God, as Paul also
teaches,
"That for the gift
bestowed upon us by the means of many persons, thanks may be given by many on
our
behalf."
(<470111>2
Corinthians 1:11,)
But this statement of David serves another important
purpose — it serves to encourage every man to hope that God will exercise
the same mercy towards himself. By the way, we are taught from these words that
the people of God ought to endure their afflictions patiently, however long it
shall please the Lord to keep them in a state of distress, that he may at length
succor them, and lend them his aid when they are so severely
tried.
Psalm
22:25-29
25. My praise shall proceed
from thee
fa486 in the great assembly; I will pay my
vows in the presence of them that fear him. 26. The poor shall eat and be
satisfied; they shall praise Jehovah that seek him: your heart shall live for
ever. 27. All the ends of the earth shall remember, and turn to Jehovah;
and all the tribes of the Gentiles shall prostrate themselves before his
face. 28. For the kingdom is Jehovah's, that he may be the governor among
the nations. 29. All the fat ones of the earth shall eat and worship; all
those who are going down to the dust shall bow before him; and he who quickeneth
not his own soul, [or he who is unable to keep himself
alive.]
25.
My praise shall proceed from
thee. I do not reject the other
translation; but in my opinion, the Hebrew manner of expression here requires
this sense - that David will take the matter of his song of praise from God.
Accordingly, I supply the verb shall proceed, or shall flow, —
My praise shall proceed or
flow from thee; and he made this
statement in order to testify that he owed his deliverance entirely to God. We
know that there are many who, under pretense of praising God, trumpet forth
their own praises, and those of their friends, and leaving God in the
back-ground, take occasion from one thing or another to celebrate their own
triumphs. The Psalmist repeats what he had touched upon a little before, that he
will show the tokens of his gratitude in a public manner, in order thereby to
edify others. He adds, that among these tokens will be the solemn exercise of
godliness enjoined by the law:I
will pay my vows in the presence of them that fear
him. In important affairs, and when
threatened with imminent danger, it was a common practice among God's ancient
people to vow a peace-offering, and after having obtained the object of their
desire, they performed their vow. As David, therefore, belonged to the number of
the saints, he conformed himself, as it became him, to that common and
understood regulation of the Church. The vows which he promises to pay are those
which he intimates he had made in his extreme distress, and he prepares himself
to perform them with a noble and cheerful heart, yea, with a heart full of
confidence. Now, although it behoved him to perform this solemn act of religion
in the presence of the whole assembly without distinction, he again confesses it
to be his desire, that all who should be present there to witness it should be
the true worshippers of God. Thus, although it may not be in our power to
cleanse the Church of God, it is our duty to desire her purity. The Papists, by
wresting this passage to support their false and deceitful vows, show themselves
so stupid and so ridiculous, that it is unnecessary to spend much time in
refuting them. What resemblance is there between these childish fooleries, with
which according to their own imagination they attempt to appease God, and this
holy testimony of gratitude, which not only a true sense of religion and the
fear of God suggested to the fathers, but which God himself has commanded and
ratified in his law? Yea, how can they have the face to equal their foolish and
infamous superstitions to the most precious of all sacrifices - the sacrifice of
thanksgiving? even as the Scriptures testify, that the principal part of the
service of God consists in this, that true believers publicly and solemnly
acknowledge that he is the author of all good
things.
26.
The poor shall
eat. The Psalmist has a reference to the
custom which was at that time prevalent among the Jews, of feasting on their
sacrifices, as is very well known. He here promises this feast, in order to
exercise and prove his charity. And surely that is a pleasant and an acceptable
oblation to God to which compassion and mercy are joined. Without these, the
ceremonies by which men profess to worship God, with all their pomp and
magnificence, vanish into smoke. David does not, however, simply promise to
bestow upon the poor and the hungry something for the mere nourishment of the
body. He declares that they shall be partakers of this feast for another
purpose, namely, that matter of comfort being ministered to them, joy might be
restored to their hearts and flourish afresh. For they saw in that feast, as in
a mirror, the goodness of God set forth to all who are in affliction, which
might assuage with wonderful consolation the grief arising from all their
calamities. The Psalmist therefore adds,
They shall praise Jehovah that
seek him. The abundant repast of which
they had partaken ought, no doubt, to have incited them to give thanks to God;
but what is particularly meant is, praising God for that deliverance in grateful
commemoration of which the sacrifice was offered. This appears still more
clearly from the last clause of the
verse:Your heart shall live for
ever. One meal could not have sufficed
to make their hearts live for ever. It was rather the hope which they
entertained of having ready succor from God which did this; for all the faithful
justly reckoned the deliverance of this one man as a deliverance wrought for
themselves in particular. Whence it follows, that, in the peace-offerings, the
praises of God were so celebrated, as that genuine worshippers also exercised
their hope in them. Farther, as hypocrites content themselves with merely going
through the bare and lifeless ceremony, the Psalmist restricts the right
performance of this exercise to true and holy Israelites;
They shall praise Jehovah that
seek him; and to seek God is the certain
mark of genuine godliness. Now, if the fathers under the law had their spiritual
life renewed and invigorated by their holy feasts, this virtue will show itself
much more abundantly at this day in the holy supper of Christ, provided those
who come to partake of it seek the Lord truly, and with their whole
heart.
27.
All the ends of the earth
shall remember. This passage, beyond all
doubt, shows that David stops not at his own person, but that under himself, as
a type, he describes the promised Messiah. For even then, it ought to have been
a well-known point, that he had been created king by God, that the people might
be united together and enjoy a happy life under one head; and this was at length
completely fulfilled in Christ. David's name, I admit, was great and renowned
among the neighboring nations; but what was the territory which they occupied in
comparison of the whole world? Besides, the foreign nations whom he had subdued
had never been converted by him to the true worship of God. That forced and
slavish submission, therefore, which the heathen nations had been brought by
conquest to yield to an earthly king, was very different from the willing
obedience of true godliness by which they would be recovered from their
miserable wanderings, and gathered to God. Nor does the Psalmist mean an
ordinary change, when he says, that the nations shall return to God, after
having become well acquainted with his grace. Moreover, by uniting them to the
fellowship of the holy feast, he manifestly grafts them into the body of the
Church. Some explain these words, They shall remember, as meaning, that
upon the restoration of the light of faith to the Gentiles, they should then
come to remember God, whom they had for a time
forgotten;
fa487 but this seems to me too refined, and
far from the meaning. I allow that the conversion or return of which mention is
here made, implies that they had previously been alienated from God by wicked
defection; but this remembrance simply means that the Gentiles, awakened by the
signal miracles wrought by God, would again come to embrace the true religion,
from which they had fallen away. Farther, it is to be observed, that the true
worship of God proceeds from the knowledge of him; for the language of the
Psalmist implies, that those shall come to prostrate themselves before God, in
humble adoration, who shall have profited so far in meditation upon his works,
as that they shall have no more desire proudly and contemptuously to break forth
against him.
This sense is more fully confirmed
by the reason
fa488 which is added in the following verse,
(28) The kingdom is Jehovah's,
that he may rule over the nations. Some
explain these words thus:- It is not to be wondered at if the Gentiles should be
constrained to yield honor to God, by whom they were created, and by whose hand
they are governed, although he has not entered into a covenant of life with
them. But I reject this as a meagre and unsatisfactory interpretation. This
passage, I have no doubt, agrees with many other prophecies which represent the
throne of God as erected, on which Christ may sit to superintend and govern the
world. Although, therefore, the providence of God is extended to the whole
world, without any part of it being excepted; yet let us remember that he then,
in very deed, exercises his authority, when having dispelled the darkness of
ignorance, and diffused the light of his word, he appears conspicuous on his
throne. We have such a description of his kingdom by the prophet
Isaiah,
"He shall judge among the
nations, and shall rebuke many people."
(<230204>Isaiah
2:4)
Moreover, as God had not subdued the world to
himself, prior to the time when those who before were unconquerable were subdued
to a willing obedience by the preaching of the gospel, we may conclude that this
conversion was effected only under the management and government of Christ. If
it is objected, that the whole world has never yet been converted, the solution
is easy. A comparison is here made between that remarkable period in which God
suddenly became known every where, by the preaching of the gospel, and the
ancient dispensation, when he kept the knowledge of himself shut up within the
limits of Judea. Christ, we know, penetrated with amazing speed, from the east
to the west, like the lightning's flash, in order to bring into the Church the
Gentiles from all parts of the world.
29.
All the fat ones of the earth
shall eat and worship. Lest it should be
thought inconsistent that now the fat ones of the earth are admitted as guests
to this banquet, which David seemed immediately before to have appointed only
for the poor, let us remember that the first place was given to the poor,
because to them principally comfort was set forth in the example of David. Yet
it was necessary, in the second place, that the rich and the prosperous should
be called to the feast, that they might not think themselves excluded from the
participation of the same grace. They are not, it is true, urged, by the
pressure of present calamities, to seek comfort for grief, but they have need of
a remedy to prevent them from intoxicating themselves with their delights, and
to excite them rather to lay up their joy in heaven. Again, since they also are
subject to a variety of troubles, their abundance will be a curse to them,
provided it keep their minds down to the earth. The amount of the Psalmist's
statement is, that this sacrifice will be common as well to those who are sound,
lusty, and in opulent circumstances, as to those who are lean, poor, and half
dead from the want of food; that the former, laying aside their pride, may
humble themselves before God, and that the latter, though they may be brought
low, may lift up their minds by spiritual joy to God, the author of all good
things, as James
(<590109>James
1:9, 10) admonishes both classes, in these words, "Let the brother of low degree
rejoice in that he is exalted; but the rich in that he is made low." Now, if
God, under the law, joined the full with the hungry, the noble with the mean,
the happy with the wretched, much more ought this to take place at the present
day under the gospel. When, therefore, the rich hear that food is offered to
them elsewhere than in earthly abundance, let them learn to use the outward good
things which God has bestowed upon them for the purposes of the present life,
with such sobriety as that they may not be disgusted with spiritual food, or
turn away from it, through loathing. So long as they wallow in their own filth,
they will never long for this food with a holy desire; and although they may
have it at hand, they will never take pleasure in tasting
it.
fa489 Farther, as those who are fat must
become lean, in order that they may present themselves to God to be fed and
nourished, so David endeavors to inspire the famished with assured and undaunted
confidence, lest their poverty should hinder them from coming to the banquet.
Yea, he invites even the dead to come to the feast, in order that the most
despised, and those who, in the estimation of the world, are almost like
putrefying carcases, may be encouraged and emboldened to present themselves at
the holy table of the Lord. The change which the Psalmist makes in the number,
from the plural to the singular, in the end of the verse, somewhat obscures the
sense; but the meaning undoubtedly is, that those who seem already to be reduced
to dust, and whose restoration from death to life is, as it were, despaired of,
shall be partakers of the same grace with
him.
Psalm
22:30-31
30. Their seed shall serve
him, and shall be registered to the
Lord
fa490 for a generation. 31. They shall
come, and shall declare his righteousness to a people that shall be born,
because he hath done it.
30.
Their seed shall serve
him. The more to exalt the greatness of
the benefit, he declares that it will be of such a character that posterity will
never forget it. And he shows how it will come to be perpetuated, namely,
because the conversion of the world, of which he has spoken, will not be for a
short time only but will continue from age to age. Whence we again conclude,
that what is here celebrated is not such a manifestation of the glory of God to
the Gentile nations as proceeds from a transitory and fading rumor, but such as
will enlighten the world with its beams, even to the end of time. Accordingly,
the perpetuity of the Church is here abundantly proved, and in very clear
terms:not that it always flourishes or continues in the same uniform course
through successive ages, but because God, unwilling that his name should be
extinguished in the world, will always raise up some sincerely to devote
themselves to his service. We ought to remember that this seed, in which the
service of God was to be preserved, is the fruit of the incorruptible seed; for
God begets and multiplies his Church only by means of his
word.
The expression,
To be registered to the Lord for
a generation, is explained in two ways.
Some take the Hebrew word
rwd,
dor, for a succession of ages, and explain the clause thus:They shall
be registered to the Lord age after age. Others take it for generation,
in the sense in which the word natio [nation] is used in the Latin
tongue. As both these senses suit very well, and come almost to the same thing,
I leave my readers at liberty to choose between them. I am, however, I admit,
rather inclined to the opinion, that by this word is designated God's chosen
people and peculiar nation, which may be accounted the heritage of God. Farther,
as the name Jehovah, which is expressive of God's essence, is not here
used as it is a little before, but the word Adonai, I do not disapprove
of the opinion of those who think that Christ is here expressly invested with
authority over
fa491 the Church, that he may register all
who shall give in their names as on the side of God his Father. And, indeed, as
our heavenly Father has committed all his chosen ones to the protection and
guardianship of his own Son, he acknowledges as his people none but those who
belong to the flock of Christ.
31.
They shall come, and shall
declare. The Psalmist here confirms what
I have previously stated, that since the fathers will transmit the knowledge of
this benefit to their children, as it were from hand to hand, the name of God
will be always renowned. From this we may also deduce the additional truth, that
it is by the preaching of the grace of God alone that the Church is kept from
perishing. At the same time, let it be observed, that care and diligence in
propagating divine truth are here enjoined upon us, that it may continue after
we are removed from this world. As the Holy Spirit prescribes it as a duty
incumbent on all the faithful to be diligent in instructing their children, that
there may be always one generation after another to serve God, the sluggishness
of those who have no scruple of conscience in burying the remembrance of God in
eternal silence, a sin with which those are virtually chargeable who neglect to
speak of him to their children, and who thus do nothing to prevent his name from
utterly perishing, is condemned as involving the greatest turpitude. The term
righteousness, in this place, refers to the faithfulness which God
observes in preserving his people, of which we have a memorable example in the
deliverance of David. In defending his servant from the violence and outrage of
the wicked, he proved himself to be righteous. Hence we may learn how dear our
welfare is to God, seeing he combines it with the celebration of the praise of
his own righteousness. If then the righteousness of God is illustriously
manifested in this, that he does not disappoint us of our hope, nor abandon us
in dangers, but defends and keeps us in perfect safety, there is no more reason
to fear that he will forsake us in the time of our need, than there is reason to
fear that he can forget himself. We must, however, remember that it is not for
any particular succor afforded to one individual, but it is for the redemption
of the human race, that the celebration of the praise of God is required from us
in this passage. In short, the Holy Spirit, by the mouth of David, recommends to
us the publication of Christ's resurrection. In the end of this psalm some
commentators resolve the particle
yk,
ki, because, into the pronoun
rça,
asher, which, as if it had been said, The righteousness which he hath
done. But the sentence will be fuller if we read, because, and
explain the passage thus:They shall come, and shall declare his righteousness,
because God shall have given proof, or demonstration, of his righteousness -
shall have afforded evidence by the effect, or the deed itself, that he is the
faithful guardian of his own people.
PSALM
23.
This psalm is neither intermingled with prayers, nor
does it complain of miseries for the purpose of obtaining relief; but it
contains simply a thanksgiving, from which it appears that it was composed when
David had obtained peaceable possession of the kingdom, and lived in prosperity,
and in the enjoyment of all he could desire. That he might not, therefore, in
the time of his great prosperity, be like worldly men, who, when they seem to
themselves to be fortunate,
fa492 bury God in forgetfulness, and
luxuriously plunge themselves into their pleasures, he delights himself in God,
the author of all the blessings which he enjoyed. And he not only acknowledges
that the state of tranquillity in which he now lives, and his exemption from all
inconveniences and troubles, is owing to the goodness of God; but he also trusts
that through his providence he will continue happy even to the close of his
life, and for this end that he may employ himself in his pure
worship.
A Psalm of
David.
Psalm
23:1-4
1. Jehovah is my shepherd, I
shall not want.
fa493 2. He maketh me to lie down in
pastures of grass; he leadeth me to gently flowing
waters.
fa494 3. He restoreth my soul; he
leadeth me by the paths of righteousness for his name's sake. 4. Though I
should walk in the valley of the shadow of death, I will fear no evil: for thou
art with me; thy staff and thy crook comfort
me.
1.
Jehovah is my shepherd. Although God, by
his benefits, gently allures us to himself, as it were by a taste of his
fatherly sweetness, yet there is nothing into which we more easily fall than
into a forgetfulness of him, when we are in the enjoyment of peace and comfort.
Yea, prosperity not only so intoxicates many, as to carry them beyond all bounds
in their mirth, but it also engenders insolence, which makes them proudly rise
up and break forth against God. Accordingly, there is scarcely a hundredth part
of those who enjoy in abundance the good things of God, who keep themselves in
his fear, and live in the exercise of humility and temperance, which would be so
becoming.
fa495 For this reason, we ought the more
carefully to mark the example which is here set before us by David, who,
elevated to the dignity of sovereign power, surrounded with the splendor of
riches and honors, possessed of the greatest abundance of temporal good things,
and in the midst of princely pleasures, not only testifies that he is mindful of
God, but calling to remembrance the benefits which God had conferred upon
him,
fa496 makes them ladders by which he may
ascend nearer to Him. By this means he not only bridles the wantonness of his
flesh, but also excites himself with the greater earnestness to gratitude, and
the other exercises of godliness, as appears from the concluding sentence of the
psalm, where he says, "I shall dwell in the house of Jehovah for a length
of days." In like manner, in the 18th psalm, which was composed at a period of
his life when he was applauded on every side, by calling himself the servant of
God, he showed the humility and simplicity of heart to which he had attained,
and, at the same time, openly testified his gratitude, by applying himself to
the celebration of the praises of God.
Under the
similitude of a shepherd, he commends the care which God, in his providence, had
exercised towards him. His language implies that God had no less care of him
than a shepherd has of the sheep who are committed to his charge. God, in the
Scripture, frequently takes to himself the name, and puts on the character of a
shepherd, and this is no mean token of his tender love towards us. As this is a
lowly and homely manner of speaking, He who does not disdain to stoop so low for
our sake, must bear a singularly strong affection towards us. It is therefore
wonderful, that when he invites us to himself with such gentleness and
familiarity, we are not drawn or allured to him, that we may rest in safety and
peace under his guardianship. But it should be observed, that God is a shepherd
only to those who, touched with a sense of their own weakness and poverty, feel
their need of his protection, and who willingly abide in his sheepfold, and
surrender themselves to be governed by him. David, who excelled both in power
and riches, nevertheless frankly confessed himself to be a poor sheep, that he
might have God for his shepherd. Who is there, then, amongst us, who would
exempt himself from this necessity, seeing our own weakness sufficiently shows
that we are more than miserable if we do not live under the protection of this
shepherd? We ought to bear in mind, that our happiness consists in this, that
his hand is stretched forth to govern us, that we live under his shadow, and
that his providence keeps watch and ward over our welfare. Although, therefore,
we have abundance of all temporal good things, yet let us be assured that we
cannot be truly happy unless God vouchsafe to reckon us among the number of his
flock. Besides, we then only attribute to God the office of a Shepherd with due
and rightful honor, when we are persuaded that his providence alone is
sufficient to supply all our
necessities.
fa497 As those who enjoy the greatest
abundance of outward good things are empty and famished if God is not their
shepherd; so it is beyond all doubt that those whom he has taken under his
charge shall not want a full abundance of all good things. David, therefore,
declares that he is not afraid of wanting any thing, because God is his
Shepherd.
2.
He maketh me to lie down in
pastures of grass. With respect to the
words, it is in the Hebrew, pastures, or fields of grass, for
grassy and rich grounds. Some, instead of translating the word
twan,
neoth, which we have rendered pastures, render it shepherds' cots
or lodges. If this translation is considered preferable, the meaning
of the Psalmist will be, that sheep-cots were prepared in rich pasture grounds,
under which he might be protected from the heat of the sun. If even in cold
countries the immoderate heat which sometimes occurs is troublesome to a flock
of sheep, how could they bear the heat of the summer in Judea, a warm region,
without sheepfolds? The verb
˜br,
rabats, to lie down, or repose, seems to have a reference to the
same thing. David has used the phrase,
the quiet
waters, to express gently flowing
waters; for rapid streams are inconvenient for sheep to drink in, and are also
for the most part hurtful. In this verse, and in the verses following, he
explains the last clause of the first verse,
I shall not
want. He relates how abundantly God had
provided for all his necessities, and he does this without departing from the
comparison which he employed at the commencement. The amount of what is stated
is, that the heavenly Shepherd had omitted nothing which might contribute to
make him live happily under his care. He, therefore, compares the great
abundance of all things requisite for the purposes of the present life which he
enjoyed, to meadows richly covered with grass, and to gently flowing streams of
water; or he compares the benefit or advantage of such things to sheep-cots; for
it would not have been enough to have been fed and satisfied in rich pasture,
had there not also been provided waters to drink, and the shadow of the
sheep-cot to cool and refresh him.
3.
He restoreth my
soul As it is the duty of a good
shepherd to cherish his sheep, and when they are diseased or weak to nurse and
support them, David declares that this was the manner in which he was treated by
God. The restoring of the
soul, as we have translated it, or
the conversion of the soul, as it is, literally rendered, is of the same
import as to make anew, or to recover, as has been already stated
in the 19th psalm, at the seventh verse. By
the paths of
righteousness, he means easy and plain
paths.
fa498 As he still continues his metaphor, it
would be out of place to understand this as referring to the direction of the
Holy Spirit. He has stated a little before that God liberally supplies him with
all that is requisite for the maintenance of the present life, and now he adds,
that he is defended by him from all trouble. The amount of what is said is, that
God is in no respect wanting to his people, seeing he sustains them by his
power, invigorates and quickens them, and averts from them whatever is hurtful,
that they may walk at ease in plain and straight paths. That, however, he may
not ascribe any thing to his own worth or merit, David represents the goodness
of God as the cause of so great liberality, declaring that God bestows all these
things upon him for his own
name's sake. And certainly his choosing
us to be his sheep, and his performing towards us all the offices of a shepherd,
is a blessing which proceeds entirely from his free and sovereign goodness, as
we shall see in the sixty-fifth psalm.4.
Though I should
walk. True believers, although they
dwell safely under the protection of God, are, notwithstanding, exposed to many
dangers, or rather they are liable to all the afflictions which befall mankind
in common, that they may the better feel how much they need the protection of
God. David, therefore, here expressly declares, that if any adversity should
befall him, he would lean upon the providence of God. Thus he does not promise
himself continual pleasures; but he fortifies himself by the help of God
courageously to endure the various calamities with which he might be visited.
Pursuing his metaphor, he compares the care which God takes in governing true
believers to a shepherd's staff and crook, declaring that he is satisfied with
this as all-sufficient for the protection of his life. As a sheep, when it
wanders up and down through a dark valley, is preserved safe from the attacks of
wild beasts and from harm in other ways, by the presence of the shepherd alone,
so David now declares that as often as he shall be exposed to any danger, he
will have sufficient defense and protection in being under the pastoral care of
God.
We thus see how, in his prosperity, he
never forgot that he was a man, but even then seasonably meditated on the
adversities which afterwards might come upon him. And certainly, the reason why
we are so terrified, when it pleases God to exercise us with the cross, is,
because every man, that he may sleep soundly and undisturbed, wraps himself up
in carnal security. But there is a great difference between this sleep of
stupidity and the repose which faith produces. Since God tries faith by
adversity, it follows that no one truly confides in God, but he who is armed
with invincible constancy for resisting all the fears with which he may be
assailed.
fa499 Yet David did not mean to say that he
was devoid of all fear, but only that he would surmount it so as to go without
fear wherever his shepherd should lead him. This appears more clearly from the
context. He says, in the first place,
I will fear no
evil; but immediately adding the reason
of this, he openly acknowledges that he seeks a remedy against his fear in
contemplating, and having his eyes fixed on, the staff of his
shepherd:For thy staff and thy
crook comfort me. What need would he
have had of that consolation, if he had not been disquieted and agitated with
fear? It ought, therefore, to be kept in mind, that when David reflected on the
adversities which might befall him, he became victorious over fear and
temptations, in no other way than by casting himself on the protection of God.
This he had also stated before, although a little more obscurely, in these
words, For thou art with me.
This implies that he had been afflicted with
fear. Had not this been the case, for what purpose could he desire the presence
of God?
fa500 Besides, it is not against the common
and ordinary calamities of life only that he opposes the protection of God, but
against those which distract and confound the minds of men with the darkness of
death. For the Jewish grammarians think that
twmlx,
tsalmaveth, which we have translated
the shadow of
death, is a compound word, as if one
should say deadly shade.
fa501 David here makes an allusion to
the dark recesses or dens of wild beasts, to which when an individual approaches
he is suddenly seized at his first entrance with an apprehension and fear of
death. Now, since God, in the person of his only begotten Son, has exhibited
himself to us as our shepherd, much more clearly than he did in old time to the
fathers who lived under the Law, we do not render sufficient honor to his
protecting care, if we do not lift our eyes to behold it, and keeping them fixed
upon it, tread all fears and terrors under our
feet.
fa502
Psalm
23:5-6
5. Thou wilt prepare a table
before me in the presence of my persecutors: thou wilt anoint my head with oil;
my cup overflows. 6. Surely goodness and mercy will follow me all the
days of my life; and I shall dwell in the house of Jehovah for a length of
days.
5.
Thou wilt prepare. These words, which
are put in the future tense, here denote a continued act. David, therefore, now
repeats, without a figure, what he has hitherto declared, concerning the
beneficence of God, under the similitude of a shepherd. He tells us that by his
liberality he is supplied with all that is necessary for the maintenance of this
life. When he says, Thou
preparest a table before me, he means
that God furnished him with sustenance without trouble or difficulty on his
part, just as if a father should stretch forth his hand to give food to his
child. He enhances this benefit from the additional consideration, that although
many malicious persons envy his happiness, and desire his ruin, yea, endeavor to
defraud him of the blessing of God; yet God does not desist from showing himself
liberal towards him, and from doing him good. What he subjoins concerning
oil, has a reference to a custom which then prevailed. We know that in
old time, ointments were used at the more magnificent feasts, and no man thought
he had honourably received his guests if he had not perfumed them therewith.
Now, this exuberant store of oil, and also this overflowing cup,
ought to be explained as denoting the abundance which goes beyond the mere
supply of the common necessaries of life; for it is spoken in commendation of
the royal wealth with which, as the sacred historian records, David had been
amply furnished. All men, it is true, are not treated with the same liberality
with which David was treated; but there is not an individual who is not under
obligation to God by the benefits which God has conferred upon him, so that we
are constrained to acknowledge that he is a kind and liberal Father to all his
people. In the meantime, let each of us stir up himself to gratitude to God for
his benefits, and the more abundantly these have been bestowed upon us, our
gratitude ought to be the greater. If he is ungrateful who, having only a coarse
loaf, does not acknowledge in that the fatherly providence of God, how much less
can the stupidity of those be tolerated, who glut themselves with the great
abundance of the good things of God which they possess, without having any sense
or taste of his goodness towards them? David, therefore, by his own example,
admonishes the rich of their duty, that they may be the more ardent in the
expression of their gratitude to God, the more delicately he feeds them.
Farther, let us remember, that those who have greater abundance than others are
bound to observe moderation not less than if they had only as much of the good
things of this life as would serve for their limited and temperate enjoyment. We
are too much inclined by nature to excess; and, therefore, when God is, in
respect of worldly things, bountiful to his people, it is not to stir up and
nourish in them this disease. All men ought to attend to the rule of Paul, which
is laid down in
<500412>Philippians
4:12, that they "may know both how to be abased, and how to abound." That
want may not sink us into despondency, we need to be sustained by patient
endurance; and, on the other hand, that too great abundance may not elate us
above measure, we need to be restrained by the bridle of temperance.
Accordingly, the Lord, when he enriches his own people, restrains, at the same
time, the licentious desires of the flesh by the spirit of confidence, so that,
of their own accord, they prescribe to themselves rules of temperance. Not that
it is unlawful for rich men to enjoy more freely the abundance which they
possess than if God had given them a smaller portion; but all men ought to
beware, (and much more kings,) lest they should be dissolved in voluptuous
pleasures. David, no doubt, as was perfectly lawful, allowed himself larger
scope than if he had been only one of the common people, or than if he had still
dwelt in his father's cottage, but he so regulated himself in the midst of his
delicacies, as not at all to take pleasure in stuffing and fattening the body.
He knew well how to distinguish between the table which God had prepared for him
and a trough for swine. It is also worthy of particular notice, that although
David lived upon his own lands, the tribute money and other revenues of the
kingdom, he gave thanks to God just as if God had daily given him his food with
his own hand. From this we conclude that he was not blinded with his riches, but
always looked upon God as his householder, who brought forth meat and drink from
his own store, and distributed it to him at the proper
season.
6.
Surely goodness and
mercy. Having recounted the blessings
which God had bestowed upon him, he now expresses his undoubted persuasion of
the continuance of them to the end of his life. But whence proceeded this
confidence, by which he assures himself that the beneficence and mercy of God
will accompany him for ever, if it did not arise from the promise by which God
is accustomed to season the blessings which he bestows upon true believers, that
they may not inconsiderately devour them without having any taste or relish for
them? When he said to himself before, that even amidst the darkness of death he
would keep his eyes fixed in beholding the providence of God, he sufficiently
testified that he did not depend upon outward things, nor measured the grace of
God according to the judgment of the flesh, but that even when assistance from
every earthly quarter failed him, his faith continued shut up in the word of
God. Although, therefore, experience led him to hope well, yet it was
principally on the promise by which God confirms his people with respect to the
future that he depended. If it is objected that it is presumption for a man to
promise himself a continued course of prosperity in this uncertain and changing
world, I answer, that David did not speak in this manner with the view of
imposing on God a law; but he hoped for such exercise of God's beneficence
towards him as the condition of this world permits, with which he would be
contented. He does not say, My cup shall be always full, or, My head shall be
always perfumed with oil; but in general he entertains the hope that as the
goodness of God never fails, he will be favorable towards him even to the
end.
I will dwell in the house
of Jehovah. By this concluding sentence
he manifestly shows that he does not confine his thoughts to earthly pleasures
or comforts; but that the mark at which he aims is fixed in heaven, and to reach
this was his great object in all things. It is as if he had said, I do not live
for the mere purpose of living, but rather to exercise myself in the fear and
service of God, and to make progress daily in all the branches of true
godliness. He makes a manifest distinction between himself and ungodly men, who
take pleasure only in filling their bellies with luxuriant fare. And not only
so, but he also intimates that to live to God is, in his estimation, of so great
importance, that he valued all the comforts of the flesh only in proportion as
they served to enable him to live to God. He plainly affirms, that the end which
he contemplated in all the benefits which God had conferred upon him was, that
he might dwell in the house of the Lord. Whence it follows, that when deprived
of the enjoyment of this blessing, he made no account of all other things; as if
he had said, I would take no pleasure in earthly comforts, unless I at the same
time belonged to the flock of God, as he also writes in another
place,
"Happy is that people
that is in such a case:yea, happy is that people whose God is the Lord,"
(<19E415>Psalm
144:15.)
Why did he desire go greatly to frequent the temple,
but to offer sacrifices there along with his fellow-worshippers, and to improve
by the other exercises of religion in meditation upon the celestial life? It is,
therefore, certain that the mind of David, by the aid of the temporal prosperity
which he enjoyed, was elevated to the hope of the everlasting inheritance. From
this we conclude, that those men are brutish who propose to themselves any other
felicity than that which arises from drawing near to God.
PSALM
24.
As God stands related to all mankind as their Creator
and Governor, David, from this consideration, magnifies the special favor which
God manifested towards the children of Abraham, in choosing them to be his
peculiar people, in preference to the rest of mankind, and in erecting his
sanctuary as his house that he might dwell among them. He shows, at the same
time, that although the sanctuary was open to all the Jews, God was not near to
all of them, but only to those who feared and served him in sincerity, and who
had cleansed themselves from the pollutions of the world, in order to devote
themselves to holiness and righteousness. Moreover, as the grace of God was more
clearly manifested after the temple was built, he celebrates that grace in a
strain of splendid poetry, to encourage true believers with the more alacrity to
persevere in the exercise of serving and honoring him.
A Psalm of
David.
Psalm
24:1-4
1. The earth is Jehovah's,
and the fullness thereof;
fa503 the world, and they that dwell
therein: 2. For he hath founded it upon the seas, and established it upon
the floods. 3. Who shall ascend unto the hill of Jehovah? who shall stand
in his holy place? 4. He who is clean of hands, and pure of heart; who
hath not lifted up his soul to vanity, nor sworn deceitfully.
1.
The earth is
Jehovah's. We will find in many other places
the children of Abraham compared with all the rest of mankind, that the free
goodness of God, in selecting them from all other nations, and in embracing them
with his favor, may shine forth the more conspicuously. The object of the
beginning of the psalm is to show that the Jews had nothing of themselves which
could entitle them to approach nearer or more familiarly to God than the
Gentiles. As God by his providence preserves the world, the power of his
government is alike extended to all, so that he ought to be worshipped by all,
even as he also shows to all men, without exception, the fatherly care he has
about them. But since he preferred the Jews to all other nations, it was
indispensably necessary that there should be some sacred bond of connection
between him and them, which might distinguish them from the heathen nations. By
this argument David invites and exhorts them to holiness. He tells them that it
was reasonable that those whom God had adopted as his children, should bear
certain marks peculiar to themselves, and not be altogether like strangers. Not
that he incites them to endeavor to prejudice God against others, in order to
gain his exclusive favor; but he teaches them, from the end or design of their
election, that they shall then have secured to them the firm and peaceful
possession of the honor which God had conferred upon them above other nations,
when they devote themselves to an upright and holy
life.
fa504 In vain would they have been collected
together into a distinct body, as the peculiar people of God, if they did not
apply themselves to the cultivation of holiness. In short, the Psalmist
pronounces God to be the King of the whole world, to let all men know that, even
by the law of nature, they are bound to serve him. And by declaring that he made
a covenant of salvation with a small portion of mankind, and by the erection of
the tabernacle, gave the children of Abraham the symbol of his presence, thereby
to assure them of his dwelling in the midst of them, he teaches them that they
must endeavor to have purity of heart and of hands, if they would be accounted
the members of his sacred family.
With respect
to the word fullness, I admit that under it all the riches with which the
earth is adorned are comprehended, as is proved by the authority of Paul; but I
have no doubt that the Psalmist intends by the expression men themselves, who
are the most illustrious ornament and glory of the earth. If they should fail,
the earth would exhibit a scene of desolation and solitude, not less hideous
than if God should despoil it of all its other riches. To what purpose are there
produced so many kinds of fruit, and in so great abundance, and why are there so
many pleasant and delightful countries, if it is not for the use and comfort of
men?
fa505 Accordingly, David explains, in the
following clause, that it is principally of men that he speaks. It is his usual
manner to repeat the same thing twice, and here the fullness of the earth,
and the inhabitants of the world, have the same meaning. I do not,
however, deny that the riches with which the earth abounds for the use of men,
are comprehended under these expressions. Paul, therefore,
(<461026>1
Corinthians 10:26) when discoursing concerning meats, justly quotes this passage
in support of his argument, maintaining that no kind of food is unclean,
because, "the earth is the Lord's, and the fullness
thereof."
2.
For he hath founded it upon
the seas. The Psalmist here confirms the truth,
that men are rightfully under the authority and power of God, so that in all
places and countries they ought to acknowledge him as King. And he confirms it
from the very order manifested in the creation; for the wonderful providence of
God is clearly reflected in the whole face of the earth. In order to prove this,
he brings forward the proof of it, which is most evident. How is it that the
earth appears above the water, but because God purposely intended to prepare a
habitation for men? Philosophers themselves admit, that as the element of the
water is higher than the earth, it is contrary to the nature of the two
elements
fa506 for any part of the earth to continue
uncovered with the waters, and habitable. Accordingly, Job
(<182811>Job
28:11, 25) extols, in magnificent terms, that signal miracle by which God
restrains the violent and tempestuous ragings of the sea, that it may not
overwhelm the earth, which, if not thus restrained, it would immediately do and
produce horrible confusion. Nor does Moses forget to mention this in the history
of the creation. After having narrated that the waters were spread abroad so as
to cover the whole earth, he adds, that by an express command of God they
retired into one place, in order to leave empty space for the living creatures
which were afterwards to be created,
(<010109>Genesis
1:9) From that passage we learn that God had a care about men before they
existed, inasmuch as he prepared for them a dwelling-place and other
conveniences; and that he did not regard them as entire strangers, seeing he
provided for their necessities, not less liberally than the father of a family
does for his own children. David does not here dispute philosophically
concerning the situation of the earth, when he says, that it
has been founded upon the
seas. He uses popular language, and adapts
himself to the capacity of the unlearned. Yet this manner of speaking, which is
taken from what may be judged of by the eye, is not without reason. The element
of earth, it is true, in so far as it occupies the lowest place in the order of
the sphere, is beneath the waters; but the habitable part of the earth is above
the water, and how can we account for it, that this separation of the water from
the earth remains stable, but because God has put the waters underneath, as it
were for a foundation? Now, as from the creation of the world, God extended his
fatherly care to all mankind, the prerogative of honor, by which the Jews
excelled all other nations, proceeded only from the free and sovereign choice by
which God distinguished them.
3.
Who shall ascend
unto. It being very well known that it was of
pure grace that God erected his sanctuary, and chose for himself a
dwelling-place among the Jews, David makes only a tacit reference to this
subject.
fa507 He insists principally on the other
point contained in the verse, that of distinguishing true Israelites from the
false and bastards. He takes the argument by which he exhorts the Jews to lead a
holy and righteous life from this, that God had separated them from the rest of
the world, to be his peculiar inheritance. The rest of mankind, it is true,
seeing they were created by him, belong to his empire; but he who occupies a
place in the church is more nearly related to him. All those, therefore, whom
God receives into his flock he calls to holiness; and he lays them under
obligations to follow it by his adoption. Moreover, by these words David
indirectly rebukes hypocrites, who scrupled not falsely to take to themselves
the holy name of God, as we know that they are usually lifted up with pride,
because of the titles which they take without having the excellencies which
these titles imply, contenting themselves with bearing only outside
distinctions;
fa508 yea, rather he purposely magnifies this
singular grace of God, that every man may learn for himself, that he has no
right of entrance or access to the sanctuary, unless he sanctify himself in
order to serve God in purity. The ungodly and wicked, it is true, were in the
habit of resorting to the tabernacle; and, therefore, God, by the Prophet
Isaiah,
(<230112>Isaiah
1:12) reproaches them for coming unworthily into his courts, and wearing the
pavement thereof. But David here treats of those who may lawfully enter into
God's sanctuary. The house of God being holy, if any rashly, and without a
right, rush into it, their corruption and abuse are nothing else but polluting
it. As therefore they do not go up thither lawfully, David makes no account of
their going up; yea, rather, under these words there is included a severe
rebuke, of the conduct of wicked and profane men, in daring to go up into the
sanctuary, and to pollute it with their impurity. On this subject I have spoken
more fully on the 15th psalm. In the second part of the verse he seems to denote
perseverance, as if he had said, Who shall go up into the hill of Sion, to
appear and stand in the presence of God? The Hebrew word
µwq,
kum, it is true, sometimes signifies to rise up, but it is
generally taken for to stand, as we have seen in the first psalm. And
although this is a repetition of the same idea, stated in the preceding clause,
it is not simply so, but David, by expressing the end for which they ought to go
up, illustrates and amplifies the subject; and this repetition and amplification
we find him often making use of in other psalms. In short, how much soever the
wicked were mingled with the good in the church, in the time of David, he
declares how vain a thing it is to make an external profession unless there be,
at the same time, truth in the inward man. What he says concerning the
tabernacle of the covenant must be applied to the continual government of the
church.
4.
He who is clean of hands, and
pure of heart. Under the purity of the hands
and of the heart, and the reverence of God's name, he comprehends all religion,
and denotes a well ordered life. True purity, no doubt, has its seat in the
heart, but it manifests its fruits in the works of the hands. The Psalmist,
therefore, very properly joins to a pure heart the purity of the whole life; for
that man acts a ridiculous part who boasts of having a sound heart, if he does
not show by his fruits that the root is good. On the other hand, it will not
suffice to frame the hands, feet, and eyes, according to the rule of
righteousness, unless purity of heart precede outward continence. If any man
should think it absurd that the first place is given to the hands, we answer
without hesitation, that effects are often named before their causes, not that
they precede them in order, but because it is sometimes advantageous to begin
with things which are best known. David, then, would have the Jews to bring into
the presence of God pure hands, and these along with an unfeigned heart.
To lift
up, or to take his soul, I have no doubt
is here put for to swear. It is, therefore, here required of the servants of
God, that when they swear, they do it with reverence and in good
conscience,
fa509 and, under one particular, by
synecdoche, is denoted the duty of observing fidelity and integrity in all the
affairs of life. That mention is here made of oaths, appears from the words
which immediately follow, And
hath not sworn deceitfully, which are added as
explanatory of what goes before. As, however, there is a twofold reading of the
Hebrew word for soul, that is to say, as it may be read, my soul, or
his soul, on account of the point hirek, some Jewish commentators
read, Who hath not lifted up my
soul to
vanity,
fa510 and understand the word my as
spoken of God, an exposition which I reject as harsh and strained. It is a
manner of speaking which carries in it great emphasis, for it means, that those
who swear offer their souls as pledges to God. Some, however, may perhaps prefer
the opinion, that to lift up the soul, is put for to apply it to
lying, an interpretation to the adoption of which I have no great objection,
for it makes little difference as to the sense. A question may here be raised
— it may be asked, why David does not say so much as one word concerning
faith and calling upon God. The reason of this is easily explained. As it seldom
happens that a man behaves himself uprightly and innocently towards his
brethren, unless he is so endued with the true fear of God as to walk
circumspectly before him, David very justly forms his estimate of the piety of
men towards God by the character of their conduct towards their fellow-men. For
the same reason, Christ
(<402323>Matthew
23:23) represents judgment, mercy, and faith, as the principal points of the
law; and Paul calls "charity" at one time "the end of the law,"
(<540105>1
Timothy 1:5) and at another "the bond of perfection"
(<510314>Colossians
3:14.)
Psalm
24:5-6
5. He shall receive blessing
from Jehovah, and righteousness from the God of his salvation. 6. This is
the generation of them that seek him, of them that seek thy face, O
Jacob!
fa511 Selah.
5.
He shall receive
blessing. The more effectually to move the
minds of the Israelites, David declares that nothing is more desirable than to
be numbered among the flock of God, and to be members of the church. We must
here consider that there is an implied contrast between true Israelites and
those of them who were degenerate and bastards. The more license the wicked give
themselves, the more presumptuous are they in pretending to the name of God, as
if he were under obligation to them, because they are adorned with the same
outward symbols or badges as true believers. Accordingly, the demonstrative
pronoun this, in the following verse, is of great weight, for it
expressly excludes all that bastard generation which gloried only in the mask of
external ceremonies. And in this verse, when he speaks of blessing, he intimates
that it is not those who boast of being the servants of God, while they have
only the name, who shall be partakers of the promised blessing, but those
only who answer to their calling with their whole heart, and without hypocrisy.
It is, as we have already observed, a very powerful inducement to godliness and
an upright life, when the faithful are assured that they do not lose their labor
in following righteousness, since God has in reserve for them a blessing which
cannot fail them. The word righteousness may be explained two ways. It
either means all the benefits of God, by which he proves himself to be righteous
and faithful towards his people in keeping his promises to them, or it denotes
the fruit or reward of the believer's righteousness. Indeed, David's meaning is
abundantly manifest. He intends to show on the one hand, that it is not to be
expected that the fruit or reward of righteousness will be bestowed on those who
unrighteously profane God's sacred worship; and on the other hand, that it is
impossible for God to disappoint his true worshippers; for it is his peculiar
office to give evidence of his righteousness by doing them
good.
6.
This is the
generation. I have just now observed, that by
the demonstrative pronoun this, the Psalmist erases from the catalogue of
the servants of God all counterfeit Israelites, who, trusting only to their
circumcision and the sacrifices of beasts, have no concern about offering
themselves to God; and yet, at the same time, they rashly thrust themselves into
the church. Such persons may pretend to have delight in the service of God, by
often coming to his temple, but they have no other design than to withdraw
themselves from him as far as they can. Now, as nothing was more common in the
mouths of each of them than to say, that they all belonged to the holy seed, the
Psalmist has limited the name of holy generation to the true observers of the
law; as if he had said, All who have sprung from Abraham, according to the
flesh, are not, on that account, his legitimate children. It is, no doubt, truly
said in many other places, as we shall see in Psalm 27, that those sought the
face of God who, to testify their godliness, exercised themselves in the
ceremonies before the ark of the covenant; that is to say, if they were brought
thither by a pure and holy affection. But as hypocrites seek God externally in a
certain way, as well as true saints, while yet they shun him by their windings
and false pretences,
fa512 David here declares that God is not
sought in truth unless there go before a zealous cultivation of holiness and
righteousness. To give the sentence greater emphasis, he repeats it, using the
second person, and addressing his discourse to
God.
fa513 It is as if he summoned before the
judgment-seat of God hypocrites, who account it nothing falsely to use the name
of God before the world; and he thus teaches us, that whatever they may say in
their empty talk among men, the judgment of God will be a very different matter.
He adds the word Jacob, for the confirmation of the same doctrine putting it for
those who were descended from Jacob; as if he had said, Although circumcision
distinguishes all the seed of Jacob according to the flesh from the Gentiles,
yet we can only distinguish the chosen people by the fear and reverence of God,
as Christ said, "Behold an Israelite indeed, in whom is no guile!"
(<430147>John
1:47.)
Psalm
24:7-10
7. Lift up your heads, O ye
gates! and be ye lifted up, ye everlasting doors! and the King of glory shall
enter in. 8. Who is this King of glory? Jehovah strong and mighty,
Jehovah mighty in battle. 9. Lift up your heads, O ye gates! Be ye lifted
up, ye everlasting doors! and the King of glory shall enter in. 10. Who
is this King of glory? Jehovah of hosts, he is the King of glory. Selah.
7.
Lift up your heads, O ye
gates! The magnificent and splendid
structure of the temple, in which there was more outward majesty than in the
tabernacle, not being yet erected, David here speaks of the future building of
it. By doing this, he encourages the pious Israelites to employ themselves more
willingly, and with greater confidence, in the ceremonial observances of the
law. It was no ordinary token of the goodness of God that he condescended to
dwell in the midst of them by a visible symbol of his presence, and was willing
that his heavenly dwelling-place should be seen upon earth. This doctrine ought
to be of use to us at this day; for it is an instance of the inestimable grace
of God, that so far as the infirmity of our flesh will permit, we are lifted up
even to God by the exercises of religion. What is the design of the preaching of
the word, the sacraments, the holy assemblies, and the whole external government
of the church, but that we may be united to God? It is not, therefore, without
good reason that David extols so highly the service of God appointed in the law,
seeing God exhibited himself to his saints in the ark of the covenant, and
thereby gave them a certain pledge of speedy succor whenever they should invoke
him for aid. God, it is true, "dwelleth not in temples made with hands," nor
does he take delight in outward pomp; but as it was useful, and as it was also
the pleasure of God, that his ancient people, who were rude, and still in their
infancy, should be lifted up to him by earthly elements, David does not here
hesitate to set forth to them, for the confirmation of their faith, the
sumptuous building of the temple, to assure them that it was not a useless
theater; but that when they rightly worshipped God in it, according to the
appointment of his word, they stood as it were in his presence, and would
actually experience that he was near them. The amount of what is stated is, that
in proportion as the temple which God had commanded to be built to him upon
mount Sion, surpassed the tabernacle in magnificence, it would be so much the
brighter a mirror of the glory and power of God dwelling among the Jews. In the
meantime, as David himself burned with intense desire for the erection of the
temple, so he wished to inflame the hearts of all the godly with the same ardent
desire, that, aided by the rudiments of the law, they might make more and more
progress in the fear of God. He terms the gates, everlasting,
because the promise of God secured their continual stability. The temple
excelled in materials and in workmanship, but its chief excellence consisted in
this, that the promise of God was engraven upon it, as we shall see in
<19D214>Psalm
132:14, "This is my rest for ever." In terming the gates everlasting, the
Psalmist, at the same time, I have no doubt, makes a tacit contrast between the
tabernacle and the temple. The tabernacle never had any certain abiding place,
but being from time to time transported from one place to another, was like a
wayfaring man. When, however, mount Sion was chosen, and the temple built, God
then began to have there a certain and fixed place of abode. By the coming of
Christ, that visible shadow vanished, and it is therefore not wonderful that the
temple is no longer to be seen upon mount Sion, seeing it is now so great as to
occupy the whole world. If it is objected, that at the time of the Babylonish
captivity the gates which Solomon had built were demolished, I answer, God's
decree stood fast, notwithstanding that temporary overthrow; and by virtue of
it, the temple was soon after rebuilt; which was the same as if it had always
continued entire. The Septuagint has from ignorance corrupted this
passage.
fa514 The Hebrew word
µyçar,
rashim, which we have rendered heads, is no doubt sometimes taken
metaphorically for princes; but the word your, which is here
annexed to it, sufficiently shows that we cannot draw from it another sense than
this — that the gates lift up their heads, otherwise we must say, Your
princes. Some, therefore, think that kings and magistrates are here admonished
of their duty, which is to open up the way, and give entrance to God. This is a
plausible interpretation, but it is too much removed from the design and words
of the prophet. Above all, from the natural sense of the words, we may perceive
how foolishly and basely the Papists have abused this passage for the
confirmation of the gross and ridiculous notion by which they introduce Christ
as knocking at the gate of the infernal regions, in order to obtain
admission.
fa515 Let us, therefore, learn from this, to
handle the holy word of God with sobriety and reverence, and to hold Papists in
detestation, who, as it were, make sport of corrupting and falsifying it in this
manner, by their execrable impieties.
fa516
8.
Who is this King of glory?
etc. The praises by which the power of God is
here magnified are intended to tell the Jews that he did not sit idle in his
temple, but took up his abode in it, in order to show himself ready to succor
his people. It is to be observed, that there is great weight both in the
interrogation, and in the repetition of the same sentence. The prophet assumes
the person of one who wonders thereby to express with greater effect that God
comes armed with invincible power to maintain and save his people, and to keep
the faithful in safety under his shadow. We have already said, that when God is
spoken of as dwelling in the temple, it is not to be understood as if his
infinite and incomprehensible essence had been shut up or confined within it;
but that he was present there by his power and grace, as is implied in the
promise which he made to Moses,
"In all places where I
record my name, I will come unto thee, and I will bless thee,"
(<022024>Exodus
20:24.)
That this was no vain and empty promise, but that God
truly dwelt in the midst of the people, is what the faithful experienced who
sought him not superstitiously, as if he had been fixed to the temple, but made
use of the temple and of the service which was performed in it for elevating
their hearts to heaven. The amount of what is stated is, that whenever the
people should call upon God in the temple, it would manifestly appear, from the
effect which would follow, that the ark of the covenant was not a vain and an
illusory symbol of the presence of God, because he would always stretch forth
his omnipotent arm for the defense and protection of his people. The repetition
teaches us that true believers cannot be too constant and diligent in meditation
on this subject. The Son of God, clothed with our flesh, has now shown himself
to be King of glory and Lord of hosts, and he is not entered into
his temple only by shadows and figures, but really and in very deed, that he may
dwell in the midst of us. There is, therefore, nothing to hinder us from
boasting that we shall be invincible by his power. Mount Sion, it is true, is
not at this day the place appointed for the sanctuary, and the ark of the
covenant is no longer the image or representation of God dwelling between the
cherubim; but as we have this privilege in common with the fathers, that, by the
preaching of the word and the sacraments, we may be united to God, it becomes us
to use these helps with reverence; for if we despise them by a detestable pride,
God cannot but at length utterly withdraw himself from us.
PSALM
25.
This psalm consists of meditations mingled with
prayers. Being rudely treated, and grievously distressed, by the cruelty of his
enemies, David, in order to obtain assistance from God, first acknowledges that
God had justly made use of this as a means of chastising and punishing him for
his sins; and, therefore, he prays for their forgiveness, that he may at once
enjoy assurance of the divine favor, and obtain deliverance. He then implores
the aid of the Holy Spirit, that, sustained by it, he might, even in the midst
of so many temptations, continue in the fear of God. And in various places he
intermingles meditation, as the means of stirring up himself to increased
confidence in God, and of withdrawing his thoughts from the allurements of the
world.
A Psalm of
David.
Psalm
25:1-3
1. Unto thee, O Jehovah! I
have lifted up my soul 2. O my God! I have put my trust in thee; let me
not be ashamed; let not mine enemies rejoice over me. 3. Yea, none of
those that wait on thee shall be ashamed; but they shall be ashamed that deal
falsely without cause.
1.
Unto thee, O Jehovah!
etc. The Psalmist declares at the very
outset, that he is not driven hither and thither, after the manner of the
ungodly, but that he directs all his desires and prayers to God alone. Nothing
is more inconsistent with true and sincere prayer to God, than to waver and gaze
about as the heathen do, for some help from the world; and at the same time to
forsake God, or not to betake ourselves directly to his guardianship and
protection. Those who imagine that David here declares that he had devoted
himself entirely to God, as if he had offered up himself in sacrifice, do not
properly understand the import of the passage. The meaning rather is, that in
order to strengthen the hope of obtaining his request, he declares, what is of
the greatest importance in prayer, that he had his hope fixed in God, and that
he was not ensnared by the allurements of the world, or prevented from lifting
up his soul fully and unfeignedly to God. In order, therefore, that we may pray
aright to God, let us be directed by this rule — not to distract our minds
by various and uncertain hopes, nor to depend on worldly aid, but to yield to
God the honor of lifting up our hearts to him in sincere and earnest prayer.
Moreover, although the verb is properly rendered, I will lift up, yet I
have followed other interpreters in changing it into the past tense,
I have lifted
up. By the future tense, however, David
denotes a continued act.
2.
O my God! I have put my trust
in thee. By this verse we learn, (what
will appear more clearly afterwards,) that David had to do with men; but as he
was persuaded that his enemies were, as it were, the scourges of God, he with
good reason asks that God would restrain them by his power, lest they should
become more insolent, and continue, to exceed all bounds. By the word trust
he confirms what he had just said of the lifting up of his soul to God; for
the term is employed either as descriptive of the way in which the souls of the
faithful are lifted up, or else faith and hope are added as the cause of such an
effect, namely, the lifting up of the soul. And, indeed, these are the wings by
which our souls, rising above this world, are lifted up to God. David, then, was
carried upward to God with the whole desire of his heart, because, trusting to
his promises, he thereby hoped for sure salvation. When he asks
that God would not suffer him to
be put to shame, he offers up a prayer
which is taken from the ordinary doctrine of Scripture, namely, that they who
trust in God shall never be ashamed. The reason which is added, and which he
here pleads, to induce God to have pity upon him, ought also to be noticed. It
is this, that he might not be exposed to the derision of his enemies, whose
pride is no less hurtful to the feelings of the godly than it is displeasing to
God.
3.
Yea, none of those,
etc. If these words should be explained
in the form of a desire, as if David had said, Let none who wait on thee be put
to shame,
fa517 then, in this verse, he continues his
prayer, and extends to all the faithful in common what he had spoken of himself
alone. But I am rather inclined to understand the words in a different sense,
and to view them as meaning that David shows the fruit of divine grace which
should proceed from his deliverance. And there is peculiar force in the word
yea; for as he knew that he was seen by many, and that the report of his
confidence in God was widely spread, his meaning is, that what shall be done in
his person shall extend far and wide, as an example to others, and shall have
the effect of reviving and animating all the children of God, on the one
hand, and of casting to the ground the arrogance of the wicked, on the other.
The words might also be understood in another sense, namely, that David, for the
strengthening of his faith, sets before himself a promise which God frequently
makes in his word. But the sense in which I have interpreted them seems to be
more suitable. By the wicked that
deal falsely without cause, he no doubt
means especially his enemies. Accordingly, he declares that when he is delivered
he will not enjoy exclusively the benefit of it; but that its fruit shall extend
to all true believers; just as on the other hand, the faith of many would have
been shaken if he had been forsaken of God. In the last clause of the verse,
which he puts in opposition to the first, he argues that when the wicked lie
confounded, it redounds to the glory of God, because the vaunting in which they
indulge in their prosperity is an open mockery of God, while, in despite of his
judgment, they break forth more boldly in doing evil. When he adds, without
cause, it only tends to show the aggravated nature of the offense. The
wickedness of a man is always the more intolerable, when, unprovoked by wrongs,
he sets himself, of his own accord, to injure the innocent and
blameless.
Psalm
25:4-7
4. O Jehovah! make me to know
thy ways, and teach me thy paths. 5. Lead me in thy truth, and teach me;
for thou art the God of my salvation: I have waited for thee all the day.
6. Remember, O Jehovah! thy tender mercies and thy loving-kindnesses, for
they have been from everlasting. 7. Remember not the sins of my youth,
nor my transgressions: according to thy compassion, and for the sake of thy
goodness, O Jehovah! do thou remember
me.
4.
O Jehovah! make me to know
thy ways. By
the ways of the
Lord, David sometimes means, as we have
seen in another place, the happy and prosperous issue of affairs, but more
frequently he uses this expression to denote the rule of a holy and righteous
life. As the term truth occurs in the immediately following verse, the
prayer which he offers up in this place is, in my opinion, to this effect:Lord,
keep thy servant in the firm persuasion of thy promises, and do not suffer him
to turn aside to the right hand or to the left. When our minds are thus composed
to patience, we undertake nothing rashly or by improper means, but depend wholly
upon the providence of God. Accordingly, in this place David desires not merely
to be directed by the Spirit of God, lest he should err from the right way, but
also that God would clearly manifest to him his truth and faithfulness in the
promises of his word, that he might live in peace before him, and be free from
all impatience.
fa518 If any one would rather take the words
in a general sense, as if David committed himself wholly to God to be governed
by him, I do not object to it. As, however, I think it probable, that, under the
name of truth in the next verse, he explains what he means by the ways
and paths of God, of which he here speaks, I have no hesitation in referring the
prayer to this circumstance, namely, that David, afraid of yielding to the
feeling of impatience, or the desire of revenge, or some extravagant and
unlawful impulse, asks that the promises of God may be deeply impressed and
engraven on his heart. For I have said before, that as long as this thought
prevails in our minds, that God takes care of us, it is the best and most
powerful means for resisting temptations. If, however, by
the ways and paths of
God, any would rather understand his
doctrine, I, nevertheless, still hold this as a settled point, that in the
language of the Psalmist there is an allusion to those sudden and irregular
emotions which arise in our minds when we are tossed by adversity, and by which
we are precipitated into the devious and deceitful paths of error, till they are
in due time subdued or allayed by the word of God. Thus the meaning is, Whatever
may happen, suffer me not, O Lord, to fall from thy ways, or to be carried away
by a wilful disobedience to thy authority, or any other sinful desire; but
rather let thy truth preserve me in a state of quiet repose and peace, by an
humble submission to it. Moreover, although he frequently repeats the same
thing, asking that God would make him to know his ways, and teach him in them,
and lead him in his truth, there is no redundancy in these forms of speech. Our
adversities are often like mists which darken the eyes; and every one knows from
his own experience how difficult a thing it is, while these clouds of darkness
continue, to discern in what way we ought to walk. But if David, so
distinguished a prophet and endued with so much wisdom, stood in need of divine
instruction, what shall become of us if, in our afflictions, God dispel not from
our minds those clouds of darkness which prevent us from seeing his light? As
often, then, as any temptation may assail us, we ought always to pray that God
would make the light of his truth to shine upon us, lest, by having recourse to
sinful devices, we should go astray, and wander into devious and forbidden
paths.
At the same time, we ought to observe the
argument which David here employs to enforce his prayer. By calling God
the God of his
salvation, he does so in order to
strengthen his hope in God for the future, from a consideration of the benefits
which he had already received from him; and then he repeats the testimony of his
confidence towards God. Thus the first part of the argument is taken from the
nature of God himself, and the duty which, as it were, belongs to him; that is
to say, because he engages to maintain the welfare of the godly, and aids them
in their necessities, on this ground, that he will continue to manifest the same
favor towards them even to the end. But as it is necessary that our confidence
in God should correspond to his great goodness towards us, David alleges it, at
the same time, in connection with a declaration of his perseverance. For, by the
expression all the day, or every day, he signifies that with a
fixed and untiring constancy he depended upon God alone. And, doubtless, it is
the property of faith always to look to God, even in the most trying
circumstances, and patiently to wait for the aid which he has promised. That the
recollection of the divine blessings may nourish and sustain our hope, let us
learn to reflect upon the goodness which God has already manifested towards us,
as we see that David did in making this the ground of his confidence, that he
had found in his own personal experience God to be the author of
salvation.
6.
Remember, O
Jehovah; From this it appears, in the
first place, that David was grievously afflicted and tried, so much so that he
had lost all sense of God's mercy:for he calls upon God to remember for him his
favor, in such a manner as if he had altogether forgotten it. This, therefore,
is the complaint of a man suffering extreme anguish, and overwhelmed with grief.
We may learn from this, that although God, for a time, may withdraw from us
every token of his goodness, and, apparently regardless of the miseries which
afflict us, should, as if we were strangers to him, and not his own people,
forsake us, we must fight courageously, until, set free from this temptation, we
cordially present the prayer which is here recorded, beseeching God, that,
returning to his former manner of dealing, he would again begin to manifest his
goodness towards us, and to deal with us in a more gracious manner. This form of
prayer cannot be used with propriety, unless when God is hiding his face from
us, and seems to take no interest at all in us. Moreover David, by having
recourse to the mercy or compassion and goodness of God, testifies that he
trusts not to his own merit as any ground of hope. He who derives every thing
from the fountain of divine mercy alone, finds nothing in himself entitled to
recompense in the sight of God. But as the intermission which David had
experienced was an obstacle which prevented his free access to God, he rises
above it, by the very best remedy — the consideration, that although God,
who from his very nature is merciful, may withdraw himself, and cease for a time
to manifest his power, yet he cannot deny himself; that is to say, he cannot
divest himself of the feeling of mercy which is natural to him, and which can no
more cease than his eternal existence. But we must firmly maintain this
doctrine, that God has been merciful even from the beginning, so that if at any
time he seem to act with severity towards us, and to reject our prayers, we must
not imagine that he acts contrary to his real character, or that he has changed
his purpose. Hence we learn for what end it is that the Scriptures every where
inform us, that in all ages God has regarded his servants with a benignant eye,
and exercised his mercy towards them.
fa519 This, at least, we ought to regard as a
fixed and settled point, that although the goodness of God may sometimes be
hidden, and as it were buried out of sight, it can never be
extinguished.
7.
Remember not the sins of my
youth. As our sins are like a wall
between us and God, which prevents him from hearing our prayers, or
stretching forth his hand to help us, David now removes this obstruction. It is
indeed true, in general, that men pray in a wrong way, and in vain, unless they
begin by seeking the forgiveness of their sins. There is no hope of obtaining
any favor from God unless he is reconciled to us. How shall he love us unless he
first freely reconcile us to himself? The right and proper order of prayer
therefore is, as I have said, to ask, at the very outset, that God would pardon
our sins. David here acknowledges, in explicit terms, that he cannot in any
other way become a partaker of the grace of God than by having his sins blotted
out. In order, therefore, that God may be mindful of his mercy towards us, it is
necessary that he forget our sins, the very sight of which turns away his favor
from us. In the meantime, the Psalmist confirms by this more clearly what I have
already said, that although the wicked acted towards him with cruelty, and
persecuted him unjustly, yet he ascribed to his own sins all the misery which he
endured. For why should he ask the forgiveness of his sins, by having recourse
to the mercy of God, but because he acknowledged, that by the cruel treatment he
received from his enemies, he only suffered the punishment which he justly
merited? He has, therefore, acted wisely in turning his thoughts to the first
cause of his misery, that he may find out the true remedy; and thus he teaches
us by his example, that when any outward affliction presses upon us, we must
entreat God not only to deliver us from it, but also to blot out our sins, by
which we have provoked his displeasure, and subjected ourselves to his
chastening rod. If we act otherwise, we shall follow the example of unskilful
physicians, who, overlooking the cause of the disease, only seek to alleviate
the pain, and apply merely adventitious remedies for the cure. Moreover, David
makes confession not only of some slight offenses, as hypocrites are wont to do,
who, by confessing their guilt in a general and perfunctory manner, either seek
some subterfuge, or else extenuate the enormity of their sin; but he traces back
his sins even to his very childhood, and considers in how many ways he had
provoked the wrath of God against him. When he makes mention of the sins which
he had committed in his youth, he does not mean by this that he had no
remembrance of any of the sins which he had committed in his later years; but it
is rather to show that he considered himself worthy of so much the greater
condemnation.
fa520 In the first place, considering that he
had not begun only of late to commit sin, but that he had for a long time heaped
up sin upon sin, he bows himself, if we may so speak, under the accumulated
load; and, in the second place, he intimates, that if God should deal with him
according to the rigour of law, not only the sins of yesterday, or of a few
days, would come into judgment against him, but all the instances in which he
had offended, even from his infancy, might now with justice be laid to his
charge. As often, therefore, as God terrifies us by his judgments and the tokens
of his wrath, let us call to our remembrance, not only the sins which we have
lately committed, but also all the transgressions of our past life, proving to
us the ground of renewed shame and renewed lamentation. Besides, in order to
express more fully that he supplicates a free pardon, he pleads before God only
on the ground of his mere good pleasure; and therefore he says,
According to thy compassion do
thou remember me. When God casts our
sins into oblivion, this leads him to behold us with fatherly regard. David can
discover no other cause by which to account for this paternal regard of God, but
that he is good, and hence it follows that there is nothing to induce God to
receive us into his favor but his own good pleasure. When God is said to
remember us according to his mercy, we are tacitly given to understand that
there are two ways of remembering which are entirely opposite; the one when he
visits sinners in his wrath, and the other when he again manifests his favor to
those of whom he seemed for a time to take no
account.
Psalm
25:8-11
8. Good and upright is
Jehovah; therefore will he teach sinners in the way. 9. He will guide the
poor in judgment, and will teach the
poor
fa521 his way. 10. All the ways of
Jehovah are mercy and truth, to those who keep his covenant and his testimony.
11. For thy name's sake, O Jehovah! be thou merciful to mine iniquity,
for it is great.
8.
Good and upright is
Jehovah. Pausing for a little as it were
in the prosecution of his prayer, he exercises his thoughts in meditation upon
the goodness of God, that he may return with renewed ardor to prayer. The
faithful feel that their hearts soon languish in prayer, unless they are
constantly stirring themselves up to it by new incitements; so rare and
difficult a thing is it to persevere steadfastly and unweariedly in this duty.
And, indeed, as one must frequently lay on fuel in order to preserve a fire, so
the exercise of prayer requires the aid of such helps, that it may not languish,
and at length be entirely extinguished. David, therefore, desirous to encourage
himself to perseverance, speaks to himself, and affirms that God is good and
upright, that, gathering new strength by meditating on this truth, he may
return with the more alacrity to prayer. But we must observe this consequence
— that as God is good and upright, he stretches forth his hand to
sinners to bring them back again into the way. To attribute to God an
uprightness which he may exercise only towards the worthy and the meritorious,
is a cold view of his character, and of little advantage to sinners, and yet the
world commonly apprehends that God is good in no other sense. How comes it to
pass that scarcely one in a hundred applies to himself the mercy of God, if it
is not because men limit it to those who are worthy of it? No on the contrary,
it is here said, that God gives a proof of his uprightness when he shows to
transgressors the way; and this is of the same import as to call them to
repentance, and to teach them to live uprightly. And, indeed, if the goodness of
God did not penetrate even to hell, no man would ever become a partaker of it.
Let the Papists then boast as they please of their imaginary preparations, but
let us regard this as a sure and certain doctrine, that if God do not prevent
men by his grace, they shall all utterly perish. David, therefore, here commends
this preventing grace, as it is called, which is manifested either when God in
calling us at first renews, by the Spirit of regeneration, our corrupt nature,
or when he brings us back again into the right way, after we have gone astray
from him by our sins. For since even those whom God receives for his disciples
are here called sinners, it follows that he renews them by his Holy Spirit that
they may become docile and
obedient.
9.
He will guide the poor in
judgment. The Psalmist here specifies
the second manifestation of his grace which God makes towards those who, being
subdued by his power, and brought under his yoke, bear it willingly, and submit
themselves to his government. But never will this docility be found in any man,
until the heart, which is naturally elated and filled with pride, has been
humbled and subdued. As the Hebrew word
µywn[,
anavim, denotes the poor or afflicted, and is employed in a
metaphorical sense, to denote the meek and humble, it is probable that
David, under this term, includes the afflictions which serve to restrain and
subdue the frowardness of the flesh, as well as the grace of humility itself; as
if he had said, When God has first humbled them, then he kindly stretches forth
his hand to them, and leads and guides them throughout the whole course of their
life. Moreover, some understand these terms, judgment and way of the
Lord, as denoting a righteous and well ordered manner of life. Others refer
them to the providence of God, an interpretation which seems more correct, and
more agreeable to the context, for it is immediately added,
All the ways of Jehovah are mercy
and truth. The meaning therefore is,
that those who are truly humbled in their hearts, and brought to place their
confidence in God, shall experience how much care he has for his
children,
fa522 and how well he provides for their
necessities. The terms, judgment and way of the Lord, therefore,
are simply of the same import in this place as his government, in the exercise
of which he shows that he, as a kind father, has a special interest in the
welfare of his children, by relieving them when they are oppressed, raising them
up when cast down, cheering and comforting them when sorrowful, and succouring
them when afflicted. We perceive, then, by what order God proceeds in the
manifestation of his grace towards us. First, he brings us again into the way
when we are wandering and going astray from him, or rather, when we are already
fugitives and exiles from him, he restrains our frowardness; and whereas we were
before froward and rebellious, he now subdues us to the obedience of his
righteousness:and, secondly, after he has afflicted and tried us, he does not
forsake us; but after he has moulded and trained us by the cross to humility and
meekness, he still shows himself to be a wise and provident father in guiding
and directing us through life.
10.
All the ways of
Jehovah. This verse is erroneously
interpreted by those who think that the doctrine of the law is here described as
true and sweet, and that those who keep it feel it indeed to be so, as if this
passage were of the same import as that which was spoken by Jesus
Christ,
"My yoke is easy, and my
burden is
light."
(<401130>Matthew
11:30)
Such an interpretation is not only strained, but may
also be easily disproved by many similar passages in which the expression,
The ways of the Lord,
is taken in a passive signification, for the
paternal manner in which he acts towards those who are his people, in defending
and cherishing them; nay, even for his whole conduct in the government and
direction of the affairs of this world. The amount of what is said is, that God
acts in such a manner towards his people, as that, in all respects, they may
find from experience that he is merciful and faithful. David is not here
speaking of the character in which God acts towards mankind in general, but what
his own children find him to be. We have already seen in
<191826>Psalm
18:26, that he is stern and severe towards the obstinate and rebellious; and
even though he act with kindness towards them, in mercifully exercising
forbearance towards them notwithstanding their iniquity, yet we find, that so
far from seeking their full enjoyment in him, and trusting to his promises, they
have no sense of his goodness. Nay, as soon as any adversity befalls them, they
either become passionate and fretful, accuse God of acting cruelly towards them,
or else complain that he is deaf to their prayers; and when they enjoy
prosperity, they despise and neglect him, and as much as they are able flee from
his presence. David, therefore, in speaking of the mercy and
faithfulness of God, justly describes them as a treasure peculiar to the
godly; as if he had said, We have no reason to be afraid that God will deceive
us if we persevere in his covenant. These words, covenant and
testimony, are of the same import, unless that the second is added as an
explanation of the first. They comprehend the whole doctrine of the law, by
which God enters into covenant with his chosen
people.
11.
For thy name's sake, O
Jehovah! As in the original text the
copulative and is inserted between the two clauses of this verse, some
think that the first clause is incomplete, and that some word ought to be
supplied; and then they read these words,
Be thou merciful to mine
iniquity, etc., as a distinct sentence
by itself. And thus, according to their opinion, the sense would be, Lord,
although I have not fully kept thy covenant, yet do not on that account cease to
show thy kindness towards me; and that mine iniquity may not prevent thy
goodness from being extended towards me, do thou graciously pardon it. But I am
rather of the opinion of others, who consider that the copulative is here, as it
is in many other places, superfluous, so that the whole verse may form one
connected sentence. As to the tense of the verb, there is also a diversity of
opinion among interpreters. Some render it in the past tense thus, Thou hast
been merciful, as if David here renders thanks to God because he had
pardoned his sin. But the other interpretation, which is the one more generally
received, is also the most correct, namely, that David, in order to obtain
pardon, again resorts to the mercy of God as his only refuge. The letter
w,
vau, which is equivalent to and, has often the force of changing
the tense in the Hebrew verbs, so that the future tense is often taken in the
sense of the optative. Moreover, I connect this verse with the preceding one in
this way:The prophet, having reflected upon this, that God is kind and faithful
to those who serve him, now examines his own heart, and acknowledges that he
cannot be accounted of their number, unless God grant unto him the forgiveness
of his sins; and, therefore, he betakes himself to prayer for pardon:as in
<191913>Psalm
19:13, after having spoken of the reward which is laid up for the faithful who
keep the law, he instantly exclaims, "Who can understand his errors?"
Accordingly, although David is not ignorant that God promises liberally to
bestow upon those who keep his covenant every thing which pertains to a life of
happiness, yet, at the same time, considering how far he is as yet from the
perfect righteousness of the law, he does not rest his confidence upon it, but
seeks a remedy for the manifold offenses of which he feels himself to be guilty.
And thus, in order that God may reckon us of the number of his servants, we
ought always to come to him, entreating him, after the example of David, in his
fatherly loving-kindness, to bear with our infirmities, because, without the
free remission of our sins, we have no reason to expect any reward of our works.
At the same time, let it be observed, that in order to show more distinctly that
he depends entirely upon the free grace of God, he expressly says,
for thy name's
sake; meaning by this, that God, as
often as he vouchsafes to pardon his people, does so from no other cause than
his own good pleasure; just as he had said a little before, in the same verse,
for thy goodness' sake. He was also constrained, by a consideration of
the magnitude of his offense, to call upon the name of God:for he immediately
adds, by way of confession,
because mine iniquity is
great, or manifold, (for the word
br,
rab, may be translated in both ways;) as if he had said, My sins are,
indeed, like a heavy burden which overwhelms me, so that the multitude or
enormity of them might well deprive me of all hope of pardon; but, Lord, the
infinite glory of thy name will not suffer thee to cast me
off.
Psalm
25:12-15
12. Who is the man that
feareth Yehovah , he will teach him, in the way that he should choose.
13. His soul shalt dwell in good, and his seed shall inherit the earth.
14. The counsel
fa523 of Jehovah is towards them that fear
him, that he may make known his covenant to them. 15. Mine eyes are
continually towards Jehovah, for he will bring my feet out of the
net.
12.
Who is the
man. By again recalling to his mind the
character in which God manifests himself towards his servants, he derives new
strength and courage. For we have said, that nothing more readily occurs than a
relaxation in earnest and attentive prayer, unless it be sustained by the
recollection of God's promises. There can, however, be no doubt, that David both
accuses himself, and by entertaining a better hope, takes encouragement to
continue in the fear of God. In the first place, by intimating that men are
destitute of right understanding and sound judgment, because they yield not
themselves to be governed by God with reverence and fear, he imputes it to his
own indolence, that by reason of the darkness of his mind, he had wandered so
far astray after his own lusts; and yet, on the other hand, he promises himself
the guidance and direction of the Holy Spirit, if he only yield himself wholly
to God, and show that he is willing to learn. Moreover, the interrogatory style
of speaking, which he here employs, seems designed to show how few there are who
fear God:for, although all men in general pray, and manifest some appearance of
piety, yet where is there one among so many who is really in earnest? Instead of
this, almost all men indulge themselves in their own drowsiness. The fear of
God, therefore, is very rare; and on this account it is that the world, for the
most part, continues destitute of the Spirit of counsel and
wisdom.
Some interpreters render the word
choose in the present tense, instead of the future, shall choose;
as if it had been said, that God shows the way which he approves, and in
which he wishes men to walk. With this interpretation I cannot agree; for, in my
judgment, the word choose rather refers to every individual; as if it had
been said, Provided we are disposed to fear God, he will not be wanting
on his part, but will always direct us by the Spirit of wisdom to choose the
right way. When we are called upon to adopt some particular course in life, we
find ourselves as it were placed between two ways, and know not which of them to
follow;
fa524 nay, in almost all our affairs we are
held in suspense and doubt, unless God appear to show us the way. David
therefore says, that although men know not what is right, and what they ought to
choose, yet provided they submit to God with pious docility of mind, and are
willing to follow him, he will always manifest himself towards them as a sure
and faithful guide. As, however, the fear of God is not naturally in us, it were
foolish for any man to argue from this place, that God does not begin to take
care of men until, by their own previous efforts, they insinuate themselves into
his favor, that he may aid them in their pious endeavors. David has just
declared, that this grace comes directly from God, when he says that God teaches
the transgressors:and now he adds, in the second place, that after men have once
been subdued and moulded to meekness of spirit, God still takes them under his
charge, guiding and directing them till they are able, by the illumination of
the Holy Spirit, to know what is their
duty.
13.
His soul shall dwell in
good. If the supreme felicity of man
consists in undertaking or attempting nothing except by the warrant of God, it
follows that it is also a high and incomparable benefit to have him for our
conductor and guide through life, that we may never go astray. But, in addition
to this, an earthly blessing is here promised, in which the fruit of the
preceding grace is distinctly shown, as Paul also teaches,
"Godliness is profitable
unto all things, having promise of the life that now is, and of that which is to
come."
(<540408>1
Timothy 4:8,)
The sum is, that those who truly serve God are not
only blessed as to spiritual things, but are also blessed by him as to their
condition in the present life. It is indeed true, that God does not always deal
with them according to their desires, and that the blessings which they would
wish do not always flow in a certain and uniform manner. On the contrary, it
often happens that they are tossed with sickness and trouble, whilst the wicked
enjoy prosperity. But we must know, that as often as God withdraws his blessing
from his own people, it is for the purpose of awakening them to a sense of their
condition, and discovering to them how far removed they still are from the
perfect fear of God. And yet, in so far as it is expedient for them, they now
enjoy the blessings of God, so that, in comparison of worldly men, and the
despisers of God, they are truly happy and blessed, because, even in their
greatest poverty, they never lose the assurance that God is present with them;
and being sustained by this consolation, they enjoy peace and tranquillity of
mind. It is indeed true, that all our miseries proceed from this one source
— that by our sins we prevent the divine blessing from flowing down in a
uniform course upon us; and yet, amidst such a state of confusion, his grace
never ceases to shine forth, so that the condition of the godly is always better
than that of others:for although they are not satiated with good things, yet
they are continually made to experience a sense of the fatherly favor of God.
And to this I am willing to refer the word soul, namely, that, in the
reception of the gifts of God, they do not devour them without feeling a sense
of their sweetness, but really relish them, so that the smallest competency is
of more avail to satisfy them than the greatest abundance is to satisfy the
ungodly. Thus, according as every man is contented with his condition, and
cheerfully cherishes a spirit of patience and tranquillity, his soul is said
to dwell in good. Some interpreters apply this word to dwell or
abide to the time of death; but this interpretation is more subtle than
solid. The inspired penman rather speaks, as we have already said, of the
condition of the present life.
fa525 He adds, in the second place, by way of
illustration, that the posterity of the faithful
shall inherit the
land, and from this it follows, that God
continues to extend his favor towards them. Hence we may again infer, that the
death of God's servants does not imply their utter destruction, and that they do
not cease to exist when they pass out of this world, but continue to live for
ever. It would be absurd to suppose that God would totally deprive of life those
for whose sake he does good even to others. As to what is here said, that the
children of the saints shall inherit the land, it has been touched upon
elsewhere, and it will be shown still more fully on the thirty-seventh Psalm, in
what respects, and how this is
accomplished.
14.
The counsel of
Jehovah. The Psalmist here confirms what
he had just said in a preceding verse, namely, that God will faithfully
discharge the office of a teacher and master to all the godly; and, after his
usual manner, he repeats the same sentiment twice in the same verse for the
covenant of God is nothing else than his secret or counsel.
By the use of the term secret, he means to magnify and extol the
excellency of the doctrine which is revealed to us in the law of God. However
much worldly men, through the pride and haughtiness of their hearts, despise
Moses and the prophets, the faithful nevertheless acknowledge, that in the
doctrine which they contain, the secrets of heaven, which far surpass the
comprehension of man, are revealed and unfolded. Whoever, therefore, desires to
derive instruction from the law, let him regard with reverence and esteem the
doctrine which it contains. We are, farther, by this place admonished to
cultivate the graces of meekness and humility, lest, in reliance upon our own
wisdom, or trusting to our own understanding, we should attempt, by our own
efforts, to comprehend those mysteries and secrets, the knowledge of which David
here declares to be the prerogative of God alone. Again, since the fear of the
Lord is said to be the beginning, and as it were the way that leads to a right
understanding of his will,
(<19B110>Psalm
111:10,) according as any one desires to increase in faith, so also let him
endeavor to advance in the fear of the Lord. Moreover, when piety reigns in the
heart, we need have no fear of losing our labor in seeking God. It is indeed
true, that the covenant of God is a secret which far exceeds human
comprehension; but as we know that he does not in vain enjoin us to seek him, we
may rest assured that all those who endeavor to serve him with an upright desire
will be brought, by the teaching of the Holy Spirit, to the knowledge of that
heavenly wisdom which is appointed for their salvation. But, in the meantime,
David indirectly rebukes those who falsely and groundlessly boast that they are
interested in the covenant of God, while they rest merely in the letter of the
law, and have no saving impressions of the fear of God. God, it is true,
addresses his word indiscriminately to the righteous and the wicked; but men do
not comprehend it, unless they have sincere piety; just as
<232911>Isaiah
29:11, says, that as regards the ungodly, the law is like "a book that is
sealed." And, therefore, it is no wonder that there is here made a distinction
between those who truly serve God, and to whom he makes known his secret, and
the wicked or hypocrites. But when we see David in this confidence coming boldly
to the school of God, and leading others along with him, let us know, as he
clearly shows, that it is a wicked and hateful invention to attempt to deprive
the common people of the Holy Scriptures, under the pretense of their being a
hidden mystery; as if all who fear him from the heart, whatever their state or
condition in other respects may be, were not expressly called to the knowledge
of God's covenant.
15.
Mine eyes are continually
towards Jehovah. David here speaks of
his own faith, and of its perseverance, not in the way of boasting, but to
encourage himself in the hope of obtaining his requests, so that he might give
himself the more readily and cheerfully to prayer. As the promise is made to all
who trust in God, that they shall not be disappointed of their hope, and that
they shall never be put to shame, the saints often make this their shield of
defense. Meanwhile, David shows to others, by his own example, the right manner
of prayer, telling them that they should endeavor to keep their thoughts fixed
upon God. As the sense of sight is very quick, and exercises an entire influence
over the whole frame, it is no uncommon thing to find all the affections denoted
by the term eyes. The reason which immediately follows shows still more
plainly, that in the mind of David hope was associated with desire; as if he had
said, That in resting his confidence in the help of God, he did so, not in doubt
or uncertainty, but because he was persuaded that he would be his deliverer. The
pronoun He, it ought to be observed, is also emphatic. It shows that
David did not gaze around him in every direction, after the manner of those who,
being in uncertainty, devise for themselves various methods of deliverance and
salvation, but that he was contented with God
alone.
Psalm
25:16-22
16. Have respect unto me,
and pity me, for I am alone and poor. 17. The troubles of my heart are
enlarged; bring thou me out of my distresses. 18. Look upon mine
affliction and my trouble,
fa526 and take away all my sins. 19.
Behold mine enemies, for they are increased; and they hate me with a
violent
fa527 hatred. 20. Preserve my soul,
and deliver me, that I may not be ashamed; for I have put my trust in thee.
21. Let integrity and uprightness preserve me, for I have waited upon
thee. 22. Do thou, O God! redeem Israel from all his
troubles.
16.
Have respect unto
me. As the flesh is ever ready to
suggest to our minds that God has forgotten us, when he ceases to manifest his
power in aiding us, David here follows the order which nature dictates, in
asking God to have respect unto him, as if he had altogether neglected him
before. Now, it appears to me that the words might be explained thus:Have
respect unto me, in order to pity me. He accounts it at once the cause and the
source of his salvation to be regarded of God; and then he adds the effect of
it:for as soon as God, of his own good pleasure, shall vouchsafe to regard us,
his hand also will be ready to help us. Again, in order to excite the compassion
of God, he sets forth his own misery, expressly stating that he is alone,
that is to say, solitary;
fa528 and then he describes himself as
poor. There can be no doubt that, in speaking thus, he alludes to the
promises in which God declares that he will be always present with the afflicted
and oppressed, to aid and help them.
17.
The troubles of my heart are
enlarged. In this verse he acknowledges
not only that he had to contend outwardly with his enemies and the troubles
which they occasioned him, but that he was also afflicted inwardly with sorrow
and anguish of heart. It is also necessary to observe the manner of expression
which he here employs, and by which he intimates that the weight and number of
his trials had accumulated to such an extent that they filled his whole heart,
even as a flood of waters bursting every barrier, and extending far and wide,
covers a whole country. Now, when we see that the heart of David had sometimes
been wholly filled with anguish, we need no longer wonder if at times the
violence of temptation overwhelm us; but let us ask with David, that even whilst
we are as it were at the point of despair, God would succor
us.
18.
Look upon mine
affliction. By repeating these
complaints so frequently, he plainly shows that the calamities with which he was
assailed were not some slight and trivial evils. And this ought to be carefully
marked by us, so that when trials and afflictions shall have been measured out
to us after the same manner, we may be enabled to lift up our souls to God in
prayer; for the Holy Spirit has set before our view this representation, that
our minds may not fail us under the multitude or weight of afflictions. But in
order to obtain an alleviation of these miseries, David again prays that his
sins may be pardoned, recalling to his recollection what he had already stated,
that he could not expect to enjoy the divine favor, unless he were first
reconciled to God by receiving a free pardon. And, indeed, they are very
insensible who, contented with deliverance from bodily affliction, do not search
out the evils of their own hearts, that is to say, their sins, but as much as in
them lies rather desire to have them buried in oblivion. To find a remedy,
therefore, to his cares and sorrows, David begins by imploring the remission of
his sins, because, so long as God is angry with us, it must necessarily follow,
that all our affairs shall come to an unhappy termination; and he has always
just ground of displeasure against us so long as our sins continue, that is to
say, until he pardons them.
fa529 And although the Lord has various ends
in view in bringing his people under the cross, yet we ought to hold fast the
principle, that as often as God afflicts us, we are called to examine our own
hearts, and humbly to seek reconciliation with
him.
19.
Behold mine
enemies. In this verse David complains
of the number and cruelty of his enemies, because the more the people of God are
oppressed, the more is he inclined to aid them; and in proportion to the
magnitude of the danger by which they are surrounded, he assists them the more
powerfully. The words, hatred of
violence,
fa530 are here to be understood of a
cruel and sanguinary hatred. Now, as the rage of David's enemies was so great,
that nothing short of his death would satisfy them, he calls upon God to become
the guardian and protector of his life; and from this it may be inferred, as I
have already said, that he was now placed in extreme danger. The clause which
immediately follows, That I may
not be ashamed, may be understood in two
ways. Some retain the future tense, I shall not be ashamed, as if David
felt assured that he was already heard by God, and as the reward of his hope
promised himself a gracious answer to his prayers. I am rather inclined to the
opposite opinion — to consider these words as still forming a part of his
prayer. The amount of what is stated therefore is, that as he trusts in God, he
prays that the hope of salvation which he had formed might not be disappointed.
There is nothing better fitted to impart a holy ardor to our prayers, than when
we are able to testify with sincerity of heart that we confide in God. And,
therefore, it behoves us to ask with so much the greater care, that he would
increase our hope when it is small, awaken it when it is dormant, confirm it
when it is wavering, strengthen it when it is weak, and that he would even raise
it up when it is overthrown.
21.
Let integrity and uprightness
preserve me. Some are of opinion, that
in these words David simply prays that he may be preserved from all mischief, on
the ground that he had conducted himself inoffensively towards others, and had
abstained from all deceit and violence. Others make the words to contain a
twofold subject of prayer, and understand them as including at the same time a
desire that God would bestow upon him a sincere and upright purpose of heart;
and all this lest he should break forth into revenge, and other unlawful means
of preserving his life. Thus the meaning would be:Lord, although my flesh may
urge me to seek relief from whatever quarter it may appear, and mine enemies
also may constrain me to it by their importunity, yet do thou subdue within me
every sinful passion, and every perverse desire, so that I may always exercise
over my mind a pure and entire control; and let integrity and uprightness
suffice as two powerful means of preserving me. We prefer the first
interpretation, because he immediately subjoins a proof of his integrity.
Whosoever waits upon God with a meek and quiet spirit, will rather suffer any
thing which men can inflict, than allow himself to contend unrighteously with
his enemies. In my opinion, therefore, David protests that such was the
rectitude of his behavior amongst men, that the persecution of his enemies was
wholly unmerited and unjust; and being conscious of having given no offense to
any, he calls upon God as the protector of his innocence. But as he has already,
in three different places, acknowledged that he was justly visited with
affliction, it may seem strange that he should now glory in his integrity. This
apparent inconsistency has already been explained in another place, where we
have shown that the saints, in respect of themselves, always come into the
presence of God with humility, imploring his forgiveness:and yet this does not
prevent them from setting forth before him the goodness of their cause, and the
justice of their claims. At the same time, in saying that he trusted
in God, he only states what indeed is essentially necessary; for, in
undertaking our defense, it is not enough that we have justice on our side,
unless depending upon his promises, we rely with confidence upon his protection.
It often happens, that men of firmness and prudence, even when their cause is
good, do not always succeed in its defense, because they confide in their own
understanding, or rely upon fortune. In order, therefore, that God may become
the protector and defender of our innocence, let us first conduct ourselves
uprightly and innocently towards our enemies, and then commit ourselves entirely
to his protection.
22.
Do thou, O God! redeem
Israel. By this conclusion David shows
of what character the enemies were of whom he complained. From this it would
appear that they were domestic enemies, who, like some disease raging within the
bowels, were now the cause of trouble and vexation to the people of God. By the
word redeem, which he here employs, we may infer that the Church was at
that time oppressed with hard bondage; and, therefore, I have no doubt that in
this psalm he alludes to Saul and others who reigned with him in a tyrannical
manner. At the same time, he shows that he has respect not merely to his own
benefit, but that he comprehends in his prayer the state of the whole realm,
just as the mutual communion and connection which subsist among the saints
require that every individual, deeply affected by a sense of the public
calamities which befall the Church at large, should unite with all the others in
lamentation before God. This contributed in no small degree to confirm the faith
of David, when, regarding himself as in all things connected with the whole body
of the faithful, he considered that all the afflictions and wrongs which he
endured were common to himself with them. And we ought to regard it as of the
greatest importance, that in accordance with this rule, every one of us, in
bewailing his private miseries and trials, should extend his desires and prayers
to the whole Church.
PSALM
26.
This psalm, for the most part, is similar to the
preceding. The prophet, oppressed with numerous wrongs, and finding no succor in
the world, implores the aid of God, entreating him to undertake the cause of a
man unrighteously afflicted, and to assert his innocence. And as his contest was
with hypocrites, he appeals to the judgment of God, sharply reproving them for
making a false profession of God's name. In the conclusion, as if he had
obtained his wish, he promises a sacrifice of praise to God for his
deliverance.
A Psalm of
David.
Psalm
26:1-4
1. Judge me, O Jehovah!
because I have walked in mine integrity, and trusted in Jehovah, I shall not
stumble. 2. Prove me, O Jehovah! and try me; search my reins and my
heart. 3. For thy goodness is before mine eyes: I have therefore walked
in thy truth. 4. I have not sat with vain men, neither will I walk with
deceitful men.
1.
Judge me, O Jehovah!
I have just said, that David betakes himself to
the judgment of God, because he found neither equity nor humanity among men. The
Hebrew word which is rendered to judge, signifies to undertake the
cognisance of a cause. The meaning here, therefore, is as if David called upon
God to be the defender of his right.
fa531 When God leaves us for a time to the
injuries and petulance of our enemies, he seems to neglect our cause; but when
he restrains them from assailing us at their pleasure he clearly demonstrates
that the defense of our cause is the object of his care. Let us, therefore,
learn from the example of David, when we are destitute of man's aid, to have
recourse to the judgment-seat of God, and to rely upon his protection. The
clause which follows is variously explained by interpreters. Some read it in
connection with the first clause,
Judge me, O Jehovah! because I
have walked in mine integrity; but
others refer it to the last clause, Because I have walked in mine integrity,
therefore I shall not stumble. In my opinion, it may be properly connected
with both. As it is the proper work of God to maintain and defend righteous
causes, the Psalmist, in constituting him his defender, summons him as the
witness of his integrity and trust, and thus conceives the hope of obtaining his
aid. If, on the other hand, any one thinks that the clauses should be separated,
it seems most probable that this sentence,
judge me, O
Lord! should be read by itself; and then
that the second prayer should follow,
that God would not allow him to
stumble, because he had behaved himself inoffensively and
uprightly, etc. But there is a force in
the possessive pronoun my, which interpreters have overlooked. For David
does not simply aver that he had been upright, but that he had constantly
proceeded in an upright course, without being driven from his purpose, however
powerful the devices by which he had been assailed. When wicked men attack us
with a view to overwhelm us, either by force or fraud, we know how difficult it
is to preserve always the same fortitude. We place our hope of victory in
endeavoring resolutely and vigorously to oppose force to force, and art to art.
And this is a temptation which so much the more affects honest and steady men,
who are otherwise zealous to do well, when the cruelty of their enemies compels
them to turn aside from the right path. Let us, therefore, learn from the
example of David, even when an opportunity of injuring our enemies is offered
us, and when by various methods they force and provoke us, to remain firm in our
course, and not suffer ourselves to be diverted in any manner from persevering
in the path of our integrity.
2.
Prove
me,
fa532 O
Jehovah! The more that David observed
himself basely and undeservedly pursued with calumnies, the more powerfully was
he excited by the vehemence of his grief fearlessly to assert his rectitude. Nor
does he merely clear himself of outward sins; he glories also in the uprightness
of his heart, and the purity of its affections, tacitly comparing himself, at
the same time, with his enemies. As they were gross hypocrites, proudly boasting
of their reverence for God, he lays open before him their shameless effrontery
and hardihood. This protestation, too, shows how intimately acquainted he was
with himself, when he durst offer to submit the whole recesses of his heart to
the examination of God. It is to be observed, however, that it was the
wickedness of his enemies which forced him to commend himself so much. Had he
not been unjustly condemned by men, he would have humbly deprecated such an
examination, as he well knew, notwithstanding his zeal to act aright, that he
was far from perfection. But when he felt himself to be falsely accused, the
injustice and cruelty of men emboldened him to appeal to God's judgment-seat
without hesitation. And as he knew that an external appearance of innocence was
of no avail there, he brings forward the honest uprightness of his heart. The
distinction which some make here, that the heart signifies the higher
affections, and the reins those that are sensual (as they term them) and
more gross, is more subtle than solid. We know that the Hebrews understood by
the term reins that which is most secret in men. David, therefore,
conscious of his innocence, offers the whole man to the examination of God; not
like careless, or rather stupid men, who, flattering themselves, imagine that
they will deceive God with their pretences. It is evident, on the contrary, that
he had honestly and thoroughly searched himself, before he presented himself
with such confidence in the divine presence. And this we must especially bear in
mind, if we would desire to obtain the approbation of God, that when unjustly
persecuted, we must not only abstain from retaliation, but also persevere in a
right spirit.
3.
For thy goodness is before
mine eyes. This verse may be viewed as
one sentence, or divided into two parts, but with almost the same sense. If the
former reading is adopted, both the verbs will be emphatic, after this
manner:"Because thy goodness, O Lord, has been ever before mine eyes, and
I have trusted in thy faithfulness, I have restrained all wicked lusts in my
heart, lest, provoked by the malice of mine enemies, I should be forced to
retaliate." By this interpretation there would be the rendering of a cause. The
other exposition, also, is not unsuitable, namely, "Because thy goodness has
been before mine eyes, I have walked in the truth which thou commandest." In
this case the conjunction, as is common among the Hebrews, is superfluous. But
although this exposition is allied to the former, I would rather prefer one less
remote from the words. As it is a rare and difficult virtue, not only to refrain
one's self from wicked actions, when greatly tempted thereto, but also to
preserve integrity of heart; the prophet declares in what manner he pursued his
course in the midst of such powerful temptations, telling us that it was by
setting the goodness of God, which so carefully preserves his servants, before
his eyes, lest, declining to evil practices, he might deprive himself of his
protection; and by confiding in his faithfulness, he possessed his soul in
patience, firmly persuaded that God would never forsake his faithful people who
trusted in him. And certainly, had he not relied upon the goodness of God, he
could not have so constantly prosecuted the path of integrity amidst such
numerous and such severe assaults. It is, indeed, a remarkable difference
between the children of God and worldly men, that the former, in the hope of a
favorable issue at the Lord's hand, rely upon his word, and are not driven by
restlessness to mischievous practices; while the latter, although they maintain
a good cause, yet because they are ignorant of the providence of God, are
hurried hither and thither; follow unlawful counsels; betake themselves to
craftiness; and, in short, have no other object than to overcome evil with evil.
Whence, accordingly, their miserable and sorrowful, and often their tragical
ends, but because, despising the favor of God, they give themselves up to
cunning and deceit? In short, David was steady in preserving his uprightness,
because he had resolved that God should be his guide. In the first place,
therefore, he mentions his goodness, and afterwards he adds, his
truth, because his goodness, which enables us to walk with unyielding
courage in the midst of all temptations, is only known to us by his
promises.
4.
I have not sat with vain men. He again
declares the very great dissimilarity which existed between him and his
adversaries. For the contrast is always to be observed, that wicked men, by all
the harm and mischief they wrought against him, could never drive him from the
path of rectitude. This verse might likewise be joined with the former, as if
completing the sentence, in this way, That David, by confiding in the favor of
God, had withdrawn himself from deceivers. The words, sitting and
walking, denote sharing in counsel and fellowship in working,
according to what is said in the first psalm. David denies that he had any
intercourse with vain and deceitful men. And certainly the best remedy to recall
and save us from the assembly of the wicked is to fix our eyes upon God's
goodness; for he who walks in the confidence of God's protection, committing all
events to his providence, will never imitate their deceitfulness. Those whom he
denominates in the first clause, men of vanity, he soon after terms
µyml[n,
naälamim, that is, close and wrapped up in
craftiness.
fa533 For in this consists the vanity
of dissimulation, that deceitful men conceal in their hearts another thing than
that which their tongues declare. It is, however, absurd to derive this word
from
µl[,
alam, to play, for it is out of place here to compare their impostures to
children's play. I confess, indeed, that those who give themselves to craftiness
are mockers; but why have recourse to such a forced exposition, when it is plain
that the word shows the source from which all lying and deceit proceed? Thus
faith, which steadily looks to God's promises, is aptly opposed to all the
crooked and iniquitous counsels in which unbelief involves us as often as we
ascribe not proper honor to the guardianship of God. David teaches, by his own
example, that we have not the slightest cause to fear that our integrity will
make us a prey to the ungodly, when God promises us safety under his hand. The
children of God, indeed, are prudent, but their prudence is altogether different
from that of the flesh. Under the guidance and government of the Holy Spirit,
they take every necessary precaution against snares, but in such a manner as not
to practice any craftiness.
Psalm
26:5-7
5. I hate the assembly of
transgressors, and I will not sit with the wicked. 6. I will wash my
hands in purity,
fa534 and will encompass thine altar, O
Jehovah! 7. That I may make men to hear the voice of thy praise, and tell
them of all thy wonderful
works.
5.
I hate the
assembly. The Psalmist protests again
how greatly he abhorred the ungodly. Formerly he denied that he had any
fellowship with them; now he still more explicitly declares that he fled from
their company with loathing, for that is the meaning of the phrase, I hate.
It is indeed true, that the wicked are everywhere hated; but how few
withdraw themselves from them, that they may not imitate their vices! David
asserts both; he tells us that he hated their society, and that he had no
communion with them, from which it appears that he warred not so much with their
persons as with their evil doings. He mentions also as another qualification,
that he shunned the wicked in such a manner as not on that account to forsake
the congregation of God, or withdraw himself from the company of those with whom
he was commanded by divine appointment to associate. Many err in this way
grievously; imagining when they see the evil mingled with the good, that they
will be infected with pollution, unless they immediately withdraw themselves
from the whole congregation. This preciseness drove the Donatists of old, and
prior to them the Cathari and the Novatians, into mischievous schisms. In our
own times, too, the Anabaptists, from a similar conceit, have separated
themselves from the sacred assemblies, because they reckoned them not so free
from all defilement as could have been wished. Moreover, the Donatists made
themselves a laughing-stock in a certain process, by tenaciously clinging to
mere words. When an assembly was held to settle dissensions, and they were
invited by the president of the meeting, with a view to do honor to them, to
take a seat, they replied, they would stand, because it was not lawful to "sit
with the wicked." Why then, wittily replied Augustine, did your conscience
permit you to come in amongst us? for the one is written as well as the other,
I will not go in to the wicked, neither will I sit with the ungodly.
David, therefore, prudently moderates his zeal, and while separating himself
from the ungodly, ceases not to frequent the temple, as the divine commandment
and the order prescribed in the law required. When he denominates them the
assembly of the ungodly, we may unquestionably conclude, that their number
was not few; nay, it is probable that they flaunted about at that time, as if
they alone were exalted above the people of God, and were lords over them:yet
this did not prevent David from coming as usual to the sacrifices. Public care,
indeed, is to be used that the Church be not defiled by such wickedness, and
every man ought privately to endeavor, in his own place, that his remissness
and forbearance do not cherish the disorders which these vices occasion.
Although, however, this strictness should not be exercised with that care which
is necessary, there is nothing in this to hinder any of the faithful from
piously and holily remaining in the fellowship of the Church. It is to be
observed, in the meantime, that what retained David, was his communion with God
and with sacred things.
6.
I will wash my hands in
purity. Referring, in these words, to
the ordinary use of the sacrifices, he makes a distinction between himself and
those who professed to offer the same divine worship, and thrust themselves
forward in the services of the sanctuary, as if they alone had the sole right to
perform them. As David, therefore, and these hypocrites were one in this
respect, that they entered the sanctuary, and surrounded the sacred altar
together, he proceeds to show that he was a true worshipper, declaring, that he
not only diligently attended to the external rites, but came to worship God with
unfeigned devotion. It is obvious that he alludes to the solemn rite of washing
which was practiced under the law.
fa535 He, accordingly, reproves the gross
superstition of hypocrites, who in seeking only the purification of water,
neglected true purification; whereas it was God's design, in the appointment of
the outward sign, to put men in mind of their inward pollution, and thus to
encourage them to repentance. The outward washing alone, instead of profiting
hypocrites, kept them at a greater distance from God. When the Psalmist,
therefore, says, I will wash my
hands in innocence, he intimates that
they only gather more pollution and filth by their washings. The Hebrew word
ˆwyqn,
nikkayon, signifies the cleanness of any thing, and is figuratively used
for innocence. We thus see, that as hypocrites derive no moral purity
whatever from their washings, David mocks at the labor with which they vainly
toil and torment themselves in such rites. However high, therefore, the wicked
may be exalted in the Church, and though crowds of them should fill our
sanctuaries, let us, after the example of David, celebrate the outward
profession of our faith in such a manner as not deceitfully to substitute its
external rites in the room of true devotion. Thus shall we be pure and free from
all stain of wickedness. Moreover, as the people were not permitted to touch the
altar, David uses the word
encompass.
fa536
7.
That I may make men to hear,
etc. In these words, he shows that he
referred the sacrifices to their proper use and design, which hypocrites were
far from doing. They neither know, nor do they consider, for what purpose God
appointed the services of worship, but think it sufficient to thrust themselves
into the divine presence with the pomp and form of their dissimulation. David,
therefore, wishing to distinguish spiritual worship from that which is
fictitious and counterfeit, affirms that he came into the sanctuary to set forth
the praise of God's name. There is, however, a synecdoche in his words, as only
one kind of worship is mentioned, although, in offering the sacrifices, the
exercise of repentance and faith was required, as well as the giving of thanks.
But as the ultimate design of the sacrifices, or at least their principal object
was to celebrate the goodness of God in thus acknowledging his blessings, there
was no impropriety in comprehending the other parts of worship under this. Thus,
in
<195014>Psalm
50:14, the sacrifice of praise is preferred to all external ceremonies, as if
the whole of devotion consisted in it alone. Likewise in
<19B612>Psalm
116:12, it is said, "What shall I render unto the Lord for all his benefits? I
will take the cup of salvation, and call upon the name of the Lord." Moreover,
that he may the better commend the acknowledged power of God, and more
impressively extol his benefits, David employs the phrase wondrous; as if
he had said, that it was in no ordinary way that God had helped
him.
Psalm
26:8-11
8. O Jehovah! I have loved
the habitation of thy house,
fa537 and the dwelling-place of thy glory.
9. Gather not my soul with wicked men, nor my life with
blood;
fa538 10. For in their hands is
maliciousness, and their right hand is full of bribes. 11. But I will
walk in mine integrity: redeem me, and be merciful to
me.
8.
O Jehovah! I have loved,
etc. In this verse he confirms what he had said
before, that he came not into the sanctuary in a careless manner, but with
serious devotion. Irreligious men, although they often resort to the sacred
assemblies, frequent them merely as lurking places, where they may escape the
eye of God. On the contrary, the truly pious and pure in heart resort to them,
not for the sake of vain ostentation, but as they are sincerely bent on seeking
God, they willingly and affectionately employ the helps which he there affords
them; and the advantage which they derive from them creates love to them in
their hearts, and longings after them. This declaration farther shows, that
however David excelled others in faith, yet he was not without fear lest the
violence of his enemies might deprive him of the ordinary means of instruction
which God had conferred on his Church. He felt his need of the Church's common
discipline and order, and he therefore anxiously labored to retain his enjoyment
of them. From this we infer the impious pride of those who look with contempt on
the services of religion as unnecessary, although David himself could not live
without them. Another consideration, indeed, existed in those days, I confess,
while the law, like a schoolmaster, held the ancient people in a state of
servitude compared with ours. Our case, however, is one with theirs in this
respect, that the weakness of our faith requires help as well as theirs. And as
God for this purpose has appointed the sacraments, as well as the whole order of
the Church, woe to the pride of those who recklessly desert the services which
we perceive to have been held in such high esteem by the pious servants of God.
The Hebrew word
ˆw[m,
me-on, according to some, is derived from a
word
fa539 which signifies an eye; and they
translate it comeliness, or appearance. This is the translation of
the Septuagint.
fa540 But as the word is almost every where
used to signify a dwelling-place, which is more simple, I prefer to
retain it. The sanctuary is called God's house, and the dwelling-place
of his glory; and we know how frequently expressions of this kind are
employed in Scripture to bear testimony to the presence of God. Not that God
either dwelt in a tent, or wished to confine the minds of his people to earthly
symbols; but it was needful to remind the faithful of God's present goodness,
that they might not think they sought him in vain, as we have elsewhere already
said. Now, that God's glory may dwell among us, it is necessary that a lively
image of it should shine forth in word and sacraments. From this it follows,
that the temples which are reckoned such among Papists are only filthy brothels
of Satan.
9.
Gather not my soul with
wicked men. Having now affirmed his
innocence, he has recourse again to prayer, and calls upon God to defend him. At
first sight, indeed, it appears strange to pray that God would not involve a
righteous man in the same destruction with the wicked; but God, with paternal
indulgence, allows this freedom in prayer, that his people may themselves in
this way correct their anxieties, and overcome the fears with which they are
tempted. David, when he conceived this supplication, in order to free himself
from anxiety and fear, placed before his eyes the righteous judgment of God, to
whom nothing is more abhorrent than to mingle good and bad together without
distinction. The Hebrew word
psa,
asaph, sometimes signifies to gather together, and sometimes to
destroy. In this place, I am of opinion it signifies to gather into a
heap, as was wont to be the case in a confused slaughter. This was the
objection stated by Abraham,
"That
be far from thee to do after this manner, to slay the righteous with the
wicked:and that the righteous should be as the wicked, that be far from thee."
(<011825>Genesis
18:25,)
Let us remember, therefore, that these
forms of prayer are dictated by the Holy Spirit, in order that the faithful may
unhesitatingly assure themselves that God still sits in inquisition upon every
man's case, in order to give righteous judgment at last. In the second clause,
instead of the phrase, wicked men, he uses bloody men, amplifying
what he had said. For although many wicked men rush not all at once to murder,
yet in process of time they harden themselves to cruelty; nor does Satan allow
them to rest until he precipitate them into deeds of
blood.
10.
For in their hands is
maliciousness. The Hebrew word
hmz,
zimmah, signifies properly an inward stratagem, or device. But
here it is not improperly applied to the hands, because David wished
to intimate, that the wicked, of whom he was speaking, not only secretly
imagined deceits, but also vigorously executed with their hands the malice which
their hearts devised. When he farther says,
Their right hands are full of
bribes, we may infer from this, that it
was not the common people whom he pointed out for observation, but the nobility
themselves, who were most guilty of practising this corruption. Although the
common and baser sort of men may be hired for reward, and suborned as agents in
wickedness, yet we know that bribes are offered chiefly to judges, and other
great men who are in power; and we likewise know, that at the time referred to
here the worst of men bore sway. It was no wonder, therefore, that David
complained that justice was exposed to sale. We are farther admonished by this
expression, that those who delight in gifts can scarcely do otherwise than sell
themselves to iniquity. Nor is it in vain, unquestionably, that God declares
that
"gifts blind the eyes of
the wise, and pervert the hearts of the righteous,"
(<051619>Deuteronomy
16:19.)
11.
But I will walk in mine
integrity. In this repetition there is
to be remarked a circumstance which more clearly illustrates David's
righteousness; namely, that, in the midst of so many temptations, he steadily
held on his way. He saw many become suddenly rich by gifts, as we still see
those who sit at the helm of affairs accumulating to themselves, in a very brief
space, a great abundance of wealth, building sumptuous palaces, and extending
their lands far and wide. As no allurements could induce him to imitate their
example in this, he gave a proof of rare and heroic virtue. He therefore affirms
with truth, that although the world accounted them happy, he had not been
seduced from his wonted integrity, that thus it might appear that he ascribed
more to the providence of God than to evil practices. He, therefore, beseeches
God to redeem him, because, being oppressed with wrongs, and tempted in
various ways, he relied only on God, trusting that he would deliver him. From
this we may conclude, that he was at this time reduced to great straits. He
adds, Be merciful to
me, by which he shows that this
deliverance flows from the grace of God, as its true source; and we have already
seen that the cause is often put for the
effect.
Psalm
26:12
12. My foot hath stood in
uprightness:
fa541 in the congregations will I bless thee,
O Jehovah!
This verse may be explained in
two ways. Some are of opinion that David declares how carefully he had studied
uprightness among men; but I rather think that he celebrates the grace of God
towards him, and, at the same time, vows his gratitude. By the use of the
metaphor, therefore, he tells us that he was preserved in safety. And as he knew
that it was the hand of God alone which enabled him to stand, he therefore
addresses himself to the exercise of praise and thanksgiving. Nor does he merely
say, that he will acknowledge in private the goodness of God bestowed upon him,
but in public also, that the assemblies of God's people may be witnesses of it.
It is highly necessary that every one should publicly celebrate his experience
of the grace of God, as an example to others to confide in
him. fa542
PSALM
27.
In this psalm, David rehearses the desires and
meditations with which he had exercised himself in the midst of his great
dangers. The thanksgivings which he mingles with them show that it was composed
after his deliverance. It is also probable that he repeats at once the prayers
which had exercised his thoughts in his different meditations. Hence it is to be
seen here with what invincible fortitude of soul the holy man was endued, that
he might overcome the most grievous assaults of his enemies. His wonderful piety
shines forth in this, that he wished to live for no other purpose than to serve
God:nor could he be turned aside from this purpose by any anxiety or
trouble.
A Psalm of
David.
Psalm
27:1-3
1. Jehovah is my light and my
salvation, whom shall I fear? Jehovah is the strength of my life, of whom shall
I be afraid? 2. When the wicked came upon me to eat up my flesh, when my
oppressors and mine enemies came upon me, they stumbled and fell. 3.
Though armies should encamp against me, my heart shall not fear; though war
should rise against me, in this will I be
confident.
1.
Jehovah is my
light. This commencement may be
understood as meaning that David, having already experienced God's mercy,
publishes a testimony of his gratitude. But I rather incline to another meaning,
namely, that, perceiving the conflict he had to wage with the sharpest
temptations, he fortifies himself beforehand, and as it were brings together
matter for confidence:for it is necessary that the saints earnestly wrestle with
themselves to repel or subdue the doubts which the flesh is so prone to cherish,
that they may cheerfully and speedily betake themselves to prayer. David,
accordingly, having been tossed with various tempests, at length recovers
himself, and shouts triumphantly over the troubles with which he had been
harassed, rejoicing that whenever God displays his mercy and favor, there is
nothing to be feared. This is farther intimated by the accumulation of terms
which he employs, when he calls God not only
his
light, but
his
salvation, and
the
rock or
strength of his
life. His object was, to put a threefold
shield, as it were, against his various fears, as sufficient to ward them off.
The term light, as is well known, is used in Scripture to denote joy, or
the perfection of happiness. Farther, to explain his meaning, he adds that God
was his
salvation and
the strength of his
life, as it was by his help that he felt
himself safe, and free from the terrors of death. Certainly we find that all our
fears arise from this source, that we are too anxious about our life, while we
acknowledge not that God is its preserver. We can have no tranquillity,
therefore, until we attain the persuasion that our life is sufficiently guarded,
because it is protected by his omnipotent power. The interrogation, too, shows
how highly David esteemed the Divine protection, as he thus boldly exults
against all his enemies and dangers. Nor assuredly do we ascribe due homage to
God, unless, trusting to his promised aid, we dare to boast of the certainty of
our safety. Weighing, as it were, in scales the whole power of earth and hell,
David accounts it all lighter than a feather, and considers God alone as far
outweighing the whole.
Let us learn, therefore,
to put such a value on God's power to protect us as to put to flight all our
fears. Not that the minds of the faithful can, by reason of the infirmity of the
flesh, be at all times entirely devoid of fear; but immediately recovering
courage, let us, from the high tower of our confidence, look down upon all our
dangers with contempt. Those who have never tasted the grace of God tremble
because they refuse to rely on him, and imagine that he is often incensed
against them, or at least far removed from them. But with the promises of God
before our eyes, and the grace which they offer, our unbelief does him grievous
wrong, if we do not with unshrinking courage boldly set him against all our
enemies. When God, therefore, kindly allures us to himself, and assures us that
he will take care of our safety, since we have embraced his promises, or because
we believe him to be faithful, it is meet that we highly extol his power, that
it may ravish our hearts with admiration of himself. We must mark well this
comparison, What are all creatures to God? Moreover, we must extend this
confidence still farther, in order to banish all fears from our consciences,
like Paul, who, when speaking of his eternal salvation, boldly
exclaims,
"If God be for us, who
can be against us ?"
(<450834>Romans
8:34.)
2.
When the wicked,
etc. There is no reason for translating
this sentence, as some interpreters do, into the future
tense.
fa543 But while we retain the past tense
which the prophet employs, the words may be explained in a twofold manner. The
meaning but in the prophetic writings it is often used for the future. There
does not, however, as Calvin remarks, appear to be any necessity for translating
the verbs into the future tense in this passage, in which David may be
considered as contemplating the past evidences of the goodness of God towards
him, and from them taking encouragement with respect to the future. either is,
that David celebrates the victory which he had obtained by the blessing of God;
or there is a reference to the manner in which he had encouraged himself to hope
the best, even in the midst of his temptations, namely, by thinking of God's
former favors. The latter is the exposition which I prefer. They both, however,
amount to the same thing, and imply that David had no reason henceforth to doubt
of God's assistance when he considered his former experience; for nothing is of
greater use to confirm our faith, than the remembrance of those instances in
which God has clearly given us a proof not only of his grace, but of his truth
and power. I connect this verse, accordingly, with the following one. In the
former, David recalls to mind the triumphs which, by God's help, he had already
obtained; and from this he concludes, that by what hosts soever he may be
environed, or whatever mischief his enemies may devise against him, he would
fearlessly stand up against them. The Hebrew word
brq
karab, signifies to approach; but here it refers to the irruption
that David's enemies made upon him when they assaulted him. Some translate it
to fight, but this translation is flat. To testify his innocence, he
calls them wicked or froward, and by saying that they
came upon him to eat up his
flesh,
fa544 he expresses their savage
cruelty.
3.
Though armies should
encamp. He infers from his former
experience, as I have already mentioned, that whatever adversity may befall him,
he ought to hope well, and to have no misgivings about the divine protection,
which had been so effectually vouchsafed to him in his former need. He had
asserted this, indeed, in the first verse, but now, upon farther proof of it, he
repeats it. Under the terms, camps and armies, he includes
whatever is most formidable in the world:as if he had said, Although all men
should conspire for my destruction, I will disregard their violence, because the
power of God, which I know is on my side, is far above theirs. But when he
declares, My heart shall not
fear, this does not imply that he would
be entirely devoid of fear, — for that would have been more worthy of the
name of insensibility than of virtue; but lest his heart should faint under the
terrors which he had to encounter, he opposed to them the shield of faith. Some
transfer the word translated in this to the following verse, meaning that
he was confident that he would dwell in God's house; but I am of opinion that it
belongs rather to the preceding doctrine. For then does faith bring forth its
fruit in due season, when we remain firm and fearless in the midst of dangers.
David, therefore, intimates, that when the trial comes, his faith will prove
invincible, because it relies on the power of
God.
Psalm
27:4-6
4. One thing have I desired
of Jehovah, this will I follow after; that I may dwell in the house of Jehovah
all the days of my life, to behold the beauty of Jehovah, and diligently to
survey his temple. 5. For he shall hide me in his tent in the day of
evil:
fa545 he shall hide me in the secret place of
his tent; he shall set me up upon a rock. 6. And now shall he lift up my
head above mine enemies who surround me: and I will offer sacrifices of joy in
his tabernacle; I will sing and praise
Jehovah.
4.
One thing have I
desired. Some consider this as a
prophecy of the perpetuity of David's kingdom, on which not only his own
personal happiness depended, but also the happiness of his whole people; as if
he had said, I am so well contented with this singular proof of God's favor,
that I can think on nothing else night and day. In my opinion, however, it
appears a simpler interpretation to view the words as meaning, that although
David was banished from his country, despoiled of his wife, bereft of his
kinsfolk; and, in fine, dispossessed of his substance, yet he was not so
desirous for the recovery of these, as he was grieved and afflicted for his
banishment from God's sanctuary, and the loss of his sacred privileges. Under
the word one, there is an implied antithesis, in which David,
disregarding all other interests, displays his intense affection for the service
of God; so that it was bitterer to him to be an exile from the sanctuary, than
to be denied access to his own house. That David desired only one thing,
therefore, namely, to dwell in the house of the Lord, must be read in one
sentence. For there is no probability that he means by this some secret wish
which he suppressed, seeing he distinctly proclaims what it was that chiefly
troubled him. He adds, too, steadiness of purpose, declaring that he will not
cease to reiterate these prayers. Many may be seen spurring on with great
impetuosity at first, whose ardor, in process of time, not only languishes, but
is almost immediately extinguished. By declaring, therefore, that he would
persevere in this wish during his whole life, he thereby distinguishes between
himself and hypocrites.
We must, however,
observe by what motive David was so powerfully stimulated. "Surely," some may
say, "he could have called on God beyond the precincts of the temple. Wherever
he wandered as an exile, he carried with him the precious promise of God, so
that he needed not to put so great a value upon the sight of the external
edifice. He appears, by some gross imagination or other, to suppose that God
could be enclosed by wood and stones." But if we examine the words more
carefully, it will be easy to see, that his object was altogether different from
a mere sight of the noble building and its ornaments, however costly. He speaks,
indeed, of the beauty of the temple, but he places that beauty not so much in
the goodliness that was to be seen by the eye, as in its being the celestial
pattern which was shown to Moses, as it is written in
<022540>Exodus
25:40,
"And look that thou make
them after this pattern which was showed thee in the mount."
As the fashion of the temple was not framed according
to the wisdom of man, but was an image of spiritual things, the prophet directed
his eyes and all his affections to this object. Their madness is, therefore,
truly detestable who wrest this place in favor of pictures and images, which,
instead of deserving to be numbered among temple ornaments, are rather like dung
and filth, defiling all the purity of holy things. We should now consider,
whether the faithful are to be like-minded under the Christian or Gospel
dispensation.
fa546 I own, indeed, that we are in very
different circumstances from the ancient fathers; but so far as God still
preserves his people under a certain external order, and draws them to him by
earthly instructions, temples have still their beauty, which deservedly ought to
draw the affections and desires of the faithful to them. The Word, sacraments,
public prayers, and other helps of the same kind, cannot be neglected, without a
wicked contempt of God, who manifests himself to us in these ordinances, as in a
mirror or image.
5.
For he shall hide me in his
tent. Here the Psalmist promises himself
that his prayer would not be in vain. Although he is deprived of the visible
sanctuary for a time, he doubts not that, wherever he may be, he shall
experience the protecting power of God. And he alludes to the temple, because it
was a symbol to the faithful of the divine presence; as if he had said, that in
making the request which he mentioned he by no means lost his labor; for every
one who shall seek God sincerely, and with a pure heart, shall be safely
concealed under the wings of his protection. The figure of the temple, he
therefore affirms, was not an unmeaning one, for there God, so to speak, spread
forth his wings to gather true believers under his protection. From this he
concludes, that as he had no greater desire than to flee for refuge under these
wings, there would be a shelter ready for him in times of adversity, under the
divine protection, which, under the figure of a rock, he tells us, would
be impregnable like towers, which, for the sake of strength, were wont to be
built, in ancient times, in lofty places. Although he was, therefore, at this
time, environed by enemies on every side, yet he boasts that he shall overcome
them. It is, indeed, a common form of speech in the Scriptures to say, that
those who are oppressed with grief walk with a bowed down back and dejected
countenance, while, on the other hand, they lift up their heads when their
joyfulness is restored. Thus David spake,
<190304>Psalm
3:4, "Thou, Lord, art the lifter up of mine head." But because besieging is here
put in opposition to this, he meant to say, that in that divine refuge he would
be as it were lifted on high, so that he might fearlessly disregard the darts of
his enemies, which might have otherwise pierced him. And in hoping for victory,
though he was reduced to such straits as threatened instant death, he gives us a
remarkable proof of his faith; by which we are taught not to measure the aid of
God by outward appearances or visible means, but even in the midst of death to
hope for deliverance from his powerful and victorious
hand.
6.
And I will offer sacrifices
of triumph
fa547 in his
tabernacle. By making a solemn vow of
thanksgiving, after he shall have been delivered from dangers, he confirms
himself again in the hope of deliverance. The faithful under the Law, we know,
were wont, by a solemn rite, to pay their vows, when they had experienced any
remarkable blessing from God. Here, therefore, David, though in banishment, and
prohibited from approaching the temple, boasts that he would again come to the
altar of God, and offer the sacrifice of praise. It appears, however, that he
tacitly sets the holy rejoicing and songs, in which he promises to give thanks
to God, in opposition to the profane triumphings of the
world.
Psalm
27:7-9
7. Hear, O Jehovah! my voice,
with which I cry unto thee; have mercy upon me, and answer me. 8. My
heart said to thee,
fa548 Seek ye my face;
therefore,
fa549 thy face, O Jehovah! will I seek.
9. Hide not thy face from me; east not away thy servant in thy wrath:
thou hast been my strength; leave me not, neither forsake me utterly, O God of
my salvation!
7.
Hear, O Jehovah! my
voice. The Psalmist returns again to
prayer, and in doing so, he declares with what armor he was furnished to break
through his temptations. By the word cry, he expresses his vehemence, as
I have elsewhere said, that he may thereby move God the sooner to help him. For
the same purpose, also, he a little after mentions his misery, because the more
the faithful are oppressed, the more does their very need induce God to extend
his favor towards them.
8.
My heart said to
thee. The change of person in the verbs
has occasioned a variety of interpretations of this verse. But whoever closely
examines David's design will perceive that the text runs perfectly well. As it
becomes us not rashly to rush into the presence of God, until he first calls us,
David first tells us, that he carefully considered how gently and sweetly God
prevents his people, by spontaneously inviting them to seek his face; and then,
recovering his cheerfulness, he declares he would come wheresoever God may call
him. The sense of the Hebrew word
°l,
leka, is somewhat ambiguous. It may mean the same thing as tibi, to
thee, in Latin. But as the Hebrew letter
l,
lamed, is often used for the preposition of, or concerning,
it may properly enough be translated, my heart hath said of thee; an
exposition to which the majority of interpreters incline. More probably,
however, in my opinion, it denotes a mutual conversation between God and the
prophet. I have just said, that no one can believingly rise to seek God until
the way is first opened by God's invitation, as I have elsewhere shown from the
prophet's declaration,
"I will say, It is my
people; and they shall say, The Lord is my God,"
(<381309>Zechariah
13:9.)
David accordingly says, that in this way the door was
opened for him to seek God:he brings forward this promise, and thus responds, as
it were, to God.
fa550 And, certainly, if this symphony does
not precede, no man will conduct aright the chorus of the invitation. As soon,
therefore, as we hear God presenting himself to us, let us cordially reply,
Amen; and let us think with ourselves of his promises, as if they were
familiarly addressed to us. Thus true believers have no need to seek any subtle
artifice or tedious circuits to introduce themselves into God's favor, since
this preface prepares so easy a way for them, "However unworthy we are to be
received by thee, O Lord, yet thy commandment, by which thou enjoinest upon us
to come to thee, is sufficient encouragement to us." The voice of God,
therefore, ought to resound in our hearts, like an echo in hollow places, that
from this mutual concord there may spring confidence to call upon
him.
The term, face, is commonly
explained to mean help or succor; as if it had been said, Seek me.
But I am persuaded that the allusion here is also to the sanctuary, and that
David refers to the mode of manifestation in which God was wont to render
himself in some degree visible. No doubt, it is unlawful to form any gross or
carnal idea of him, but as he appointed the ark of the covenant to be a token of
his presence, it is, without any impropriety, every where denominated his face.
It is indeed true, that we are far from God so long as we abide in this world,
because faith is far removed from sight; but it is equally true, that we now see
God as in a mirror, and darkly,
(<461312>1
Corinthians 13:12,) until he shall openly show himself to us at the last day.
Under this word, therefore, I am persuaded, are represented to us those helps by
which God raises us to his presence, descending from his inconceivable glory to
us, and furnishing us on earth with a vision of his heavenly glory. But as it is
according to his own sovereign pleasure that God vouchsafes us to look upon him,
(as he does in Word and sacraments,) it becomes us steadily to fix our eyes on
this view, that it may not be with us as with the Papists, who, by means of the
wildest inventions, wickedly transform God into whatever shapes please their
fancy, or their brains have
conceived.
9.
Hide not thy face from
me. The Psalmist elegantly continues the
same form of speech, but with a different meaning. The face of God is now
employed to describe the sensible effects of his grace and favor:as if it had
been said, Lord, make me truly to experience that thou hast been near to me, and
let me clearly behold thy power in saving me. We must observe the distinction
between the theoretical knowledge derived from the Word of God and what is
called the experimental knowledge of his grace. For as God shows himself present
in operation, (as they usually speak,) he must first be sought in his Word. The
sentence which follows, Cast not
away thy servant in thine anger, some
Jewish interpreters expound in too forced a manner to mean, Suffer not thy
servant to be immersed in the wicked cares of this world, which are nothing but
anger and madness. I, however, prefer to translate the Hebrew word
hfn,
natah, as many translate it, to turn away from, or to remove.
Their meaning is more probable who interpret it, Make not thy servant to
decline to anger. When a person is utterly forsaken by God, he cannot but be
agitated within by murmuring thoughts, and break forth into the manifestations
of vexation and anger. If any one think that David now anticipates this
temptation, I shall not object, for he was not without reason afraid of
impatience, which weakens us and makes us go beyond the bounds of reason. But I
keep to the first exposition, as it is confirmed by the two words which follow;
and thus the term anger imports a tacit confession of sin; because,
although David acknowledges that God might justly cast him off, he deprecates
his anger. Moreover, by recalling to mind God's former favors, he encourages
himself to hope for more, and by this argument he moves God to continue his
help, and not to leave his work
imperfect.
Psalm
27:10-12
10. When my father and
mother shall forsake me, Jehovah will take me up. 11. Teach me thy way, O
Jehovah! and lead me in the right path, because of mine adversaries. 12.
Give me not up to the desire
fa551 of mine oppressors: for false witnesses
have risen up against me, and he who bringeth forth
violence.
10.
When my father and my mother
shall forsake me. As it appears from the
sacred history, that Jesse, so far as his opportunity admitted, performed his
duty to his son David, some are of opinion that the nobles and councillors are
here mentioned allegorically; but this is not suitable. Nor is it with any
reason that they urge this scruple. David does not complain that he was
unnaturally betrayed by his father or mother; but by this comparison he
magnifies the grace of God, declaring, that he would ever find him ready to help
him, although he might be forsaken of all men. The Hebrew particle
yk,
ki, for the most part, signifies for, but it is also known to be
often employed for the adverb of time, when. David, therefore, meant to
intimate, that whatever benevolence, love, zeal, attention, or service, might be
found among men, they are far inferior to the paternal mercy with which God
encircles his people. The highest degree of love among men, it is true, is to be
found in parents who love their children as their own bowels. But God advances
us higher, declaring, by the prophet Isaiah, that though a mother may forget the
child of her womb, he would always be mindful of us,
(<234915>Isaiah
49:15.) In this degree does David place him, so that he who is the source of all
goodness far surpasses all mortals, who are naturally malevolent and niggardly.
It is, however, an imperfect mode of speech, like that in
<236316>Isaiah
63:16,
"Doubtless, thou art our
Father, though Abraham be ignorant of us, and Israel acknowledge us
not."
The purport of the whole is this:However inclined by
nature earthly parents are to help their children, nay, though they should
endeavor to cherish them with the greatest ardor of affection, yet should
affection be wholly extinguished in the earth, God would fulfill the duty both
of father and mother to his people. From which it follows, that we basely
undervalue the grace of God, if our faith rise not above all the affections of
nature; for sooner shall the laws of nature be overturned a hundred times, than
God shall fail his people.
11.
Teach me thy way, O
Jehovah! Many think that David here
requests that God would guide him by his Spirit, lest he should surpass his
enemies in acting violently and wickedly. This doctrine is, no doubt, very
useful, but it does not seem to agree with the scope of the passage. It is a
simpler interpretation, in my opinion, to consider that David desires, in order
to escape the snares and violence of his enemies, that God would extend to him
his hand, and safely conduct him, so as to give a happy issue to his affairs. He
sets the right path in opposition to the difficulties and impediments
which are in places which are rough, and of difficult access, to overcome which
he was unequal, unless God undertook the office of a guide to lead him. But he
who thus desires to commit himself to the safeguard and protection of
God,
fa552 must first renounce crafty and wicked
devices. We must not expect that God, who promises to grant a happy issue only
to the single in heart, and those who trust in his faithfulness, will bless
crooked and wicked counsels.
12.
Give me not up to the desire
of mine oppressors. The Hebrew noun
çpn,
nephesh, signifies lust, will, or desire; and the language
of David implies, Deliver me not up to the pleasure or lust of mine enemies, and
thus he intimates, that they greedily gaped for his destruction. God delivers
his people in two ways; either by appeasing the cruelty of the wicked, and
rendering them meek; or, if he permit them to burn with fury, by restraining
their power and violence, so that they desire and endeavor in vain to do
mischief. The Psalmist afterwards adds, that he is persecuted both with slanders
and false accusations, and also by open violence; for when he says, that they
bring forth violence,
fa553 he means that they speak of
nothing but of war and slaughter. We thus see that the holy man was miserably
oppressed on every side. Even his integrity, which we know to have been
singular, could not free him from bitter and deadly calumnies, and he was at the
same time overwhelmed by the violence and force of his enemies. If the ungodly,
therefore, should at any time rise against us, not only with menaces and cruel
violence, but to give the semblance of justice to their enmity, should slander
us with lies, let us remember the example of David, who was assaulted in both
ways; nay, let us recall to mind that Christ the Son of God suffered no less
injury from lying tongues than from
violence.
fa554 Moreover, this prayer was dictated for
our comfort, to intimate that God can maintain our innocence, and oppose the
shield of his protection to the cruelty of our
enemies.
Psalm
27:13-14
13. Unless I had believed
to see the goodness of Jehovah in the land of the
living:
fa555 14. Wait thou on Jehovah; be of
good courage, and he shall strengthen thine heart: wait thou also on
Jehovah.
13.
Unless I had believed to see
the goodness of Jehovah. It is generally
agreed among interpreters, that this sentence is incomplete. Some, however, are
of opinion, that the Hebrew particle
alwl
lulë, is used for the purpose of affirmation, as if it were a
species of oath; the Hebrews being accustomed to swear elliptically; for
breaking off in the middle of the discourse and leaving it imperfect, they
supplied an imprecation, namely, that God would punish them in case they
perjured themselves. But the greater number give a different interpretation,
namely, that David intimates that he was supported solely by faith, otherwise he
had perished a hundred times. The meaning which they elicit, accordingly, is,
Had I not relied on the promise of God, and been assuredly persuaded that he
would safely preserve me, and had I not continued firm in this persuasion, I had
utterly perished:There was no other remedy. Some understand by the land of
the living, the heavenly inheritance; but this interpretation is forced, and
disagrees with the usual style of Scripture. When Hezekiah laments in his song
recorded in
<233811>Isaiah
38:11, that he had no hope of seeing God "in the land of the living," he means,
without all doubt, the present life, as he immediately adds, "I shall behold man
no more with the inhabitants of the world." A similar form of speech occurs also
in another place,
(<241119>Jeremiah
11:19.) David then believed that he would still enjoy the goodness of God in
this world, although he was now deprived of all experience of his favor, and
could see no spark of light. From the darkness of death, therefore, he promises
himself a view of the divine favor, and by this persuasion his life is
sustained, although, according to the judgment of carnal reason, it was past
recovery and lost. It is to be observed, however, that David does not rashly go
beyond the divine promise. It is true that "godliness is profitable unto all
things, having promise of the life that now is, and of that which is to come,"
(<540408>1
Timothy 4:8;) but he would have never dared to entertain this persuasion had he
not been informed by a special revelation, and assuredly promised a successor,
who should always sit upon his throne,
(<19D211>Psalm
132:11, 12.) He was, therefore, justly persuaded that he would not die till this
promise was fulfilled. Lest any man, therefore, by an unwarranted imitation of
his example, should overleap the boundaries of faith, it is necessary to
understand what was peculiar to him, and did not belong to us. In general,
however, we ought all to hope that, although God may not openly work deliverance
for us, or show us his favor in a visible manner, he will, nevertheless, be
always merciful to us, even in the present
life.
14.
Wait thou on
Jehovah. It may be doubted whether
David, having in the preceding verses spoken of himself, here addresses his
discourse to others, and exhorts them by his own example to fortitude and
persevering patience, as he does in the conclusion of
<193119>Psalm
31:19, where, after speaking concerning himself particularly, he makes a
transition, and addresses himself to all the godly. But as he speaks here in the
singular number, and uses no mark to show that he directs his discourse to
others, it is in my opinion probable that he applies it to himself, the more to
encourage his confidence in God, lest at any time his heart should
faint.
fa556 As he was conscious of his weakness,
and knew that his faith was the great means of preserving him safe, he
seasonably strengthens himself for the future. Under the word waiting,
too, he puts himself in mind of new trials, and sets before his eyes the
cross which he must bear. We are then said to wait on God, when, withdrawing his
grace from us, he suffers us to languish under afflictions. David, therefore,
having got through one conflict, prepares himself to encounter new ones. But as
nothing is more difficult than to give God the honor of relying upon him, when
he hides himself from us, or delays his assistance, David stirs himself up to
collect strength; as if he had said, If fearfulness steal upon thee; if
temptation shake thy faith; if the feelings of the flesh rise in tumult, do not
faint; but rather endeavor to rise above them by an invincible resolution of
mind. From this we may learn, that the children of God overcome, not by
sullenness, but by patience, when they commit their souls quietly to God; as
Isaiah says,
"In quietness and
in confidence shall be your
strength,"
(<233015>Isaiah
30:15.)
As David did not feel himself equal to great and
difficult efforts, he borrows strength from God by prayer. Had he said no more
than Act like a man,
fa557 he would have appeared to allege
the motions of his own free-will, but as he immediately adds, by way of
correction, that God would be at hand to strengthen his heart, he plainly
enough shows, that when the saints strive vigorously, they fight in the strength
of another, and not in their own. David does not, like the Papists, put his own
efforts into the van, and afterwards supplicate for divine aid, but having done
his own duty, although he knew that he was destitute of strength in himself, he
requests that his deficiency may be supplied by the grace of the Holy Spirit.
And as he knew that the war must be continued during his whole life, and that
new conflicts would daily arise, and that the troubles of the saints are often
protracted for a long period, he again repeats what he had said about waiting on
God:Wait thou alone on
Jehovah.
PSALM
28.
After being delivered by God's help from great
dangers, David, in this psalm, according to his custom, first records the vows
that he had made in the midst of his difficulties, and then his thanksgivings
and praises to God, to induce others to follow his example. It is probable that
he speaks of his persecutions by Saul.
A Psalm of
David.
Psalm
28:1-2
1. Unto thee, O Jehovah! will
I cry; O my strength! hold not thy peace from me; lest, shouldst thou be silent
to me, I become like them that go down to the grave. 2. Hear the voice of
my prayers when I cry to thee, when I lift up my hands to the sanctuary of thy
holiness.
1.
Unto thee, O Jehovah! will I
cry. The Psalmist begins by declaring
that he would betake himself to the help of God alone, which shows both his
faith and his sincerity. Although men labor every where under a multitude of
troubles, yet scarcely one in a hundred ever has recourse to God. Almost all
having their consciences burdened with guilt, and having never experienced the
power of divine grace which might lead them to betake themselves to it, either
proudly gnaw the bit or fill the air with unavailing complaints, or, giving way
to desperation, faint under their afflictions. By calling God his strength,
David more fully shows that he confided in God's assistance, not only when
he was in the shade and in peace, but also when he was exposed to the severest
temptations. In comparing himself to the dead, too, he intimates how great his
straits were, although his object was not merely to point out the magnitude of
his danger, but also to show that when he needed succor, he looked not here and
there for it, but relied on God alone, without whose favor there remained no
hope for him. It is, therefore, as if he had said, I am nothing if thou leavest
me; if thou succourest me not, I perish. It is not enough for one who is in such
a state of affliction to be sensible of his misery, unless, convinced of his
inability to help himself, and renouncing all help from the world, he betake
himself to God alone. And as the Scriptures inform us that God answers true
believers when he shows by his operations that he regards their supplications,
so the word silent is set in opposition to the sensible and present
experience of his aid, when he appears, as it were, not to hear their
prayers.
2.
Hear the voice of my prayers
when I cry to thee. This repetition is a
sign of a heart in anguish. David's ardor and vehemence in prayer are also
intimated by the noun signifying voice, and the verb signifying to
cry. He means that he was so stricken with anxiety and fear, that he prayed
not coldly, but with burning, vehement desire, like those who, under the
pressure of grief, vehemently cry out. In the second clause of the verse, by
synecdoche, the thing signified is indicated by the sign. It has been a common
practice in all ages for men to lift up their hands in prayer. Nature has
extorted this gesture even from heathen idolaters, to show by a visible sign
that their minds were directed to God alone. The greater part, it is true,
contented with this ceremony, busy themselves to no effect with their own
inventions; but the very lifting up of the hands, when there is no hypocrisy and
deceit, is a help to devout and zealous prayer. David, however, does not say
here that he lifted his hands to heaven, but to the sanctuary, that,
aided by its help, he might ascend the more easily to heaven. He was not so
gross, or so superstitiously tied to the outward sanctuary, as not to know that
God must be sought spiritually, and that men then only approach to him when,
leaving the world, they penetrate by faith to celestial glory. But remembering
that he was a man, he would not neglect this aid afforded to his infirmity. As
the sanctuary was the pledge or token of the covenant of God, David beheld the
presence of God's promised grace there, as if it had been represented in a
mirror; just as the faithful now, if they wish to have a sense of God's nearness
to them, should immediately direct their faith to Christ, who came down to us in
his incarnation, that he might lift us up to the Father. Let us understand,
then, that David clung to the sanctuary with no other view than that by the help
of God's promise he might rise above the elements of the world, which he used,
however, according to the appointment of the Law. The Hebrew word
rybd,
debir, which we have rendered
sanctuary,
fa558 signifies the inner-room of the
tabernacle or temple, or the most holy place, where the ark of the covenant was
contained, and it is so called from the answers or oracles which God gave forth
from thence, to testify to his people the presence of his favor among
them.
Psalm
28:3-5
3. Draw me not away with
wicked men, nor with the workers of iniquity, who speak peace to their
neighbors, while malice is in their hearts. 4. Give them according to
their works, and according to the wickedness of their doings; give them
according to the work of their hands; render them their reward. 5.
Because they regard not the doings of Jehovah, neither the work of his hands,
let him destroy them, and not build them
up.
3.
Draw me not away with wicked
men. The meaning is, that in
circumstances so dissimilar, God should not mingle the righteous with the wicked
in the same indiscriminate
destruction.
fa559 Undoubtedly, too, in speaking of his
enemies, he indirectly asserts his own integrity. But he did not pray in this
manner, because he thought that God was indiscriminately and unreasonably angry
with men; he reasons rather from the nature of God, that he ought to cherish
good hope, because it was God's prerogative to distinguish between the righteous
and the wicked, and to give every one his due reward. By
the workers of
iniquity, he means man wholly addicted
to wickedness. The children of God sometimes fall, commit errors, and act amiss
in one way or other, but they take no pleasure in their evil doings; the fear of
God, on the contrary, stirs them up to repentance. David afterwards defines and
enlarges upon the wickedness of those whom he describes; for, under pretense of
friendship they perfidiously deceived good men, professing one thing with their
tongue, while they entertained a very different thing in their hearts. Open
depravity is easier to be borne with than this craftiness of the fox, when
persons put on fair appearances in order to find opportunity of doing
mischief.
fa560 This truth, accordingly, admonishes us
that those are most detestable in God's sight, who attack the simple and unwary
with fair speeches as with poison.
4.
Give them according to their
works. Having thus requested God to have
a regard to his innocence, the Psalmist thunders forth a curse against his
enemies. And the accumulation of words shows that he had groaned long and
grievously under the burden before he broke forth to desire such vengeance. He
intimates that the wicked of whom he speaks had transgressed not once, nor for a
short time, nor in one way, but that they had proceeded so far in their constant
evil doings, that their audacity was no longer to be endured. We know how
troublesome and grievous a temptation it is to see the ungodly proceeding
without measure or end, as if God connived at their wickedness. David,
therefore, wearied as it were with continual forbearing, and fainting under the
burden, implores God, at length, to restrain the wantonness of his enemies, who
of late ceased not to heap wickedness upon wickedness. Thus we perceive that
there is nothing superfluous in this verse, when to works he adds
the wickedness of their
doings, and
the work of their
hands, and thrice petitions that they
may receive the reward which they have deserved. Add to this, that he at
the same time bears testimony to his own faith, to which boasting hypocrites
often compel the children of God, while by their deceit and cavils, they impose
upon the judgments of the world. We see how men who are distinguished for
wickedness, not content with impunity themselves, cannot abstain from oppressing
the innocent by false accusations, just as the wolf, desirous of making a
prey
fa561 of the lambs, according to the common
proverb, accused them of troubling the water. David is therefore compelled by
this exigency to call upon God for protection. Here again occurs the difficult
question about praying for vengeance, which, however, I shall despatch in few
words, as I have discussed it elsewhere. In the first place, then, it is
unquestionable, that if the flesh move us to seek revenge, the desire is wicked
in the Sight of God. He not only forbids us to imprecate evil upon our enemies
in revenge for private injuries, but it cannot be otherwise than that all those
desires which spring from hatred must be disordered. David's example, therefore,
must not be alleged by those who are driven by their own intemperate passion to
seek vengeance. The holy prophet is not inflamed here by his own private sorrow
to devote his enemies to destruction; but laying aside the desire of the flesh,
he gives judgment concerning the matter itself. Before a man can, therefore,
denounce vengeance against the wicked, he must first shake himself free from all
improper feelings in his own mind. In the second place, prudence must be
exercised, that the heinousness of the evils which offend us drive us not to
intemperate zeal, which happened even to Christ's disciples, when they desired
that fire might be brought from heaven to consume those who refused to entertain
their Master,
(<420954>Luke
9:54.) They pretended, it is true, to act according to the example of Elias; but
Christ severely rebuked them, and told them that they knew not by what spirit
they were actuated. In particular, we must observe this general rule, that we
cordially desire and labor for the welfare of the whole human race. Thus it will
come to pass, that we shall not only give way to the exercise of God's mercy,
but shall also wish the conversion of those who seem obstinately to rush upon
their own destruction. In short, David, being free from every evil passion, and
likewise endued with the spirit of discretion and judgment, pleads here not so
much his own cause as the cause of God. And by this prayer, he farther reminds
both himself and the faithful, that although the wicked may give themselves
loose reins in the commission of every species of vice with impunity for a time,
they must at length stand before the judgment-seat of
God.
5.
Because they regard not the
doings of Jehovah. In this verse he lays
open the root of impiety, declaring that the ungodly are so bold to do mischief,
because, while they are thus indulging their hatred, and perpetrating every
species of wickedness, they think that they have nothing to do with God. And
when conscience stings them, they soothe themselves with false hopes, and at
last stubbornly harden themselves into insensibility. First, being intoxicated
with prosperity, they flatter themselves that God is their friend, while he has
no regard for those good men who are overwhelmed with so many afflictions; and,
next, they persuade themselves that the world is governed by chance, thus
blinding themselves in the midst of the clear light of day. In this manner,
David's adversaries, willingly ignorant that God had appointed him to be king,
emboldened themselves to persecute him. He therefore complains of their gross
ignorance of this, just as Isaiah
(<230520>Isaiah
5:20) brings the same complaint, in general terms, against all the ungodly of
his days. This doctrine, then, has a twofold use. First, it is no small
consolation to the children of God to be persuaded, while they are unrighteously
vexed, that by the providence of God they are thus profitably exercised to
patience; and that while the affairs of this world are all in a state of
disturbance and confusion, God nevertheless sits supreme in heaven conducting
and governing all things.
fa562 In the second place, this is a very
proper curb to subdue the passions of our flesh, that we may not, like the
Andabates,
fa563 contend in the dark, and with shut
eyes, as if God saw not and cared not about what is done here below. Let us,
therefore, learn carefully to consider that the judgments which God executes are
just so many proofs of his righteousness in governing mankind, and that although
all things should be huddled together in confusion, the eye of faith should be
directed to heaven, to consider God's secret judgments. And as God never ceases,
even in the midst of the greatest darkness, to give some tokens of his
providence, it is inexcusable indolence not to attend to them. This perverseness
the prophet aggravates, by repeating again,
the works of God's
hands. He thus intimates, that the
ungodly, by recklessly pursuing their course, trample under foot whatever of
God's works they may meet with to check their
madness.
Let him destroy them,
and not build them up. Some are of
opinion that the first part of this verse is the nominative in the room of a
substantive to the verbs in the last clause; as if David had said, This brutal
madness shall destroy them; but the name of God should rather be supplied, and
then the context will run excellently. As the verbs, however, in the Hebrew are
in the future tense
fa564 the sentence may be explained as
meaning that David now assures himself of the destruction of the reprobates for
which he had lately prayed. I do not reject this interpretation; but, in my
opinion, the words are just a continuance of his petitions. In this way, he
prays that the wicked may be overthrown, so as not to rise again, or recover
their former state. The expression,
Let him destroy them, and not
build them up, is a common figure of
speech among the Hebrews, according to what Malachi says concerning Edom,
"Thus saith the Lord of Hosts, They shall build, but I shall throw down,"
(<390104>Malachi
1:4.) Lest we should be struck, therefore, with an incurable plague, let us
learn to awake our minds to the consideration of God's works, that we may be
taught to fear him, to persevere in patience, and to advance in
godliness.
Psalm
28:6-8
6. Blessed be Jehovah, for he
hath heard the voice of my supplication. 7. Jehovah is my strength and my
shield, my heart hath trusted in him, and I have been helped: therefore shall my
heart rejoice, and with my song will I praise him. 8. Jehovah is their
strength; and he is also the strength of the salvations [or deliverances] of his
anointed.
6.
Blessed be Jehovah, who hath
heard. This is the second part of the
psalm in which the prophet begins to give thanks to God. We have already seen
how he employed himself in prayer in the midst of his dangers; and now by this
thanksgiving he teaches us that his prayers were not in vain. Thus he confirms
by his own example, that God is ready to bring help to his people whenever they
seek him in truth and sincerity. He declares the same truth more fully in the
next verse, calling God his strength and his shield; for he was
persuaded that God had heard him from this, that he had been wonderfully
preserved. He adds, that he had been helped in respect of his confidence
and hope; for it often comes to pass, that those who call upon God,
notwithstanding come short of his grace through their own unbelief. Thirdly, he
says that he will add to his joy a testimony of his gratitude. Wicked men and
hypocrites flee to God when they are overwhelmed with difficulties, but as soon
as they escape from them, forgetting their deliverer, they rejoice with frantic
mirth. In short, David trusted not in vain, since he truly found by experience
that God possesses ever present power to preserve his servants; and that this
was matter of true and solid joy to him, that he found God ever favorable to
him. On this account, likewise, he promises that he would be mindful of God, and
grateful to him. And undoubtedly, when God spreads cheerfulness through our
hearts, it is to open our mouths to sing his
praises.
8.
Jehovah is their
strength. By way of explanation, he
repeats what he had said before, that God had been his strength; namely, because
he had blessed his armies. David had indeed employed the hand and labor of men,
but to God alone he ascribes the victory. As he knew that whatever help he had
obtained from men proceeded from God, and that his prosperous success flowed
likewise from his gratuitous favor, he discerned his hand in these means, as
palpably as if it had been stretched forth from heaven. And surely it is passing
shameful, that human means, which are only the instruments of God's power,
should obscure his glory; although there is no sin more common. It is a manner
of speaking which has great weight, when, speaking of his soldiers, he uses only
the pronoun their, as if he pointed to them with the finger. The second
clause assigns the reason of the other. He declares that himself and his whole
army were endued with victorious valor from heaven, because he fought under the
standard of God. This is the meaning of the word anointed; for, had not
God appointed him king, and freely adopted him, he would not have favored him
any more than he did Saul. By this means, in extolling solely the power of God
which advanced him to the kingdom, he attributes nothing to his own policy or
power. In the meantime, we may learn, that when one is satisfied of the
lawfulness of his calling, this doctrine encourages him to entertain good hope
with respect to the prosperous issue of his affairs. In particular, it is to be
observed, as we have briefly noticed in another place, that the fountain whence
all the blessings God bestows upon us flows is, that he hath chosen us in
Christ. David employs salvations or deliverances in the plural
number, because he had been often and in various ways preserved. The meaning,
therefore, is, that from the time when God had anointed him by the hand of
Samuel, he never ceased to help him, but delivered him in innumerable ways,
until he had accomplished the work of his grace in
him.
Psalm
28:9
9. Save thy people, and bless
thine inheritance; feed them, and lift them up for
ever.
In this verse he shows that it was
not so much his own welfare as the welfare of the whole Church which was the
object of his concern, and that he neither lived nor reigned for himself, but
for the common good of the people. He well knew that he was appointed king for
no other end. In this he declares himself to be a type of the Son of God, of
whom, when Zechariah
(<380909>Zechariah
9:9) predicts that he would come "having salvation," there is no doubt that he
promises nothing to him apart from his members, but that the effects of this
salvation would diffuse themselves throughout his whole body. By this example,
accordingly, he prescribes a rule to earthly kings, that, devoting themselves to
the public good, they should only desire to be preserved for the sake of their
people.
fa565 How very far otherwise it is, it is
needless to say. Blinded with pride and presumption they despise the rest of the
world, just as if their pomp and dignity raised them altogether above the common
state of man. Nor is it to be wondered at, that mankind are so haughtily and
contumeliously trampled under foot of kings, since the greatest part cast off
and disdain to bear the cross of
Christ.
fa566 Let us therefore remember that David is
like a mirror, in which God sets before us the continual course of his grace.
Only we must be careful, that the obedience of our faith may correspond to his
fatherly love, that he may acknowledge us for his people and inheritance. The
Scriptures often designate David by the name of a shepherd; but he himself
assigns that office to God, thus confessing that he is altogether unfit for
it,
fa567 save only in as far as he is God's
minister.
PSALM
29.
David, that he may humble all men before God, from
the highest to the lowest, celebrates his terrible power in the various wonders
of nature, which he affirms are not less fitted to arouse us to give glory to
God, than if he were to assert his empire and majesty with his own voice. After
he has struck fear into the proud, who are reluctant to yield, and addressed an
exhortation to them accompanied by a gentle reproof, he sweetly invites the
faithful voluntarily to fear the Lord.
A Psalm of
David.
Psalm
29:1-4
1. Give unto Jehovah, ye sons
of the mighty, give unto Jehovah glory and strength. 2. Give unto Jehovah
the glory of his name;
fa568 worship before Jehovah in the
brightness of his sanctuary. 3. The voice of Jehovah is upon the waters;
the God of glory thundereth; Jehovah is upon the great waters. 4. The
voice of Jehovah is in strength, the voice of Jehovah is in
beauty.
1.
Give unto Jehovah, ye sons of
the mighty. It was no doubt David's
design to lead all men to worship and reverence God; but as it is more difficult
to reduce great men, who excel in rank, to order, he expressly addresses himself
to them. It is obvious, that the LXX, in giving the translation, sons of
rams,
fa569 were led into a mistake by the
affinity of the Hebrew words.
fa570 About the signification of the word,
indeed, the Jewish commentators are all agreed; but when they proceed to speak
of its meaning, they pervert and obscure it by the most chilling comments. Some
expound it of the angels,
fa571 some of the stars; and others will have
it, that by the great men who are referred to are meant the holy fathers. But
David only intended to humble the princes of this world, who, being intoxicated
with pride, lift up their horns against God. This, accordingly, is the reason
why he introduces God, with a terrific voice, subduing by thunders, hail-storms,
tempests, and lightnings, these stubborn and stiff-necked giants, who, if they
are not struck with fear, refuse to stand in awe of any power in heaven. We see,
therefore, why, passing by others, he directs his discourse particularly to the
sons of the mighty. The reason is, because there is nothing more common with
them than to abuse their lofty station by impious deeds, while they madly
arrogate to themselves every divine prerogative. At least that they may modestly
submit themselves to God, and, mindful of their frailty, place their dependence
upon his grace, it is necessary, as it were, to compel them by force. David,
therefore, commands them to give strength unto Jehovah, because, deluded
by their treacherous imaginations, they think that the power which they possess
is supplied to them from some other quarter than from heaven. In short, he
exhorts them to lay aside their haughtiness, and their false opinion about their
own strength, and to glorify God as he deserves. By
the glory of God's
name, (ver. 2,) he means that which is
worthy of his majesty, of which the great men of this world are wont to deprive
him. The repetition, also, shows that they must be vehemently urged ere a proper
acknowledgement be extorted from them. By
the brightness of God's
sanctuary
fa572 is to be understood, not heaven
as some think, but the tabernacle of the covenant, adorned with the symbols of
the divine glory, as is evident from the context. And the prophet designedly
makes mention of this place, in which the true God had manifested himself, that
all men, bidding adieu to superstition, should betake themselves to the pure
worship of God. It would not be sufficient to worship any heavenly power, but
the one and unchangeable God alone must be worshipped, which cannot come to pass
until the world be reclaimed from all foolish inventions and services forged in
the brains of men.
3.
The voice of Jehovah is upon
the waters. David now rehearses the
wonders of nature which I have previously referred to; and well indeed does he
celebrate the power of God as well as his goodness, in his works. As there is
nothing in the ordinary course of nature, throughout the whole frame of heaven
and earth, which does not invite us to the contemplation of God, he might have
brought forward, as in
<191901>Psalm
19:1, the sun and the stars, and the whole host of heaven, and the earth with
its riches; but he selects only those works of God which prove not only that the
world was at first created by him, and is governed by his power, but which also
awaken the torpid, and drag them, as it were, in spite of themselves, humbly to
adore him; as even Horace was compelled, though he was not only a heathen poet,
but an Epicurean, and a vile contemner of Deity, to say of himself in one of his
Odes, — (Lib. I. Ode 34.)
"A fugitive from
heaven and prayer,
I
mocked at all religious
fear,
Deep scienced
in the mazy lore
Of
mad philosophy; but
now
Hoist sail, and
back my voyage
plough
To that blest
harbour which I left
before.
"For, lo!
that awful heavenly
Sire,
Who frequent
cleaves the clouds with
fire,
Parent of day,
immortal Jove;
Late
through the floating fields of
air,
The face of
heaven serene and
fair,
His thund'ring
steeds, and winged chariot drove,"
etc.
fa573
Experience, too, tells us that those who are most
daring in their contempt of God are most afraid of thunderings, storms, and such
like violent commotions. With great propriety, therefore, does the prophet
invite our attention to these instances which strike the rude and insensible
with some sense of the existence of a
God,
fa574 and rouse them to action, however
sluggish and regardless they are. He says not that the sun rises from day to
day, and sheds abroad his life-giving beams, nor that the rain gently descends
to fertilise the earth with its moisture; but he brings forward thunders,
violent tempests, and such things as smite the hearts of men with dread by their
violence. God, it is true, speaks in all his creatures, but here the prophet
mentions those sounds which rouse us from our drowsiness, or rather our
lethargy, by the loudness of their noise. We have said, that this language is
chiefly directed to those who with stubborn recklessness, cast from them, as far
as they can, all thought of God. The very figures which he uses sufficiently
declare, that David's design was to subdue by fear the obstinacy which yields
not willingly otherwise. Thrice he repeats that God's voice is heard in great
and violent tempests, and in the subsequent verse he adds, that it is full of
power and majesty.
Psalm
29:5-8
5. The voice of Jehovah
breaketh the cedars; I say, Jehovah breaketh the cedars of Lebanon. 6.
And he maketh Lebanon to skip like a calf, and Sirion like a young unicorn.
7. The voice of Jehovah striketh out [or heweth out] flames of fire.
8. The voice of Jehovah maketh the wilderness to quake, the voice of Jehovah
maketh the wilderness of Kadesh to
tremble.
5.
The voice of Jehovah breaketh the cedars.
We see how the prophet, in order to subdue the stubbornness of men, shows,
by every word, that God is terrible. He also seems to rebuke, in passing, the
madness of the proud, and of those who swell with vain presumption, because they
hearken not to the voice of God in his thunders, rending the air with his
lightnings, shaking the lofty mountains, prostrating and overthrowing the
loftiest trees. What a monstrous thing is it, that while all the irrational
portion of the creation tremble before God, men alone, who are endued with sense
and reason, are not moved! Moreover, though they possess genius and learning,
they employ enchantments to shut their ears against God's voice, however
powerful, lest it should reach their hearts. Philosophers think not that they
have reasoned skilfully enough about inferior causes, unless they separate God
very far from his works. It is a diabolical science, however, which fixes our
contemplations on the works of nature, and turns them away from God. If any one
who wished to know a man should take no notice of his face, but should fix his
eyes only on the points of his nails, his folly might justly be derided. But far
greater is the folly of those philosophers, who, out of mediate and proximate
causes, weave themselves vails, lest they should be compelled to acknowledge the
hand of God, which manifestly displays itself in his works. The Psalmist
particularly mentions the cedars
of Lebanon, because lofty and beautiful
cedars were to be found there. He also refers to Lebanon and Mount
Hermon, and to the wilderness
of
Kadesh,
fa575 because these places were best
known to the Jews. He uses, indeed, a highly poetical figure accompanied with a
hyperbole, when he says, that
Lebanon skips like a calf at God's voice,
and Sirion (which is also called Mount
Hermon
fa576) like a unicorn, which, we know,
is one of the swiftest animals. He also alludes to the terrific noise of
thunder, which seems almost to shake the mountains to their foundations. Similar
is the figure, when he says, the
Lord striketh out flames of fire, which
is done when the vapours, being struck, as it were, with his hammer, burst forth
into lightnings and thunderbolts. Aristotle, in his book on Meteors, reasons
very shrewdly about these things, in so far as relates to proximate causes, only
that he omits the chief point. The investigation of these would, indeed, be both
a profitable and pleasant exercise, were we led by it, as we ought, to the
Author of Nature himself. But nothing is more preposterous than, when we meet
with mediate causes, however many, to be stopped and retarded by them, as by so
many obstacles, from approaching God;
fa577 for this is the same as if a man were
to remain at the very rudiments of things during his whole life, without going
farther. In short, this is to learn in such a manner that you can never know any
thing. That shrewdness alone, therefore, is worthy of praise, which elevates us
by these means even to heaven, in order that not a confused noise only may
strike our ears, but that the voice of the Lord may penetrate our hearts, and
teach us to pray and serve God. Some expound the Hebrew word
lyjy,
yachil, which we have translated to tremble, in another way, namely,
that God maketh the wilderness of Kadesh to travail in
birth;
fa578 because of the manifold wonders
which were wrought in it as the Israelites passed through it. But this sense I
object to, as far too subtle and strained. David appears rather to refer to the
common feelings of men; for as wildernesses are dreadful of themselves, they are
much more so when they are filled with thunders, hail, and storms. I do not,
however, object that the wilderness may be understood, by synecdoche, to mean
the wild beasts which lodge in it; and thus the next verse, where hinds are
mentioned, may be considered as added by way of
exposition.
Psalm
29:9-11
9. The voice of Jehovah
maketh the hinds to bring forth, and discovereth [or maketh bare] the forests,
and in his temple every one speaketh of his praise. 10. Jehovah sitteth
upon the flood; Jehovah, I say, sitteth king for ever. 11. Jehovah will
give strength to his people; Jehovah will bless his people with
peace.
9.
The voice of Jehovah maketh
the hinds to bring forth
fa579 A tacit comparison, as I have
said, is here made. It is worse than irrational, it is monstrous, that men are
not moved at God's voice, when it has such power and influence on wild beasts.
It is base ingratitude, indeed, in men not to perceive his providence and
government in the whole course of nature; but it is a detestable insensibility
that at least his unusual and extraordinary works, which compel even wild beasts
to obey him, will not teach them wisdom. Some interpreters think that hinds
are mentioned, rather than other beasts, on account of their difficulty in
bringing forth their young; which I disapprove not.
The voice of the
Lord is also said to discover or
make bare the
forests, either because there is no
covering which can prevent it from penetrating into the most secret recesses and
caverns; or, because lightnings, rains, and stormy winds, beat off the leaves
and make the trees bare. Either sense is
appropriate.
In his
temple. God's voice fills the whole
world, and spreads itself to its farthest limits; but the prophet declares that
his glory is celebrated only in his church, because God not only speaks
intelligibly and distinctly there, but also there gently allures the faithful to
himself. His terrible voice, which thunders in various ways in the air, strikes
upon the ears, and causes the hearts of men to beat in such a manner, as to make
them shrink from rather than approach him not to mention that a considerable
portion turn a deaf ear to its sound in storms, rains, thunder, and lightnings.
As men, therefore, profit not so much in this common school as to submit
themselves to God, David wisely says especially that the faithful sing the
praises of God in his temple, because, being familiarly instructed there by his
fatherly voice, they devote and consecrate themselves wholly to his service. No
man proclaims the glory of God aright but he who worships him willingly. This
may be understood likewise as a complaint, in which David reproves the whole
world of being silent in so far as the glory of God is
concerned,
fa580 and laments that although his voice
resounds through all regions, yet his praises are no where sung but in his
temple alone. He appears, however, after the example of all the godly, to exhort
the whole of mankind to praise God's name, and designedly to erect a temple as a
receptacle for his glory, for the purpose of teaching us, that in order truly to
know God, and praise him as is his due, we need another voice than that which is
heard in thunders, showers, and storms in the air, in the mountains, and in the
forests; for if he teach us not in plain words, and also kindly allure us to
himself, by giving us a taste of his fatherly love, we will continue dumb. It is
the doctrine of salvation alone, therefore, which cheers our hearts and opens
our mouths in his praises, by clearly revealing to us his grace, and the whole
of his will. It is from thence that we must learn how we ought to praise him. We
may also unquestionably see that at that time there was nothing of the light of
godliness in the whole world, except in Judea. Even philosophers, who appeared
to approach nearest to the knowledge of God, contributed nothing whatever that
might truly glorify him. All that they say concerning religion is not only
frigid, but for the most part insipid. It is therefore in his word alone that
there shines forth the truth which may lead us to true piety, and to fear and
serve God aright.
fa581
10.
Jehovah sitteth upon the
flood. Some think that David here
alludes to that memorable instance of God's vengeance, when he drowned the world
at once by the flood,
fa582 and thus testified to all ages that he
is the judge of mankind. I agree to this in part, but extend his meaning still
farther. In my opinion, he prosecutes the former subject, putting us in mind
that those floods, which still threaten destruction to the earth, are controlled
by the providence of God in such a way, as to make it evident that it is he
alone who governs all things at all
times.
fa583 David, therefore, mentions this among
other proofs of God's power, that even when the elements appear to be mingled
and confounded together by the utmost fury of the weather, God controls and
moderates these commotions from his throne in heaven. He accordingly adds, for
the sake of explanation, God sits
King for ever.
11.
Jehovah will give strength to his
people. He returns to his former
doctrine, namely, that although God exhibits his visible power to the view of
the whole world indiscriminately, yet he exerts it in a peculiar manner in
behalf of his elect people. Moreover, he here describes him in a very different
manner from what he did formerly; that is to say, not as one who overwhelms with
fear and dread those to whom he speaks, but as one who upholds, cherishes, and
strengthens them. By the word strength is to be understood the whole
condition of man. And thus he intimates that every thing necessary to the
preservation of the life of the godly depends entirely upon the grace of God. He
amplifies this by the word bless; for God is said to bless with peace
those whom he treats liberally and kindly, so that nothing is awanting to
the prosperous course of their life, and to their complete happiness. From this
we may learn, that we ought to stand in awe of the majesty of God, in such a
manner as, notwithstanding, to hope from him all that is necessary to our
prosperity; and let us be assuredly persuaded, that since his power is infinite,
we are defended by an invincible fortress.
PSALM
30.
David having been delivered from great danger, not
only renders thanks to God apart by himself, but at the same time invites and
exhorts all the pious to perform the same duty. He then confesses that he had
flattered himself too confidently in his prosperity, and that his security had
justly been chastised. In the third place, having briefly expressed his sorrow,
he returns again to thanksgiving.
A psalm sung at the
dedication of David's house.
Interpreters doubt whether this psalm was composed by
David, or by some of the prophets after the return of the Jews from the
Babylonish captivity; for house means, in their opinion, the temple.
But as the title expressly mentions David's name, it is more probable that
it is David's private house which is here spoken of. Moreover, the supposition
entertained by some, that when he was about to dedicate his palace, he was
seized with heavy sickness, is founded upon no solid reason. We may rather
conjecture from what is stated in sacred history, that as soon as he had built
his royal palace, he dwelt in it quietly and at his ease. He said to the prophet
Nathan, that he felt ashamed comfortably "to dwell within an house of cedar,"
while "the ark of God dwelt under curtains,"
(<100702>2
Samuel 7:2.) Besides, to restrict that to sickness which is here spoken
generally concerning some kind of danger, is altogether groundless. It is more
probable, that Absalom being dead, and his faction extinguished, and the fatal
commotion which they had raised put down, David celebrated the divine favor
toward him, as one who had returned from exile to his former station in his
kingdom. For he mentions that he was chastised by God's hand, because, exulting
too much in his happy estate, and almost intoxicated with it, he falsely and
foolishly promised himself entire freedom from adversity. Moreover, when he
began to inherit the magnificent and royal palace, of which I have just spoken,
his kingdom was yet scarcely restored to peace. It was not yet time, therefore,
for forgetfulness of human frailty to creep upon him, which might provoke the
wrath of God, and expose him to dangers which might bring him to the very verge
of destruction. It is not unreasonable, therefore, to suppose, that in this
psalm he celebrates God's favor to him in restoring him to his former state. It
was necessary again to dedicate his house, which had been defiled by the
incestuous whoredoms of Absalom, and other wickednesses; and under this word
seems to be denoted a double blessing, both his restoration to life and to his
kingdom:as if he had said, that after settling the public affairs of his
kingdom, he sung this song, and solemnly dedicated his house to God that he
might live in his own family. But it must be briefly observed concerning this
ceremony of the law, that as we are very slow and cold in thinking of God's
benefits, this exercise was enjoined upon his ancient people, that they might
understand that there is no pure and lawful use of any thing without
thanksgiving to God. As by offering the first-fruits to God, therefore, they
acknowledged that they received the increase of the whole year from him, in like
manner, by consecrating their houses to God, they declared that they were God's
tenants, confessing that they were strangers, and that it was he who lodged and
gave them a habitation there.
fa584 If a levy for war, therefore, took
place, this was a just cause of exemption, when any one alleged that he had not
yet dedicated his house.
fa585 Besides, they were at the same time
admonished by this ceremony, that every one enjoyed his house aright and
regularly, only when he so regulated it that it was as it were a sanctuary of
God, and that true piety and the pure worship of God reigned in it. The types of
the law have now ceased, but we must still keep to the doctrine of Paul, that
whatever things God appoints for our use, are still "sanctified by the word of
God and prayer,"
(<540404>1
Timothy 4:4, 5.)
Psalm
30:1-3
1. I will extol thee, O
Jehovah! for thou hast lifted me up,
fa586 and hast not made my foes to rejoice
over me. 2. O Jehovah my God! I have cried to thee, and thou hast healed
me. 3. O Jehovah! thou hast brought up my soul from the grave; thou hast
quickened me from among those who go
down
fa587 into the
pit.
1.
I will extol thee, O Jehovah! As David
had been brought, as it were, from the grave to the life-giving air, he promises
to extol the name of God. It is God who lifts us up with his own hand when we
have been plunged into a profound gulf; and therefore it is our duty, on our
part, to sing his praises with our tongues. By the foes who, he says,
obtained no matter of rejoicing over him, we may understand both domestic and
foreign enemies. Although wicked and evil disposed persons flattered him with
servile adulation, they at the same time cherished secret hatred against him,
and were ready to insult him as soon as an opportunity should occur. In the
second verse, he concludes that he was preserved by the favor of God, alleging
in proof of this, that when he was at the very point of death he directed his
supplications to God alone, and that he immediately felt that he had not done so
in vain. When God hears our prayers, it is a proof which enables us to conclude
with certainty that he is the author of our salvation, and of the deliverance
which we obtain. As the Hebrew word
apr,
rapha, signifies to heal, interpreters have been led, from this
consideration, to restrict it to sickness. But as it is certain, that it
sometimes signifies to restore, or to set up again, and is
moreover applied to an altar or a house when they are said to be repaired or
rebuilt, it may properly enough mean here any deliverance. The life of man is in
danger in many other ways than merely from disease; and we know that it is a
form of speech which occurs every where in the Psalms, to say that David was
restored to life whenever the Lord delivered him from any grievous and extreme
danger. For the sake of amplification, accordingly, he immediately adds,
Thou hast brought up my soul from
the grave. He reckoned that he could not
sufficiently express in words the magnitude of the favor which God had conferred
upon him, unless he compared the darkness of that period to a grave and pit,
into which he had been forced to throw himself hastily, to protect his life by
hiding, until the flame of insurrection was quenched. As one restored to life,
therefore, he proclaims that he had been marvellously delivered from present
death, as if he had been restored to life after he had been dead. And assuredly,
it appears from sacred history, how completely he was overwhelmed with despair
on every side.
Psalm
30:4-5
4. Sing unto Jehovah, O ye
who are his meek ones! and acknowledge the memorial of his
holiness.
fa588 5. For his anger is only for a
moment
fa589 but
life
fa590 is in his favor; weeping will lodge in
the evening, and rejoicing shall come in the
morning.
4.
Sing unto Jehovah. The better to testify
his gratitude, David calls upon all the saints to join with him in singing the
praises of God; and under one class he describes the whole body. As he had been
preserved beyond all expectation, and by this instance had been instructed
concerning God's continual and infinite goodness towards all the godly, he
breaks forth into this exhortation, in which he includes the general deliverance
of the whole church as well as his own. He rehearses not only what God had been
to himself, but also how bountifully and promptly he is accustomed to assist his
people. In short, confirmed by one particular instance he turns his thoughts to
the general truth. The meaning of the Hebrew term
µydysj,
chasidim, which we have translated meekness, by which David often
describes the faithful, has been already shown in the sixteenth Psalm. Their
heavenly adoption ought to excite them to the exercise of beneficence, that they
may imitate their Father's disposition,
"who maketh his sun to
rise on the evil and on the good,"
(<400545>Matthew
5:45.)
There is nothing in which men resemble God more truly
than in doing good to others. The
memorial of his holiness, in the second
clause of the verse, may refer to the tabernacle; as if David had exhorted all
the children of God to go before the ark of the covenant, which was the memorial
of God's presence. The Hebrew letter
fa591
l,
lamed, often denotes a place. I readily subscribe, however, to their
opinion, who think that memorial signifies the same thing as name;
for God has assuredly rendered himself worthy of remembrance by his works,
which are a bright representation of his glory, the sight of which should stir
us up to praise him.
5.
For his anger is only for a
moment. It is beyond all controversy
that life is opposed here to for a moment, and consequently
signifies long continuance, or the constant progress of time from day to day.
David thus intimates that if God at any time chastise his people, he not only
mitigates the rigour of their punishment, but is immediately appeased, and
moderates his anger; whereas he prolongs his kindness and favor for a long time.
And, as I have already observed, he chose rather to couch his discourse in
general terms, than to speak particularly of himself, that the godly might all
perceive that this continued manifestation of God's favor belongs to them. We
are hereby taught, however, with how much meekness of spirit, and with what
prompt obedience he submitted his back to God's rod. We know that from the very
first bloom of youth, during almost his whole life, he was so tried by a
multiplied accumulation of afflictions, that he might have been accounted
miserable and wretched above all other men; yet in celebrating the goodness of
God, he acknowledges that he had been lightly afflicted only for a short period,
and as it were in passing. Now, what inspired him with so great meekness and
equanimity of mind was, that he put a greater value upon God's benefits, and
submitted himself more quietly to the endurance of the cross, than the world is
accustomed to do. If we are prosperous, we devour God's blessings without
feeling that they are his, or, at least, we indolently allow them to slip away;
but if any thing sorrowful or adverse befall us, we immediately complain of his
severity, as if he had never dealt kindly and mercifully with us. In short, our
own fretfulness and impatience under affliction makes every minute an age;
while, on the other hand, our repining and ingratitude lead us to imagine that
God's favor, however long it may be exercised towards us, is but for a moment.
It is our own perversity, therefore, in reality, which hinders us from
perceiving that God's anger is but of short duration, While his favor is
continued towards us during the whole course of our life. Nor does God in vain
so often declare that he is merciful and gracious to a thousand generations,
long-suffering, slow to anger, and ready to forgive. And as what he says by the
prophet Isaiah has a special reference to the kingdom of Christ, it must be
daily fulfilled,
"For a small moment have
I afflicted thee, but with everlasting mercies will I gather thee,"
(<235407>Isaiah
54:7.)
Our condition in this world, I confess, involves us
in such wretchedness, and we are harassed by such a variety of afflictions, that
scarcely a day passes without some trouble or grief. Moreover, amid so many
uncertain events, we cannot be otherwise than full of daily anxiety and fear.
Whithersoever, therefore, men turn themselves, a labyrinth of evils surrounds
them. But however much God may terrify and humble his faithful servants, with
manifold signs of his displeasure, he always be-sprinkles them with the
sweetness of his favor to moderate and assuage their grief. If they weigh,
therefore his anger and his favor in an equal balance, they will
always find it verified, that while the former is but for a moment, the latter
continues to the end of life; nay, it goes beyond it, for it were a grievous
mistake to confine the favor of God within the boundaries of this transitory
life. And it is unquestionably
certain,
fa592 that none but those whose minds have
been raised above the world by a taste of heavenly life really experience this
perpetual and uninterrupted manifestation of the divine favor, which enables
them to bear their chastisements with cheerfulness. Paul, accordingly, that he
may inspire us with invincible patience, refers to this in
<470417>2
Corinthians 4:17,
"For our light
affliction, which is but for a moment, worketh for us a far more exceeding and
eternal weight of glory, while we look not at the things which are seen, but at
the things which are not seen."
In the meantime, it is to be observed that God never
inflicts such heavy and continued chastisements on his people, without
frequently mitigating them, and sweetening their bitterness with some
consolation. Whoever, therefore, directs his mind to meditation upon the
heavenly life, will never faint under his afflictions, however long continued;
and, comparing them with the exceeding great and manifold favors of God towards
him, he will put such honor on the latter as to judge that God's goodness, in
his estimation, outweighs his displeasure a hundred-fold. In the second clause,
David repeats the same thing
figuratively:Weeping will lodge
in the evening, and rejoicing shall come in the
morning. He does not simply mean, that
the affliction would be only for one night, but that if the darkness of
adversity should fall upon the people of God, as it were, in the evening, or at
the setting of the sun, light would soon after arise upon them, to comfort their
sorrow-stricken spirits. The amount of David's instruction is, that were we not
too headstrong, we would acknowledge that the Lord, even when he appears to
overwhelm us for a time with the darkness of affliction, always seasonably
ministers matter of joy, just as the morning arises after the
night.
Psalm
30:6-10
6. And in my
tranquillity
fa593 I had said, I shall never be moved.
7. O Jehovah! in thy good pleasure thou hast established strength to my
mountain: thou hast hidden thy face, I have been terrified. 8. O Jehovah!
I cried to thee, and to my Lord
fa594 I made my supplication. 9. What
profit is there in my blood, when I go down into the
pit?
fa595 Shall the dust praise thee? shall it
declare thy truth ? 10. Hear, O Jehovah! and have mercy upon me: O
Jehovah! Be thou my helper.
6.
And in my tranquillity I had
said. This is the confession which I
formerly mentioned, in which David acknowledges that he had been justly and
deservedly punished for his foolish and rash security, in forgetting his mortal
and mutable condition as a man, and in setting his heart too much on prosperity.
By the term
tranquillity,
he means the quiet and flourishing state of his kingdom. Some translate the
Hebrew word
hwlç,
shiluah, which we have rendered
tranquillity,
by abundance, in which sense it is often used in other places; but
the word
tranquillity
agrees better with the context; as if David had said, When fortune smiled
upon me on every side, and no danger appeared to occasion fear, my mind sunk as
it were into a deep sleep, and I flattered myself that my happy condition would
continue, and that things would always go on in the same course. This carnal
confidence frequently creeps upon the saints when they indulge themselves in
their prosperity, and so to speak, wallow upon their
dunghill.
fa596 Hence Jeremiah
(<243118>Jeremiah
31:18) compares himself to a wild bullock before the Lord tamed him and
accustomed him to the yoke. This may at first sight appear to be but a small
crime, yet we may gather from its punishment how much it is displeasing to God;
nor will we wonder at this when we consider the root from which it springs and
the fruits which it bears. As deaths innumerable continually hover before our
eyes, and as there are so many examples of change to awaken us to fear and
caution, those must be bewitched with devilish pride who persuade themselves
that their life is privileged above the common lot of the world. They see the
whole earth jumbled together in undistinguishing variety, and its individual
parts in a manner tossed hither and thither; and yet, as if they did not belong
to the human race, they imagine that they shall always continue stable and
liable to no changes. Hence that wantonness of the flesh, with which they so
licentiously indulge their lusts; hence their pride and cruelty, and neglect of
prayer. How indeed should those flee to God, who have no sense of their need to
instigate or move them to that? The children of God have also a pious security
of their own, which preserves their minds in tranquillity amidst the troublesome
storms of the world; like David, who, although he had seen the whole world made
to shake, yet leaning upon the promise of God, was bound to hope well concerning
the continuance of his kingdom. But although the faithful, when raised aloft on
the wings of faith, despise adversity, yet, as they consider themselves liable
to the common troubles of life, they lay their account with enduring them,
— are every hour prepared to receive wounds, — shake off their
sluggishness, and exercise themselves in the warfare to which they know that
they were appointed, - and with humility and fear put themselves under God's
protection; nor do they consider themselves safe anywhere else than under his
hand. It was otherwise with David, who, when ensnared by the allurements of his
prosperous state, promised himself unbroken tranquillity not from the word of
God but from his own feelings. The same thing also occurred to the pious King
Hezekiah, who, although lately afflicted with a sore disease, as soon as all was
well and according to his wish, was hurried by the vanity of the flesh to pride
and vain boasting,
(<143224>2
Chronicles 32:24.) By this we are taught to be on our guard when in prosperity,
that Satan may not bewitch us with his flatteries. The more bountifully God
deals with any one, the more carefully ought he to watch against such snares. It
is not, indeed, probable that David had become so hardened as to despise God and
defy all misfortunes, like many of the great men of this world, who, when
immersed among their luxuries and surfeitings, insolently scoff at all God's
judgments; but an effeminate listlessness having come over his mind, he became
more lukewarm in prayer, nor did he depend on the favor of God; in short, he put
too much confidence in his uncertain and transitory
prosperity.
7.
O Jehovah! of thy good
pleasure. This verse describes the
difference which exists between the confidence which is founded upon the word of
God and the carnal security which springs from presumption. True believers, when
they rely upon God, are not on that account neglectful of prayer. On the
contrary, looking carefully at the multitude of dangers by which they are beset,
and the manifold instances of human frailty which pass before their eyes, they
take warning from them, and pour out their hearts before God. The prophet now
failed in duty as to this matter; because, by anchoring himself on his present
wealth and tranquillity, or spreading his sails to the prosperous winds, he
depended not on the free favor of God in such a manner as to be ready at any
time to resign into his hands the blessings which he had bestowed upon him. The
contrast should be observed between that confidence of stability which arises
from the absence of trouble, and that which rests upon the gracious favor of
God. When David says that
strength was established to his
mountain, some interpreters expound it
of mount Zion. Others understand by it a stronghold or fortified tower, because
in old time fortresses were usually built upon mountains and lofty places. I
understand the word metaphorically to signify a solid support, and therefore
readily admit that the prophet alludes to mount Zion. David thus blames his own
folly, because he considered not, as he ought to have done, that there was no
stability in the nest which he had formed for himself, but in God's good will
alone.
Thou hast hidden thy
face. Here he confesses, that, after he
was deprived of God's gifts, this served to purge his mind as it were by
medicine from the disease of perverse confidence. A marvellous and incredible
method surely, that God, by hiding his face, and as it were bringing on
darkness, should open the eyes of his servant, who saw nothing in the broad
light of prosperity. But thus it is necessary that we be violently shaken, in
order to drive away the delusions which both stifle our faith and hinder our
prayers, and which absolutely stupify us with a soothing infatuation. And if
David had need of such a remedy, let us not presume that we are endued with so
good a state of heart as to render it unprofitable for us to be in want, in
order to remove from us this carnal confidence, which is as it were diseased
repletion which would otherwise suffocate us. We have, therefore, no reason to
wonder, though God often hides his face from us, when the sight of it, even when
it shines serenely upon us, makes us so wretchedly
blind.
8.
O Jehovah! I cried unto
thee. Now follows the fruit of David's
chastisement. He had been previously sleeping profoundly, and fostering his
indolence by forgetfulness; but being now awakened all on a sudden with fear and
terror, he begins to cry to God. As the iron which has contracted rust cannot be
put to any use until it be heated again in the fire, and beaten with the hammer,
so in like manner, when carnal security has once got the mastery, no one can
give himself cheerfully to prayer, until he has been softened by the cross, and
thoroughly subdued. And this is the chief advantage of afflictions, that while
they make us sensible of our wretchedness, they stimulate us again to supplicate
the favor of God.
9.
What profit is there in my
blood? Some explain the verse after this
manner:What will it avail me to have lived, unless thou prolongest my life till
I shall have finished the course of my vocation? But this exposition seems too
strained, especially as the term blood here signifies death, not
life:as if David had said, What profit wilt thou derive from my death?
This interpretation is farther confirmed by the following clause, where he
complains that his lifeless body will then be useless for celebrating the
praises of God. And he seems expressly to mention the truth of God, to
intimate that it would be unsuitable to the character of God to take him out of
the world by an untimely death, before God had accomplished the promise which he
had made to him concerning his future heir. As there is a mutual relation
between God's promises and our faith, truth is, as it were, the medium by which
God openly shows that he does not merely make liberal promises to us in words,
to feed us with empty hopes, and afterwards to disappoint us. Moreover, to
obtain a longer life, David draws an argument from the praises of God, to
celebrate which we are born and nourished:as if he had said, For what purpose
hast thou created me, O God! but that through the whole course of my life I may
be a witness and a herald of thy grace to set forth the glory of thy name? But
my death will cut short the continuance of this exercise, and reduce me to
eternal silence. A question, however, arises here, Does not, it may be said, the
death of true believers glorify God as well as their life? We answer, David
speaks not simply of death, but adds a circumstance which I have already treated
of in the sixth Psalm. As God had promised him a successor, the hope of living
longer being taken from him, he had good reason to be afraid lest this promise
should be frustrated by his death, and was therefore compelled to exclaim,
What profit is there in my
blood? It highly concerned the glory of
God that he should be preserved alive, until by obtaining his desire, he should
be able to bear witness to God's faithfulness in completely fulfilling his
promise to him. By inquiring in the end of the verse,
Shall the dust praise
thee? he does not mean that the dead are
altogether deprived of power to praise God, as I have already shown in the sixth
Psalm. If the faithful, while encumbered with a burden of flesh, exercise
themselves in this pious duty, how should they desist from it when they are
disencumbered, and set free from the restraints of the body? It ought to be
observed, therefore, that David does not professedly treat of what the dead do,
or how they are occupied, but considers only the purpose for which we live in
this world, which is this, that we may mutually show forth to one another the
glory of God. Having been employed in this exercise to the end of our life,
death at length comes upon us and shuts our
mouth.
10.
Hear, O
Jehovah! In this clause the Psalmist softens
and corrects his former complaint; for it would have been absurd to expostulate
with God like one who despaired of safety, and to leave off in this fretful
temper. Having asked, therefore, with tears, what profit God would derive from
his death, he encourages himself to a more unconstrained manner of prayer, and,
conceiving new hope, calls upon God for mercy and help. He puts God's favor,
however, in the first place, from whom alone he could expect the help which he
implored.
Psalm
30:11-12
11. Thou hast turned my
mourning into dancing; thou hast loosed my sackcloth, and girded me with
gladness. 12. That my glory may sing praise to thee, and not be silent: O
Jehovah my God! I will set forth thy praise for
ever.
11.
Thou hast turned my mourning into
dancing. David concludes the psalm as he
had begun it, with thanksgiving. He affirms that it was by the help and blessing
of God that he had escaped safe; and he then adds, that the final object of his
escape was, that he might employ the rest of his life in celebrating the praises
of God. Moreover, he shows us that he was not insensible or obdurate under his
afflictions, but mourned in heaviness and sorrow; and he also shows that his
very mourning had been the means of leading him to pray to God to deprecate his
wrath. Both these points are most worthy of our observation, in order, first,
that we may not suppose that the saints are guilty of stoical insensibility,
depriving them of all feeling of grief; and, secondly, that we may perceive that
in their mourning they were exercised to repentance. This latter he denotes by
the term sackcloth. It was a common practice among the ancients to clothe
themselves with sackcloth when
mourning,
fa597 for no other reason, indeed, than that
like guilty criminals, they might approach their heavenly Judge, imploring his
forgiveness with all humility, and testifying by this clothing their humiliation
and dissatisfaction with themselves.
fa598 We know also that the orientals were
addicted beyond all others to ceremonies. We perceive, therefore, that David,
although he patiently submitted himself to God, was not free from grief. We also
see that his sorrow was "after a godly sort," as Paul speaks,
(<470710>2
Corinthians 7:10;) for to testify his penitence he clothed himself with
sackcloth. By the term dancing, he does not mean any wanton or profane
leaping, but a sober and holy exhibition of joy like that which sacred Scripture
mentions when David conveyed the ark of the covenant to its place,
(<100616>2
Samuel 6:16.) If we may conjecture, however, we may gather from this, that the
great danger of which David speaks in this psalm is by some improperly
restricted to sickness, as it was very improbable that he would put on sackcloth
when he was confined to a sick-bed. This, indeed, would not be a sufficient
reason of itself, but in a doubtful case, as this is, it is not destitute of
force. David therefore means, that, laying aside his mourning apparel, he
returned from a state of heaviness and sorrow to joy; and this he ascribes to
the grace of God alone, asserting that he had been his
deliverer.
12.
That my glory may sing praise
to thee. In this verse he more fully
expresses his acknowledgement of the purpose for which God had preserved him
from death, and that he would be careful to render him a proper return of
gratitude. Some refer the word glory to the body, and some to the soul,
or the higher powers of the mind. Others, as the pronoun my, which we
have supplied, is not in the Hebrew text, prefer to translate it in the
accusative case, supplying the word every man, in this way:
That every man may celebrate thy
glory; as if the prophet had said, This
is a blessing worthy of being celebrated by the public praises of all men. But
as all these interpretations are strained, I adhere to the sense which I have
given. The Hebrew word
dwbk,
kebod, which signifies glory, it is well known, is sometimes
employed metaphorically to signify the tongue, as we have seen in
<191609>Psalm
16:9. And as David adds immediately after,
I will celebrate thy praise for
ever, the context demands that he should
particularly speak of his own duty in this place. His meaning, therefore, is, O
Lord, as I know that thou hast preserved me for this purpose, that thy praises
may resound from my tongue, I will faithfully discharge this service to thee,
and perform my part even unto death.
To sing, and not be
silent, is a Hebrew amplification;
as if he had said, My tongue shall not be mute, or deprive God of his due
praise; it shall, on the contrary, devote itself to the celebration of his
glory.
PSALM
31.
David, having been delivered from some great danger,
or rather from many dangers, first relates the prayers which he had offered up
to God amidst the terrors of death. He then subjoins his thanksgiving, which is
no ordinary one; for he celebrates his deliverance at great length, and exhorts
all the saints to be of good hope, as they had in him a most excellent and
memorable example of God's goodness.
To the chief
musician. A psalm of David.
Psalm
31:1-4
1. In thee, O Jehovah! have I
put my trust, let me not be ashamed for ever: deliver me in thy righteousness.
2. Incline thine ear unto me, deliver me speedily; be unto me a strong
rock, a house of defense to save me. 3. For thou art my rock and my
fortress: and for thy name's sake thou wilt lead and guide
me.
fa599 4. Pluck me out of the net which
they have hidden for me; for thou art my
strength.
1.
In thee, O Jehovah! have I
put my trust. Some are of opinion that
this psalm was composed by David, after he had most unexpectedly escaped out of
the wilderness of Maon; to which I do not object, although it is only a doubtful
conjecture. Certainly he celebrates one or more of the greatest of his dangers.
In the commencement he tells us what kind of prayer he offered in his agony and
distress; and its language breathes affection of the most ardent nature. He
takes it for a ground of hope that he trusted in the Lord, or continued to trust
in him; for the verb in the past tense seems to denote a continued act. He held
it as a principle, that the hope which depends upon God cannot possibly be
disappointed. Meanwhile, we see how he brings forward nothing but faith alone;
promising himself deliverance only because he is persuaded that he will be saved
by the help and favor of God. But as this doctrine has been expounded already,
and will yet occur oftener than once, it is sufficient at present to have
glanced at it. Oh! that all of us would practice it in such a manner as that,
whenever we approach to God, we may be able with David to declare that our
prayers proceed from this source, namely, from a firm persuasion that our safety
depends on the power of God. The particle signifying for ever may be
explained in two ways. As God sometimes withdraws his favor, the meaning may not
unsuitably be, Although I am now deprived of thy help, yet cast me not off
utterly, or for evermore. Thus David, wishing to arm himself with patience
against his temptations, would make a contrast between these two things, —
being in distress for a time, and remaining in a state of
confusion.
fa600 But if any one choose rather to
understand his words in this way, "Whatever afflictions befall me, may God be
ready to help me, and ever and anon stretch forth his hand to me, as the case
requires," I would not reject this meaning any more than the other. David
desires to be delivered in the
righteousness of God, because God
displays his righteousness in performing his promise to his servants. It is too
much refinement of reasoning to assert that David here betakes himself to the
righteousness which God freely bestows on his people, because his own
righteousness by works was of no avail. Still more out of place is the opinion
of those who think that God preserves the saints according to his righteousness;
that is to say, because having acted so meritoriously, justice requires that
they should obtain their reward. It is easy to see from the frequent use of the
term in The Psalms, that God's righteousness means his faithfulness, in the
exercise of which he defends all his people who commit themselves to his
guardianship and protection. David, therefore, confirms his hope from the
consideration of the nature of God, who cannot deny himself, and who always
continues like
himself.
2.
incline thine ear unto me. These words
express with how much ardor David's soul was stimulated to pray. He affects no
splendid or ornate language, as rhetoricians are wont to do; but only describes
in suitable figures the vehemence of his desire. In praying that he may be
delivered speedily there is shown the greatness of his danger, as if he
had said, All will soon be over with my life, unless God make haste to help me.
By the words, house of defense, fortress, and rock, he intimates,
that, being unable to resist his enemies, his hope rests only on the protection
of God.
3.
For thou art my
rock. This verse may be read as one
sentence, thus:As thou art like a tower for my defense, for thy name's sake
direct and guide me during my whole life. And thus the conjunction, as in many
similar cases, would be superfluous. But I rather prefer a different sense,
namely, that David, by interjecting this reflection, encourages himself not only
to earnestness in prayer, but also in the confident hope of obtaining his
requests. We know, at all events, that it is usual with him to mingle such
things in his prayers as may serve to remove his doubts, and to confirm his
assurance. Having, therefore, expressed his need, he assures himself, in order
to encourage and animate himself, that his prayer shall certainly have a happy
answer. He had formerly said,
Be thou my strong rock and
fortress; and now he adds,
Assuredly thou art my rock, and
my fortress: intimating, that he did not
throw out these words rashly, like unbelievers, who, although they are
accustomed to ask much from God, are kept in suspense by the dread of uncertain
events. From this he also draws another encouragement, that he shall have God
for his guide and governor during the whole course of his life. He uses two
words, lead and guide, to express the same thing, and this he does
(at least so I explain it) on account of the various accidents and unequal
vicissitudes by which the lives of men are tried:as if he had said, Whether I
must climb the steep mountain, or struggle along through rough places, or walk
among thorns, I trust that thou wilt be my continual guide. Moreover, as men
will always find in themselves matter for doubt, if they look to their own
merits,
fa601 David expressly asks that God may be
induced to help him for his own name's sake, or from regard to his own
glory, as, properly speaking, there is no other thing which can induce him to
aid us. It must therefore be remembered, that God's name, as it is
opposed to all merit whatever, is the only cause of our salvation. In the next
verse, under the metaphor of a net, he appears to designate the snares
and artifices with which his enemies encompassed him. We know that conspiracies
were frequently formed against his life, which would have left him no room for
escape; and as his enemies were deeply skilled in policy, and hating him with an
inconceivable hatred, were eagerly bent on his destruction, it was impossible
for him to be saved from them by any human power. On this account he calls God
his strength; as if he had said, He alone is sufficient to rend asunder
all the snares with which he sees his afflicted people
entangled.
Psalm
31:5-8
5. Into thy hand I commit my
spirit, for thou hast redeemed me, O Jehovah! God of truth. 6. I hate all
that give heed to lying vanities; but I have trusted in Jehovah. 7. I
will be glad and rejoice in thy goodness, because thou hast regarded my
affliction: thou hast known my soul in distresses. 8. And thou hast not
shut me up in the hand of mine enemy:
fa602 thou hast set my feet in a large
place.
5.
Into thy hand I commit my
spirit. David again declares his faith
to God, and affirms that he had such high thoughts of his providence, as to cast
all his cares upon it. Whoever commits himself into God's hand and to his
guardianship, not only constitutes him the arbiter of life and death to him, but
also calmly depends on him for protection amidst all his dangers. The verb is in
the future tense, "I will commit," and it unquestionably denotes a continued
act, and is therefore fitly translated into the present tense. It is also to be
observed, that no man can possibly commit his life to God with sincerity, but he
who considers himself exposed to a thousand deaths, and that his life hangs by a
thread, or differs almost nothing from a breath which passes suddenly away.
David being thus at the point of despair, leaves nothing to himself to do but
this — to go on his way, trusting in God as the keeper and governor of his
life. It is marvellous, that, although many things distress us all, scarcely one
in a hundred is so wise as to commit his life into God's hand. Multitudes live
from day to day as merry and careless as if they were in a quiet nest, free from
all disturbance; but as soon as they encounter any thing to terrify them, they
are ready to die for anguish. It thus happens that they never betake themselves
to God, either because they deceive themselves with vain delusions, flattering
themselves that all will yet be well,
fa603 or because they are so stricken with
dread and stupified with amazement, that they have no desire for his fatherly
care. Farther, as various tempests of grief disturb us, and even sometimes throw
us down headlong, or drag us from the direct path of duty, or at least remove us
from our post, the only remedy which exists for setting these things at rest is
to consider that God, who is the author of our life, is also its preserver.
This, then, is the only means of lightening all our burdens, and preserving us
from being swallowed up of over-much sorrow. Seeing, therefore, that God
condescends to undertake the care of our lives, and to support them, although
they are often exposed to various sorts of death, let us learn always to flee to
this asylum; nay, the more that any one is exposed to dangers, let him exercise
himself the more carefully in meditating on it. In short, let this be our shield
against all dangerous attacks — our haven amidst all tossings and tempests
— that, although our safety may be beyond all human hope, God is the
faithful guardian of it; and let this again arouse us to prayer, that he would
defend us, and make our deliverance sure. This confidence will likewise make
every man forward to discharge his duty with alacrity, and constantly and
fearlessly to struggle onward to the end of his course. How does it happen that
so many are slothful and indifferent, and that others perfidiously forsake their
duty, but because, overwhelmed with anxiety, they are terrified at dangers and
inconveniences, and leave no room for the operation of the providence of
God?
To conclude, whoever relies not on the
providence of God, so as to commit his life to its faithful guardianship, has
not yet learned aright what it is to live. On the other hand, he who shall
entrust the keeping of his life to God's care, will not doubt of its safety even
in the midst of death. We must therefore put our life into God's hand, not only
that he may keep it safely in this world, but also that he may preserve it from
destruction in death itself, as Christ's own example has taught us. As David
wished to have his life prolonged amidst the dangers of death, so Christ passed
out of this transitory life that his soul might be saved in death. This is a
general prayer, therefore, in which the faithful commit their lives to God,
first, that he may protect them by his power, so long as they are exposed to the
dangers of this world; and, secondly, that he may preserve them safe in the
grave, where nothing is to be seen but destruction. We ought farther to assure
ourselves, that we are not forsaken of God either in life or in death; for those
whom God brings safely by his power to the end of their course, he at last
receives to himself at their death. This is one of the principal places of
Scripture which are most suitable for correcting distrust. It teaches us, first,
that the faithful ought not to torment themselves above measure with unhappy
cares and anxieties; and, secondly, that they should not be so distracted with
fear as to cease from performing their duty, nor decline and faint in such a
manner as to grasp at vain hopes and deceitful helps, nor give way to fears and
alarms; and, in fine, that they should not be afraid of death, which, though it
destroys the body, cannot extinguish the soul. This, indeed, ought to be our
principal argument for overcoming all temptations, that Christ, when commending
his soul to his Father, undertook the guardianship of the souls of all his
people. Stephen, therefore, calls upon him to be his keeper, saying, "Lord
Jesus, receive my spirit,"
(<440759>Acts
7:59.) As the soul is the seat of life, it is on this account, as is well known,
used to signify life.
Thou
hast redeemed me. Some translate the
past tense here into the future; but, in my opinion, without any reason. For it
is evident to me, that David is here encouraging himself to continued confidence
in God, by calling to remembrance the proofs of his favor which he had already
experienced.
fa604 It is no small encouragement to us for
the future, to be assuredly persuaded that God will watch over our life, because
he hath been our deliverer already. Hence the epithet by which David recognises
God. He calls him true or faithful, because he believes that he
will continue the same to him for ever that he has already been. Accordingly,
this is as it were a bond by which he joins to the former benefits which God had
conferred upon him confidence in prayer, and the hope of aid for the time to
come:as if he had said, Lord, thou who art ever the same, and changest not thy
mind like men, hast already testified in very deed that thou art the defender of
my life:now, therefore, I commit my life, of which thou hast been the preserver,
into thy hands. What David here declares concerning his temporal life, Paul
transfers to eternal salvation.
"I
know," says he, "whom I have believed, and am persuaded that he is able to keep
that which I have committed to
him,"
(<550112>2
Timothy 1:12.)
And surely, if David derived so
much confidence from temporal deliverance, it is more than wicked and ungrateful
on our part, if the redemption purchased by the blood of Christ does not furnish
us with invincible courage against all the devices of
Satan.
6.
I hate all that give heed to lying vanities.
In order the better to express that his faith was firmly fixed on God, he
affirms that he was free from the vile affections which usually turn away our
minds from God, and under which unbelievers for the most part labor. For we know
that by contrasting things which are opposite, a subject is better illustrated.
To restrict the Hebrew word
lbh,
hebel, which we have rendered vanities, to magical arts, as
some interpreters do, is absurd.
fa605 I confess, indeed, that the Orientals
were so much addicted to these impostures, that it was a common evil among them.
But as the devices by which Satan ensnares the minds of men, and the allurements
by which he draws them away from God, are innumerable, it is not at all probable
that the prophet mentions one species only. Whatever vain hopes, therefore, we
form to ourselves, which may draw us off from our confidence in God, David
generally denominates vanities, yea, false or lying vanities,
because, although they feed us for a time with magnificent promises, in the
end they beguile and disappoint us. He affirms, therefore, that casting away the
vanities which men usually invent to support their hopes, he relies solely on
God. And as men not only intoxicate themselves personally with the deceitful
allurements of the world, but in this respect also deceive one another, the
prophet expressly declares, with a view that we may carefully avoid them, unless
we wish to be wilfully entangled in their dangerous toils, that he hated all who
involved themselves in such lies. The second clause,
I have trusted in
Jehovah, must be read in connection with
the first, because it both assigns the cause of his hatred of lying vanities,
and shows that it is impossible for men to have any true faith in God, unless
they abhor whatever would draw them away from
him.
7.
I will be glad and rejoice in
thy goodness. Here is inserted a
thanksgiving, although many are rather of opinion that David's prayer is
suspended, and that he makes a vow, when he shall be delivered from present
danger. But as no condition is annexed, I am rather inclined to think that
stopping all at once in the middle of his prayer, he promises himself a
deliverance, for which he will have abundant matter for giving thanks. Nor is it
to be wondered at that different feelings are mingled in the psalms in which
David has set forth his own temptations, as well as the resistance which his
faith made to them, considering also that when he sung the praises of God, after
having already obtained deliverance from him, he embraces different periods in
his song, as he here says, that
God had regarded his affliction, intimating by
this the effect of the assistance which God had afforded him. And that he may
the better confirm this, he adds,
that he had not been delivered
into the hands of his enemies: in which
words there is an implied antithesis, namely, that when he was encompassed on
every side by severe afflictions, he was marvellously delivered by God. This is
also farther intimated by the following sentence,
Thou hast set my feet in a large
place,
fa606 which denotes a sudden and
unexpected change.
Psalm
31:9-13
9. Have mercy upon me, O
Jehovah! for I am in trouble: mine eye, my soul, and my belly, are consumed by
reason of anger. 10. For my life is wasted by reason of grief, and my
years with groaning; my strength faileth in my sorrow, and my bones are
consumed. 11. I was a reproach by reason of all mine enemies, yea,
exceedingly to my neighbors, and a fear to my acquaintances; and they who saw me
abroad fled from me. 12. I am forgotten as one dead, I am become like a
broken vessel. 13. For I have heard the railing of
many,
fa607 and fear encloseth me on every side,
while they consult together against me, and plot to take away my
life.
9.
Have mercy upon me, O
Jehovah! To move God to succor him, he
magnifies the greatness of his misery and grief by the number of his complaints;
not that God needs arguments to persuade him, but because he allows the faithful
to deal familiarly with him, that they may disburden themselves of their cares.
The greater the number of afflictions with which they are oppressed, the more do
they encourage themselves, while bewailing them before God, in the hope of
obtaining his assistance. These forms of expression may seem hyperbolical, but
it is obvious that it was David's purpose to declare and set forth what he had
felt in his own person. First, he says that
his eyes, his soul, and his
belly, were consumed with grief. From
this it appears that it was neither lightly nor for a short time that he was
thus tormented and vexed by these calamities. Indeed, he was endued with so much
meekness of spirit that he would not allow himself to be excited easily, and by
a slight circumstance, nor vexed by immoderate sorrow. He had also been for a
long time inured to the endurance of troubles. We must, therefore, admit that
his afflictions were incredibly severe, when he gave way to such a degree of
passion. By the word anger, too, he shows that he was not at all times of
such iron-like firmness, or so free from sinful passion, as that his grief did
not now and then break forth into an excess of impetuosity and keenness. Whence
we infer that the saints have often a severe and arduous conflict with their own
passions; and that although their patience has not always been free from
peevishness, yet by carefully wrestling against it, they have at last attained
this much, that no accumulation of troubles has overwhelmed them. By life
some understand the vital senses, an interpretation which I do not
altogether reject. But I prefer to explain it as simply meaning, that, being
consumed with grief, he felt his life and his years sliding away and failing.
And by these words again, David bewails not so much his pusillanimity of mind as
the grievousness of his calamities; although he was by no means ashamed to
confess his infirmity, for which he was anxiously seeking a remedy. When he
says, that his strength failed
under his sorrow, some interpreters
prefer reading, under his iniquity; and I confess that the Hebrew word
ˆw[,
on, bears both significations,
fa608 nay, more frequently it signifies an
offense or a fault. But as it is sometimes used for punishment,
I have chosen the sense which appears most agreeable to the context. And
although it is true that David was accustomed to ascribe the afflictions which
he at any time suffered to his own fault, yet, as he is only recounting his
miseries here, without mentioning the cause of them, it is probable that,
according to his usual manner, he expresses the same thing twice by different
words.
11.
I was a reproach by reason of
all mine enemies. Others translate thus
- more than mine enemies, and as the Hebrew letter
m,
mem, is often used as a sign of comparison, they interpret this clause to
mean that David's friends and acquaintances reproached him more than all his
enemies. But, in my opinion, he intended to express a different idea, namely,
that as he was everywhere hated, and his enemies had induced almost the whole
realm to take part with them against him, he had an evil name even among his
friends and neighbors; just as popular opinion, like a violent tempest, usually
carries all before it. I suppose, therefore, that the Hebrew copula
w,
vau, is used for the sake of amplification, to show that David was an object
of detestation, not only to strangers to whom he was formerly unknown, but also
to his principal friends. He adds, likewise, that
when they saw him abroad they
fled from him. By the adverb, abroad,
he means to say, that they did not think the miserable man worthy of a near
approach to them; nay, that they fled from the very sight of him, at however
great a distance, lest the contagion of his misery should reach them, and
because they reckoned it would be injurious and disgraceful to them to show him
any sign of friendship.
12.
I am forgotten as one
dead. The Psalmist still pursues the
same idea, and complains that he was as completely blotted out of all men's
remembrance as if he had been dead. The memory of some men after their death
flourishes for a time among survivors, but it more frequently vanishes; for
there is no longer any intercourse between the quick and the dead, nor can the
living be of any farther service to the dead. David illustrates this idea by the
metaphor of a broken vessel,
fa609 which denotes utter contempt and
meanness; as if he had said, that he was accounted no longer worthy of any place
or respect. He adds, in fine, that he was railed upon by the multitude, and
agitated with terrors. I would, however, prefer translating the Hebrew word
µybr,
rabbim, by the great,
fa610 rather than by many. When
great men, who are often as powerful in judgment as in authority, slander and
defame us as wicked persons, this adds to the indignity with which we are
treated, because, whatever they say in condemnation of us has the effect of
prejudicing the common people against us. It will therefore be very suitable to
understand the words as meaning that David was ignominiously condemned by the
whole order of the nobility; and thus the innocence of this afflicted man was
thrown into the shade by their greatness. This interpretation is confirmed by
what immediately follows:—
Fear encloseth me on every
side,
fa611 while they consult
together against me. As he is still
speaking of the same persons, it is certain that this language applies more
appropriately to the nobles than to the common people. Moreover, we see that the
primary object of the wicked in the deceitful counsels by which they conspired
to destroy David, was to create among the whole people hatred against him as a
wicked and reprobate man. We also see that while they mangled his reputation,
they did it in such a manner as that they covered their wickedness under the
appearance of grave and considerate procedure, in consulting among themselves to
destroy him as a man who no longer ought to be tolerated on the earth. It is not
to be wondered at, therefore, that his mind was wounded, as we have just seen,
by so many and so sharp
temptations.
Psalm
31:14-18
14. Yet have I trusted in
thee, O Jehovah! I have said, Thou art my God. 15. My times are in thy
hand; deliver me from the hand of mine enemies, and from them that persecute me.
16. Make thy face to shine upon thy servant; preserve me in thy goodness.
17. O Jehovah! let me not be ashamed; for I have called on thee: let the
wicked be ashamed, let them be silent in the grave. 18. Let lying lips be
put to silence, which speak a hard [or grievous] thing against the just, in
pride and scorn.
14.
Yet have I trusted in thee, O
Jehovah! The rendering properly is,
And I have trusted in thee; but the Hebrew copulative particle
w,
vau, and, is used here instead of the adversative particle yet, or
nevertheless. David, setting the steadfastness of his faith in opposition
to the assaults of the temptations of which he has made mention, denies that he
had ever fainted, but rather maintains, on the contrary, that he stood firm in
his hope of deliverance from God. Nor does this imply that he boasted of being
so magnanimous and courageous that he could not be overthrown through the
infirmity of the flesh. However contrary to one another they appear, yet these
things are often joined together, as they ought to be, in the same person,
namely, that while he pines away with grief, and is deprived of all strength, he
is nevertheless supported by so strong a hope that he ceases not to call upon
God. David, therefore, was not so overwhelmed in deep sorrow, and other direful
sufferings, as that the hidden light of faith could not shine inwardly in his
heart; nor did he groan so much under the weighty load of his temptations, as to
be prevented from arousing himself to call upon God. He struggled through many
obstacles to be able to make the confession which he here makes. He next defines
the manner of his faith, namely, that he reflected with himself thus that God
would never fail him nor forsake him. Let us mark his manner of
speech:I have said, Thou art my
God. In these words he intimates that he
was so entirely persuaded of this truth, that God was his God, that he would not
admit even a suggestion to the contrary. And until this persuasion prevails so
as to take possession of our minds, we shall always waver in uncertainty. It is,
however, to be observed, that this declaration is not only inward and secret -
made rather in the heart than with the tongue - but that it is directed to God
himself, as to him who is the alone witness of it. Nothing is more difficult,
when we see our faith derided by the whole world, than to direct our speech to
God only, and to rest satisfied with this testimony which our conscience gives
us, that he is our God. And certainly it is an undoubted proof of genuine
faith, when, however fierce the waves are which beat against us, and however
sore the assaults by which we are shaken, we hold fast this as a fixed
principle, that we are constantly under the protection of God, and can say to
him freely, Thou art our
God.
15.
My times are in thy
hand. That he might the more cheerfully
commit the preservation of his person to God, he assures us, that, trusting to
his divine guardianship, he did not trouble himself about those casual and
unforeseen events which men commonly dread. The import of his language is, Lord,
it is thy prerogative, and thou alone hast the power, to dispose of both my life
and my death. Nor does he use the plural number, in my opinion, without reason;
but rather to mark the variety of casualties by which the life of man is usually
harassed. It is a cold exposition to restrict the phrase, my times, to
the time which he had to live, as if David meant no more than that his time or
his days on earth were in God's hand. On the contrary, I am of opinion that,
while he mused on the various revolutions and manifold dangers which continually
hang over us, and the manifold unlooked-for events which from time to time
happen, he nevertheless confidently reposed upon the providence of God, which he
believed to be, according to the common saying, the arbiter both of good and of
evil fortune. In the first clause we see that he not only denominates God the
governor of the world in general, but also affirms that his life is in his hand;
and not only so, but that to whatever agitations it might be subjected, and
whatever trials and vicissitudes might befall him, he was safe under his
protection. On this he founds his prayer, that God would preserve and
deliver him from the hand of his
enemies.
16.
Make thy face to shine upon thy
servant. We have said formerly, and we
shall see in many instances hereafter, that this form of speech is taken from
the common apprehension of men, who think that God regards them not, unless he
really show his care of them by its effects. According to the judgment of sense,
afflictions hide his countenance, just as clouds obscure the brightness of the
sun. David therefore supplicates that God, by affording him immediate
assistance, would make it evident to him that he enjoyed his grace and favor,
which it is not very easy to discern amidst the darkness of afflictions. Now,
God is said to lift the light of his countenance upon us in two ways; either
when he opens his eyes to take care of our affairs, or when he shows to us his
favor. These two things are indeed inseparable, or rather, the one depends upon
the other. But by the first mode of speech, we, according to our carnal
conceptions, attribute to God a mutability which, properly speaking, does not
belong to him:whereas the second form of speech indicates, that our own eyes,
rather than the eyes of God, are shut or heavy when he seems to have no regard
to our afflictions. By the word preserve David explains what he meant by
the former expression; but as there was at that time no way of safety apparent
to him, he encourages himself to hope for it by setting before him the
goodness of God.
17.
O Jehovah! let me not be
ashamed. In these words, the Psalmist
continues his prayer, and to strengthen his hopes, he contrasts himself with his
enemies; for it would have been more than absurd to permit those who by their
wickedness so openly provoked the wrath of God to escape with impunity, and that
one who was innocent and relied upon God should be disappointed and made a
laughing-stock. Here, accordingly, we perceive what the Psalmist's comparison
implies. Moreover, instead of speaking of his hope or trust, he now speaks of
his calling upon God, saying, I
have called on thee; and he does this
with good reason, for he who relies on the providence of God must flee to him
with prayers and strong cries. To
be silent in the grave, implies that
death, when it befalls the ungodly, restrains and prevents them from doing
farther injury. This silence is opposed both to their deceitful and treacherous
devices, and to their outrageous insolence. In the very next verse, therefore,
he adds, Let lying lips be put to
silence, which, in my opinion, includes
both their craftiness, and the false pretences and calumnies by which they
endeavor to accomplish their designs, and also the vain boasting in which they
indulge themselves. For he tells us that
they speak with harshness and
severity against the righteous, in pride and
scorn; because it was their froward
conceit, which almost always begets contempt, that made David's enemies so bold
in lying. Whoever proudly arrogates to himself more than is his due, will almost
necessarily treat others with
contempt.
Psalm
31:19-21
19. O how great is thy
goodness which thou hast hidden
fa612 for them that fear thee! which thou
hast performed for them that trust in thee before the sons of men! 20.
Thou shalt hide them in the secret [or, in the hiding-place] of thy countenance
from the pride of man; thou shalt hide them as in a tent from the strife of
tongues. 21. Blessed be Jehovah! for he hath made wonderful his goodness
towards me, as in a fortified city.
19.
O how great is thy goodness
which thou hast hidden for them that fear
thee! In this verse the Psalmist
exclaims that God is incomprehensibly good and beneficent towards his servants.
Goodness here means those divine blessings which are the effects of it.
The interrogatory form of the sentence has a peculiar emphasis; for David not
only asserts that God is good, but he is ravished with admiration of the
goodness which he had experienced. It was this experience, undoubtedly, which
caused him break out into the rapturous language of this verse; for he had been
marvellously and unexpectedly delivered from his calamities. By his example,
therefore, he enjoins believers to rise above the apprehension of their own
understanding, in order that they may promise themselves, and expect far more
from the grace of God than human reason is able to conceive. He says that the
goodness of God is hidden for his servants, because it is a treasure
which is peculiar to them. It, no doubt, extends itself in various ways to the
irreligious and unworthy, and is set before them indiscriminately; but it
displays itself much more plenteously and clearly towards the faithful, because
it is they alone who enjoy all God's benefits for their salvation.
God
"maketh his sun to
rise on the evil and on the
good,"
(<400545>Matthew
5:45,)
and shows himself bountiful even to the irrational
creation; but he declares himself a Father, in the true and full sense of the
term, to those only who are his servants. It is not without reason, therefore,
that the goodness of God is said to be hidden for the faithful, whom alone he
accounts worthy of enjoying his favor most intimately and tenderly. Some give a
more subtle interpretation of the phrase, the goodness of God is hidden,
explaining it as meaning that God, by often exercising his children
with crosses and afflictions, hides his favor from them, although, at the same
time, he does not forget them. It is more probable, however, that it should be
understood of a treasure which God has set apart and laid up in store for them,
unless perhaps we choose to refer it to the experience of the saints, because
they alone, as I have said, experience in their souls the fruit of divine
goodness; whereas brutish stupidity hinders the wicked from acknowledging God as
a beneficent Father, even while they are devouring greedily his good things. And
thus it comes to pass, that while the goodness of God fills and overspreads all
parts of the world, it is notwithstanding generally unknown. But the mind of the
sacred writer will be more clearly perceived from the contrast which exists
between the faithful and those who are strangers to God's love. As a provident
man will regulate his liberality towards all men in such a manner as not to
defraud his children or family, nor impoverish his own house, by spending his
substance prodigally on others; so God, in like manner, in exercising his
beneficence to aliens from his family, knows well how to reserve for his own
children that which belongs to them as it were by hereditary right; that is to
say, because of their adoption.
fa613 The attempt of Augustine to prove from
these words that those who unbelievingly dread God's judgment have no experience
of his goodness, is most inappropriate. To perceive his mistaken view of the
passage, it is only necessary to look to the following clause, in which David
says that God makes the world to perceive that he exercises inestimable goodness
towards those who serve him, both in protecting them and in providing for their
welfare. Whence we learn, that it is not of the everlasting blessedness which is
reserved for the godly in heaven that the Psalmist here speaks, but of the
protection and other blessings which belong to the preservation of the present
life; which he declares to be so manifest that even the ungodly themselves are
forced to become eye-witnesses of them. The world, I admit, passes over
all the works of God with its eyes shut, and is especially ignorant of his
fatherly care of the saints; still it is certain that there shine forth such
daily proofs of it, that even the reprobate cannot but see them, except in so
far as they willingly shut their eyes against the light. David, therefore,
speaks according to truth, when he declares that God gives evidences of his
goodness to his people before the sons of men, that it may be clearly
seen that they do not serve him unadvisedly or in
vain.
fa614
20.
Thou shalt hide them in the
secret of thy countenance. In this verse
the Psalmist specially commends the grace of God, because it preserves and
protects the faithful against all harm. As Satan assiduously and by innumerable
means opposes their welfare, and as the greater part of the world is at deadly
war with them, they must be exposed to many dangers. Unless God, therefore,
protected them by his power, and came from time to time to their aid, their
condition would be most miserable. The Psalmist makes an allusion to the
hiding which he had just mentioned, and although the metaphor may, at first
sight, appear somewhat harsh, it very aptly expresses, that provided the Lord
take care of them, the faithful are perfectly safe under his protection alone.
By this eulogium, therefore, he sublimely extols the power of divine Providence,
because it alone suffices to ward off every species of evil, and while it shines
upon the godly, it blinds the eyes of all the wicked, and weakens their
hands.
fa615 In the opinion of some, the Psalmist,
when he speaks of the secret of
God's countenance, refers to the
sanctuary, an interpretation which I do not altogether reject, although it does
not appear to me sufficiently solid. Again, he says that God hides the faithful
from the pride of man and the
strife of tongues, because, if God
restrain not the wicked, we know that they have the audacity to break forth with
outrageous violence against the truly godly; but however unbridled their lust
and insolence may be, God preserves his people from harm, by wondrously covering
them with the brightness of his countenance. Some translate the Hebrew word
µyskyr,
rikasim, conspiracies,
fa616 others perversities, but
without any reason; nor, indeed, does the etymology of the word admit of it, for
it comes from a root which signifies to lift up, or to elevate. To
pride is added the strife of tongues, because God's children have
cause to fear not only the inhuman deeds of their enemies, but also their still
more wicked and violent calumnies, as David himself more than enough
experienced. And as our innocence ought to be justly dearer to us than our life,
let us learn to cultivate uprightness in such a manner as that, trusting to
God's protection, we may disregard every false calumny. And let us always
remember that it is God's peculiar prerogative to vindicate his people from all
unjust reproaches.
21.
Blessed be
Jehovah! These general truths the
Psalmist here proceeds to apply to his own circumstances, and he declares that
the goodness of God in preserving his life was wondrously displayed. As he
speaks of aid which had been suddenly and unexpectedly afforded him in very
desperate circumstances, those interpreters judge aright who here supply as,
the mark of similitude,
fa617 in this way,
as in a fortified
city. David lay open to every blow, and
had been exposed to every sort of injury, and he boasts that in his nakedness
and destitution the assistance of God had been of greater service to him than a
city well fortified, or an impregnable fortress would have
been.
Psalm
31:22-24
22. And I said in my
fear
fa618 I am cast out of thy sight: yet truly
thou hast heard the voice of my supplications when I cried unto thee. 23.
O love Jehovah, all ye his meek ones! Jehovah preserveth the faithful, and
plentifully
fa619 recompenseth him who behaveth himself
proudly. 24. Be of good courage, and he shall strengthen your heart, all
ye who hope in Jehovah.
22.
And I said in my
fear. David here confesses that for his
distrust he deserved to be deserted by God and left to perish. It is true that
to confess this before men he felt to be a shameful thing; but that he may the
more fully illustrate the grace of God to him, he hesitates not to publish the
shame of his fault. He repeats almost the same acknowledgement in
<19B611>Psalm
116:11, "I said in my haste, All men are liars." I am aware that the Hebrew word
zpj,
chaphaz, is explained by some as meaning flight; as if David, in
fleeing from death, because he was unable to make resistance, was stricken with
this fear. But I refer it rather to his trouble of mind. Whether, therefore, we
translate it haste or fear, it means that he had been, as it were,
carried headlong to entertain the thought that he was neglected by God. And this
haste is opposed to calm and deliberate consideration; for although David was
stricken with fear, he did not faint under the trial, and this persuasion did
not continue fixed in his mind. For we know that the faithful are often
disquieted by fears and the heat of impatience, or driven headlong as it were by
their too hasty or precipitate wishes, but afterwards they come to themselves.
That David's faith had never been overthrown by this temptation appears from the
context, for he immediately adds,
that God had heard the voice of
his supplications; but if his faith had
been extinguished, he could not have brought his mind earnestly to engage in
prayer, and therefore this complaint was only a lapse of the tongue uttered in
haste. Now if peevish hastiness of thought could drive this holy prophet of God,
a man who was adorned with so many excellencies, to despair, how much reason
have we to fear, lest our minds should fail and fatally ruin us? This confession
of David, as we have already observed, serves to magnify the grace of
God; but at the same time he sufficiently shows, in the second clause of the
verse, that his faith, although severely shaken, had not been altogether
eradicated, because he ceased not meanwhile to pray. The saints often wrestle in
this manner with their distrust, that partly they may not despond, and that
partly they may gather courage and stimulate themselves to prayer. Nor does the
weakness of the flesh, even when they are almost overthrown, hinder them from
showing that they are unwearied and invincible champions before God. But
although David stoutly resisted temptation, he nevertheless acknowledges himself
unworthy of God's grace, of which he in some measure deprived himself by his
doubt. For the Hebrew particle
ˆka,
aken, is here to be understood adversatively and rendered yet,
intimating that David had been preserved without any desert of his own,
inasmuch as God's immeasurable goodness strove with his unbelief. But as it is a
sign of affirmation in Hebrew, I have thought proper to translate it, Yet
truly. I have no doubt that he opposes his language to the various
temptations with which, it is probable, his mind had been driven hither and
thither.
23.
O love Jehovah, all ye his
meek ones! In my opinion, the Psalmist
does not here exhort the saints to fear and reverence God, as many think, but
encourages them to confide in him; or, in other words, to devote themselves
wholly to him, to put all their hope in him, and to rely entirely upon him,
without seeking to any other. Whence is it that our own fond devices delight us,
but because we do not delight in God so much as we ought, and because our
affections do not cleave to him? This love of God, therefore, comprehends in it
all the desires of the heart. By nature, all men greatly desire to be in a
prosperous or happy state; but while the greater number are fascinated by the
allurements of the world, and prefer its lies and impostures, scarcely one in a
hundred sets his heart on God. The reason which immediately follows confirms
this interpretation; for the inspired Psalmist exhorts the meek to love
God, because he preserves the faithful, which is as if he had desired
them to rest satisfied with his guardianship, and to acknowledge that in it they
had sufficient succor.
fa620 In the meantime, he admonishes them to
keep a good conscience, and to cultivate uprightness, since God promises to
preserve only such as are upright and faithful. On the other hand, he declares
that he plentifully recompenses
the proud, in order that when we observe
them succeeding prosperously for a time, an unworthy emulation may not entice us
to imitate them, and that their haughtiness, and the outrage they commit, while
they think they are at liberty to do what they please, may not crush and break
our spirits. The amount of the whole is this, Although the ungodly flatter
themselves, while they proceed in their wickedness with impunity, and believers
are harassed with many fears and dangers, yet devote yourselves to God, and rely
upon his grace, for he will always defend the faithful, and reward the proud as
they deserve. Concerning the meaning of the Hebrew word
rtyAl[,
al-yether, which we have rendered
plentifully,
fa621 interpreters are not agreed.
Some translate it pride, meaning that to those who behave themselves
proudly, God will render according to their pride; others translate it to
overflowing, or beyond measure, because
rty,
yether, signifies in Hebrew residue or remnant; instead of
which I have translated it plentifully. Some understand it as extending
to their children and children's children, who shall remain the residue of their
seed. Besides, as the same word is frequently used for
excellence,
fa622 I have no doubt that the prophet
elegantly rebukes the proud, who imagine that their fancied excellence is not
only a shield to them, but, an invincible fortress against God. As their
groundless authority and power blind, or rather bewitch them, so that they vaunt
themselves intemperately and without measure against those who are lowly and
feeble, the prophet elegantly says that there is a reward in store for them
proportioned to the haughtiness with which they are puffed
up.
24.
Be of good
courage. This exhortation is to be
understood in the same way as the preceding; for the steadfastness which the
Psalmist here enjoins is founded on the love of God of which he had spoken, when
renouncing all the enticements of the world, we embrace with our whole hearts
the defense and protection which he promises to us. Nor is his exhortation to
courage and firmness unnecessary; because, when any one begins to rely on God,
he must lay his account with and arm himself for sustaining many assaults from
Satan. We are first, then, calmly to commit ourselves to the protection and
guardianship of God, and to endeavor to have the experience of his goodness
pervading our whole minds. Secondly, thus furnished with steady firmness and
unfailing strength, we are to stand prepared to sustain every day new conflicts.
As no man, however, is able of himself to sustain these conflicts, David urges
us to hope for and ask the spirit of fortitude from God, a matter particularly
worthy of our notice. For hence we are taught, that when the Spirit of God puts
us in mind of our duty, he examines not what each man's ability is, nor does he
measure men's services by their own strength, but stimulates us rather to pray
and beseech God to correct our defects, as it is he alone who can do
this.
PSALM
32.
David having largely and painfully experienced what a
miserable thing it is to feel God's hand heavy on account of sin, exclaims that
the highest and best part of a happy life consists in this, that God forgives a
man's guilt, and receives him graciously into his favor. After giving thanks for
pardon obtained, he invites others to fellowship with him in his happiness,
showing, by his own example, the means by which this may be
obtained.
A Psalm of David
giving instruction.
The title of this psalm gives some idea of its
subject. Some think that the Hebrew word
lykçm,
maskil, which we have rendered giving
instruction,
fa623 is taken from verse
7th;
fa624 but it is more accurate to consider it
as a title given to the psalm in accordance with its whole scope and subject
matter. David, after enduring long and dreadful torments, when God was severely
trying him, by showing him the tokens of his wrath, having at length obtained
favor, applies this evidence of the divine goodness for his own benefit, and the
benefit of the whole Church, that from it he may teach himself and them what
constitutes the chief point of salvation. All men must necessarily be either in
miserable torment, or, which is worse, forgetting themselves and God, must
continue in deadly lethargy, until they are persuaded that God is reconciled
towards them. Hence David here teaches us that the happiness of men consists
only in the free forgiveness of sins, for nothing can be more terrible than to
have God for our enemy; nor can he be gracious to us in any other way than by
pardoning our transgressions.
Psalm
32:1-2
1. Blessed are they whose
iniquity is forgiven, and whose transgression is covered. 2. Blessed is
the man to whom Jehovah imputeth no sin, and in whose spirit there is no
guile.
1.
Blessed are they whose
iniquity is forgiven. This exclamation
springs from the fervent affection of the Psalmist's heart as well as from
serious consideration. Since almost the whole world turning away their thoughts
from God's judgment, bring upon themselves a fatal forgetfulness, and intoxicate
themselves with deceitful pleasures; David, as if he had been stricken with the
fear of God's wrath, that he might betake himself to Divine mercy, awakens
others also to the same exercise, by declaring distinctly and loudly that those
only are blessed to whom God is reconciled, so as to acknowledge those for his
children whom he might justly treat as his enemies. Some are so blinded with
hypocrisy and pride, and some with such gross contempt of God, that they are not
at all anxious in seeking forgiveness, but all acknowledge that they need
forgiveness; nor is there a man in existence whose conscience does not accuse
him at God's judgment-seat, and gall him with many stings. This confession,
accordingly, that all need forgiveness, because no man is perfect, and that then
only is it well with us when God pardons our sins, nature herself extorts even
from wicked men. But in the meantime, hypocrisy shuts the eyes of multitudes,
while others are so deluded by a perverse carnal security, that they are touched
either with no feelings of Divine wrath, or with only a frigid feeling of
it.
From this proceeds a twofold error:first,
that such men make light of their sins, and reflect not on the hundredth part of
their danger from God's indignation; and, secondly, that they invent frivolous
expiations to free themselves from guilt and to purchase the favor of God. Thus
in all ages it has been everywhere a prevailing opinion, that although all men
are infected with sin, they are at the same time adorned with merits which are
calculated to procure for them the favor of God, and that although they provoke
his wrath by their crimes, they have expiations and satisfactions in readiness
to obtain their absolution. This delusion of Satan is equally common among
Papists, Turks, Jews, and other nations. Every man, therefore, who is not
carried away by the furious madness of Popery, will admit the truth of this
statement, that men are in a wretched state unless God deal mercifully with them
by not laying their sins to their charge. But David goes farther, declaring that
the whole life of man is subjected to God's wrath and curse, except in so far as
he vouchsafes of his own free grace to receive them into his favor; of which the
Spirit who spake by David is an assured interpreter and witness to us by the
mouth of Paul,
(<450406>Romans
4:6.) Had Paul not used this testimony, never would his readers have penetrated
the real meaning of the prophet; for we see that the Papists, although they
chant in their temples, "Blessed are they whose iniquities are forgiven,"
etc., yet pass over it as if it were some common saying and of little
importance. But with Paul, this is the full definition of the righteousness of
faith; as if the prophet had said, Men are then only blessed when they are
freely reconciled to God, and counted as righteous by him. The blessedness,
accordingly, that David celebrates utterly destroys the righteousness of works.
The device of a partial righteousness with which Papists and others delude
themselves is mere folly; and even among those who are destitute of the light of
heavenly doctrine, no one will be found so mad as to arrogate a perfect
righteousness to himself, as appears from the expiations, washings, and other
means of appeasing God, which have always been in use among all nations. But yet
they do not hesitate to obtrude their virtues upon God, just as if by them they
had acquired of themselves a great part of their
blessedness.
David, however, prescribes a very
different order, namely, that in seeking happiness, all should begin with the
principle, that God cannot be reconciled to those who are worthy of eternal
destruction in any other way than by freely pardoning them, and bestowing upon
them his favor. And justly does he declare that if mercy is withheld from them,
all men must be utterly wretched and accursed; for if all men are naturally
prone only to evil, until they are regenerated, their whole previous life, it is
obvious, must be hateful and loathsome in the sight of God. Besides, as even
after regeneration, no work which men perform can please God unless he pardons
the sin which mingles with it, they must be excluded from the hope of salvation.
Certainly nothing will remain for them but cause for the greatest terror. That
the works of the saints are unworthy of reward because they are spotted with
stains, seems a hard saying to the Papists. But, in this they betray their gross
ignorance in estimating, according to their own conceptions, the judgment of
God, in whose eyes the very brightness of the stars is but darkness. Let this
therefore remain an established doctrine, that as we are only accounted
righteous before God by the free remission of sins, this is the gate of eternal
salvation; and, accordingly, that they only are blessed who rely upon God's
mercy. We must bear in mind the contrast which I have already mentioned between
believers who, embracing the remission of sins, rely upon the grace of
God alone, and all others who neglect to betake themselves to the sanctuary of
Divine grace.
Moreover, when David thrice
repeats the same thing, this is no vain repetition. It is indeed sufficiently
evident of itself that the man must be blessed whose iniquity is forgiven; but
experience teaches us how difficult it is to become persuaded of this in such a
manner as to have it thoroughly fixed in our hearts. The great majority, as I
have already shown you, entangled by devices of their own, put away from them,
as far as they can, the terrors of conscience and all fear of Divine wrath. They
have, no doubt, a desire to be reconciled to God; and yet they shun the sight of
him, rather than seek his grace sincerely and with all their hearts. Those, on
the other hand, whom God has truly awakened so as to be affected with a lively
sense of their misery, are so constantly agitated and disquieted that it is
difficult to restore peace to their minds. They taste indeed God's mercy, and
endeavor to lay hold of it, and yet they are frequently abashed or made to
stagger under the manifold assaults which are made upon them. The two reasons
for which the Psalmist insists so much on the subject of the forgiveness of sins
are these, - that he may, on the one hand, raise up those who are fallen asleep,
inspire the careless with thoughtfulness, and quicken the dull; and that he may,
on the other hand, tranquillise fearful and anxious minds with an assured and
steady confidence. To the former, the doctrine may be applied in this
manner:"What mean ye, O ye unhappy men! that one or two stings of conscience do
not disturb you? Suppose that a certain limited knowledge of your sins is not
sufficient to strike you with terror, yet how preposterous is it to continue
securely asleep, while you are overwhelmed with an immense load of sins?" And
this repetition furnishes not a little comfort and confirmation to the feeble
and fearful. As doubts are often coming upon them, one after another, it is not
sufficient that they are victorious in one conflict only. That despair,
therefore, may not overwhelm them amidst the various perplexing thoughts with
which they are agitated, the Holy Spirit confirms and ratifies the remission of
sins with many declarations.
It is now proper to
weigh the particular force of the expressions here employed. Certainly the
remission which is here treated of does not agree with satisfactions. God, in
lifting off or taking away sins, and likewise in covering and not imputing them,
freely pardons them. On this account the Papists, by thrusting in their
satisfactions and works of supererogation as they call them, bereave themselves
of this blessedness. Besides, David applies these words to complete forgiveness.
The distinction, therefore, which the Papists here make between the remission of
the punishment and of the fault, by which they make only half a pardon, is not
at all to the purpose. Now, it is necessary to consider to whom this happiness
belongs, which may be easily gathered from the circumstance of the time. When
David was taught that he was blessed through the mercy of God alone, he was not
an alien from the church of God; on the contrary, he had profited above many in
the fear and service of God, and in holiness of life, and had exercised himself
in all the duties of godliness. And even after making these advances in
religion, God so exercised him, that he placed the alpha and omega of his
salvation in his gratuitous reconciliation to God. Nor is it without reason that
Zacharias, in his song, represents "the knowledge of salvation" as consisting in
knowing "the remission of sins,"
(<420177>Luke
1:77.) The more eminently that any one excels in holiness, the farther he feels
himself from perfect righteousness, and the more clearly he perceives that he
can trust in nothing but the mercy of God alone. Hence it appears, that those
are grossly mistaken who conceive that the pardon of sin is necessary only to
the beginning of righteousness. As believers are every day involved in many
faults, it will profit them nothing that they have once entered the way of
righteousness, unless the same grace which brought them into it accompany them
to the last step of their life. Does any one object, that they are elsewhere
said to be blessed "who fear the Lord," "who walk in his ways," "who
are upright in heart," etc., the answer is easy, namely, that as the perfect
fear of the Lord, the perfect observance of his law, and perfect uprightness of
heart, are nowhere to be found, all that the Scripture anywhere says, concerning
blessedness, is founded upon the free favor of God, by which he reconciles us to
himself.
2.
In whose spirit there is no guile. In
this clause the Psalmist distinguishes believers both from hypocrites and from
senseless despisers of God, neither of whom care for this happiness, nor can
they attain to the enjoyment of it. The wicked are, indeed, conscious to
themselves of their guilt, but still they delight in their wickedness; harden
themselves in their impudence, and laugh at threatenings; or, at least, they
indulge themselves in deceitful flatteries, that they may not be constrained to
come into the presence of God. Yea, though they are rendered unhappy by a sense
of their misery, and harassed with secret torments, yet with perverse
forgetfulness they stifle all fear of God. As for hypocrites, if their
conscience as any time stings them, they soothe their pain with ineffectual
remedies:so that if God at any time cite them to his tribunal, they place before
them I know not what phantoms for their defense; and they are never without
coverings whereby they may keep the light out of their hearts. Both these
classes of men are hindered by inward guile from seeking their happiness in the
fatherly love of God. Nay more, many of them rush frowardly into the presence of
God, or puff themselves up with proud presumption, dreaming that they are happy,
although God is against them. David, therefore, means that no man can taste what
the forgiveness of sins is until his heart is first cleansed from guile. What he
means, then, by this term, guile, may be understood from what I have
said. Whoever examines not himself, as in the presence of God, but, on the
contrary, shunning his judgment, either shrouds himself in darkness, or covers
himself with leaves, deals deceitfully both with himself and with God. It is no
wonder, therefore, that he who feels not his disease refuses the remedy. The two
kinds of this guile which I have mentioned are to be particularly attended to.
Few may be so hardened as not to be touched with the fear of God, and with some
desire of his grace, and yet they are moved but coldly to seek forgiveness.
Hence it comes to pass, that they do not yet perceive what an unspeakable
happiness it is to possess God's favor. Such was David's case for a time, when a
treacherous security stole upon him, darkened his mind, and prevented him from
zealously applying himself to pursue after this happiness. Often do the saints
labor under the same disease. If, therefore, we would enjoy the happiness which
David here proposes to us, we must take the greatest heed lest Satan, filling
our hearts with guile, deprive us of all sense of our wretchedness, in which
every one who has recourse to subterfuges must necessarily pine
away.
Psalm
32:3-4
3. When I kept silence, my
bones wasted away, and when I cried out all the day. 4. For day and night
thy hand was heavy upon me; and my greenness was turned into the drought of
summer.
3.
When I kept silence, my bones
wasted away. Here David confirms, by his
own experience, the doctrine which he had laid down; namely, that when humbled
under the hand of God, he felt that nothing was so miserable as to be deprived
of his favor:by which he intimates, that this truth cannot be rightly understood
until God has tried us with a feeling of his anger. Nor does he speak of a mere
ordinary trial, but declares that he was entirely subdued with the extremest
rigour. And certainly, the sluggishness of our flesh, in this matter, is no less
wonderful than its hardihood. If we are not drawn by forcible means, we will
never hasten to seek reconciliation to God so earnestly as we ought. In fine,
the inspired writer teaches us by his own example, that we never perceive how
great a happiness it is to enjoy the favor of God, until we have thoroughly felt
from grievous conflicts with inward temptations, how terrible the anger of God
is. He adds, that whether he was silent, or whether he attempted to heighten his
grief by his crying and roaring,
fa625 his bones waxed old; in other words,
his whole strength withered away. From this it follows, that whithersoever the
sinner may turn himself, or however he may be mentally affected, his malady is
in no degree lightened, nor his welfare in any degree promoted, until he is
restored to the favor of God. It often happens that those are tortured with the
sharpest grief who gnaw the bit, and inwardly devour their sorrow, and keep it
enclosed and shut up within, without discovering it, although afterwards they
are seized as with sudden madness, and the force of their grief bursts forth
with the greater impetus the longer it has been restrained. By the term
silence, David means neither insensibility nor stupidity, but that
feeling which lies between patience and obstinacy, and which is as much allied
to the vice as to the virtue. For his bones were not consumed with age, but with
the dreadful torments of his mind. His silence, however, was not the silence of
hope or obedience, for it brought no alleviation of his
misery.
4.
For day and night thy hand
was heavy upon me. In this verse he
explains more fully whence such heavy grief arose; namely, because he felt the
hand of God to be sore against him. The greatest of all afflictions is to be so
heavily pressed with the hand of God, that the sinner feels he has to do with a
Judge whose indignation and severity involve in them many deaths, besides
eternal death. David, accordingly, complains that his moisture was dried up, not
merely from simply meditating on his sore afflictions, but because he had
discovered their cause and spring. The whole strength of men fails when God
appears as a Judge and humbles and lays them prostrate by exhibiting the signs
of his displeasure. Then is fulfilled the saying of Isaiah,
"The grass withereth, the
flower fadeth, because the Spirit of the Lord bloweth upon it."
(<234007>Isaiah
40:77)
The Psalmist, moreover, tells us, that it was no
common chastisement by which he had been taught truly to fear the divine wrath;
for the hand of the Lord ceased not to be heavy upon him both day and night.
From a child, indeed, he had been inspired with the fear of God, by the secret
influence of the Holy Spirit, and had been taught in true religion and godliness
by sound doctrine and instruction. And yet so insufficient was this instruction
for his attainment of this wisdom, that he had to be taught again like a new
beginner in the very midst of his course. Yea, although he had now been long
accustomed to mourn over his sins, he was every day anew reduced to this
exercise, which teaches us, how long it is ere men recover themselves when once
they have fallen; and also how slow they are to obey until God, from time to
time, redouble their stripes, and increase them from day to day. Should any one
ask concerning David, whether he had become callous under the stripes which he
well knew were inflicted on him by the hand of God, the context furnishes the
answer; namely, that he was kept down and fettered by perplexing griefs, and
distracted with lingering torments, until he was well subdued and made meek,
which is the first sign of seeking a remedy. And this again teaches us, that it
is not without cause that the chastisements by which God seems to deal cruelly
with us are repeated, and his hand made heavy against us, until our fierce
pride, which we know to be un-tameable, unless subdued with the heaviest
stripes, is humbled.
Psalm
32:5-7
5. I have acknowledged my sin
unto thee, and mine iniquity have I not hid. I said, I will confess against
myself to Jehovah my wickedness; and thou didst remit the
guilt
fa626 of my sin. Selah. 6. Therefore
shall every one that is meek pray unto thee in the time of finding thee; so that
in a flood of many waters,
fa627 they shall not come nigh unto him.
7. Thou art my hiding-place; thou shalt preserve me from trouble; thou
shalt compass me about with songs of deliverance.
Selah.
5.
I have acknowledged my sin unto thee.
The prophet now describes the issue of his misery, in order to show to all
the ready way of obtaining the happiness of which he makes mention. When his
feeling of divine wrath sorely vexed and tormented him, his only relief was
unfeignedly to condemn himself before God, and humbly to flee to him to crave
his forgiveness. He does not say, however, that his sins merely came to his
remembrance, for so also did the sins of Cain and Judas, although to no profit;
because, when the consciences of the wicked are troubled with their sins, they
cease not to torment themselves, and to fret against God:yea, although he forces
them unwillingly to his bar, they still eagerly desire to hide themselves. But
here there is described a very different method of acknowledging sin; namely,
when the sinner willingly betakes himself to God, building his hope of salvation
not on stubbornness or hypocrisy, but on supplication for pardon. This voluntary
confession is always conjoined with faith; for otherwise the sinner will
continually seek lurking-places where he may hide himself from God. David's
words clearly show that he came unfeignedly and cordially into the presence of
God, that he might conceal nothing. When he tells us that
he acknowledged his
sin, and
did not hide
it, the latter clause is added,
according to the Hebrew idiom, for the sake of amplification. There is no doubt,
therefore, that David, when he appeared before God, poured out all his heart.
Hypocrites, we know, that they may extenuate their evil doings, either disguise
or misrepresent them; in short, they never make an honest confession of them,
with an ingenuous and open mouth. But David denies that he was chargeable with
this baseness. Without any dissimulation he made known to God whatever grieved
him; and this he confirms by the words, I have said. While the
wicked are dragged by force, just as a judge compels offenders to come to trial,
he assures us that he came deliberately and with full purpose of mind; for the
term, said, just signifies that he deliberated with himself. It therefore
follows, that he promised and assured himself of pardon through the mercy of
God, in order that terror might not prevent him from making a free and an
ingenuous confession of his sins.
The phrase,
upon myself, or against myself, intimates that David put away from
him all the excuses and pretences by which men are accustomed to unburden
themselves, transferring their fault, or tracing it to other people. David,
therefore, determined to submit himself entirely to God's judgment, and to make
known his own guilt, that being self-condemned, he might as a suppliant obtain
pardon.
And thou didst remit
the guilt of my sin. This clause is set in
opposition to the grievous and direful agitations by which he says he was
harassed before he approached by faith the grace of God. But the words also
teach, that as often as the sinner presents himself at the throne of mercy, with
ingenuous confession, he will find reconciliation with God awaiting him. In
other words, the Psalmist means that God was not only willing to pardon him, but
that his example afforded a general lesson that those in distress should not
doubt of God's favor towards them, so soon as they should betake themselves to
him with a sincere and willing mind. Should any one infer from this, that
repentance and confession are the cause of obtaining grace, the answer is easy;
namely, that David is not speaking here of the cause but of the manner in which
the sinner becomes reconciled to God. Confession, no doubt, intervenes, but we
must go beyond this, and consider that it is faith which, by opening our hearts
and tongues, really obtains our pardon. It is not admitted that every thing
which is necessarily connected with pardon is to be reckoned amongst its causes.
Or, to speak more simply, David obtained pardon by his confession, not because
he merited it by the mere act of confessing, but because, under the guidance of
faith, he humbly implored it from his judge. Moreover, as the same method of
confession ought to be in use among us at this day, which was formerly employed
by the fathers under the law, this sufficiently refutes that tyrannical decree
of the Pope, by which he turns us away from God, and sends us to his priests to
obtain pardon.
6.
Therefore shall every one
that is meek pray unto thee. Here the
Psalmist expressly states that whatever he has hitherto set forth in his own
person belongs in common to all the children of God. And this is to be carefully
observed, because, from our native unbelief, the greater part of us are slow and
reluctant to appropriate the grace of God. We may also learn from this, that
David obtained forgiveness, not by the mere act of confession, as some speak,
but by faith and prayer. Here he directs believers to the same means of
obtaining it, bidding them betake themselves to prayer, which is the true
sacrifice of faith. Farther, we are taught, that in David God gave an example of
his mercy, which may not only extend to us all, but may also show us how
reconciliation is to be sought. The words, every one, serve for the
confirmation of every godly person; but the Psalmist at the same time shows,
that no one can obtain the hope of salvation but by prostrating himself as a
suppliant before God, because all without exception stand in need of his
mercy.
The expression,
The time of
finding, which immediately follows, some
think, refers to the ordinary and accustomed hours of prayer; but others more
accurately, in my opinion, compare it
fa628 with that place in Isaiah,
(<235506>Isaiah
55:6,) where it is said, "Seek ye the Lord while he may be found, call ye upon
him while he is near." It is never out of season, indeed, to seek God, for every
moment we need his grace, and he is always willing to meet us. But as
slothfulness or dullness hinders us from seeking him, David here particularly
intimates the critical seasons when believers are stimulated by a sense of their
own need to have recourse to God. The Papists have abused this place to warrant
their doctrine, that we ought to have advocates in heaven to pray for
us;
fa629 but the attempt to found an argument in
support of such a doctrine from this passage is so grossly absurd that it is
unworthy of refutation. We may see from it, however, either how wickedly they
have corrupted the whole Scripture, or with what gross ignorance they blunder in
the plainest matters.
In the
flood of many waters. This expression
agrees with that prophecy of Joel,
"Whosoever shall call on
the name of the Lord, shall be delivered."
(<290232>Joel
2:32)
The meaning is, that although the deep whirlpools of
death may compass us round on every side, we ought not to fear that they shall
swallow us up; but rather believe that we shall be safe and unhurt, if we only
betake ourselves to the mercy of God. We are thus emphatically taught that the
godly shall have certain salvation even in death, provided they betake
themselves to the sanctuary of God's grace. Under the term flood are
denoted all those dangers from which there appears no means of
escape.
At last the Psalmist gives himself to
thanksgiving, and although he uses but few words to celebrate the divine favor,
there is, notwithstanding, much force in his brevity. In the first place, he
denies that there is any other haven of safety but in God himself. Secondly, he
assures himself that God will be his faithful keeper hereafter; for I willingly
retain the future tense of the verb, though some, without any reason, translate
it into the past. He is not, however, to be understood as meaning that he
conceived himself safe from future tribulations, but he sets God's guardianship
over against them. Lastly, whatever adversity may befall him, he is persuaded
that God will be his deliverer. By the word compass, he means manifold
and various kinds of deliverance; as if he had said, that he should be under
obligation to God in innumerable ways, and that he should, on every side, have
most abundant matter for praising him. We may observe in the meantime, how he
offers his service of gratitude to God, according to his usual method, putting
songs of deliverance instead of
help.
Psalm
32:8-11
8. I will instruct thee, and
teach thee in the way that thou mayest walk: I will counsel thee with mine
eye.
fa630 9. Be not like the horse or
mule, which have no understanding: thou shalt bind his jaw with bit and bridle,
lest they kick against [or become obstreperous against or obstinately disobey]
thee.
fa631 10. Many sorrows shall be to the
wicked: but the man who hopeth in Jehovah, mercy shall surround him. 11.
Be glad in Jehovah, and rejoice, ye righteous: sing all ye that are upright in
heart.
8.
I will instruct thee, and
teach thee. That his exhortation may
have the greater force, the divine speaker directs his discourse to every man
individually; for the doctrine which is spoken penetrates the mind more readily,
when every man applies it particularly to himself. When the way of salvation is
here shown to the children of God, the greatest care must be taken that no man
depart from it in the slightest degree. We may also learn from this place, that
we are reconciled to God upon condition that every man endeavor to make his
brethren partakers of the same benefit. David, the more strongly to mark his
care about them, describes it by the sight of the
eye.
fa632 By the way it should be
observed, that those who are solicitous about our welfare are appointed by the
Lord as guides of our way, from which it appears how great is the paternal
solicitude which he has about us.
9.
Be not like the horse or
mule. David now briefly explains the
amount of the counsel which he formerly said he would give. He exhorts all to
learn with quietness, to lay aside stubbornness, and to put on the spirit of
meekness. There is much wisdom, too, in the advice which he gives to the godly
to correct their hardihood; for if we were as attentive to God's corrections as
we ought, every one would eagerly hasten to seek his favor. Whence is so much
slowness to be found in all, but that we are either stupid or refractory? By
likening the refractory, therefore, to brute beasts, David puts them to shame,
and at the same time declares that it will avail them nothing to "kick against
the pricks." Men, says he, know how to tame the fierceness of horses by bridles
and bits; what then do they think God will do when he finds them
intractable?
10.
Many sorrows shall be to the
wicked. Without a figure he here
declares what will be the condition of the rebellious and
stiff-necked.
fa633 He mentioned before that God wanted not
bridles and bits with which to restrain their frowardness; and now he adds, that
there would be no end or measure of their miseries until they were utterly
consumed. Although God, therefore, may spare us for a time, yet let this
denunciation fill us with fear, and preserve us from hardening ourselves,
because we are as yet unpunished; nor let our prosperity, which is cursed by
God, so deceive us as to close our minds against reflecting on those unseen
sorrows which he threatens against all the wicked. And as the Psalmist has told
us, on the one hand, that God is armed with innumerable plagues against the
wicked, so he adds, on the other hand, that he is furnished with infinite
goodness, with which he can succor all who are his. The sum is, that there is no
other remedy for our afflictions but to humble ourselves under God's hand, and
to found our salvation on his mercy alone; and that those who rely on God shall
be blessed in all respects, because, on whatever side Satan may assault them,
there will the Lord oppose him, and shield them with his protecting
power.
11.
Be glad in
Jehovah. After teaching how ready and
accessible true happiness is to all the godly, David, with much reason, exhorts
them to gladness. He commands them to rejoice in the Lord, as if he had said,
There is nothing to prevent them from assuring themselves of God's favor, seeing
he so liberally and so kindly offers to be reconciled to them. In the meantime,
we may observe that this is the incomparable fruit of faith which Paul likewise
commends, namely, when the consciences of the godly being quiet and cheerful,
enjoy peace and spiritual joy. Wherever faith is lively, this holy rejoicing
will follow. But since the world's own impiety prevents it from participating in
this joy, David, therefore, addresses the righteous alone, whom he denominates
the upright in
heart, to teach us that the external
appearance of righteousness which pleases men is of no avail in the sight of
God. But how does he call those righteous, whose whole happiness consists in the
free mercy of God not imputing their sins to them? I answer, that none others
are received into favor but those who are dissatisfied with themselves for their
sins, and repent with their whole heart; not that this repentance merits pardon,
but because faith can never be separated from the spirit of regeneration. When
they have begun to devote themselves to God, he accepts the upright disposition
of their hearts equally as if it were pure and perfect; for faith not only
reconciles a man to God, but also sanctifies whatever is imperfect in him, so
that by the free grace of God, he becomes righteous who could never have
obtained so great a blessing by any merit of his own.
PSALM
33.
David, or whoever was the author of this psalm, in
order to excite believers to praise God, founds his argument upon the general
providence of God, by which he sustains, protects, and governs the whole world.
Afterwards he celebrates God's paternal kindness towards his chosen people,
showing at the same time how necessary it is that the godly should be cherished
by his special care.
Psalm
33:1-4
1. Rejoice in Jehovah, ye
righteous; praise is comely
fa634 for the upright. 2. Praise
Jehovah upon the harp; sing unto him upon the viol, and an instrument of ten
strings. 3. Sing a new song to him; sing loudly with joyfulness:
4. For the word of Jehovah is right; and all his works are in
faithfulness.
fa635
1.
Rejoice in Jehovah, ye
righteous. Here the inspired writer addresses
believers or the righteous by name, because they alone are capable of
proclaiming the glory of God. Unbelievers, who have never tasted his goodness,
cannot praise him from the heart, and God has no pleasure in his name being
pronounced by their unholy tongues. But the context shows more distinctly why
this exhortation is suitable for believers only. Many, accordingly, expound the
latter clause, Praise is comely
for the upright, as meaning, that if the
ungodly or hypocrites attempt this exercise, it will turn to the reproach and
dishonor of God rather than to his praise; nay, more, that they only profane his
holy name. It is, no doubt, very true, as I have already remarked, that God
creates for himself a church in the world by gracious adoption, for the express
purpose, that his name may be duly praised by witnesses suitable for such a
work. But the real meaning of the clause,
Praise is comely for the
upright, is, that there is no exercise
in which they can be better employed. And, assuredly, since God by his daily
benefits furnishes them with such matter for celebrating his glory, and since
his boundless goodness, as we have elsewhere seen, is laid up as a peculiar
treasure for them, it were disgraceful and utterly unreasonable for them to be
silent in the praises of God. The amount of the matter is, that the principal
exercise in which it becomes the righteous to be employed is to publish among
men the righteousness, goodness, and power of God, the knowledge of which is
implanted in their minds. Following other interpreters, I have translated the
clause, Praise is
comely, but the word rendered comely
may also be properly rendered desirable, if we view it as derived
from the Hebrew word
hwa,
avah, which signifies to wish or desire. And certainly,
when God allures believers so sweetly, it is proper that they employ themselves
in celebrating his praises with their whole hearts. It is also to be observed,
that when the prophet, after having in the first clause used the appellation,
the righteous, immediately adds the words, the upright, which
comprehend the inward integrity of the heart, he defines what true righteousness
is, or in what it consists.
2.
Praise Jehovah upon the
harp. It is evident that the Psalmist
here expresses the vehement and ardent affection which the faithful ought to
have in praising God, when he enjoins musical instruments to be employed for
this purpose. He would have nothing omitted by believers which tends to animate
the minds and feelings of men in singing God's praises. The name of God, no
doubt, can, properly speaking, be celebrated only by the articulate voice; but
it is not without reason that David adds to this those aids by which believers
were wont to stimulate themselves the more to this exercise; especially
considering that he was speaking to God's ancient people. There is a
distinction, however, to be observed here, that we may not indiscriminately
consider as applicable to ourselves, every thing which was formerly enjoined
upon the Jews. I have no doubt that playing upon cymbals, touching the harp and
the viol, and all that kind of music, which is so frequently mentioned in the
Psalms, was a part of the education; that is to say, the puerile instruction of
the law:I speak of the stated service of the temple. For even now, if believers
choose to cheer themselves with musical instruments, they should, I think, make
it their object not to dissever their cheerfulness from the praises of God. But
when they frequent their sacred assemblies, musical instruments in celebrating
the praises of God would be no more suitable than the burning of incense, the
lighting up of lamps, and the restoration of the other shadows of the law. The
Papists, therefore, have foolishly borrowed this, as well as many other things,
from the Jews. Men who are fond of outward pomp may delight in that noise; but
the simplicity which God recommends to us by the apostle is far more pleasing to
him. Paul allows us to bless God in the public assembly of the saints only in a
known tongue,
(<461416>1
Corinthians 14:16.) The voice of man, although not understood by the generality,
assuredly excels all inanimate instruments of music; and yet we see what St Paul
determines concerning speaking in an unknown
tongue.
fa636 What shall we then say of chanting,
which fills the ears with nothing but an empty sound? Does any one object, that
music is very useful for awakening the minds of men and moving their hearts? I
own it; but we should always take care that no corruption creep in, which might
both defile the pure worship of God and involve men in superstition. Moreover,
since the Holy Spirit expressly warns us of this danger by the mouth of Paul, to
proceed beyond what we are there warranted by him is not only, I must say,
unadvised zeal, but wicked and perverse
obstinacy.
3.
Sing unto him a new
song. As the Psalmist afterwards treats
of the mighty works of God, and particularly concerning the preservation of the
Church, it is not wonderful that he exhorts the righteous to sing a new, that
is, a rare and choice song. The more closely and diligently that believers
consider the works of God, the more will they exert themselves in his praises.
It is no common song, therefore, which he exhorts them to sing, but a song
corresponding to the magnificence of the subject. This is also the meaning of
the second clause, in which he urges them to sing loudly. In this sense,
I understand the Hebrew word
bytyh,
heytib, although others refer it rather to the proper setting of the
notes.
4.
For the word of Jehovah is
right. As I have just remarked, the
Psalmist first sets forth God's general providence by which he governs the whole
world; and he tells us that he so exerts his power in the whole course of his
operations, that the most perfect equity and faithfulness shine forth
everywhere. Some will have the terms word and work to be
synonymous; but I think there is a distinction, and that word means the
same thing as counsel or ordinance, while work signifies
the effect or execution of his counsel. I grant that here the same subject is
repeated in different words, as is the case in other places; but a slight
variation will be found in such repetitions, that the same thing may he
expressed in various ways. The amount of what is stated is, that whatever God
appoints and commands is right; and whatever he brings to pass in actual
operation is faithful and true. Meanwhile, it ought to be observed, that the
term word is not to be understood of doctrine, but of the method by which
God governs the world.
Psalm
33:5-9
5. He loveth righteousness
and judgment: the earth is full of the goodness of Jehovah. 6. By the
word of Jehovah were the heavens established; and all the host of them by the
spirit
fa637 of his mouth. 7. He gathered
together the waters of the sea as into a heap; He hath laid up the deeps in
treasures. 8. Let all the earth fear Jehovah; let the inhabitants of the
world stand in awe of him: 9. For he spake, and it was; he commanded, and
it stood.
5.
He loveth righteousness and
judgment. This is a confirmation of the
preceding verse, and intimates to us that God of his own nature loves
righteousness and equity. It therefore follows, that froward affections cannot
hurry him, after the manner of men, to evil devices. At first sight, indeed,
this appears but a common commendation of God, and of small importance, because
all confess that he observes the most perfect rule of righteousness in all his
works. Why then, may some one say, has a new song just been spoken of, as if it
had been about some unusual matter? We answer, in the first place, because it is
too obvious how wickedly a great part of the world shut their eyes to God's
righteousness, while they either carelessly overlook innumerable proofs of his
providence, or imagine that they happen by chance. But there is often a worse
fault than this; namely, that if our wishes are not gratified, we instantly
murmur against God's righteousness; and although the maxim, "God doeth
all things righteously," is in every man's mouth, yet scarcely one in a hundred
firmly believes it in his heart, otherwise, as soon as this truth is pronounced,
"Thus it pleaseth God," every man would obediently submit himself to
God's will. Now, as men in adversity are with the utmost difficulty brought to
this point - to acknowledge that God is just, and as, in prosperity, they soon
fall from the acknowledgement of it, it is not to be wondered at that the
prophet, in order to persuade men that God is an upright governor, affirms that
he loveth righteousness. Whoever, therefore, has thoroughly embraced this
doctrine, let him know that he has profited
much.
Others explain this to mean, that God
loveth righteousness in men. This, indeed, is true; but it is far from the sense
of the text, because the design of the Holy Spirit here is to maintain the glory
of God in opposition to the poison of ungodliness, which is deeply seated in
many hearts. In the second clause of the verse, the Psalmist commends another
part of God's excellence, namely, that
the earth is full of his
goodness. The righteousness of God ought
justly to incite us to praise him, but his goodness is a more powerful motive;
because, the more experience which any man has of his beneficence and mercy, the
more strongly is he influenced to worship him. Farther, the discourse is still
concerning all the benefits of God which he scatters over the whole human race.
These, the inspired writer declares, meet us wherever we turn our
eyes.
6.
By the word of
Jehovah. That he may stir us up to think
more closely of God's works, he brings before us the creation of the world
itself; for until God be acknowledged as the Creator and Framer of the world,
who will believe that he attends to the affairs of men, and that the state of
the world is controlled by his wisdom and power? But the creation of the world
leads us by direct consequence to the providence of God. Not that all men reason
so justly, or are endued with so sound a judgment, as to conclude that the world
is at this day maintained by the same divine power which was once put forth in
creating it:on the contrary, the great majority imagine that he is an idle
spectator in heaven of whatever is transacted on earth. But no man truly
believes that the world was created by God unless he is also firmly persuaded
that it is maintained and preserved by him. Wisely and properly, therefore, does
the prophet carry us back to the very origin of the world, in order to fix in
our minds the certainty of God's providence in the continual order of nature. By
the figure synecdoche, he uses the term heavens for the whole fabric of
the world, because, as I have elsewhere remarked, the sight of the heavens more
than all the other parts of creation transports us with admiration. He therefore
immediately adds, And all the host of them, by which phraseology,
according to the usual method of Scripture, he means the stars and planets; for
if the heavens were destitute of this ornament, they would in a manner be empty.
In saying that the heavens were created by the word of God, he greatly
magnifies his power, because by his nod
alone,
fa638 without any other aid or means, and
without much time or labor,
fa639 he created so noble and magnificent a
work. But although the Psalmist sets
the word of
God and
the breath of his
mouth in opposition both to all external
means, and to every idea of painful labor on God's part, yet we may truly and
certainly infer from this passage, that the world was framed by God's Eternal
Word, his only begotten Son. Ancient interpreters have, with considerable
ingenuity, employed this passage as a proof of the eternal Deity of the Holy
Spirit against the Sabellians. But it appears from other places, particularly
from
<231104>Isaiah
11:4, that by the breath of the mouth is meant nothing else but
speech. For it is there said concerning Christ, "He shall smite
the earth with the rod of his mouth, and with the breath of his lips shall he
slay the wicked." As powerful and effective speech is there allegorically
denominated the rod of his mouth; so in like manner, for another purpose
it is denominated in the immediately succeeding clause the breath of his
mouth, to mark the difference that exists between God's speech and the empty
sounds which proceed from the mouths of men. In proving the Divinity of the Holy
Spirit, therefore, I durst not press this text against Sabellius. Let us account
it sufficient that God has formed the heavens by his Word in such a manner as to
prove the eternal Deity of Christ. Should any object that these divine persons
would not appear distinct if the terms Word and Breath are
synonymous; I answer, that the term breath is not employed here simply as
in other places, in which there is evidently a distinction made between the
Word and the Spirit; but the breath of his mouth is used
figuratively for the very utterance of speech; as if it had been said, As soon
as God uttered the breath of his mouth, or proclaimed in word what he wished to
be done, the heavens were instantly brought into existence, and were furnished,
too, with an inconceivable number and variety of stars. It is indeed true that
this similitude is borrowed from men; but the Scriptures often teach in other
places, that the world was created by that Eternal Word, who, being the only
begotten Son of God, appeared afterwards in
flesh.
7.
He gathered together the
waters of the sea as into a heap.
fa640 Here the Psalmist does not speak
of all that might have been said of every part of the world, but under one
department he comprehends all the rest. He celebrates, however, a signal and
remarkable miracle which we see in looking on the surface of the earth; namely,
that God gathers together the element of water, fluid and unstable as it is,
into a solid heap, and holds it so at his pleasure. Natural philosophers
confess, and experience openly proclaims, that the waters occupy a higher place
than the earth. How is it then that, as they are fluid and naturally disposed to
flow, they do not spread abroad and cover the earth, and how is it that the
earth, which is lower in position, remains dry? In this we certainly perceive
that God, who is ever attentive to the welfare of the human race, has inclosed
the waters within certain invisible barriers, and keeps them shut up to this
day; and the prophet elegantly declares that they stand still at God's
commandment, as if they were a heap of firm and solid matter. Nor is it without
design that the Holy Spirit, in various passages, adduces this proof of divine
power, as in
<240522>Jeremiah
5:22, and
<183808>Job
38:8.
In the second part of the verse, he seems
to repeat the same idea, but with amplification. God not only confines the
immense mass of waters in the seas, but also hides them, by a mysterious and
incomprehensible power, in the very bowels of the earth. Whoever will compare
the elements among themselves, will reckon it contrary to nature that the
bottomless depths, or the immeasurable gulfs of waters, whose native tendency is
rather to overwhelm the earth, should lie hid under it. That so many hollow
channels and gulfs, accordingly, should not swallow up the earth every moment,
affords another magnificent display of divine power; for although now and then
some cities and fields are engulfed, yet the body of the earth is preserved in
its place.
8.
Let all the earth fear
Jehovah. The Psalmist concludes that
there is just reason why the whole world should reverently submit itself to the
government of God, who gave it being, and who also preserves it.
To fear
Jehovah, and to stand in awe of him,
just means to do honor to, and to reverence his mighty power. It is a mark
of great insensibility not to bow at God's presence, from whom we have our
being, and upon whom our condition depends. The prophet alludes to both these
things, affirming that the world appeared as soon as God spake, and that it is
upheld in being by his commandment; for it would not have been enough for the
world to have been created in a moment, if it had not been supported in
existence by the power of God. He did not employ a great array of means in
creating the world, but to prove the inconceivable power of his word, he ordered
that so soon as he should as it were pronounce the word, the thing should be
done.
fa641 The word command, therefore,
confirms what I formerly said, that his speech was nothing else than a nod, or
wish, and that to speak implies the same thing as to command. It is
proper, however, to understand that in this nod, or command, the eternal wisdom
of God displayed itself.
Psalm
33:10-12
10. Jehovah scattereth the
counsel of the nations, and bringeth to nought the imaginations of the
people.
fa642 11. The counsel of Jehovah shall
stand for ever, and the thoughts of his heart from age to
age.
fa643 12. Blessed are the people whose
God is Jehovah, the people whom he hath chosen for his
inheritance.
10.
Jehovah scattereth the counsel of the
nations. After briefly touching upon the
creation of the world, the Psalmist returns to his former subject, namely, to
show that the events which daily come to pass are undoubted proofs of the
providence of God. And lest any man should be surprised, that he should exhibit
God as an adversary to men, scattering their counsels rather than establishing
and bringing them to a happy issue, he selects an instance which had the
greatest power to comfort the saints. We know how many things men continually
venture upon and contrive against all law and justice, and how they endeavor by
their devices to turn the world upside down, that they may tyrannically acquire
power to trample upon the good and simple. What creatures then would be more
miserable than we, if men, possessed of such a variety of wicked affections,
were permitted to act with unlicensed wantonness towards us? But when God
declares from heaven to us, that it is his work to dash in pieces their devices,
and to bring their determinations to nought, there is no reason why we should
not keep ourselves quiet, even when they bestir themselves most tumultuously.
God is, therefore, said to overthrow the counsels of men, not because he
professedly delights in frustrating them, but to check their wantonness; for
they would immediately throw all things into confusion were they to succeed
according to their wishes:yea, as in outraging equity, and vexing the upright
and innocent, they fail not to fight against God himself, it is very necessary
to consider that God's power and protection is set in opposition to their fury.
And as the great majority of men, despising all modesty, rush headlong into
indiscriminate licentiousness, the prophet speaks not only of individual men,
but of whole nations; in other words, he affirms, that however men may conspire
among themselves, and determine to attempt this or that with great hosts, yet
shall their purposes be brought to nought, because it is as easy for God to
scatter multitudes as to restrain a few. But although it is God's design in this
place to fortify us with good hope against the boldness of the wicked, he warns
us, at the same time, to undertake nothing without his command and
guidance.
11.
The counsel of
Jehovah. The prophet extols the infinite
power of God in such a manner as that he may build up our faith in its
greatness; for he does not here commend a counsel of God which is hidden in
heaven, and which he would have us to honor and revere at a distance. But as the
Lord everywhere in Scripture testifies that he loveth righteousness and truth;
that he cares for the righteous and good; and that he is ever inclined to succor
his servants when they are wrongfully oppressed; — the prophet means, that
all this shall remain sure and steadfast. Thus he declares for what end God
bringeth to nought the counsels of the nations, namely, because without
discrimination they run headlong into the violation of all
order.
In the first place, then, let us learn to
look at God's counsel in the glass of his word; and when we have satisfied
ourselves that he has promised nothing but what he has determined to perform,
let us immediately call to mind the steadfastness of which the prophet here
speaks. And as many, or rather whole, nations sometimes endeavor to impede its
course by innumerable hinderances, let us also remember the preceding
declaration, that when men have imagined many devices, it is in God's power, and
often his pleasure, to bring them to nought. The Holy Spirit unquestionably
intended to have our faith exercised in this practical knowledge; otherwise what
he here says of the counsel of God would be but cold and fruitless. But when we
shall have once persuaded ourselves of this, that God will defend his servants
who call upon his name, and rid them of all dangers; whatever mischief the
wicked may practice against them, their endeavors and attempts shall in nowise
terrify us, because, so soon as God sets himself in opposition to their
machinations, no craft on their part will be able to defeat his
counsel.
12.
Blessed are the people whose God
is Jehovah. This verse excellently
agrees with the preceding, because it would profit us little to observe what is
said of the stability of God's counsel if that counsel referred not to us. The
prophet, therefore, in proclaiming that they are blessed whom God receives into
his protection, reminds us that the counsel which he had just mentioned is not a
secret which remains always hidden in God, but is displayed in the existence and
protection of the Church, and may there be beheld. Thus we see, that it is not
those who coldly speculate about the power of God, but those alone who apply it
to their own present benefit, who rightly acknowledge God as the Governor of the
world. Moreover, when the Psalmist places all our blessedness in this, that
Jehovah is our God, in touching upon the fountain of divine love towards
us, he comprehends, in one word, whatever is wont to be desired to make life
happy. For when God condescends to undertake the care of our salvation, to
cherish us under his wings, to provide for our necessities, to aid us in all our
dangers, all this depends on our adoption by him. But lest it should be thought
that men obtain so great a good by their own efforts and industry, David teaches
us expressly that it proceeds from the fountain of God's gracious electing love
that we are accounted the people of God. It is indeed true, that, in the person
of Adam, men were created at first for the very purpose that they should be the
sons of God; but the estrangement which followed upon sin deprived us of that
great blessing. Until God, therefore, freely adopt us, we are all by nature
wretched, and we have no other entrance to or means of attaining happiness but
this, that God, of his own good pleasure, should choose us who are altogether
unworthy. It appears, accordingly, how foolishly they corrupt this passage, who
transfer to men what the prophet here ascribes to God, as if men would choose
God for their inheritance. I own, indeed, that it is by faith that we
distinguish the true God from idols; but this principle is always to be held
fast, that we have no interest in him at all unless he prevent us by his
grace.
Psalm
33:13-17
13. Jehovah looked down
from heaven; he beheld the children of Adam. 14. From the dwelling-place
of his throne he looked on all the inhabitants of the earth. 15. He who
fashioned their hearts altogether,
fa644 who understandeth all their works.
16. A king is not saved for the multitude of his host, nor a giant
delivered for the greatness of his strength. 17. A horse is a deceitful
thing for safety,
fa645 and will not deliver by the greatness
of his strength.
13.
Jehovah looked down from
heaven. The Psalmist still proceeds with the
same doctrine, namely, that human affairs are not tossed hither and thither
fortuitously, but that God secretly guides and directs all that we see taking
place. Now he here commends God's inspection of all things, that we on our part
may learn to behold, and to contemplate with the eye of faith, his invisible
providence. There are, no doubt, evident proofs of it continually before our
eyes; but the great majority of men, notwithstanding, see nothing of them, and,
in their blindness, imagine that all things are under the conduct of a blind
fortune. Nay, the more plenteously and abundantly that he sheds his goodness
upon us, the less do we raise our thoughts to him, but preposterously settle
them down immovably on the external circumstances which surround us. The prophet
here rebukes this base conduct, because no greater affront can be offered to God
than to shut him up in heaven in a state of idleness. This is the same as if he
were to lie buried in a grave. What kind of life would God's life be, if he
neither saw nor took care of any thing? Under the term throne, too, the
sacred writer shows, from what is implied in it, what an absurd infatuation it
is to divest God of thought and understanding. He gives us to understand by this
word, that heaven is not a palace in which God remains idle and indulges in
pleasures, as the Epicureans dream, but a royal court, from which he exercises
his government over all parts of the world. If he has erected his throne,
therefore, in the sanctuary of heaven, in order to govern the universe, it
follows that he in no wise neglects the affairs of earth, but governs them with
the highest reason and wisdom.
15.
He who fashioned their hearts
altogether. It appears that this is
added for the express purpose of assuredly persuading believers, that, however
the wicked might craftily, deceitfully, and by secret stratagems, attempt to
withdraw themselves from God's sight, and hide themselves in caverns, yet his
eyes would penetrate into their dark hiding-places. And the Psalmist argues from
the very creation that God cannot but bring men's devices and doings into
reckoning and judgment; because, though each man has intricate recesses
concealed in his bosom, so that there is a wonderful diversity of different
minds in this respect, and this great variety creates a most confounding
obscurity; yet the eyes of God cannot be dazzled and darkened, so that he may
not be a competent judge and take cognisance of his own work. By the adverb
together, therefore, he does not mean that the hearts of men were formed
at the same moment of time; but that all of them were fashioned even to one, and
without a single exception; so that those manifest great folly who attempt to
hide, or to withdraw the knowledge of their hearts from him who framed them. The
discourse may also be understood as meaning, that men cannot, by the erring
devices of their own thoughts, diminish the authority of God over them, so that
he may not govern by his secret providence the events which seem to them to
happen by chance. We see, indeed, he in forming their vain hopes, they despoil
God of his power, and transfer it to the creatures, at one time to this object,
and at another time to that, conceiving that they have no need of his aid, so
long as they are furnished with outward means and helps to protect
themselves.
It therefore follows,
A king is not saved for the
multitude of his host, etc. By this the
inspired writer means to teach us, that the safety of men's lives depends not
upon their own strength, but upon the favor of God. He names particularly
kings and giants rather than others; because, as they are not of
the common class of men, but of a higher condition, they appear to themselves to
be beyond the reach of all danger from darts, and if any adversity befall them,
they promise themselves an easy deliverance from it. In short, intoxicated with
a presumptuous confidence of their own strength, they scarcely think themselves
mortal. They are still more hardened in this pride by the foolish admiration of
the common people, who stand amazed at the greatness of their power. If,
therefore, neither a king is saved by his troops, nor a giant by his strength,
when they are exposed to danger, in vain do mankind neglect the providence of
God, and look around them for human help. From this it follows, that the
condition, both of the strong and the weak, is miserable, until they learn to
rely on the protection of God.
17.
A horse is a deceitful thing
for safety. In this verse, the Psalmist,
by the figure synecdoche under the name of horse, is to be understood as
meaning any kind of help. The sense is, that in general those who conceive that
their life is well protected by earthly means, are commonly disappointed at the
very crisis of danger, and are miserably beguiled to their utter undoing, so
that God therein clearly shows them their folly. It is true, that kings are not
armed with the sword in vain, nor is the use of horses superfluous, nor are the
treasures and resources which God furnishes to defend men's lives unnecessary,
provided a right method of employing them be observed. But as the greater part
of men the more they are surrounded with human defences, withdraw themselves the
farther from God, and by a false imagination persuade themselves that they are
in a haven safe from all disturbance, God acts most justly in disappointing this
madness. This is the reason why his gifts often pass away without effect,
because the world, by separating them from the giver, is also justly deprived of
his blessing.
Psalm
33:18-19
18. Behold, the eye of
Jehovah is upon them that fear him, upon those who hope in his mercy; 19.
To deliver their souls from death, and to give them life in the time of
famine.
18.
Behold, the eye of Jehovah is
upon them that fear him. Having shown
that what men account their best defences often profit them nothing, or rather
are utterly worthless, when men depend upon them; the Psalmist now shows, on the
other hand, that believers, although they are neither men of great power nor of
great wealth, are nevertheless sufficiently protected by God's favor alone, and
shall be safe for ever. His meaning is not a little illustrated by this
comparison, that kings and giants derive no aid from their invincible strength,
while God supports the life of the saints in famine and dearth, as really as if
he were to restore life to them when dead. We consequently understand better why
the prophet lays low all the strength of the world; not, surely, that men should
lie prostrate, or be so heart-broken as to pine away in despair; but that,
laying aside their pride, they should fix their thoughts on God alone, and
persuade themselves that their life depends on his protection. Moreover, in
saying that the eye of God is bent upon them that fear him to save them, he
expresses more than if he had said that his hand and power were sufficient to
preserve them. A doubt might creep into the minds of the weak, whether God would
extend this protection to every individual; but when the Psalmist introduces him
as keeping watch and ward, as it were, over the safety of the faithful, there is
no reason why any one of them should tremble, or hesitate with himself a moment
longer, since it is certain that God is present with him to assist him, provided
he remain quietly under his providence. From this, also, it appears still more
clearly how truly he had said a little before, that
the people are blessed whose God
is Jehovah, because, without him, all
the strength and riches which we may possess will be vain, deceitful, and
perishing; whereas, with a single look he can defend his people, supply their
wants, feed them in a time of famine, and preserve them alive when they are
appointed to death. The whole human race, no doubt, are maintained by the
providence of God; but we know that his fatherly care is specially vouchsafed to
none but his own children, that they may feel that their necessities are truly
regarded by him.
Again, when it is affirmed,
that God, in times of famine and dearth, has remedies in readiness to preserve
the lives of the godly, we are taught that the faithful only pay due honor to
his providence when they allow not their hearts to despond in the extremest
indigence; but, on the contrary, raise their hopes even from the grave. God
often suffers his servants to be hungry for a time that he may afterwards
satiate them, and he overspreads them with the darkness of death that he may
afterwards restore them to the light of life. Yea, we only begin to place our
trust firmly in him when death comes to present itself before our eyes; for,
until we have known by experience the vanity of the aids of the world, our
affections continue entangled in them, and wedded to them. The Psalmist
characterises believers by two marks, which comprehend the whole perfection of
our life. The first is, that we reverently serve the Lord; and the second, that
we depend upon his grace. Hypocrites may loudly boast of their faith, but they
have never tasted even a little of the divine goodness, so as to be induced to
look to him for what they need. On the contrary, when the faithful give
themselves with their whole heart to the service and fear of God, this affection
springs from faith; or rather the principal part of right worship, which the
faithful render to God, consists in this, that they depend upon his
mercy.
Psalm
33:20-22
20. Our soul waiteth upon
Jehovah, he is our help and our shield. 21. Surely our heart shall
rejoice in him, because
fa646 we will trust in his holy name.
22. Let thy mercy be upon us, O Jehovah: according as we have trusted in
thee.
20.
Our soul waiteth upon
Jehovah. What the Psalmist has hitherto
spoken concerning God's providence, and particularly concerning that faithful
guardianship by which he protects his people, he has spoken not so much from
himself as from the mouth of the Holy Spirit. He now, therefore, in the name of
the whole Church, raises his song to declare that there is nothing better than
to commit our welfare to God. Thus we see that the fruit of the preceding
doctrine is set forth to all true believers, that they may unhesitatingly cast
themselves with confidence, and with a cheerful heart, upon the paternal care of
God. In this matter, the Psalmist declares nothing concerning himself in
particular, but unites the whole of the godly with him in the acknowledgement of
the same faith. There is an emphasis in the word soul which should be
attended to; for, although this is a common mode of speech among the Hebrews,
yet it expresses earnest affection; as if believers should say, We sincerely
rely upon God with our whole heart, accounting him our shield and
help.
21.
Surely our heart shall
rejoice in him. As the particle
yk,
ki, which is twice employed in this verse, has various meanings in Hebrew,
it may be understood in a twofold sense here. If we expound it affirmatively in
both clauses, the sense will be, that believers glory both in their joy and in
their hope. Nor do I think it improper that these two should be referred to
distinctly in the same context thus:Surely God shall always be our joy; surely
his holy name shall be like an impregnable fortress for our refuge. Whence is it
that believers continue perseveringly to call upon God, but because, satisfied
with his favor, they have always, amidst their sorrows and griefs, this comfort,
which is sufficient to maintain their cheerfulness? Justly, therefore, do
believers affirm, in the first place, that their heart rejoices in the Lord;
because, freed from wandering after the fascinations of the world, they neither
waver nor hesitate at every change of fortune, but place the whole felicity of
their life in enjoying the free and paternal favor of God. They afterwards add,
in the second place, that they
trust in his holy name. If any one,
however, choose to understand the particle
yk,
ki, as meaning because, assigning a cause or reason, the sense will
be no less properly and elegantly expressed in this way:Because our hope is
fixed on God, he will be equally ready on his part to minister to us continual
matter of joy. And experience undoubtedly proves, that when men are overwhelmed
with sorrow, and pine away with care, grief, and anxiety, it is that they may
receive the recompense of their folly; seeing that there is nothing to which
they are led with more difficulty, than to set their hopes on God alone, and not
to exult in their own deceitful imaginations, with which they please
themselves.
22.
Let thy mercy be on us, O
Jehovah! At length the psalm concludes
with a prayer, which the sacred writer offers in the name of all the godly, that
God would make them feel from the effect that they have not relied on the divine
goodness in vain. In the meantime, the Spirit, by dictating to us this rule of
prayer by the mouth of the prophet, teaches us, that the gate of divine grace is
opened for us when salvation is neither sought nor hoped for from any other
quarter. This passage gives us another very sweet consolation, namely, that if
our hope faint not in the midst of our course, we have no reason to fear that
God will fail to continue his mercy towards us, without intermission, to the end
of it.
PSALM
34.
A Psalm of David, when he
changed his countenance before Abimelech, who banished him from his presence,
and he departed from him.
David gives thanks to God for a signal deliverance,
and takes occasion from it to celebrate his perpetual grace towards all the
saints, and to exhort them both to trust in him, and to the study of godliness;
affirming, that the only way to pass through life happily, is to walk holily and
harmlessly in the world, in the service and fear of God. It is obvious from the
title what particular instance of God's favor he here celebrates. When he was
driven to King Achish, as recorded in
<092702>1
Samuel 27:2,
fa647 whom, with the exception of Saul, he
accounted the deadliest of all his enemies, it was not probable that he would
ever be able to make his escape from him. The only means, therefore, he had of
saving his life was to feign himself mad by frothing at the mouth, looking
fiercely, and disfiguring his countenance. Nor is this to be wondered at; for
Achish, being disappointed of the confident hope of victory which he had, and
attributing to David alone both the loss which he had sustained and the dishonor
which he had received, burned with implacable hatred against him. In allowing
him to escape, therefore, contrary to his own expectation, and the expectation
of all other men, David acknowledges that there had been exhibited a memorable
instance of God's favor towards him, which may be serviceable for the general
instruction of the whole Church. Instead of
Achish,
fa648 Abimelech is here employed; and it is
probable that the latter name had been the common designation of the monarchs of
the Philistines, as Pharaoh was the common name of the monarchs of Egypt, and
Caesar that of the Roman Emperors, which was borrowed from the name of Julius
Caesar, who had first seized the imperial power among the Romans. We know that
many ages before David was born, the kings who reigned in Gerar in the time of
Abraham were called Abimelech. It is not, therefore, to be wondered at, that
this name should be handed down from age to age among their posterity, and
become the common name of all the kings of Palestine. The Hebrew word
µ[f,
taäm, which I have translated countenance, signifies also
tasting, understanding,
fa649 and therefore might be
pertinently interpreted in this manner, that he appeared foolish and without
taste. The verb from which it is derived properly signifies to taste, and
therefore is often transferred to reason, understanding, and all the senses.
Accordingly, David having feigned himself mad, the term understanding is
very appropriate. Now, although he escaped by this subtle device, he doubts not
that he was delivered by the hand of God; nor does he ascribe the praise of his
safety to the pretense of madness, but rather acknowledges that the cruelty of
his enemy had been softened by the secret influence of God, so that he who
formerly burned with rage against him had been pacified by an artifice.
Certainly it was not to be expected that Achish would have driven away in
contempt from him so brave a man, whom he had found a dangerous enemy to his
whole kingdom, and from whom he had suffered such severe losses. This gives rise
to the question, Whether David feigned himself mad under the guidance of the
Holy Spirit? For by his appearing to connect together these two things, - the
pretense of madness and the happy result of this pretense, it might be inferred
that the same Spirit by whom this psalm was dictated suggested this
stratagem
fa650 to the mind of David, and directed him
in deceiving King Achish. I answer, that although God sometimes delivers his
people, while at the same time they err in choosing the means, or even fall into
sin in adopting them, yet there is nothing inconsistent in this. The
deliverance, therefore, was the work of God, but the intermediate sin, which is
on no account to be excused, ought to be ascribed to David. In this way Jacob
obtained the blessing by the favor and good pleasure of God; and yet the
subtlety of the mother, with which the obtaining of it was mixed up, was, we
know, sinful on her part. It may then sometimes happen that the event shall be
brought to pass by the Spirit of God, and yet the saints whom he may employ as
instruments shall swerve from the path of duty. It would therefore be a
superfluous task to endeavor to exculpate David, who is rather to be blamed,
because, by not committing his life entirely to God, he exposed himself and the
grace of the Spirit, by whom he was governed, to the derision of the ungodly. I
would not positively assert it, but there appears in this deception some token
of infirmity. If it should be said that David here magnifies the grace of God,
because by changing his countenance and his speech he escaped death, I again
reply, that David expressly mentions this circumstance, in order to render the
grace of God still more illustrious, in that his fault was not laid to his
charge.
Psalm
34:1-6
1. I will bless Jehovah at
all times: his praise shall always be in my mouth. 2. My soul shall make
her boast in Jehovah: the humble shall hear of it, and be glad. 3.
Magnify Jehovah with me, and let us exalt his name together. 4. I sought
Jehovah, and he answered me, and delivered me from all my fears. 5. They
shall look to him, and shall flow to him; and their faces shall not be ashamed.
6. This poor man cried, and Jehovah heard him, and delivered him from all
his
troubles.
1.
I will bless Jehovah at all times.
fa651 David here extols the greatness
of God, promising to keep in remembrance during his whole life the goodness
which he had bestowed upon him. God assists his people daily, that they may
continually employ themselves in praising him; yet it is certain that the
blessing which is said to be worthy of everlasting remembrance is distinguished
by this mark from other benefits which are ordinary and common. This, therefore,
is a rule which should be observed by the saints — they should often call
into remembrance whatever good has been bestowed upon them by God; but if at any
time he should display his power more illustriously in preserving them from some
danger, so much the more does it become them earnestly to testify their
gratitude. Now if by one benefit alone God lays us under obligation to himself
all our life, so that we may never lawfully cease from setting forth his
praises, how much more when he heaps upon us innumerable
benefits?
fa652 In order to distinguish the praise
which he had before said would be continually in his mouth from the empty sound
of the tongue, in which many hypocrites boast, he adds, in the beginning of the
second verse, that it would proceed from the
heart.
2.
My soul shall make her boast
in Jehovah. The term soul in this
place signifies not the vital spirit, but the seat of the affections; as if
David had said, I shall always have ground of boasting with my whole heart in
God alone, so that I shall never suffer myself to fall into forgetfulness of so
great a deliverance. In the second clause he specifies this as the fruit of his
thanksgiving, that the afflicted and miserable shall derive from it ground of
hope. The Hebrew word
µywn[,
anavim, which we have rendered humble, signifies not all the
afflicted
fa653 in general, but those who, being
humbled and subdued by afflictions, instead of breathing the spirit of pride,
are cast down, and ready to abase themselves to the very dust. These, he says,
shall be partakers of his joy; but not, as some have coldly explained it, simply
from a feeling of sympathy, but because, being persuaded that in the example of
David, God had given them a general testimony of his grace, their hearts would
recover from sorrow, and would be lifted up on high. Accordingly, he says that
this joy shall spring from hope, because, having received a pledge of their
deliverance, they shall cheerfully have recourse to
God.
3.
Magnify Jehovah with
me. The Psalmist shows still another
fruit which would be the result of his giving thanks to God, namely, that he
shall induce others by his example to the same exercise of devotion; nay more,
he calls upon all the godly to unite with him in this exercise, inviting and
exhorting them heartily and with one consent to extol the Lord. Let us therefore
learn, from the many instances in which God may have given helps to any of his
people, to abound in hope; and when each recites the personal benefits which he
has received, let all be animated unitedly and in a public manner to give praise
to God. We give thanks publicly to God, not only that men may be witnesses of
our gratitude, but also that they may follow our
example.
4.
I sought Jehovah, and he
answered me. The Psalmist here explains
more plainly and more fully what he had said concerning joy. In the first place,
he tells us that his prayers had been heard. This he applies to all the godly,
that, encouraged by a testimony so precious, they might stir themselves up to
prayer. What is implied in seeking God is evident from the following
clause. In some places it is to be understood in a different sense, namely, to
bend the mind in earnest application to the service of God, and to have all its
thoughts directed to him. Here it simply means to have recourse to him for help;
for it immediately follows that God answered him; and he is properly said to
answer prayer and supplication. By his fears the Psalmist means, taking
the effect for the cause, the dangers which sorely disquieted his mind; yet
doubtless he confesses that he had been terrified and agitated by fears. He did
not look upon his dangers with a calm and untroubled mind, as if he viewed them
at a distance and from some elevated position, but being grievously tormented
with innumerable cares, he might justly speak of his fears and terrors. Nay
more, by the use of the plural number, he shows that he had been greatly
terrified not only in one way, but that he had been distracted by a variety of
troubles. On the one hand, he saw a cruel death awaiting him; while on the
other, his mind may have been filled with fear, lest Achish should send him to
Saul for his gratification, as the ungodly are wont to make sport to themselves
of the children of God. And since he had already been detected and betrayed
once, he might well conclude, even if he should escape, that the hired assassins
of Saul would lay wait for him on all sides. The hatred too which Achish had
conceived against him, both for the death of Goliath and the destruction of his
own army, might give rise to many fears; especially considering that his enemy
might instantly wreak his vengeance upon him, and that he had good reason to
think that his cruelty was such as would not be appeased by subjecting him to
some mild form of death.
fa654 We ought to mark this particularly, in
order that, if at any time we are terrified because of the dangers which
surround us, we may not be prevented by our effeminacy from calling upon God.
Even David, who is known to have surpassed others in heroism and bravery, had
not such a heart of iron as to repel all fears and alarms, but was sometimes
greatly disquieted and smitten with
fear.
5.
They shall look to him, and
shall flow to him. I have already
intimated, that this verse and the following should be read in connection with
the preceding verse. In relating his own experience David has furnished an
example to others, that they should freely and without fear approach God in
order to present their prayers before him. Now, he says that they shall come,
and this too with a happy issue. The first two verbs are expressed in the past
time in the Hebrew; but I have, notwithstanding, no doubt that the sentence
ought to be explained thus:When they shall have looked to him, and flowed to
him, their faces shall not be ashamed. I have therefore translated them in the
future tense. David is not relating things which had happened, but is commending
the fruit of the favor which had been manifested to himself. Some interpreters,
I know, refer the words to him to
David,
fa655 because immediately after he speaks of
himself in the third person. Others with greater propriety explain it; of God
himself. A difference of opinion also exists as to the Hebrew verb
wrhn,
naharu, which some, supposing it to be derived from the root
rwa,
or, render to be
enlightened.
fa656 But, in my opinion, the natural
signification of the word appears very appropriate to this place; as if he had
said, There shall now be a mirror set forth, in which men may behold the face of
God serene and merciful; and therefore the poor and afflicted shall henceforth
dare to lift up their eyes to God, and to resort to him with the utmost freedom,
because no uncertainty shall any longer retard them or render them slothful. If,
however, any one should prefer the word enlighten, the meaning will be,
They who formerly languished in darkness shall lift up their eyes to God, as if
a light had suddenly appeared unto them, and they who were cast down and
overwhelmed with shame, shall again clothe their countenances with cheerfulness.
But as the meaning in either case is substantially the same, I am not much
disposed to contend which of the two interpretations ought to be
preferred.
6.
This poor man cried, and
Jehovah heard him. David here introduces
all the godly speaking of himself, the more emphatically to express how much
weight there is in his example to encourage them. This poor man, say they,
cried; therefore God invites all the poor to cry to him. They contemplate in
David what belongs to the common benefit of all the godly; for God is as willing
and ready at this day to hear all the afflicted who direct their sighs, wishes,
and cries, to him with the same faith, as he was at that time to hear
David.
Psalm
34:7-10
7. The angel of Jehovah
encampeth
fa657 round about them that fear him, and
will deliver them. 8. Taste and see that Jehovah is good: blessed is the
man who trusteth in him. 9. Fear Jehovah, ye his saints, for there is no
want to them that fear him. 10. The young lions are destitute and
famished: but they who fear Jehovah shall not want any good
thing.
7.
The angel of Jehovah
encampeth round about them that fear him.
David here discourses in general of God's fatherly favor towards all the
godly; and as the life of man is exposed to innumerable dangers, he at the same
time teaches us that God is able to deliver them. The faithful especially, who
are as sheep in the midst of wolves, beset as it were with death in every form,
are constantly harassed with the dread of some approaching danger. David
therefore affirms, that the servants of God are protected and defended by
angels. The design of the Psalmist is to show, that although the faithful are
exposed to many dangers, yet they may rest assured that God will be the faithful
guardian of their life. But in order to confirm them the more in this hope, he
adds at the same time, and not without reason, that those whom God would
preserve in safety he defends by the power and ministration of angels. The power
of God alone would indeed be sufficient of itself to perform this; but in mercy
to our infirmity he vouchsafes to employ angels as his ministers. It serves not
a little for the confirmation of our faith to know that God has innumerable
legions of angels who are always ready for his service as often as he is pleased
to aid us; nay, more, that the angels too, who are called principalities and
powers, are ever intent upon the preservation of our life, because they know
that this duty is intrusted to them. God is indeed designated with propriety the
wall of his Church, and every kind of fortress and place of
defense
fa658 to her; but in accommodation to the
measure and extent of our present imperfect state, he manifests the presence of
his power to aid us through the instrumentality of his angels. Moreover, what
the Psalmist here says of one angel in the singular number, ought to be applied
to all the other angels:for they are distinguished by the general appellation
of
"ministering spirits sent
forth to minister to them who shall be the heirs of salvation,"
(<580114>Hebrews
1:14 ;)
and the Scriptures in other places teach us, that
whenever it pleases God, and whenever he knows it to be for their benefit, many
angels are appointed to take care of each of his people,
(<120615>2
Kings 6:15;
<199111>Psalm
91:11;
<421622>Luke
16:22.) The amount then of what has been said is, that however great the number
of our enemies and the dangers by which we are surrounded may be, yet the angels
of God, armed with invincible power, constantly watch over us, and array
themselves on every side to aid and deliver us from all
evil.
8.
Taste and see that Jehovah is
good. In this verse the Psalmist
indirectly reproves men for their dulness in not perceiving the goodness of God,
which ought to be to them more than matter of simple knowledge. By the word
taste he at once shows that they are without taste; and at the same time
he assigns the reason of this to be, that they devour the gifts of God without
relishing them, or through a vitiated loathing ungratefully conceal them. He,
therefore, calls upon them to stir up their senses, and to bring a palate endued
with some capacity of tasting, that God's goodness may become known to them, or
rather, be made manifest to them. The words literally rendered are,
Taste and see, for the Lord is
good; but the particle
yk,
ki, for, is taken exegetically. David's meaning, therefore, is,
that there is nothing on the part of God to prevent the godly, to whom he
particularly speaks in this place, from arriving at the knowledge of his
goodness by actual experience. From this it follows, that they also are infected
with the common malady of dulness. This doctrine is confirmed by the promise
immediately added, Blessed is the
man who trusteth in him; for God never
disappoints the expectations of those who seek his favor. Our own unbelief is
the only impediment which prevents him from satisfying us largely and
bountifully with abundance of all good
things.
9.
Fear Jehovah, ye his
saints. Here the people of God are
exhorted to the pursuit of holiness and righteousness, that they may open up a
channel for divine blessings. We know that men are accustomed to provide for
their wants, by resorting to fraud, plunder, and even to wrongful violence. Nor
is it possible but that the faithful must feel some stirrings of a desire to
imitate the wicked, and envy them in some degree in their prosperity, so that
they permit themselves sometimes to howl among the wolves. And although they
voluntarily abstain from all wrongful violence, yet the common way of
living among those around them carries them away like a tempest; and, in the
meantime, they think that the plea of necessity is sufficient to excuse them.
David represses, as with a bridle, these temptations, promising that all will be
well with the people of God, provided they keep themselves in the fear of God,
which he opposes to all wicked and deceitful counsels; because the greater part
of men reckon those to be fools who aim at simplicity, since in so doing they do
not consult their own interests and profit. While, therefore, ungodly men are
afraid of poverty, and carnal reason urges them to attempt whatever their fancy
may suggest for keeping themselves from it, David here testifies that God takes
care of the godly, so that he never suffers them to be in want. Let no fear or
distrust, says he, withdraw you from the pursuit of what is right, because God
never forsakes those who walk righteously before him. The Psalmist, therefore,
bids them yield to God the honor of expecting more from him alone than the
wicked expect from their deceitful traffic and unlawful practices. Moreover, as
iniquity rages with unbridled fury everywhere throughout the world, he calls
expressly upon the saints to be on their guard, because he would be of no
service to the promiscuous multitude. It is a sentiment contrary to the
generally received opinion among men, that while the integrity of the good and
simple is exposed to the will of the wicked, there should yet be greater
security in integrity than in all the resources of fraud and injustice. There
is, therefore, no inconsistency in his admonishing the saints who, of their own
accord, are endeavoring to walk uprightly, not to depart from the fear of God;
for we know how easily the light of piety may be obscured and extinguished, when
there appears no hope of living happily and prosperously, except in the pursuit
of the world and its enticing pleasures.
The
Psalmist illustrates this doctrine by a very apposite comparison, namely, that
God provides every thing necessary for his people, and relieves their wants,
whilst the lions, which surpass in ferocity all the wild beasts of the earth,
prowl about in a famishing condition for their prey. Some think, that under the
name of lions, those men who are addicted to violence and plunder are
metaphorically described; but this, in my opinion, is too refined. David simply
asserts, that those who guard against all unrighteousness should profit more by
so doing than by rapine and plunder; because the Lord feeds his people, while
even the lions and other beasts of prey often suffer hunger. What he says, then,
is, that sooner shall the lions perish with hunger and want, than God will
disappoint of their necessary food the righteous and sincere, who, content with
his blessing alone, seek their food only from his hand. Whoever, therefore,
shall in this way cast his cares upon God, and confide implicitly in his
paternal goodness and bounty, shall live quietly and peaceably among men, and
suffer no injury. If it is objected, that the good and the virtuous are not
always exempted from penury, I answer, that the hand of God is stretched out to
succor them in due season, when they are reduced to the greatest straits, and
know not to what side to turn,
fa659 so that the issue always shows that we
seek not in vain from him whatever is necessary to the sustenance of
life.
Psalm
34:11-14
11. Come, children, hearken
unto me, I will teach you the fear of Jehovah. 12. Who is the man who
desireth life, loving days in which he may see good? 13. Keep thy tongue
from evil, and thy lips from speaking deceit. 14. Turn away from evil,
and do good; seek peace, and pursue
it.
11.
Come,
children,
fa660
hearken unto
me. The Psalmist continues, with
increased earnestness, to exhort the faithful, that they may know that nothing
can be more profitable for them than to conduct themselves justly and harmlessly
towards all men. As the greater part of men imagine that the best and the
shortest way to attain a life of happiness and ease consists in striving to
surpass other men in violence, fraud, injustice, and other means of mischief, it
is necessary frequently to repeat this doctrine. Moreover, as it is necessary
that the minds of men should be brought to a chastened and humble state, by
calling them his children, he endeavors, by this gentle and courteous
appellation, to allay all froward affections. None will stand unmoved amidst so
many assaults, but those who have been endued by the Spirit of meekness with the
greatest modesty. The prophet, therefore, tells them at the outset, that the
rule of life which he prescribes can be observed and obeyed by those only who
are meek and submissive. To the same purpose is the word come, and the
command to hearken; and they imply, that men laying aside all wilfulness
of spirit, and having subdued the ardor and impetuosity of their minds, should
become docile and meek. He has put
the fear of the
Lord for the rule of a pious and holy
life:as if he had said, Whilst virtue and righteousness are in every man's
mouth, there are few who lead a holy life, and live as they ought; because they
know not what it is to serve God.
12.
Who is the man who desireth
life? The prophet does not inquire if
there be any man so disposed, as if all men voluntarily brought upon themselves
the miseries which befall them; for we know that all men without exception
desire to live in the enjoyment of happiness. But he censures severely the
blindness and folly which men exhibit in the frowardness of their desires, and
the vanity of their endeavors to obtain happiness; for while all men are
seeking, and eagerly intent upon acquiring what is for their profit, there will
be found scarcely one in a hundred who studies to purchase peace, and a quiet
and desirable state of life, by just and equitable means. The prophet therefore
admonishes his disciples, that nearly the whole world are deceived and led
astray by their own folly, while they promise themselves a happy life from any
other source than the divine blessing, which God bestows only upon the sincere
and upright in heart. But there is in this exclamation still greater vehemence,
the more effectually to awaken dull and drowsy minds to the course of this
world; as if he had said, Since all men earnestly desire happiness, how comes it
to pass, that scarcely any one sets himself to obtain it, and that every man, by
his own fault, rather brings upon himself various troubles
?
13.
Keep thy tongue from
evil The precept which David here
delivers relates to a virtue which is very rare, namely, that we should be
truthful and free from deceit in our discourse. Some, indeed, understand it in a
much more extended sense, supposing that slander is condemned in this first
clause. But it seems to me more simple, and more to the purpose, to understand
this as of the same import with what he repeats in the second clause, that we
should not speak deceitfully with our neighbors, so as that our words may
prove the means of ensnaring them. And since nothing is more difficult than to
regulate our discourse in such a manner as that our speech may be a true
representation of our hearts, David calls upon us to exercise over it a strict
and watchful control, not suffering it to run riot, lest it should prove the
occasion of our deceiving others.
14.
Turn away from evil, and do
good. Here the Psalmist commands the
children of God to abstain from all evil, and to devote themselves to the work
of doing good to their neighbors. This verse is generally quoted as if David
here treated of the two parts of repentance. The first step in the work of
repentance is, that the sinner forsake the vices to which he is addicted, and
renounce his former manner of life; and the second, that he frame his behavior
according to righteousness. But in this place we are more especially taught how
we ought to deal with our neighbors. As it often happens, that the man who is
not only liberal, but also prodigal towards some, or, at least, helps many by
acts of kindness, wrongs others by defrauding and injuring them, David, with
much propriety, begins by saying, that those who desire to have their life
approved before God, ought to abstain from doing evil. On the other hand, since
many think, that provided they have neither defrauded, nor wronged, nor injured
any man, they have discharged the duty which God requires from them, he has
added, with equal propriety, the other precept concerning doing good to our
neighbors. It is not the will of God that his servants should be idle, but
rather that they should aid one another, desiring each other's welfare and
prosperity, and promoting it as far as in them lies. David next inculcates the
duty of maintaining peace:Seek peace, and pursue it. Now we know that
this is maintained by gentleness and forbearance. But as we have often to do
with men of a fretful, or factious, or stubborn spirit, or with such as are
always ready to stir up strife upon the slightest occasion; and as also many
wicked persons irritate us; and as others by their own wickedness alienate, as
much as in them lies, the minds of good men from them, and others industriously
strive to find grounds of contention; he teaches us not merely that we ought to
seek peace, but if at any time it shall seem to flee from us, he bids us use our
every effort without ceasing in pursuing it. This, however, must be understood
with some limitation. It will often happen, that when good and humble men have
done every thing in their power to secure peace, so far from softening the
hearts of the wicked, or inclining them to uprightness, they rather excite their
malice. Their impiety, also, often constrains us to separate from them, and to
avoid them; nay, when they defy God, by proclaiming, as it were, open war
against him, it would be disloyalty and treason on our part not to oppose and
resist them. But here David means only that in our own personal affairs we
should be meek and condescending, and endeavor, as far as in us lies, to
maintain peace, though its maintenance should prove to us a source of much
trouble and inconvenience.
Psalm
15-17
15. The eyes of Jehovah are
upon the righteous, and his ears are open to their cry. 16. The face of
Jehovah
fa661 is upon them that do evil, to cut off
their remembrance from the earth. 17. They cried, and Jehovah heard them,
and delivered them from all their
troubles.
15.
The eyes of Jehovah are upon
the righteous. The best support of our
patience is a firm persuasion that God regards us, and that according as every
man perseveres in a course of uprightness and equity, so shall he be preserved
in peace and safety under his protection. In order, therefore, that the faithful
may not think that they are exposed to the caprice of the world, while they are
endeavoring to keep themselves innocent, and that they may not, under the
influence of this fear, go astray from the right path, David exhorts them to
reflect upon the providence of God, and to rest assured that they are safe under
his wings. He says, then, that
the eyes of the Lord are upon the
righteous, to preserve them, in order
that the good and simple may persevere the more cheerfully in their uprightness.
At the same time, he encourages them to supplication and prayer, if at any time
the world should unjustly persecute them. In saying that
the ears of the Lord are open to
their cry, he teaches that the man who
is wantonly and unjustly persecuted, will find a ready and suitable remedy in
all afflictions, by calling upon God as his avenger. On the other hand, he
declares, that although God sometimes appears to wink at the misdeeds of men,
and seems to overlook them, because he does not inflict immediate punishment
upon them, yet nothing escapes his inspection. Whilst the wicked, says he, by
reason of their impunity harden themselves in sin, God is watching, that he may
cut off their remembrance from the earth,
(<600510>1
Peter 5:10.) He speaks particularly of this kind of punishment, because the
ungodly not only expect that they shall be happy during their whole life, but
also imagine that they shall enjoy immortality in this world. Peter, in his
First Epistle,
fa662 applies this passage very judiciously,
for the purpose of assuaging our sorrows and appeasing our impatience, as often
as the pride and arrogance of the wicked may carry us beyond due limits. Nothing
is more useful for preserving our moderation than to depend upon God's help, and
having the testimony of a good conscience, to rely upon his judgment. If it is
objected, that good men experience the contrary, who, after having been long
afflicted, at length find no help or comfort; I reply, that the aid which God
affords to the righteous is not always made manifest, nor bestowed in the same
measure; and yet he so alleviates their troubles as never to forsake them.
Besides, even the best of men often deprive themselves of the help of God; for
scarcely one in a hundred perseveres in such a course of integrity as not, by
his own fault, to deserve the infliction of some evil upon himself. But as soon
as they fall, lest sin should take root in them, God chastises them, and often
punishes them more severely than the reprobate, whom he spares to utter
destruction.
fa663 And yet, however much things may appear
to be mingled and confused in the world, good men will find that God has not
promised them help in vain against the violence and injuries of the
wicked.
17.
They
fa664 cried, and Jehovah
heard them. The Psalmist's meaning is,
that they are heard as often as they cry. This is a doctrine applicable to all
times; and David does not merely relate what God has done once or twice, but
what he is accustomed to do. It is also a confirmation of the preceding
sentence, where he had said that the ears of the Lord are open to the cry of the
righteous; for he now demonstrates by the effect, that God is not deaf when we
lay our complaints and groanings before him. By the word cry we are
taught, that although God defend the righteous, they are not exempt from
adversity. He regulates the protection which he affords them in such a wonderful
manner, as that he notwithstanding exercises them by various trials. In like
manner, when we here see that deliverance is promised only to those who call
upon God, this ought to prove no small encouragement to us to pray to him; for
it is not his will that the godly should so regard his providence as to indulge
in idleness, but rather that, being firmly persuaded that he is the guardian of
their safety, they should direct their prayers and supplications to
him.
Psalm
34:18-22
18. Jehovah is nigh to
those who are broken of heart; he will save those who are bruised of spirit.
19. Many are the afflictions of the righteous; but Jehovah will deliver
him from them all. 20. He keepeth all his bones: not one of them is
broken
fa665 21. But malice shall slay the
wicked; and those who hate the righteous shall be destroyed. 22. Jehovah
redeemeth the soul of his servants, and those who trust in him shall not
perish.
18.
Jehovah is nigh to those who are
broken of heart. David here exemplifies
and extends still more the preceding doctrine, that God is the deliverer of his
people, even when they are brought very low, and when they are, as it were,
half-dead. It is a very severe trial, when the grace of God is delayed, and all
experience of it so far withdrawn, as that our spirits begin to fail; nay more,
to say that God is nigh to the faithful, even when their hearts faint and fall
them, and they are ready to die, is altogether incredible to human sense and
reason. But by this means his power shines forth more clearly, when he raises us
up again from the grave. Moreover, it is meet that the faithful should be thus
utterly cast down and afflicted, that they may breathe again in God alone. From
this we also learn, that nothing is more opposed to true patience than the
loftiness of heart of which the Stoics boast; for we are not accounted truly
humbled until true affliction of heart has abased us before God, so that, having
prostrated ourselves in the dust before him, he may raise us up. It is a
doctrine full of the sweetest consolation, that God departs not from us, even
when we are overwhelmed by a succession of miseries, and, as it were, almost
deprived of life.
19.
Many are the afflictions of the
righteous. The Psalmist here anticipates
the thought which often arises in the mind, "How can it be that God has a care
about the righteous, who are continually harassed with so many calamities and
trials? for what purpose does the protection of God serve, unless those who are
peaceably inclined enjoy peace and repose? and what is more unreasonable, than
that those who cause trouble to no one should themselves be tormented and
afflicted in all variety of ways?" That, therefore, the temptations by which we
are continually assailed may not shake our belief in the providence of God, we
ought to remember this lesson of instruction, that although God governs the
righteous, and provides for their safety, they are yet subject and exposed to
many miseries, that, being tested by such trials, they may give evidence of
their invincible constancy, and experience so much the more that God is their
deliverer. If they were exempted from every kind of trial, their faith would
languish, they would cease to call upon God, and their piety would remain hidden
and unknown. It is, therefore, necessary that they should be exercised with
various trials, and especially for this end, that they may acknowledge that they
have been wonderfully preserved by God amidst numberless deaths. If this should
seldom happen, it might appear to be fortuitous, or the result of chance; but
when innumerable and interminable evils come upon them in succession, the grace
of God cannot be unknown, when he always stretches forth his hand to them.
David, therefore, admonishes the faithful never to lose their courage, whatever
evils may threaten them; since God, who can as easily deliver them a thousand
times as once from death, will never disappoint their expectation. What he adds
concerning their bones, seems not a little to illustrate the truth of
this doctrine, and to teach us that those who are protected by God shall be free
from all danger. He therefore declares, that God will take care that not one of
their bones shall be broken; in which sense Christ also says,
that
"the very hairs of our
head are all numbered,"
(<421207>Luke
12:7.)
21.
But malice shall slay the
wicked. The Hebrew word
h[r,
raäh, which I have translated malice, some would rather render
misery, so that the meaning would be, that the ungodly shall perish
miserably, because in the end they shall be overwhelmed with calamities. The
other translation, however, is more expressive, namely, that their wickedness,
with which they think themselves fortified, shall fall upon their own heads. As
David therefore taught before, that there was no defense better than a just and
blameless life, so now he declares, that all the wicked enterprises of the
wicked, even though no one should in any thing oppose them, shall turn to their
own destruction. In the second clause of the verse he states, that it is for the
sake of the righteous that it is ordered, that the ungodly are themselves the
cause and instruments of their own destruction. Those, says he,
who hate the righteous shall be
destroyed. Let this, therefore, be to us
as a wall of brass and sure defense; that however numerous the enemies which
beset us may be, we should not be afraid, because they are already devoted to
destruction. The same thing David confirms in the last verse, in which he says,
that Jehovah redeems the soul of
his servants. How could they be
preserved in safety, even for a moment, among so many dangers, unless God
interposed his power for their defense? But by the word redeem there is
expressed a kind of preservation which is repugnant to the flesh. For it is
necessary that we should first be adjudged or doomed to death, before God should
appear as our redeemer. From this it follows, that those who hurry forward too
precipitately, and are unable to realize God's power unless he appear speedily,
working deliverance for them, intercept the communication of his grace.
Moreover, that none might form their judgment of the servants of God by moral or
philosophic virtue only, as it is called, David specifies this as a principal
mark by which they may be known, that they trust in God, on whom also their
salvation depends.
PSALM
35.
So long as Saul was the enemy of David, the nobles,
and such as at that time bore any authority, had (according to the subservient
spirit which always prevails in the courts of kings) eagerly conspired to
destroy an innocent man. They had also succeeded in inducing the common people
to participate with them in their hatred and cruelty, so that all of them, from
the highest to the lowest, burned with implacable hatred against him. But as he
knew that the greatest part of them were thoughtlessly impelled to this by error
and folly, and ignorance of the true state of affairs, he accounts those only
his enemies who, from deliberate malice and wickedness, endeavored in this way
to please Saul, in order to obtain his favor. Against them he calls upon God for
vengeance. And, first, as he was conscious of no crime, he alleges his innocence
before God; and, secondly, as they sought to inflict unmerited punishment upon
him, he implores God for deliverance. After he has complained of their impious
cruelty, he calls down upon them the punishment which they deserved. Moreover,
as in confident reliance upon the oracle of God, which had been spoken by
Samuel, and the holy anointing, he hoped for a better issue, he intersperses
throughout the psalm testimonies of his thankfulness. Finally, he concludes the
psalm by saying, that after he has been delivered, he will celebrate the praises
of God all his life.
A Psalm of
David.
Psalm
35:1-3
1. Plead my cause, O Jehovah!
with them that plead against me; fight against them who fight against me.
2. Take the shield and the buckler, and rise up for my help. 3.
Bring forth the spear, and oppose my persecutors: say unto my soul, "I am thy
salvation."
1.
Plead my cause, O
Jehovah! As the enemies of David not
only avowedly sought to take away his life, but also troubled him by calumny and
misrepresentation, he pleads for the redress of both these grievances. In the
first place, by appealing to God for his aid in defense of his cause, he
intimates, that he has to do with wicked and maligning men. In the second place,
by urging him to take up arms, he shows that he was grievously oppressed. It was
a very dishonorable thing, that this holy man, alike eminent for his beneficence
and inoffensiveness towards all men, and who by his courtesy and meekness had
merited, both in public and private, the esteem and favor of all, was not
permitted to escape the reproach and calumny of wicked men; but it is important
for us to know this, and it sets before us a very profitable example. If even
David did not escape the malice of wicked men, it ought not to seem wonderful or
strange to us, if they blame and bite at us. The injuries they inflict upon us
may be grievous and painful, but there is incomparable consolation presented to
us in this consideration, that God himself interposes for our protection and
defense against false accusations. Though calumniators, then, should arise, and
tear us, as it were, to pieces, by falsely charging us with crimes, we need not
be disturbed, so long as God undertakes to plead our cause against them. There
can be no doubt, that in the second clause of the verse David implores God to
resist the armed violence of his enemies. The amount of the whole is, that being
falsely accused and cruelly persecuted, and finding no help at the hands of men,
the Prophet commits the preservation of his life and his reputation to
God.
2.
Take the
shield. These words certainly cannot be
applied, in the strict and proper sense, to God, who has no need of the spear or
buckler:for by the breath of his mouth alone, or merely with his nod, he is able
to overthrow all his enemies. But although such figures at first sight appear
rude, yet the Holy Ghost employs them in accommodation to the weakness of our
understanding, for the purpose of impressing more effectually upon our minds the
conviction that God is present to aid us. When troubles and dangers arise, when
terrors assail us on every side, when even death presents itself to our view, it
is difficult to realize the secret and invisible power of God, which is able to
deliver us from all anxiety and fear; for our understandings, which are gross
and earthly, tend downward to the earth. That our faith, therefore, may ascend
by degrees to the heavenly power of God, he is here introduced armed, after the
manner of men, with sword and shield. In the same way, also, when he is in
another place termed "a man of war," it is doubtless in adaptation to the
imperfection of our present state, because our minds, from their limited
capacity, could in no other way comprehend the extent of that infinite power,
which contains in itself every form of help, and has no need of aid from any
other quarter. This, therefore, is a prayer that God, by the exercise of his
secret and intrinsic power, would show that he alone is able to encounter the
whole strength and forces of the ungodly. Some suppose that the Hebrew word
hnx,
tsinnah, here used, means a dart, or some other kind of weapon;
but as we have already seen, in the fifth psalm, that it properly signifies a
buckler, I see no reason why it should be differently interpreted in this
place. Nor is there any thing at all inconsistent in connecting here, as is
often done in other places, the buckler and the
shield.
fa666 If the expression here employed had
been designed to signify a dart, or a similar weapon, it would have been more
natural to connect it with the spear, of which mention is made in the following
verse. David, then, first makes mention of defensive armor, praying that God
would sustain and repel the assaults of the enemy. The Hebrew word
qyr,
rik, which signifies to unsheath, or make bare, I take simply
to mean, to draw out, or bring forth. The Hebrew word
rwgs,
segor, which I have translated to oppose, literally signifies
to shut or to close. But as David's meaning is, that God, by
setting himself as a wall or rampart, would prevent his enemies from approaching
him, it appears to me that I have faithfully translated it. At the same time, if
any should prefer the translation to shut, or close the way, or
to impede it by some obstacle, the meaning; is substantially the same.
The opinion of those who contend that it is a
noun,
fa667 is not at all
probable.
3.
Say to my
soul. Some expound these words
thus:Declare to me by secret inspiration; and others, Make me to feel indeed
that my salvation is in thy hand. In my opinion, David desires to have it
thoroughly fixed in his mind, and to be fully persuaded that God is the author
of his salvation. This he was unable, from the present aspect of things, to
ascertain and determine; for such is the insensibility and dulness of our
natures, that God often delivers us whilst we sleep and are ignorant of it.
Accordingly, he makes use of a very forcible manner of expression, in praying
that God would grant him a lively sense of his favor, so that being armed with
this buckler, he might sustain every conflict, and surmount every opposing
obstacle; as if he had said, Lord, whatever may arise to discourage me, confirm
me in this persuasion, that my salvation is assuredly in thee; and although
temptations drive me hither and thither, recall my thoughts to thee in such a
manner, as that my hope of salvation may rise superior to all the dangers to
which I shall be exposed;
fa668 nay, more, that I may become as
infallibly certain as if thou hadst said it, that through thy favor I shall be
saved.
Psalm
35:4-7
4. Let those who seek my soul
be confounded and put to shame; and let those who devise my hurt be turned back,
and brought to confusion. 5. Let them be as chaff before the wind, and
let the angel of Jehovah thrust [or impel]
them.
fa669 6. Let their way be darkness and
slipperiness, and let the angel of Jehovah pursue them. 7. For they have
hid for me without cause their net in a pit, without cause they have digged a
pit
fa670 for my
soul.
4.
Let those who seek my soul be
confounded. David now calls upon God to
take vengeance upon his enemies; and he asks not only that he would disappoint
and destroy their designs, but also that he would recompense them according to
their deserts. In the first place, he desires that they may be confounded and
put to shame in seeing their expectation and desire fail; and then he proceeds
farther, desiring that while they imagine themselves to be firmly established,
and deeply rooted, they may be like chaff or stubble. As the chaff is driven
with the wind, so also he desires, that, being disquieted by the secret impulse
of the angel of the Lord, they may never have rest. The imprecation which
follows is even more dreadful, and it is this:that wherever they go they may
meet with darkness and slippery places; and that in their doubt and perplexity
the angel of the Lord would pursue them. In fine, whatever they devise, and to
whatever side they turn, he prays that all their counsels and enterprises may
come to a disastrous termination. When he desires that they may be driven by the
angel of the Lord, we learn from this that the reason why the ungodly are
troubled, though no man pursues them, is, that God smites them with a spirit of
amazement, and distracts them with such fears that they tremble and are
troubled.
The same thing he expresses more
clearly in the following verse, praying that the angel of the Lord would drive
them through dark and slippery places, so that reason and understanding might
fail them, and that they might not know whither to go, nor what to become, nor
have even time given them to draw their breath. We need not be surprised that
this work should be assigned to the angels, by whose instrumentality God
executes his judgments. At the same time, this passage may be expounded of the
devils as well as of the holy angels, who are ever ready to execute the divine
behests. We know that the devil is permitted to exercise his dominion over the
reprobate; and hence it is often said that "an evil spirit from God came upon
Saul,"
(<091810>1
Samuel 18:10.) But as the devils never execute the will of God, unless compelled
to do it when God wishes to serve himself of them; the Sacred Scriptures declare
that the holy and elect angels are in a much higher sense the servants of God.
God, then, executes his judgments by the wicked and reprobate angels; but he
gives the elect angels the pre-eminence over them. On this account, also, good
angels only are called rightfully "principalities," as in
<490310>Ephesians
3:10;
<510116>Colossians
1:16, and other similar passages. If it is objected that it is not meet that the
angels, who are the ministers of grace and salvation, and the appointed
guardians of the faithful, should be employed in executing judgment upon the
reprobate, the explanation is simply this, that they cannot watch for the
preservation of the godly without being prepared for fighting — that they
cannot succor them by their aid without also opposing their enemies, and
declaring themselves to be against them. The style of imprecation which the
Psalmist here employs can be explained only by bearing in mind what I have
elsewhere said, namely, that David pleads not simply his own cause, nor utters
rashly the dictates of passion, nor with unadvised zeal desires the destruction
of his enemies; but under the guidance of the Holy Spirit he entertains and
expresses against the reprobate such desires as were characterised by great
moderation, and which were far removed from the spirit of those who are impelled
either by desire of revenge or hatred, or some other inordinate emotion of the
flesh.
7.
For they have hid for me
without a cause. He here declares
that he did not take the name of God in vain, nor call upon him for protection
without just cause, for he openly asserts his innocence, and complains that he
was thus severely afflicted without having committed any crime, or given any
occasion to his enemies. It becomes us carefully to mark this, so that no one
may rush unadvisedly into God's presence, nor call upon him for vengeance,
without the assurance and testimony of a good conscience. When he says that he
was assailed by stratagem, fraud, and wicked practices, there is implied in this
a tacit commendation of his own
integrity.
Psalm
35:8-10
8. Let confusion of which he
is not aware come upon him; and let his own net which he hath hidden catch
himself: let him fall into it with confusion. 9. And my soul is joyful in
Jehovah, it shall be glad in his salvation. 10. All my bones shall say, O
Jehovah! who is like thee, that deliverest the poor from him that is stronger
than he, the poor and miserable from him that spoileth him
?
8.
Let confusion of which he is
not aware come upon him. David again
prays that God would cause to return upon the head of his enemies the mischief
which they had directed against a just and an inoffensive man. The change from
the plural to the singular number, even when the same subject, is spoken of, is,
we know, a thing very common among the Hebrews. Accordingly, what is here said
of one man is applicable to all David's enemies in general, unless, perhaps, we
are rather inclined to suppose that allusion is here made to Saul or some one of
his nobles. But as it is certain that the prayer which he here offers against
Saul as the head extends to the whole body, in other words, to all his
followers,
fa671 it matters little in which way we
understand it. The Hebrew word
hawç,
shoah, sometimes signifies confusion, and sometimes
destruction; and, therefore, many translate it, Let destruction,
or desolation, or ruin, come upon him. The other rendering,
however, seems more suitable, for he immediately adds,
Let his own net which he hath
hidden catch him, let him fall into it with
confusion. The way in which others
render it, Let him fall into destruction itself, is certainly forced and
unnatural. But the meaning of the clause will be brought out very suitable if it
is viewed as a prayer of David, that as the wicked settle down like wine upon
the lees, in present enjoyments, and fear nothing, as if they were placed beyond
the reach of all danger, some calamity which they think not of may suddenly come
upon them like a tempest, and overwhelm them. It never for a moment occurs to
them as at all possible that their stratagems and craft, their wicked practices,
and all the snares which they lay for the good and the simple, turn to the
destruction of themselves who have devised them. David, therefore, very properly
desires that they may fall with confusion into the nets which they have laid; in
other words, that they may be filled with amazement and terror when they are
suddenly and unexpectedly visited with calamity. The more unbounded and
extravagant the exultation of men is, through their vainly and foolishly
imagining that they shall escape unpunished, the more are they filled with
amazement and fear when calamity suddenly overtakes them. I have, however, no
doubt that David here refers to some strange and extraordinary calamity. Let
confusion, then, of which he thinks not, come upon him; that is to say,
when he shall have persuaded himself that all goes well with him, and promised
himself peace in his deceitful fascinations, then let unwonted terror strike him
to the heart, and let him feel by his tumultuous fear that he is caught in his
own snares.
9.
And my soul is joyful in
Jehovah. Others read this in the
optative mood, May my soul
rejoice in Jehovah, and may it be glad in his
salvation. But instead of continuing to
express his desires, David, in my opinion, rather promises in this verse that he
will be grateful to God. This is still more evident from the following verse, in
which extolling very highly the goodness of God, he says that he will celebrate
the remembrance of it with every member of his body. While, therefore, some
ascribe to fortune, and others to their own skill, the praise of their
deliverance from danger, and few, if any, yield the whole praise of it to God,
David here declares that he will not forget the favor which God had bestowed
upon him. My soul, says he, shall rejoice, not in a deliverance of the author of
which it is ignorant, but in the salvation of God. To place the matter in a
still stronger light, he assigns to his very bones the office of declaring the
divine glory. As if not content that his tongue should be employed in this, he
applies all the members of his body to the work of setting forth the praises of
God. The style of speaking which he employs is hyperbolical, but in this way he
shows unfeignedly that his love to God was so strong that he desired to spend
his sinews and bones in declaring the reality and truth of his
devotion.
10.
O Jehovah! who is like
thee? Here he explains more fully the
nature of his joy in the salvation of God of which he had spoken, showing that
it consisted in his ascribing entirely to God the deliverance which he had
obtained. Men, in general, praise God in such a manner that he scarcely obtains
the tenth part of his due. But David, distinguishing him from all others,
distinctly declares that the whole glory of his deliverance is due to him alone.
And, certainly, we then only yield to God what belongs to him, when, investing
him with his own power, we rest all our hopes on him. For what purpose does it
serve, loudly to celebrate the name of God with our mouths, if we tear in pieces
his power and goodness at our pleasure? David, therefore, in the true spirit of
godliness, extols the greatness of God by this high encomium, that he is the
guardian and defender of the poor, and rescues the needy and afflicted from the
hand of those who oppress them; as if he had said, It is God's peculiar duty to
succor the miserable. By these words we are taught to cling to the hope of
better things in adversity; for the power and resources of our enemies, however
great they may be, is no reason why we should lose our confidence, since God
declares to us from heaven that he reigns expressly for the purpose of resisting
the strong and powerful. If the children of this world, who employ their power
in injuring and oppressing the weak, had the least degree of sound
understanding, it would certainly serve to restrain their audacity, and prevent
them proceeding farther in provoking the wrath of
God.
Psalm
35:11-15
11. Violent witnesses rise
up, they charge me with things which I know not. 12. They render me evil
for good, to the bereaving
fa672 of my soul. 13. But as for me,
when they were sick, my clothing was sackcloth: I afflicted my soul with
fasting; and have poured my prayer into my own bosom. 14. I behaved
myself towards him as if he had been my friend and brother: I humbled myself as
one that mourneth heavily for his mother. 15. But they rejoiced at my
halting, they gathered themselves together; yea, even the abjects whom I knew
not gathered themselves against me: they have torn me with their lips, and have
not ceased.
11.
Violent
witnesses
fa673 rise
up. The Hebrew is, they shall rise
up; but in using the future tense, the Psalmist intimates that he is
speaking of what he had suffered for a long time. And he complains that he was
so oppressed with calumny that he had no opportunity of defending himself; than
which nothing more grievous and painful can ever happen to those of an ingenuous
mind, and who are conscious of no blame. Besides, he not only says that he had
been falsely accused, but he also condemns the audacity and insolence of those
who violently rose up to bear witness against him. To this belongs what he adds,
They charge me with things which
I know not. David then was not only
spoiled of his worldly goods, and basely driven into exile, but was also accused
and loaded with infamy under color of justice. Being involved in such distress,
he resorted directly to God, hoping that he would maintain his innocence. So
ought the children of God to walk through good report and bad report, and
patiently suffer reproach, until he assert and declare their innocence from on
high. In old times, it was a common proverb among the heathen, "There is no
theater more beautiful than a good conscience;" and in this they uttered a noble
sentiment; but no man can be sustained and supported by the purity of his
conscience unless he has recourse to
God.
12.
They render me evil for
good. David again shows that the malice
of his enemies was of a very aggravated character, because they not only
oppressed him wrongfully, seeing he was innocent, and had given them no occasion
of offense, but also because even those who had received much enjoyment and many
favors from him, recompensed him in a very strange and ungrateful manner. Such
disgraceful conduct wounds the feelings of good men very severely, and seems
quite intolerable. But it is an inexpressibly great consolation when we can
testify before God, that we have attempted by every means in our power to soothe
the minds of our enemies, and to bow them to gentleness, although,
notwithstanding, they are hurried on by insatiable cruelty in desiring our hurt;
for God will not suffer this barbarous and brutal ingratitude to pass
unpunished. Their cruelty is farther expressed when it is said that they
endeavored to bereave (for so it is properly in the
Hebrew
fa674) the soul of a meek and peaceable man;
that is to say, to deprive it of comfort, and render it so desolate as to
overwhelm it with despair and destroy it. David afterwards recounts certain acts
of kindness which he had done them, and which, if they had had any sense of
equity and humanity, ought to have been as so many sacred bonds of mutual love.
He does not say that he aided them with money or with goods, or that he had by
some other means exercised liberality towards them, for it may sometimes happen
that when the hand is open the heart may be shut; but he mentions certain tokens
of true and genuine love — that he lamented their misfortunes before God,
and was troubled for them, as if he had mourned for the death of his mother;
and, finally, that he felt for and took an interest in them as if they had been
his own brothers. Since then he had thus laid them under high obligations to
him, of what baser ingratitude could they be guilty than to vomit against him in
his adversity the poison of their hatred? With respect to the meaning of the
words, I take the term sickness, in this place, to signify metaphorically
any kind of trouble or sorrow. David's meaning is, that as often as any calamity
had befallen them he was a partaker of their grief. A good evidence of this was
the prayer which he says he poured out into his own bosom. The proper
meaning of the expression is, that he did not ostentatiously utter his prayers
aloud before men, like many who pretend much more affection than they really
feel, but that by praying in secret, and without making the world privy to it,
he showed that he was sincerely and from the heart distressed by reason of their
affliction. As we say that a man rejoices in his own bosom, who is satisfied
with the secret and inward feeling of his heart, without declaring it to others,
so also one may be said to weep or pray in his own bosom, who pours not forth
his tears and prayers before men to secure their favor, but, contented with
having God alone for his witness, conceals his emotions in his own heart. I do
not, however, deny that in this manner of speaking there is expressed the
attitude of one who prays, as if the Psalmist had said, that he bowed down his
body, and prayed with his head hanging down, and his arms folded, as men in
heaviness are accustomed to do.
fa675 But this especially we ought to regard
as his meaning, that there was no dissimulation in his prayer. Some think that
there is an imprecation in his words, and they explain them in this sense. Lord,
if it is true that I have not desired all prosperity to them, let all mischief
fall upon me:but this is a forced explanation. There is still another
exposition, which has as little plausibility in it; and it is this:Because I
profited nothing by praying for them, the fruit of my prayer returned to myself.
The sense, which is more in unison with the purpose and also the words of the
prophet, is, I prayed for them just as I pray for myself. But what I have
already advanced concerning the secret affection of the Psalmist will, I hope,
prove satisfactory to the judicious reader. With respect to sackcloth and
fasting, he used them as helps to prayer. The faithful pray even after their
meals, and do not observe fasting every day as necessary for prayer, nor
consider it needful to put on sackcloth whenever they come into the presence of
God. But we know that those who lived in ancient times resorted to these
exercises when any urgent necessity pressed upon them. In the time of public
calamity or danger they all put on sackcloth, and gave themselves to fasting,
that by humbling themselves before God, and acknowledging their guilt, they
might appease his wrath. In like manner, when any one in particular was
afflicted, in order to excite himself to greater earnestness in prayer, he put
on sackcloth and engaged in fasting, as being the tokens of grief. When David
then, as he here tells us, put on sackcloth, it was the same as if he had taken
upon himself the sins of his enemies, in order to implore from God mercy for
them, while they were exerting all their power to accomplish his destruction.
Although we may reckon the wearing of sackcloth and sitting in ashes among the
number of the legal ceremonies, yet the exercise of fasting remains in force
amongst us at this day as well as in the time of David. When God, therefore,
calls us to repentance, by showing us signs of his displeasure, let us bear in
mind that we ought not only to pray to him after the ordinary manner, but also
to employ such means as are fitted to promote our humility. In conclusion, the
Psalmist says that he behaved and acted towards them as if each of them had been
his brother.
15.
But they rejoiced at my
halting. I see no reason why
interpreters should trouble themselves as they do about the word halting.
Some conjecture that David had his leg put out of joint, and others suppose
that he halted from some disease. But when we consider carefully the whole
passage, nothing is more evident than that he refers by this expression to the
calamities which befell him; as if he had said, As soon as they saw me begin to
stagger and ready to fall, they did as it were gather together against me, and
endeavored entirely to overthrow me. There is, therefore, in this expression
almost the same metaphor as we have already seen in the word sickness.
Now, as men often relent at seeing the misfortunes of their enemies, so that
they cease to hate or persecute those who are already miserably wretched, it was
an evidence of the very cruel and fierce spirit by which David's former friends
were actuated against him, when, upon seeing him cast down and afflicted, they
were rather by this incited furiously and insolently to assail him. At the
commencement he speaks only of a few; but immediately after, in order to show
still farther the indignity which had been done to him, he adds to them the base
and ignoble of the common people; not that he blames all alike, but that he may
the better show with what bitter hostility he was assailed on all sides. It is
probable that those who were then in power were as it were firebrands, who
endeavored to kindle every where the flame of hatred against David, that the
people every where might rise up to destroy him, and strive with each other in
this enterprise. And he repeats twice
that they gathered themselves
together, in order to show how resolute
and determined they were in their opposition to him; unless, perhaps, some would
prefer to explain the words thus:They gathered themselves together, not only
those who had some pretext for doing so, but even the lowest of the people. The
Hebrew word
µykn,
nekim, literally signifies the whipped, or
beaten,
fa676 but it is here to be understood
as denoting base and disreputable persons. Some interpreters, indeed, derive it
from the word
hak,
kaäh, which signifies to make sad, and expound it actively,
Those who make me sad:but the previous interpretation agrees better with the
design of the passage, namely, that David was shamefully treated by the lowest
dregs of the people. The words, I knew not, may be referred to the cause
as well as to the persons. I, however, explain it as referring to the persons in
this sense:So far from having any cause to complain that I have offended them,
or done them any harm, I did not even know them. At the same time, these words
may be understood as implying a complaint on the part of David, that the people
were enraged against him without any cause, since he is conscious of no crime,
and can conceive of no ground for such fierce hatred towards him. As to the last
clause of the verse, also, although interpreters entertain different opinions,
it appears to me that I have given the true and natural meaning. Literally it
is, they did cut, and ceased not; but there can be no doubt that the
language is metaphorical, and that the word
cut
fa677 signifies that they opened their
mouth; as if David had said, They have insolently poured forth with open mouth
their scoffing and reproachful words against me. The additional clause in the
sentence, and ceased not, is a repetition common in the Hebrew language,
and is employed to express the vehemence with which David's enemies proceeded
against him. It implies that there was no end or measure to their evil-speaking,
and that they continued to pour forth with distended throats whatever first
occurred to them.
Psalm
35:16-18
16. Among perfidious
jesters at feasts, they gnash upon me with their teeth. 17. O
Lord!
fa678 how long wilt thou look on? deliver my
soul from their tumults, and my only
one
fa679 from the lions. 18. I will
magnify thee in the great
congregation:
fa680 I will praise thee before a great
people.
fa681
16.
Among perfidious
jesters. Others translate it, With
hypocrites, but in my opinion David simply relates the combination of his
enemies. And the meaning of the expression is to this effect, That among men of
a crafty disposition, who had been addicted to deceit, and were consequently
lost to all sense of shame, the only and the constant subject of their
deliberations was, how they might destroy this afflicted man. David again
reverts to the leaders of the people, and to those in power, as the source
whence all the mischief took its rise; for this description could not apply to a
great part of the common people, who acted rather by thoughtless impulse. He
therefore speaks particularly of the rulers, and others of a similar character,
and accuses them of cruelty, saying, that they gnash their teeth upon him like
furious wild beasts. He first calls them perfidious or wicked,
that he may the more easily obtain help and aid of God, as if calling upon
him in the extremity of distress; and, secondly, he calls them jesters or
mockers, by which he means that they have such effrontery, and are so far
lost to all sense of shame, that there is nothing which they will not dare to
do. As to the meaning of the word
gw[m,
maog, which follows, interpreters are not agreed. Properly, it signifies
bread baked upon the hearth upon the embers. Some, however, because they could
not elicit from it a meaning suitable to the passage, have thought that it
should be taken for talkative jesting, or idle speech. Others, presuming to give
a still wider range to their fancy, have supposed the meaning of the Psalmist to
be, that the scoffing of such persons was as bread to them, because they take
pleasure in scoffing and jesting. To me, it appears that we ought to retain the
proper signification of the word, while, at the same time, it may be understood
in a twofold sense. Some taking
gw[m,
maog, for a cake or tart, are of opinion that David here
censures people of a delicate taste, who seek after fine and dainty fare, many
of whom are always to be found in the courts of princes. Others rather suppose
that he rebukes persons of a servile and sordid spirit, who, for the most
trifling consideration, would employ their tongues in reviling others, just as
in all ages there have been found men who, for a bit of bread, as we say, set
their tongues to sale. When I carefully consider other passages in which David
describes the nature and character of his enemies, I am disposed to think that
those who indulged in jesting and scoffing at feasts, and who, in sitting over
their cups, consulted about putting David to death, are here referred to. He
therefore complains, that even in the midst of their feasting and banqueting,
the ungodly, who had shaken off all shame, communed how they might take away his
life.
17.
O Lord! how long wilt thou
look on? The meaning of the word which I
have translated how long, is ambiguous in the Hebrew. In Latin it
signifies, How long wilt thou see it, and suffer it without uttering a word? But
the other interpretation is equally appropriate, namely, After having seemed to
take no notice of the matter for a long time, when wilt thou at length begin to
see it? The meaning, however, is substantially the same, for David complains of
God's long forbearance, declaring that while the wicked are running to every
excess, God connives at them, and delays too much to take vengeance. And
although God inculcates upon the faithful the duty of quietly and patiently
waiting till the time arrive when he shall judge it proper to help them, yet he
allows them to bewail in prayer the grief which they experience on account of
his delay. At the same time, David shows, that in so speaking he is not carried
headlong merely by the importunity of his desire, but that he is constrained to
it by the extremity of his distress. For he says that they tumultuously rush
upon him to take away his life, and he compares them to lions, and calls
his soul solitary, or alone. Some think that the expression,
only soul, means clear and precious, or well beloved; but
such do not sufficiently consider the design of David, as has been stated in the
22nd Psalm at the twenty-first
verse.
18.
I will magnify thee in the
great congregation. In this verse David
again engages to give thanks to God for all his goodness, since the faithful can
render him no other recompense than the sacrifice of praise, as we shall see in
<19B617>Psalm
116:17. Thus even whilst he was surrounded by the impetuous billows of fear and
danger, he sets himself to the exercise of giving thanks, as if he had already
obtained his desire; and by this he intended to encourage and confirm himself in
the assurance of obtaining his requests. In this we may discern a striking and
decided evidence of invincible fortitude, for though an outcast and a fugitive,
destitute of all help, and, in short, in a state of great extremity and despair
as to all his affairs, yet still he thinks of praising God's grace, and makes
vows of solemn sacrifice to him, as if, in the midst of the darkness of death,
he saw deliverance clearly shining upon him. And he speaks not only of giving
thanks in private, but of such thanksgiving as those who were delivered out of
any great perils were wont to yield in the public assembly, by the appointment
of the law. Some translate the latter clause of the verse a strong and
powerful people,
fa682 but I do not see the propriety
of it. It is a mere subtilty to argue that the Church is endued with great
strength, and therefore is called a strong people. But as David simply
means the great crowd and multitude of people who were wont to go up to the
sanctuary to hold their solemn assembly before God, I have no doubt that when he
speaks of the great congregation, and afterwards of much people,
he only repeats, according to his custom, the same thing twice, for the
Hebrew word is used in both these
senses.
Psalm
35:19-23
19. Let not those who are
my enemies wrongfully rejoice over me; neither let those who hate me without a
cause wink with the eye. 20. For they speak not
peace;
fa683 but devise deceitful words upon the
clefts of the earth. 21. They have opened their mouth against me: they
have said, Aha! aha! our eye hath seen
it.
fa684 22. O Jehovah! thou hast also
seen it: keep not silence: O Lord! be not far from me. 23. Stir up
thyself, and awake for my judgment, O my God! even for my cause, O my
Lord!
19.
Let not those who are my
enemies wrongfully rejoice over me.
Because David's enemies already exulted in the hope of seeing his overthrow
and destruction, he prays that God would not suffer them to realize a desire so
wicked. In order to render God favorable to his cause, he again protests that
they hated him without any fault or occasion on his part, and that it was their
own malice which urged them to such cruelty against him; for in order to secure
the help of God, it is necessary to come before him with the testimony of a good
conscience.
The Hebrew word
rqç,
sheker, which we have rendered wrongfully, is by some translated
deceitfully, as if David meant that his enemies lay in wait for him. But
this is to reason with too much subtilty. Besides, the repetition which
immediately follows shows that he complains of their wilful hatred, inasmuch as
of their own accord, and from deliberate design, they persecuted a man who had
given them no cause of offense, but was their friend and benefactor. The Hebrew
word
˜rq,
karats, here signifies to wink with the eyes askance in mockery,
as in
<192208>Psalm
22:8, it denotes, to wag the head, and to shoot out the
lip.
In the following verse, that he may
cherish still greater confidence in God, David again declares, that he has to do
with enemies of an irreconcilable character, and who are fully bent upon
cruelty. Of this we ought to be firmly persuaded, that the more grievously we
are oppressed, so much the more certainly ought we to expect deliverance. He
therefore says, that they speak of nothing but of tumults and slaughter. The
meaning of the latter clause is somewhat obscure, arising from the ambiguous
signification of the word
[gr,
rige. As the word from which it is derived sometimes signifies to cut,
and sometimes to rest, or to be quiet and peaceable, there are
some who translate it the meek and peaceable of the earth:others
translate it, with the tranquil and easy of the earth; meaning by this,
those who live in the midst of riches and abundance, in the enjoyment of
undisturbed repose. Both these seem to me to be forced interpretations. Others,
too, though not more correctly, expound the word in caves or secret
places, in order that, as they say, the wicked and deceitful counsels of
such persons may not come to light. But it may be very appropriately rendered,
the clefts of the earth, and by this metaphor are meant the miserable and
afflicted, who are, as it were, broken and maimed. David, therefore, declares
that as soon as his enemies see any opening, that is to say, some calamity
befall him, they instantly put forth all their efforts to accomplish his
destruction. Those who, in the time of his prosperity and power, never dared
even to utter a word against him, began now, when they saw that his influence
was feeble, to plot his ruin, just as we know that the wicked are for the most
part persons of a servile and cowardly disposition, and assume not the tone of
insolence save when an advantageous opportunity presents itself, as when the
good and simple are in adversity. To the same purpose he represents them in the
next verse, as crying out with open mouth, Aha! aha! and clapping their hands
for joy that they saw David overcome, and, as it were, laid prostrate in the
dust, a spectacle in which they took great
delight.
22.
O Jehovah! thou hast also
seen it. There is in these words an
implied contrast between the view which God is here represented as taking, and
the sight at which, as we are told in the preceding verse, the ungodly rejoiced.
The import of David's language is, You have rejoiced exceedingly at the sight of
my miseries; but God also sees and takes notice of the cruelty and malice of
those who feel a pleasure and gratification in seeing others afflicted and in
trouble. David, however, in thus speaking, stays not to reason with his enemies,
but rather addresses himself directly to God, and sets his providence as a
rampart of defense in opposition to all the assaults of those who sought to
shake his confidence, and who caused him much trouble. And certainly, if we
would fortify ourselves against the scoffing and derision of our enemies, the
best means which we can employ for this end is to overlook them, and to elevate
our thoughts to God, and in the confidence of his fatherly care over us, to
entreat him to show, in very deed, that our troubles are not unknown to him;
yea, that the more he sees the wicked eagerly watching every opportunity to
accomplish our ruin, he would the more speedily come to our aid. This David
expresses by these various forms of expression
— Keep not silence, be
not far from me, stir up thyself, awake for my
judgment. He might justly make use of
such expressions, seeing he was already fully persuaded that God regards the
poor and afflicted, and marks all the wrongs which are done to them. If,
therefore, we would frame our requests aright, a clear conviction and persuasion
of the providence of God must first shine into our hearts; nor is it necessary
only that this should precede, in point of order, all our desires; it must also
restrain and govern them.
Psalm
35:24-28
24. Judge me, O Jehovah my
God! According to thy righteousness; and let them not rejoice over me.
25. Let them not say in their heart, Aha! our
soul!
fa685 let them not say, We have swallowed him
up. 26. Let those who rejoice at my hurt be ashamed and confounded
together; let those who magnify themselves against me be clothed with shame and
dishonor. 27. But let those who favor my righteous cause shout and be
glad, and let them say continually, Jehovah be magnified, who loveth the peace
of his servant. 28. And my tongue shall declare thy righteousness and thy
praise all the day.
24.
Judge me, O Jehovah my God!
David here confirms the prayer of the preceding
verse that God would be his defender, and would maintain his righteous cause.
Having been for a time subjected to suffering as one who had been forsaken and
forgotten, he sets before himself the righteousness of God, which forbids
that he should altogether abandon the upright and the just. It is, therefore,
not simply a prayer, but a solemn appeal to God, that as he is righteous, he
would manifest his righteousness in defending his servant in a good cause. And
certainly, when we seem to be forsaken and deprived of all help, there is no
remedy which we can employ, more effectual to overcome temptation than this
consideration, that the righteousness of God, on which our deliverance depends,
can never fail. Accordingly, the Apostle Paul, in exhorting the faithful to
patience, says in
<530106>2
Thessalonians 1:6,
"It is a righteous thing
with God to recompense
tribulation
to them that trouble
you."
Now David again appeals to God in this place, and
entreats him to manifest his righteousness in restraining the insolence of his
enemies:for the more proudly they assail us, God is so much the more ready to
help us. Besides, by again introducing them as speaking, he portrays in a
graphic style the cruelty of their desires; and by this he means to show, that
if things should happen according to their wishes, they would set no limit to
their frowardness. But as the more they vaunt themselves, the more they provoke
the wrath of God against them, David with good reason uses this as an argument
to encourage his hope, and employs it for his support and confirmation in
prayer.
26.
Let those who rejoice at thy
hurt be ashamed and confounded together.
This imprecation has already been expounded; and it is only necessary to
remark, that there is peculiar force in the expression, together, or
at once. It shows that it was not only one or two, but a great multitude,
who waged war against him, and that he yielded not to the influence of fear, but
believed that as soon as God should lift up his hand, he could at one stroke
easily overthrow them all. When it is said that they seek after and rejoice
in David's hurt, this shows that they were filled with cruel hatred against
him. And when it is said, that they magnify themselves against him, this
is a token of pride. David, therefore, in order to render them more hateful in
the sight of God, represents them as filled with pride and cruelty. And as this
form of prayer was dictated by the Holy Spirit to David, there can be no doubt
that the end of all the proud shall be such as is here predicted, that they
shall turn back overwhelmed with shame and
disgrace.
27.
Let those who favor my
righteous cause rejoice and be glad.
These two expressions, which are rendered in the optative mood, might have
been translated with equal propriety in the future tense; but as this is a
matter of little consequence, I leave it undecided. David here extols the
deliverance which he asks of God, and exults in the results which should flow
from it; namely, that it would be an occasion of general rejoicing and good hope
to all the godly, while at the same time it would stir them up to celebrate the
praises of God. He attributes to all the faithful the credit of desiring, that
as an innocent man his righteous cause should be maintained. David, it is true,
was the object of almost universal hatred among the simple and unsuspecting, who
were imposed upon by false and unjust reports made concerning him; but it is
certain that there were among the people some who formed a just and impartial
estimate of things, and who were sorely grieved that a holy man, and one too
whose benevolence was well known, should have been so unjustly and so wrongfully
oppressed. And surely the common feelings of humanity require, that when we see
men unjustly oppressed and afflicted, if we are not able to help them, we should
at least pity them. When David uses the language, Jehovah be magnified,
his design seems to be tacitly to set this in opposition to the pride of the
wicked, of which he made mention above. As they presume in the pride, of their
hearts, and by their insolent and overbearing conduct, to obscure, as far as in
them lies, the divine glory, so may the faithful, on the other hand, with good
reason present the prayer that God would shine forth in the majesty of his
character, and demonstrate in very deed that he exercises a special care over
all his servants, and takes a peculiar pleasure in their peace. Finally, the
Psalmist again declares, in the conclusion of the psalm, his resolution to
celebrate in appropriate praises the righteousness of God, by which he had been
preserved and delivered.
Footnotes
fta1
Milton
fta2
Sir David K.
Sandford
fta3
From the variety of interpretations of the same passages which we meet with in
Calvin's Commentary, and of which we have still more numerous specimens in
Poole's Synopsis Criticorum, it is by no means to be supposed that the meaning
of the language of Scripture is vague, uncertain, and unsettled. Had the
professed interpreters of Scripture always performed their task with judgment,
as well as learning and talent, and been guided by the rules of sound
hermeneutics, the reader would not have been bewildered with so many different
and contradictory interpretations. Still, however, there are words and
sentences, the exact import of which is more or less doubtful and uncertain, so
that it is difficult to determine between different senses which have been put
upon them. The reasons of this are so well stated by Cresswell, in his preface
to The Book of Psalms with Notes, (pp. 14, 15, 16,) and the passage has so
direct a bearing on a number of the various interpretations, which Calvin deals
with in this Commentary, that we shall quote it entire though it is long. "The
Hebrew is not only a dead language, but the oldest of all dead languages; it is,
moreover, the language of a people that lived under institutions and in a
climate very different from those of our own country, so that the idioms with
which it abounds cannot but be strange to our habits of thinking and our modes
of speech; nor have we any book but the Bible itself to consult for an
illustration of these phraseological peculiarities. The paucity of the words
also contained in that ancient tongue is such, that the same Hebrew term very
often bears a great variety of significations, the connection of which with each
other cannot always be satisfactorily ascertained:and, again, there are words,
each of which is found but once in the whole volume of Scripture, so that their
meanings can only be conjectured, either from their affinity to other words, or
from the purport of the passage wherein they occur. "The following are amongst
the many grammatical Hebraisms which we meet with in The Book of Psalms. The
future and past tenses are put almost indiscriminately, the one for the other,
and the former of them is used occasionally to designate not that which will
happen, but that which is accustomed to happen. The infinitive is put for every
other mood, and also for nouns even in the accusative case. The future tense is
sometimes expressed by a verb in the imperative mood. Two substantives are put
instead of a substantive and an adjective; a substantive is frequently used
adverbially; and the same substantive repeated denotes multitude When the
negative particle occurs in the first member of a sentence, it is sometimes to
be understood, and must be supplied, in the following members. Hebrew sentences
are also in other respects very often elliptical, broken, and imperfect; and in
the same sentence there is in many instances a change of person in the speaker,
without any express intimation of it. "From the peculiarities above mentioned,
and especially from the different ways in which an ellipse may be supplied, it
is plain that the text of Scripture must needs admit of a considerable latitude
of interpretation; so that although none of its important doctrines whether they
relate to faith or morals, are thereby left doubtful, yet does it contain
passages the exact meanings of which are more or less uncertain. The candid and
pious reader, however, will with Augustine gladly acknowledge that all which he
fully comprehends in the sacred volume is most excellent; whilst he looks with
feelings of veneration upon that smaller portion of it which he less perfectly
understands, but which the diligence and erudition of future times may, through
divine aid, be enabled to
elucidate."
fta4
Parallelism is the distinguishing characteristic of Hebrew poetry, and an
attention to it, it must be admitted, affords much assistance in elucidating
obscure, and explaining difficult passages. Some modern translations of The
Psalms, as French and Skinner's, have the lines so arranged as to make the
parallelisms apparent to the eye; which enables the reader to discover at a
glance niceties both of structure and of meaning, which, in the ordinary mode of
printing, might pass unnoticed after frequent and even close perusal. For a full
investigation of this subject, the reader is referred to Dr Lowth's elegant
Lectures on Sacred Poetry, and his Preliminary Dissertation prefixed to his
translation of the prophet Isaiah, works which created a new era in sacred
literature, by the light which they cast on the character of Hebrew poetry, with
respect to which the learned world were previously unsettled and
perplexed, from the obscurity which rested on the subject. Bishop Jebb, in his
"Sacred Literature," has also investigated the parallelism of Hebrew poetry with
much ability, and successfully controverted some of Bishop Lowth's
positions.
fta5
That Calvin held this doctrine is evident from his Commentary on Acts 13:33,
where, after stating that the words of the second Psalm, above quoted, refer to
the unequivocal evidence by which the Father proved that Christ was his Son in
raising him from the dead, he observes "This, however, is no objection to the
doctrine that Christ, the personal Word, was begotten by the eternal Father
before time; but that generation is an inscrutable mystery. With respect to
those who argue from this passage in support of that doctrine, he says, "I know
that Augustine, and the greatest number of commentators, are better pleased with
the subtile speculation that 'to-day ' denotes a continued or an eternal act.
But when the Spirit of God himself is his own interpreter, and explains by the
mouth of Paul what was spoken by David, we are not warranted to invent and put
upon the words any other meaning.
"
fta6
P.
118
fta7
Pp.
103-105
fta8
P.
543
fta9
See Biographica Dramatica; Lowndes' Biographer's Manual of English Literature;
and Warton's History of English Poetry, vol. in. pp.
409-414.
fta10
Edward de Vere, 17th Earl of Oxford, was highly distinguished for his wlt,
valor, and Patriotism. In two several tournaments he was honored by receiving
the prize from the hand of his mistress, Queen Elizabeth, baring been led armed,
by two ladies, into the Royal Presence Chamber. Walpole notes that he was an
admired poet, and reckoned the best waiter of comedy in his time. He died at a
very advanced age, June 24, 1604. It is extremely probable that Arthur Golding,
the old Translator, was related, perhaps not distantly, to this nobleman. It
appeals from Dugdale, and other authorities, that John, 16th Earl of Oxford, his
father, married Margaret, daughter of John Golding, and sister of Sir Edward
Golding, for his second wife, by whom he had Earl Edward, after whom it is
likely he was named, and a
daughter.
fta11
"Jusqu'a ce que nous sentions quelque allegement qui nous appaise et contente."
–Fr.
fta12
"Et nous acquiert tranquillite de conscience devant luy."— Fr. "And
acquires for us tranquillity of conscience before
him."
fta13
"Cependant surveindrent en la ville seditions les unes sur les autres." —
Fr.
fta14
C'est, ascavoir de ne vouloir point apparoistre ou suyvre les grandes
assemblees."—Fr "That is, not wishing to appear before, or wait upon, the
great
assemblies."
fta15
"Qu'en considerant tout le discours de la vie de David. " —
Fr.
fta16
"Que se tenir quois en vivant paisiblement et honnestement." —
Fr.
fta17
"Et je n'enten pas seulement les frians qui cherchent quelque lippee pour farcir
leur ventre." —
Fr.
fta18
"Mais encore ce n'estoit pas assez d'estre traitte ainsi inhumainement par mes
voisins, si non qu'en un pays lointain vers la mer glacee le temps se troublast
aussi je ne scay comment par la phrenesie d'aucuns, pour puis apres faire lever
contre moy comme un nuee de gens qui sont trop de loisir et n'ont que faire
s'ils ne s'escarmouschent a empescher ceux qui travaillent a
edification."—Fr.
fta19
In the Septuangint, the reading is
makariov
ajnhr, blessed is the man. Both Calvin and our
English translators have adopted this rendering. But the Hebrew word
yrça,
rendered blessed, is in the plural number, and
çyah,
ha-ish, the man, in the singular. Accordingly, the words have been considered as
an exclamation, and may be literally rendered, O, the blessedness of the man! A
beautiful and emphatic form of
expression.
fta20
C'est a dire, un accroissement de mal comme par degrez. —
Fr.
fta21
Il est bien conjoint avec le verbe signifiant une profession de vivre et un
train tout accoustume. —
Fr.
fta22
Et s'adonner de soy-mesme a impiete. —
Fr.
fta23
"And it bringeth forth all its produce to maturity." — (Street's New
Literal Version of the
Psalms.)
fta24
Ne mesme y pensait. —
Fr.
fta25
A rhetoric figure, in which persons or things are feigned or supposed to speak;
a
personification.
fta26
The word in our Hebrew Bibles is Elohai; but is considerable number of MSS, it
is Jehovah. "The Jews in latter ages had a superstitious dread of pronouncing
the word Jehovah, and frequently inserted Adonai and Elohim instead of it in
their manuscripts of the Scriptures. But the more ancient MSS. Have Jehovah
frequently where the more modern have Adonai and Elohim. Sixty MSS, of Dr.
Kennicott's collation and twenty-five of De Rossi's have Jehovah here." —
Street,
2:4.
fta27
Il avoit a Leur avis. —
Fr.
fta28
Encore qu'il ne dise un seul, si est ce qu'en effect il parle assez pour se
faire entendre. — Fr.
fta29
Ou, car son; or, for his. — Fr.
Marg.
fta30
The word
rb,
Bar, which here signifies son, is also sometimes used to denote pure, as it is
in
<181104>Job
11:4, Psalm 24:4 and 73:1. In this former sense it is a Chaldee word, in the
latter it is a Hebrew one. This rendering, of which Calvin disapproves, is
substantially that of the Septuagint, which reads,
draxasqe
paideiav, literally, lay hold upon instruction. But
as the Arabic version of the Psalms, which generally follows the Septuagint, has
used here (and in many other places, where the Septuangint has
paideiav)
a word which signifies not only instruction, but good morals, virtue, Street
thinks that the authors of the Septuangint, by
paideiav,
meant good morals, or virtue in general, and that they understand
rb,
Bar, as a general expression for the same thing. The Chaldee, Vulgate, and
Ethiopic version, also render
rb,
Bar, by a word meaning doctrine or discipline. "This is a remarkable case," says
Dr. Adam Clark, "and especially that in so pure a piece of Hebrew as this poem
is, a Chaldee word should have been found,
rb,
Bar, instead of
ˆb,
Ben, which adds nothing to the strength of the expression, or the elegance of
the poetry. I know that
rb,
Bar, is also pure Hebrew as well as Chaldee; but it is taken in the former
language in the sense of purifying, the versions probably understood it so here.
Embrace that which is pure, namely, the doctrine of
God.
fta31
Pour rendre raison du precedent ascavoir pour
quoy c'est qu'ila periront.. —
Fr.
fta32
Pour n'estre point accablez de la frayeur
d'ire de Dieu. —
Fr.
fta33
Qui de soy est espouvantable aux hommes
—
Fr.
fta34
The word
yrça,
ashre, which occurs in the beginning of the psalm, is also used here; and
therefore, the word may be rendered, O the blessednesses of all those who put
their trust in
him.
fta35
The inscription or title of the psalm refers it to the conspiracy of Absalom,
and that the psalm refers to this is evident from the whole tenor of it. "But
these titles are destitute of authority, as the careful reader of the Psalms
will soon remark; they are to be regarded merely as marginal glosses of the
Jews, but poor guides to the interpretation of Scripture." — Fry's
Translation and Exposition of the
Psalms.
fta37
Et s'en monstreroit le protecteur. —
Fr.
fta38
En nous poursuyvant. —
Fr.
fta39
Il a ose venir familierement faire sa complainte a Dieu et comme se discharger a
lui. —
Fr.
fta40
L'audace de ses ennemis et risee accompagnee de sacrilege. — Fr
.
fta41
En l'offensant. —
Fr.
fta42
De la procede l'asseurance dont il fait mention puis apres qu'il marchera
hardiment la teste levee. — Fr. From this proceeded the confidence of
which he makes mention a little after, that he will boldly walk with unabashed
brow.
fta43
Par les mocqueries malheureuses des meschans. — Fr. By the pitiful
scornings of the
wicked.
fta44
D'esloigner de Dieu nos gemissemens, et les luy cacher .— Fr. To
withhold our groanings from God, and to conceal them from
him,
fta45
Selon l'usage des Hebrieux, ces mots qui sont en un temps passe, Je suis couche
et endormi se prenent ancunesfois pour un temps a-venir, Je me coucheray et
dormiray. —
Fr.
fta46
A faire les mesmes prieres qu'au commencement. —
Fr.
fta47
Et puis a cause qu'il a obtenu cela, c'est a dire, qu'il est demeure, en
sauvete, it luy en rend graces; tesmoignant par cela qu'il tient de Dieu sa
deliverance et la recognoist de luy. — Fr. And then having obtained this,
that is to say, having been preserved in safety, he gives thanks to God,
testifying by this, that he owed his deliverance to him, and recognized it as
coming from
him.
fta48
"Ascavoir, Jusques a quand, a vers. 3." —
Fr.
fta49
"Et ils disent que c'estoit le commencement d'une chanson commune au chant de
laquelle ce psaume a este compose." —
Fr.
fta50
"Le principal chantre, ou maitre de la musique qui avoit charge de
mettre les psaumes en chants et accords." — Fr. The chief singer or
leader of the music who had the charge of setting the psalms to tunes and
harmonies.
fta51
"Mon protecteur, celuy qui maintient mon droit." — Fr. My
protector, he who maintains my
right.
fta52
"Contre les effrois et dangers qui se presentoyent." — Fr. Against
the terrors and dangers which presented
themselves.
fta53
"Le mot Hebrieu ne signifie pas simplement Homme, mais homme viril at robuste;
en quoy il semble taxer, en passant, leur arrogance." — Fr. The
Hebrew word signifies not simply man, but a strong and robust man; and by
this word he seems, in passing, to rebuke their
arrogance.
fta54
"D'une malice si evidente qu'on la pourroit toucher au doigt." —
Fr. With a malice so evident that one could touch it with the
finger.
fta55
"Et estans retirez a part pour sonder leurs consciences." — Fr. And
being retired by themselves to probe or examine their
consciences.
fta56
"Comme s'ils eussent este gens de bien, adonnez a son service et qu'il n'y eust
eu zele qu'en eux." — Fr. As if they had been his genuine people
devoted to his service, and that there was no zeal but among
them.
fta57
"Entre les sacrifices de justice et toutes les ceremonies, quand elles sont
destituees de la verite interieure et destournees de leur droit usage et par
consequent falsifiees." — Fr. Between the sacrifices of
righteousness, and all ceremonies, when they are unaccompanied with sincerity of
heart, and perverted from their proper use, and are consequently
spurious.
fta58
The reader will observe, that Calvin does not use the word any, a
supplement which is to be found in our English version. The question is
certainly more emphatic without this word. "The word any," says Dr Adam
Clarke, "is not in the text, nor any thing equivalent to it; and yet not a few
have quoted it, and preached upon the text, placing the principal
emphasis upon this illegitimate
word."
fta59
"or ceste comparaison du desir de David avec ceux des mondains amplifie bien la
substance de ceste doctrine." —
Fr.
fta60
"Se contentent d'en jouir sans panser plus haut." —
Fr.
fta61
"Se repose totalement en Dieu et y prendre contentement." —
Fr.
fta62
The allusion is to the joy of the harvest and
vintage.
fta63
"Or combien que les expositeurs varient en ce mot que nous avons traduit, Au
temps:pource qu'aucuns traduisent, Tu m'as donne liesse au coeur depuis le temps
que, etc., comme s'il disoit, Je suis joyeux quand je voy prosperer mes ennemis
en ce monde." —
Fr.
fta64
"Seul ou a part." —
Fr.
fta65
"Qu'il appelle Heritages." —
Fr.
fta66
"Mais pource que je n'approuve point ce que devinent plusieurs parlans comme par
enigmes sur ces inscriptions des Pseaumes. —
Fr.
fta67
"Il a aussi represente et exprime ses gemissemens qui estoyent en grand nombre
et de beaucoup de sortes." —
Fr.
fta68
"Ce qu'il vent requerir a Dieu."
—Fr.
fta69
Bishop Horne beautifully renders the word, "dove-like mournings," and Bishop
Horsley, "sighing." "The word," says Hammond, "regularly signifies sighing
or cry, not a loud, sonorous voice, but such as complaints are
made
in."
fta70
"Il semble que puis apres, pour mieux specifier, it en met deux sortes appelant
les unes Complaintes obscures, et les autres Cri." —
Fr.
fta71
"Quand la douleur l'empesche de parler distinctement et faire entendre sa voix."
—
Fr.
fta72
"Ou le mauvais." — Fr. Marg. "Or the
wicked."
fta73
The words in the original are
µymd
çya, ish damim, literally, the man
of bloods. The plural number is used, probably to teach us, that the
man who thirsts for human blood is rarely satisfied with one
victim.
fta74
"Comme il est protecteur et defenseur des siens." —
Fr.
fta75
"Pour la multitude."—Fr. "For the
multitude."
fta76
"Par ainsi il confesse n'avoir ne dexterite ne force, ne mesme aucun moyen pour
eviter les embusches des ennemis." — Fr. "Thus he confesses that he has
neither skill nor power, nor any means whatever, by which to avoid the snares of
his
enemies."
fta77
"Gouffres qui devorent tout." — Fr. "Gulfs which devour
all."
fta78
"C'est a dire, ne vienent a bout de leurs enterprises." —
Fr.
fta79
In the older Latin editions, and in the French edition, the verbs for rejoice
and delight are rendered, on the margin, in the future tense,
thus:— "And all who trust in thee shall rejoice; yea, they shall rejoice
for ever; and cover thou them, and those that love thy name shall delight in
thee."
fta80
"Signifie, souhaitter bien et prosperite a quelquun et prier pour luy." —
Fr.
fta81
Bishop Horsley thinks
hnxk,
katsinah, as with a shield, should be construed with
nwxr
ratson, favor or good will, and translates the words thus:"Like a
shield of good will, thou wilt stand guard around him." The reading of the
Septuagint is the same: Wv oJplw
eujdokiav, as with a shield of good will.
The word
hnx
tsinah, means that kind of shield, from the middle of which there arose a
large boss, surmounted by a dagger and which was highly useful both as a
defensive and an offensive weapon in ancient
warfare.
fta82
Sheminith, or the eighth, "is thought to be the shrillest or
loftiest note, as Alomoth is the lowest; of which see
<131520>1
Chronicles 15:20, 21. But all this is only conjecture; and the Jews themselves
have no certain knowledge of their ancient music, and of the signification of
the terms belonging to it." — Poole's
Annotations.
fta83
"En faisant vengence des forfaits des hommes." —
Fr.
fta84
Or greatly terrified. This is a very correct rendering of the original words
dam
hlhbn; nibhalah meod:and they are very like
those uttered by the Savior in his agony, "My soul is exceeding sorrowful, even
unto
death."
fta85
"Mais toy, Seigneur, jusques a quand m'affligeras-tu?" — Fr. "But thou, O
Lord, how long wilt thou afflict
me?"
fta86
"Des maux et chastiemens." —
Fr.
fta87
"Car il n'est fait nulle mention de toy en la mort:qui est-ce qui to louera au
sepulcher?" — Fr. "For there is no mention made of thee in death; and who
shall praise thee in the
grave?"
fta88
"Ascavoir que sentant la main de Dieu contraire, veu qu'il l'advertissoit de sa
vengence contre le peche." —
Fr.
fta89
"Je baigne ma couche. — Fr. "I soak my couch." "Ou, je fay
nager." — Fr. marg. "or, I make to
swim."
fta90
"II ne taut pas penser toutesfois que David amplifie sa tristesse a la facon
des Poetes." —
Fr.
fta91
"Des frayeurs de la morte." — Fr. "With the terrors of
death."
fta92
"A receu." — Fr. "Hath received." This is the rendering which is adopted
in all the ancient versions, although the Hebrew verb is in the future
tense.
fta93
"En un moment." — Fr. "In a
moment."
fta94
"Avant que pouvoir se relever et venir a sentir telle asseurance qu'il
monstre yci." —
Fr.
fta95
"The voice of my weeping, my loud weeping." says Hengstenberg, and
then he adds, quoting from Roberts' Orient. Illustr. of the Sacred Scrip.,
"Silent grief is not much known in the East. Hence, when the people speak of
lamentation, they say, Have I not heard the voice of his
mourning?"
fta96
"Qu'il n'y a rien en tout le monde qui se dresse contre nous." —
Fr.
fta97
"Delectation, ou
Resjouissance."—Fr.
fta98
"Ascavoir que c'a este une espece de melodie ou certain chant, comme nous
scavons que selon la diversite des nations et langues, il y a diverses mesures
de vers."—Fr. "Namely, that it was a kind of tune or song, as we
know, that, according to the diversity of nations and languages, there are
different measures of verse."
fta99
"Mais pource que les Hebrieux prenent souvent
un temps pour
l'autre."—Fr.
fta100
"Et foulle ma vie en terre."—Fr. "And let him trample my life on
the
ground."
fta101
"Et qu'il mette."—Fr. "And
lay."
fta102
"Apres luy avoir fait le serment."—Fr. "After having sworn the oath of
allegiance to
him."
fta103
"Pource que le nom et titre royal luy devoit estre une sauvegarde et le
tenir en seurete."—Fr. "Because the royal name and title ought to
be to him a safeguard, and secure the safety of his
person."
fta104
In the clause, "And have NOT delivered him that persecuted me without cause,"
the word not is a supplement, there being nothing for it in the Hebrew
text.
fta105
Street's rendering is, "And exert in my favour the judgment thou hast
ordained."
fta106
"Lequel nous avons traduit
Veille."—Fr.
fta107
"Tout le peuple qui s'estoit ainsi vilenement destourne de
toy."—Fr.
fta108
"Mais ce sera un enseignement commun a plusieurs peuples, pour recognoistre ton
juste jugement, tellement qu'ils dresseront les yeux vers ton siege
judicial."—Fr.
fta109
Fry reads, "And over it resume thy high tribunal." He supposes that the word
hyl[,
aleha, which Calvin has rendered on account of this, may be
understood, "concerning this affair," and gives the following paraphrase:"Resume
thy judgment-seat, in order to investigate the cause in which I have been
prejudged by the
adversary."
fta110
"Les autres estiment plustost que ce soit une vehemente imprecation, et exposent
ce mot Hebrieu un peu autrement. Car en lieu que nous le traduisons Cesser et
Prendre fin, ils le prenent pour Faire cesser, qui est Destruire et
Consumer."—Fr.
fta111
"I1 se peut faire aussi qu'il parle ainsi pour oster toutes ces belles
apparances bien fardees dont ils se servoyent pour abuser les hommes et ce leur
estoit
assez."—Fr.
fta0112
"Il a ja tendu son arc, et l'a dresse ascavoir pour tirer."—Fr.
"He hath already bent his bow and made it ready, namely, to
shoot." The words in italics are supplementary, there being nothing for them
in the Hebrew text. Calvin, in his French version, has uniformly distinguished
supplementary words by printing them in smaller
characters.
fta0113
According to Calvin, the pronoun refers to bow. Fry renders it differently.
"It is," says he, "literally for himself—for his use. We
must keep in view the metaphor of the warrior preparing for
action."
fta0114
"Pour les bailler aux persecuteurs."—Fr. "To give them to the
persecutors."
fta0115
"Car il a conceu meschancete, ou moleste, mais il enfantera
mensonge."—Fr. "For he hath conceived wickedness, or mischief,
but he shall bring forth
falsehoods."
fta0116
This is the view adopted by Hengstenberg in his excellent Commentary on The
Psalms. "The apparently coarse manner of expression in our text," says he,
"representing God as a warrior equipped with sword and bow, has besides for its
foundation the coarseness of sinners, and the weakness of faith on the part of
believers, which does not direct itself against the visible danger with pure
thoughts of God's controllable agency, but seeks to clothe those thoughts with
flesh and blood, and regards the judge as standing over against the sinner, man
against man, sword against
sword."
fta0117
"Ne cesse de me poursuyvre."—Fr. "Do not cease from pursuing
me."
fta0118
"Duquel il avoit este delivre par
luy."—Fr.
fta0119
"Au reste, quand il est yci parle de se retourner, ce n'est pas pour
signifier ce que nous appelons repentance et amendement en son ennemi, mais tant
seulement une volonte et deliberation diverse; comme si'il dit qu'il estoit en
la puissance de l'ennemi de parfaire tout ce qui luy venoit en la fantasie."
–Fr.
fta0120
Those who adopt this rendering, support it from the reading of the Septuagint,
Vulgate, and Syriac versions, although the Chaldee version reads persecuting;
and they generally view the 12th and 13th verses as a representation of God
under the image of a warrior ready to shoot his flaming, burning, fiery arrows,
against the object to which he is opposed." I read
µyqlxw
urentes, inflammatos; the arrows of the Almighty,
(<053224>Deuteronomy
32:24.) Languishments of famine, the burnings of the carbuncle, and the bitter
pestilence. Schultens,
(<202623>Proverbs
26:23.) Lightnings are also called God's arrows,
(<191815>Psalm
18:15,) and represented as the artillery of heaven."—Dr
Kennicott's note on this place in his Select Passages of the Old Testament.
Hengstenberg takes the same view. His rendering is, He [that is, God]
makes his arrows burning.
"qlr,
to burn. In sieges it is customary to wrap round the arrows burning matter,
and to shoot them after being
kindled."
fta0121
"La ou nous avons mis Persecuteurs aucuns le rapportans aux fleches,
traduissent Ardentes; pource que le mot Hebrieu emporte aussl ceste
signification."—Fr.
fta0122
"Disant que tout cela est alle en fumee."—Fr. "Saying that the whole
ended in
smoke."
fta0123
"Pource que Dieu l'a frustre de son attente et renverse toutes ces meschantes
entreprises."—Fr.
fta0124
"Pour toutes violences et
outrages."—Fr.
fta0125
"C'est a dire, se decoyvent et ne viendront a bout de ce qu'ils couvent en leurs
coeurs."—Fr.
fta0126
Fry, from a comparison of the Hebrew word which Calvin renders hollowed it
out, with the cognate Arabic words supposes that it means "dug it over, so
as to cover and hide it." The imagery is taken from the common method of
catching lions and other wild beasts in the east, by digging pits on the spots
which they were observed to frequent, and covering them slightly over with reeds
or small branches of trees. Luther's translation of this clause is precisely the
same with that of Calvin; and, in his Commentary on the place, he well explains
the force of the expressions of the Psalmist. "See," says he, "how admirably he
expresses the hot burning fury of the ungodly, not simply declaring, he has
dug a pit, but adding to this, and hollowed it out. So active and
diligent are they to have the pit dug and the hole prepared. They try every
thing, they explore every thing, and not satisfied that they have dug a pit,
they clear it out and make it deep, as deep as they possibly can, that they may
destroy and subvert the
innocent."
fta0127
"Tomboyent au mal qu'ils avoyent brasse."—Fr. "Fall into the
destruction which they had
contrived."
fta112
This first word is the incommunicable name of God; the next word,
wnynda,
Adonenu, our Lord, is derived from the root
ˆd,
dan, which signifies to rule, to judge, to
support.
fta113
"Pourceque tu as mis." — Fr. "Because thou hast set." "Ou, qui as
mis, ou que de mettre." — Fr. Marg. "Or, who hast set, or
even to
set."
fta114
"Puisque langue ne bouche ne la scauroit exprimer." — Fr. "Because
neither tongue nor mouth can express
it."
fta115
"A louer les graces de Dieu" — Fr. "In praising the grace of
God."
fta116
"Mais vaudra autant cornroe Que, dont on use pour declarer ce qui a preced.
"—
Fr.
fta117
The doctrine proposed to be illustrated in this psalm is the excellence of God's
name, or his power, goodness, and other perfections, as manifested in his
providence and government of the world; and this the Psalmist states in the
first verse. He then proceeds to establish and illustrate this doctrine:1. From
the case of infants; 2. From the starry heavens; and, 3. From God's being
mindful of man, and visiting him, notwithstanding his unworthiness, sinfulness,
and
misery.
fta118
"Qui voudroyent que son nom fust totalement aboli de la memoire des hommes." -
Fr. "Who would wish that his name were totally extinguished from the
memory of
men."
fta119
"Que Dieu, pour magnifier et exalter sa providence, n'a pas besoin de la
rhetorique et eloquence de grans orateurs." - Fr. "That God, in order to
magnify and exalt his providence, has no need of the rhetoric and eloquence of
great
orators."
fta120
"Et desconfire toute l'armee des meschans contempteurs de Dieu, et gens adonnez
a impiete." —
Fr.
fta121
"Comme les poetes ont dit anciennement des geans." —
Fr.
fta122
"Cyclopes." - Latin version. "Ces monstres." - French
version.
fta123
"Et crainte de Dieu. —
Fr.
fta124
"Leur orgueil intolerable." —
Fr.
fta125
"Comme si le prophete fust dit que Dieu se sert des bouches des petis enfans,
comme d'une puissante armee et bien duite a la guerre et qu'elles luy suffisent
pour destruire et exterminer les meschans." — Fr. "As if the prophet had
said, God makes use of the mouths of little children as of a powerful and
well-fitted army, and these suffice him to destroy and exterminate the
wicked."
fta126
"Lesquels par leurs mesdisances et detractions plenes de sacrilege ne cessent de
heurter et choquer impetueusement encontre tout ce en quoy la providence de Dieu
se manifeste journellement." —
Fr.
fta127
"De douceur et benignite." —
Fr.
fta128
"Alors je pense, Qu'est-ce de l'homme?" — Fr. "Then I think,
what is
man?"
fta129
"Ou, as sourchance de luy?" — Fr. marg. "Or, art
mindful of
him?"
fta130
The other phrase by which man is described,
µda
ˆb, ben Adam, is literally the son
of Adam, — man, the son of Adam, and who, like him, is formed of the
dust of the ground, as the name Adam implies, man, the son of apostate
and fallen Adam, and who is depraved and guilty like him. As before, men are
called Enosh for their doleful estate by sin, so are they called Adam
and sons of Adam, that is, earthly, to put them in mind of
their original and end, who were made of Adamah, the earth, even of the
dust, and to dust shall return again,
<010207>Genesis
2:7; 3:19." — Ainsworth. Some are of opinion that this expression,
ben Adam, means man in his most exalted state, and that it is contrasted
with the former,
çwna,
enosh, which represents man in a frail, weak, and miserable condition. Dr
Rye Smith renders the words thus:
"What is man, that
thou art mindful of
him?
Even the
[noblest] son of man, that thou visitest him?"
And adds, in a foot note, "Our language has no single
terms to mark the distinction so beautifully expressed by
çwna,
frail, miserable man,
broto<v and
µda,
man at his best estate,
anqrwpov.
I have endeavored to approach the idea by the insertion of an epithet."
— Scripture Testimony to the Messiah, volume a. p. 217. Bishop Patrick
observes, that "Ben Adam and bene ish, the son of man and the
sons of men, are phrases which belong in the Scripture language to princes,
and sometimes the greatest of princes;" and he explains the phrase, the son
of man, as here meaning:"the greatest of men;" "the greatest prince in the
world." — Preface to his Paraphrase on the Book of
Psalms.
fta131
"Veu qu'il avoit assez au ciel envers qui se monstrer liberal." —
Fr.
fta132
"Ou, Et tu l'as." — Fr. marg. "Or, And thou
hast."
fta133
"Ou, les anges." — Fr. marg. "Or, the
angels."
fta134
"Qu'il n'entende par la premier." —
Fr.
fta135
Certainly the fact that Paul uses the word angels instead of God,
does not prove the inaccuracy of Calvin's rendering. As the Septuagint
version was in general use among the Jews in the time of Paul, he very naturally
quotes from it just as we do from our English version. And this was sufficient
for his purpose. His object was, to answer an objection which the Jews brought
against the Christian dispensation, as being inferior to the Mosaic, inasmuch as
angels were mediators of the latter, while the mediator or head of the former
was in their estimation but a man. This objection he answers from their own
Scriptures, and quotes this psalm to show, that Christ, in his human nature, was
little inferior to the angels, and that he is exalted far above them in respect
of the glory and dominion with which he is crowned. If the apostle had quoted
from the Hebrew Scriptures, and used
µyhla,
Elohim, God, meaning the Most High, his argument in support of the
dignity of Christ in human nature would have been still stronger. - See
Stuart's Commentary on the Hebrews, vol. 2:pp.
68-71.
fta136
"Lorsque la nature de l'humain n'estoit point encore corrompue." —
Fr. "When the nature of man was not yet
corrupted."
fta137
"Tu l'as fait un peu moindre; puis Tu l'as couronne d'honneur, il approprie
ceste diminution a la mort de Christ, et la gloire et bonneur a la
resurrection." —
Fr.
fta138
"Que ce qui est yci dit par David." —
Fr.
fta139
"Car il faut suppleer en ceste argument la proposition que les Dialecticiens
appellent." —
Fr.
fta140
"Comme on a accoustum de parler quand la chose est obscure." —
Fr.
fta141
Or, leap for joy. This is the precise meaning of the Hebrew word
hxl[a
The Septuagint render it
ajgallia>somai,
which means the same
thing.
fta142
"Et sont ruinez devant ta face." — Fr. "And are overthrown before
thy
face."
fta143
"Doit servir pour nous asseurer et faire esperer qu'il nous sera propice et
debonnaire, l'advenir." —
Fr.
fta144
"De la faveur qu'il a receu, de Dieu." —
Fr.
fta145
"Processions." —
Fr.
fta146
"Afin que leurs belles prouesses veissent en cognaissance." —
Fr.
fta147
"Qu'ils sont entre Dieu et eux." —
Fr.
fta148
"Afin de deseouvrir son coeur a Dieu plus alaigrement." —
Fr.
fta149
"Mais pource que Dieu a battacile pour luy. —
Fr.
fta150
The idea implied in the verb
lçk,
cashal, is that of stumbling, and it is here employed in a
military sense. In Psalm 27:2, where it is said of David's enemies, "they
stumbled and fell;" this is the verb used for stumbled. The idea there is
not properly that of falling, but of being wounded and weakened by the
stumbling-blocks in the way, previous to falling. The word
lçk,
cashal, has been viewed as having the same meaning in the passage before us.
"It refers," says Hammond, "to those that either faint in a march or are wounded
in a battle, or especially that in flight meet with galling traps in their way,
and so are galled and lamed, rendered unable to go forward, and so fall, and
become liable to all the ill chances of pursuits, and as here are overtaken and
perish in the
fall."
fta151
"C'est la face de Dieu qui les poursuit." — Fr. "It is the face of
God which pursues
them."
fta152
"Ou pour juger justement." — Fr. marg. "Or to judge
righteously."
fta153
"J'ay mieux aime traduire, Tu t'es assis juste juge; que, O juste juge tu t'es
assis." —
Fr.
fta154
"Demolished. The Hebrew word expresses the tearing up of the foundations
of the buildings."
—Horsley.
fta155
"Que s'il avait les pieds et mains liees." — Fr. "Than if he were
bound hand and
foot."
fta156
"Dieu s'est montre bien a propos pour secourir les gens. —
Fr.
fta157
"De quelque coste que nous-nous seachions tourner." —
Fr.
fta158
"Exposez a l'appetit et cruaute des meschans, sans que Dieu fkee semblant d'en
rien veoir ne scavoir." — Fr. "Exposed to the desire and cruelty of
the wicked, while God seems neither to see nor to know any thing about
it"
fta159
"Notons aussi que Dieu est dit estre prest en temps opportun quand il subvient
aux fideles lors qu'ils sour, affligez." —
Fr.
fta160
In critical times,
twt[l,
leitoth ; in [the season of] distress,
hrxb,
bat-sarah.
,hrxb
is the substantive
hrx
under its own preposition
b,
and is not so well rendered as a genitive following
twt[,."
—
Horsley
fta161
"Et de mettre Eux, devant le mot auquel il se rapporte." —
Fr.
fta162
"Car ce n'est pas qu'il face comme les hommes qui auront en estime et reverence
apres la mort la memoire de leurs amis quand ils ne leur ont peu sauver la vie.
— Fr. "For he does not act like men, who hold in estimation and
reverence after death the memory of their friends, when they can no longer
preserve their
life."
fta163
"In the 12th verse," says Horsley, "the Psalmist having mentioned it as a part
of the divine character, that God forgetteth not the cry of the helpless,
naturally thinks upon his own helpless state, and in the 13th and 14th verses
cries for deliverance. The promise of the overthrow of the faction, which were
the principal instruments of his affliction, recurring to his thoughts, he
breaks out again in the 15th verse in strains of exultation." The transition
from the language of triumph, in the preceding part of the psalm, to the
language of prayer and complaint in the 13th verse, and the mixture of triumph
and complaint in the sequel of the psalm, are very remarkable. This was the
natural effect of the Psalmist's present distressed condition. The pressure of
his affliction excited him, on the one hand, to utter the language of dejection;
while his confident expectation of deliverance prompted him, on the other hand,
to utter the language of
triumph.
fta164
"Or il faut noter que quand il ya humblement au recours a la misericorde de
Dieu, c'est signe qu'il portoit doucement et patienment, la croix que Dieu luy
avoir comme raise sur les espaules." — Fr. "But it ought to be
observed, that, while he humbly betakes himself to the mercy of God, it is a
sign that he bore, submissively and patiently, the cross which God had, as it
were, laid upon his
shoulders."
fta165
"Le mot Hebreu, pour lequel nous avons traduit Enfer signifie aussi
Sepulchre; mais j'ay mieux aime retenir ceste signification. — Fr.
"The Hebrew word which we have translated hell also signifies the
grave; but I have preferred to retain the former meaning of the
word."
fta166
"L'homme mortel." — Fr. "Mortal
man."
fta167
"Toute la fierte et arrogance." — Fr. "All the pride and
arrogance."
fta168
"Leur rage et insolence." — Fr. "Their rage and
insolence."
fta169
"Solo nutu." - Lat. "Enfaisant signe seulement du bout du doigt."
—
Fr.
fta170
The Chaldee version reads fear, but the Syriac, Ethiopic, and Vulgate
versions follow the Septuagint. The Arabic employs a word of nearly the same
import, signifying a doctor or teacher of the law. In it is , "O Lord set
a schoolmaster over them." Auguatine and Jerome, who adopted the reading of the
Septuagint, render the words, "Set, O Lord, a lawgiver over them;" and it was
their opinion that lawgiver means antichrist, to whom God in his wrath
gave dominion over the nations. According to others, lawgiver means Christ. Dr
Horsley reads, "O Jehovah, appoint thou a teacher over them." Ainsworth and Dr
Adam Clarke adopt the same rendering, and view the words as a prayer that the
nations may learn humility and piety, that they may know their accountability to
God, and become wise unto
salvation.
fta171
"Tous fleax de Dieu par lesquels est rembarre comme a grans coups de marteau."
—
Fr.
fta172
The original word is
çwna,
enosh; and therefore it is a prayer that they may know themselves to be
but miserable, frail, and dying men. The word is in the singular number, but it
is used
collectively.
fta173
"et tu caches au temps que sommes en tribulation?" — Fr.
"And hidest thyself when we are in trouble?" — Hebrews "Aux
opportunitez, ou, aux temps opportuns." — Fr. marg. "In
opportunities, or, at seasonable
times."
fta174
"Ou, le poure est persecute, ou, il brusle en l'orgueil des meschans."
— Fr. marg. "Or, the poor is persecuted; or, he burns in the pride
of the
wicked."
fta175
Horsley reads "subtleties," and observes in a note, "I choose this ambiguous
word; being in doubt whether the petition against the wicked be that they may be
ruined by their own stratagems against the righteous, or that they may be the
dupes of their own atheistical speculations upon moral and religious subjects.
It seems to me that the word
twmzm,
may signify either 'crafty tricks,' or 'refined theories,' and, in this latter
sense, it is used in the fourth verse." Horsley considers this psalm as a
general description of the oppression of the righteous by apostate spirits,
atheists, and idolaters, who have all conspired against them, and not as
referring to any particular calamity of the Jewish nation, or of any
individual.
fta176
"C'est quand nous attribuons a Dieu les passions, affections, et fatOhs de faire
des hommes." — Fr. marg. "That is, when we attribute to God
the passions, affections, and manners of
men."
fta177
"Pour faire vengence." —
Fr.
fta178
"En se mocquant d'eux et les outrageant." —
Fr.
fta179
qld,
dalak, signifies two things, to persecute, and to be set on
fire; and though we render it in the former sense, and so apply it to
[çr,
rasha, the wicked, in the active tense, — the wicked persecutes the
poor, yet the ancient interpreters generally render it in the passive, and
apply it to
yn[,
anay, the poor, that in the pride of the wicked he is set on fire,
that is, brought into great tribulation." — Hammond. The word
used by the Septuagint is
ejmpurize>tai,.
There may be an allusion in the Hebrew word to the fires which persecutors have
kindled for burning to death the confessors and martyrs of
Christ.
fta180
"In altitudine naris ;" — literally, "In the height of his nose." This
also is the literal rendering of the Hebrew text, "The nose and casting up of it
signifies a proud, scornful, and sometimes an angry countenance." —
Ainsworth.
fta181
"Il y a mot en mot, Car louis le meschant et il y faut, suppleer quelque petit
mot:or, cela on y besongne diversement." —
Fr.
fta182
"On la repete pour patnaire le sense." —
Fr.
fta183
"Es s'osent bien absoudre et tenir pour innocens." —
Fr.
fta184
"Cependant qu'il se sent coulpable et adonne k mM faire." —
Fr.
fta185
The sentence in the Hebrew text is elliptical, and hence it has been variously
translated. Literally it is, "No God all his thoughts." The Syriac
version renders it, "There is no God in all his thoughts." The Septuagint reads,
Oujk e]stin oJ qeo<v
ejnw>pion aujtou, "God is not before him." Mudge
renders it, "No God is all his wicked politics;" Horsley, "No God is the whole
of his philosophy." and Fry, "There is no Elohim is all his
thought."
fta186
"Qui nous le fait avoir en reverence et nous tient le subjets." —
Fr.
fta187
"Pour meschantes et malicieuses pensees." — Fr. "Wicked and
malicious
thoughts."
fta188
The Greek word which they use is
Bebhlountai,.
Aben Ezra's rendering is, "His ways always cause
terror."
fta189
"Apres qu'il ent pilld le temple de Proserpine." —
Fr.
fta190
Vale. lib. 1:chapter
2.
fta191
"Pource que se confians de la longue distance qui est entre Dieu et eux."
—
Fr.
fta192
"Car nous voyons comme delayans le temps, il s'endureissent et obstinent au mal
de plus en plus." —
Fr.
fta193
"En l'esperance de jamais ne venir le conte." — Fr. "In the hope of
never being called to
account."
fta194
"Font a croire qu'il est au ciel, on il se donne du bon temps sans se soucier de
ce qu'il se fait yci bas." —
Fr.
fta195
<190307>Psalm
3:7; 23:4; 27:3, etc. —
Fr.
fta196
"I1 ose dire hardiment qu'il ne redoute nuls dangers et les desfie tous."
— Fr. "He courageously declares that he is not afraid of any
dangers, and defies them
all."
fta197
"Et se fait a croire qu'il sera tousjours a son aise et repos." —
Fr.
fta198
"Toutesfois pource qu'il s'appuye du tout sur la grace de Dieu, et s'y confie,
porte patienment toutes molestes et ennuis et se console en ses afflictions."
—
Fr.
fta199
"Se retirent de bonne heure vers la grace de Dieu pour se mettre au sauvete
comme en un lien de refuge et asseurance."— Fr. "Betake themselves
with all haste to the grace of God, to put themselves in safety as in a place of
refuge and
security."
fta200
"Au bruit des fueilles qui tombent des arbres." — Fr. "At the noise of
leaves falling from the
trees."
fta201
"Ou, par ses forts, asavoir membres." — Fr. "Or, by his strong members."
That is, his teeth, or claws. The adjective for strong, in the original,
is in the plural, and there is no substantive with which it agrees. We have
examples of a similar ellipsis in other parts of Scripture. Thus in
<102116>2
Samuel 21:16, we have new, for a new sword; and in
<197310>Psalm
73:10, full, for a full cup; and in
<401042>Matthew
10:42, cold, for cold water. - Poole's
Annotations.
fta202
Horsley renders the eighth verse thus:
"He sitteth in
ambush* in the villages in secret
places;
He murdereth
the innocent;
his
eyes are ever watching for the helpless."
And he has the following note:"Symmachus and St
Jerome certainly read thus
µyrxjb bram
kçy, and they both render ,H, as a
participle. ' He sitteth prowling about the farm-houses.' This I take to be the
true reading and the true rendering. The image is that of a beast of prey of the
lesser order, a fox or a wolf, lying upon the watch about the farm-yard in the
evening."
*Or, "he sitteth
prowling about the farmyard."
fta203
Bishop Mant reads "peering eyes." Concerning the word, says he, "which I have
rendered peering, Parkhurst says that it is applied to winking or half
closing the eyes in order to see more distinctly. The Septuagint and Vulgate
translations, which mean look at, behold, give the general sense, but not
the beautiful image expressed in the
Hebrew."
fta204
"Qui sont parmi les bois." —
Fr
fta205
The allusion is to the practice of the lion, who, when he intends to seize upon
his prey, crouches, or lies down, and gathers himself together, both to conceal
himself, and that he may make the greater spring upon his prey when it comes
within his reach,
(<183839>Job
38:39,
40.)
fta206
"Comme si un lion sortant de son giste se levoit furieusement pour mettre sa
proye par pieces." — Fr. "As if a lion issuing from his den,
furiously raised himself to spring upon his prey, and to tear it to pieces."
"When the lion" says Buffon "leaps up on his prey, he gives a spring of ten or
fifteen feet, falls on, seizes it with his fore-paws, tears it with his claws,
and afterwards devours it with his
teeth."
fta207
Being the plural of
,hklj,
chelcah, which occurs three times in this psalm, namely, here and in the
eighth and fourteenth verses, where it is rendered
poor.
fta208Namely,
µyak
lj chel caim. Those who adopt this reading
observe, that according to the other view, the verb
lpn,
naphal, translated may fall, which is singular, is joined with a
plural noun,
µyaklj
chelcaim, but that, by dividing this last word into two, we get a singular
nominative to the verb. Hammond, however, who adopts the first opinion,
observes, "That it is an elegance, both in the Hebrew and Arabic, to use the
verb singular with the nominative plural, especially when the verb is placed
first, as here it is;" and, therefore, he denies the validity of that objection
against the ordinary
rendering.
fta209
"Or il faut noter que les meschans voyans que tout leur vient 'X souchair sont
tellement estat de leur prosperite, qu'ils se sont a croire que Dieu est
aucunement obligd a eux." —
Fr.
fta210
"Qu'ils vivent sans crainte ne souci de l'advenir." — Fr. "That
they live without any fear or concern about the
future."
fta211
"Et prenent plaisir kassop et rendre leur conscience stupide, afin de se flatter
en leurs vices." —
Fr.
fta212
"Retournans d'eux mesmes a bien considerer ce qui enest a la verite." —
Fr.
fta213
"A leur plaisir n'estimans pas que jamais il les amenast le conte." —
Fr.
fta214
"Au rang des hommes." — Fr. "To the rank of
men."
fta215
"Oppression." —
Fr.
fta216
"Se reeulent le plus loin de Dieu qu'ils peuvent." —
Fr.
fta217
"Sera de nulle utilite et comme un speculation maigre." —
Fr.
fta218
"Ou, fortifieras." — Fr. marg. "Or, thou wilt strengthen or
establish."
fta219
"Bien souvent frustrent leurs serviteurs de leur attente." —
Fr.
fta220
"Et des personnes qui ne fussent de la race d'Abraham selon la chair."
—
Fr.
fta221
"Ont tendu l'arc." — Fr. "Have bent their
bow."
fta222
"Mais que?" — Fr. "But what
?"
fta223
Calvin's meaning is, that according. to the Hebrew letters, the verb is in the
plural number; but according to the Hebrew punctuation, which regulates the
reading, it is in the singular. Piscator, in his commentary on this passage,
observes,
wdwn,
nudi, according to the points, is singular and feminine, and refers to
the soul of David; according to the letters it is plural,
wdwn,
nudu, and refers to David and his associates. This last reading appears
to me the most appropriate, both because it is followed by the relative in the
plural number, and because it does not seem to be a proper or natural mode of
expression, to speak of persons addressing the soul of another" The phrase,
to my soul, however, may simply mean to me, a sense in which it is
frequently used in
Scripture.
fta224
This is the reading adopted by the Chaldee, Septuagint, and Vulgate versions.
Hammond observes, that "where the Hebrew now reads,
rwpx
µkrh, har kemo tsippor, To your mountain a
sparrow, all the ancient interpreters uniformly read, To the mountain as
a sparrow." Horsley translates the words, "Flee, sparrows, to your hill,"
and views the expression "as proverbial, denoting a situation of helplessness
and danger, in which there was no hope of safety but in flight" The noun,
rwpx
tsippor, which he renders sparrows, is singular, and it is here
construed with a plural verb and a plural pronoun. But he remarks, that as this
word, like most names of animals in the Hebrew language, signifies either the
individual or the species, it may here be used in the singular number for many
individuals, and construed with plural verbs, adjectives, and
pronouns.
fta225
"Sans specifier a qui est ceste montagne. — Fr. "Without specifying
whose mountain it
is."
fta226
"Je response que combien qu'il n'ait non plus este arrestd qu'un poure oiselet
craintif qui saute de branche en branche." —
Fr.
fta227
"Combien que les autres le tenissent pour un homme perdu et duquel les affaires
estoyent bors d'espoir et qu'ils n'en felssent non plus de casque d'un membre
pourri." —
Fr.
fta228
"Nous deteste et poursuyve." —
Fr.
fta229
The Sentuagint has here the addition of
Eiv ton
penhta, "the afflicted one." "His eyes behold the
afflicted
one."
fta230
"De prendre et par maniere de dire, emprunter lumiere du ciel." —
Fr.
fta231
"Car le Seigneur est juste, et aime justice." — Fr. "For the
Lord is righteous, and loveth
righteousness."
fta232
"La droiture." Fr. "Uprightness." "Ou, le droiturier." — Fr.
marg. "Or, the
upright."
fta233
"De la quelle il contemple les faits des hommes." —
Fr.
fta234
"Et qu'ils diront paix et asseurance mort soudaine leur advient h'a." —
Fr.
fta235
Horsley reads, "glowing embers." Lowth renders the word "live coals," and
observes, that
µytp,
pachim, means globes of fire, or simply the lightning.
"This," says he, "is certainly more agreeable to the context than snares.
The root is puach, which, though it sometimes means to ensnare,
yet more frequently means to breathe forth, or emit, fire, for
instance.
<262131>Ezekiel
21:31, 'In the fire of my wrath I will blow upon thee.' The Ammonites are spoken
of as thrown into the furnace of the divine wrath:compare
<262221>Ezekiel
22:21, where almost the same words occur, except that the corresponding (and in
this case synonymous) verb apach is made use of, whence mapnach, a
bellows,
<240629>Jeremiah
6:29. In the same sense the verb puach is introduced,
<202908>Proverbs
29:8, 'Scorners will inflame a city.' From this explication of the root
puach, the word pach, a coal blown up, is rightly derived."
— Sacred Poetry of the Hebrews, volume. 1:pp. 194, 195. Lowth also
states, that the Orientals sometimes call the lightning snares or
chains, probably from the continual coruscations of the lightning in its
passage through the air, which seem to be connected with each other like a
chain. Hengstenberg, however, opposes this exposition, and adopts and defends
that which Calvin has given.
"µyjp,"
says he, "must here, according to most expositors, be taken as a figurative
designation of lightning, which is alleged to be called also by the
Arabians, in prose and poetry, by the name of chains. But it is a
sufficient objection to this meaning, that
jp
does not signify cord, in general, but specially, gin, snare, trap." In
proof of this, he quotes
<190915>Psalm
9:15;
<181809>Job
18:9; 22:10;
<232417>Isaiah
24:17, 18;
<202205>Proverbs
22:5. "The expression, that he will rain," says he, "can present no
proper difficulty, as it simply points to the fullness of God's retributive
judgments, noticed already by Luther, when he says, that by it the prophet
indicates the great variety and multitude of the evils
threatened."
fta236
"Ainsi que des chevaux desbridez." —
Fr.
fta237
Dr Adam Clarke renders the words
twp[lz
hwr, ruach zilaphoth, "the spirit of
terrors," and states, that "this may refer to the horribly suffocat ing Arabian
wind called Sinurn." Bishop Lowth translates the words, "a burning
storm," upon which Michaelis observes, "This is an admirable image, and is taken
from the school of nature. The wind zilgaphoth, which blows from the
east, is very pestilential, and, therefore, almost proverbial among the
Orientals Many wonderful stories are related of its effects by the Arabians, and
their poets feign that the wicked, in their place of eternal torment, are to
breathe this pestiferous wind as their vital air." — Lowth's Sacred
Poetry, vol. 1:p. 193. Hengstenberg translates the words wrath-wind,
and explains them as simply meaning the divine anger which breaks forth as a
tempest; and observes, that the vehemence of the anger is denoted by the plural
number. In opposition to the rendering burning wind, and to the opinion
that there is an allusion to the Arabian Samurn, he states, "The root,
p[z
has, in Hebrew, the signification of being angry, no other; and that of
being hot, is not once to be found in the
dialects."
fta238
"Voire au temps mesmes qu'il n'y aura roy ni equite au monde." —
Fr. "Even when there is neither faith nor equity in the
world."
fta239
Calvin's words literally rendered are, with a heart and a heart, and this
is a very literal translation of the Hebrew words
blw
blb, be-leb va-leb. On the margin of the
French version, he reads, "De coeur double," "with a double heart," which
explains the meaning of the other phrase. "With a heart and a heart," is a form
of expression which forcibly describes the character of deceitful men. "They
seem to have two hearts," says Dr Adam Clarke, "one to speak fair words,
and the other to invent
mischief."
fta240
"Et que c'est pour exprimer comment se devoir chanter le pseaume." —
Fr.
fta241
"Tant plus Dieu est prest d'aider et secourir les siens." —
Fr.
fta242
Horsley reads "smooth lips." "Not smooth," says he, "with flattery, but with
glossing lies, with ensnaring eloquence and specious arguments in support
of the wretched cause which they
espouse."
fta243
"Pour se disguiser en diverses sortes." —
Fr.
fta244
"Il ne parle donc pas d'un tas de faquins du commun peuple, qui sont estat de
flatter pour avoir la lippee franche." —
Fr.
fta245
"The occasion on which this psalm was composed is not expressed, but it is a sad
complaint of the corrupt manners of that age, (especially of the court of Saul,
5:3,) in which it was hard to find an honest plain dealing man, in whom one
might confide. Some think it aims partly at Doeg, and such like courtiers;
partly at the Ziphires, and such perfidious people in the country, who,
promising him their friendship, (as Theodoret understands it,) would have most
basely betrayed him unto Saul, his declared enemy." — Bishop Patrick's
Paraphrase on the Book of
Psalms.
fta246
"Mais qui mentent plaisir en se vantans et tenans propos braves et hautains,
desquels ils accablent les poures et simples." —
Fr.
fta247
"Oppression." —
Fr.
fta248
"Celuy a qui le roeschant tend des laqs." — Fr. "Him for whom the
wicked lays snares." Hebrews "Il luy tend des laqs." — Fr.
marg. "I will set in safety; he lays snares for
him."
fta249
"Et quant a ce qu'on pourroit repliequer qu'il n'y a pas en l'Hebrieu A qui,
mais Luy, ce n'est pas chose nouvelle que ces mots Le, Luy se prenent pour Qui
et A qui." —
Fr.
fta250
"Qu'ils renverseront tout k soufiler seulement." — Fr. "That they
shall overthrow all simply by their
breath."
fta251
"Que tu les gardes, Seigneur." —
Fr.
fta252
This is the view adopted by Hammond. He refers the them to the words
of the Lord mentioned in the preceding verse, and the him following
to the godly, or just man, and explains the verse thus:"Thou, O Lord, shalt
keep, or perform, those words, thou shalt preserve the just man from this
generation for ever." The Chaldee version reads, "Thou wilt keep the just;" the
Septuagint, Vulgate, Arabic, and Ethiopic versions read, "Thou wilt keep
us;"
fta253
"Mais quant a ceux qui elisent, Tu les garderas, as avoir Tes
paroles; l'exposition ne me semble pas propre." —
Fr.
fta254
"Car il dit premierement, Tu les garderas; et puis, Tu le
preserveras." —
Fr.
fta255
It was the opinion of Theodoret that this psalm was composed by David, not
during his persecution by Saul, but when Absalom conspired against him; and the
reason which he assigns for this opinion is, "that the trouble which Saul gave
him was before his great sin, and so he was full of confidence; but that of
Absalom was after it, which made him cry out in this doleful manner." —
Bishop Patrick's Paraphrase on the Book of
Psalms.
fta256
"Mais permet que pour un temps ils s'entortillent en de longs discours sans
venir au poinct." —
Fr.
fta257
"Ne sachans on se tourner." —
Fr.
fta258
"Toutesfois Dieu ha en main des moyens infohis de nous restablir ca vie."
—
Fr.
fta259
The Septuagint here add another line, namely
Kai yalw tw ojnomati Kuriou tou
uJyistou, "And I will sing to the name of
Jehovah, the Most High." This line, which is the same with that which concludes
the seventh psalm, has probably been lost in the Hebrew copy. "The conclusion of
the psalm," says Lowth, "is manifestly defective; it ends with an odd hemistich
wanting its correspondent. The LXX. have happily preserved it. That it is not a
double translation of the single hemistich, now in the Hebrew, is apparent from
the difference of the latter Greek hemistich, which does not at all correspond
with the words of the former." — Dr Lowth, in Merrick's note on
this
place.
fta260
"Qui ne nous est point encore presente." —
Fr.
fta261
lmg
Signifies "to return, to requite, to recompense, in whatever manner,
whether evil for evil, good for evil, evil for good, or good for good."
— Parkhurst. Those who argue from this passage for the merit of
good works, make the argument to rest on the notion of retribution attached to
the word. But although it uniformly mean, to reward, no conclusive
argument could here be drawn from this passage in support of that doctrine. What
God bestows upon his people is sometimes called a reward in Scripture;
not, however, because they can claim it as due to them by justice, but to
express God's approbation of obedience, and the connection between obedience and
happiness. Besides,
lmg,
also means to deal kindly with, especially when applied to God, See Psalm
119:17, and 142:7. The word has this meaning in Arabic; and that it is to be
thus understood in the passage before us is supported by the ancient versions.
The Septuagint reads
eujergeth>santi;
and the Vulgate, bona tribuit, hath bestowed upon me good. The Arabic and
Ethiopic adopt the same
reading.
fta262
"Combien que cependant il gemisse et se sente angoisse du desordre qu'il veoit."
—
Fr.
fta263
Calvin has here given a literal rendering of the Hebrew words, They have
corrupted. Some suppose that themselves is to be understood, as in
<023207>Exodus
32:7; others, their ways, as in
<010612>Genesis
6:12, but the meaning which Calvin has attached to the phrase is, They have
corrupted or perverted all good
order.
fta264
"Ce qui est dit de ceux qui, fausses enseignes serenomment enfans d'Abraham
vivans autrement qu'il n'appartient." — Fr. "What is said of those
who, according to false marks, call themselves the children of Abraham, while
living a different life from what they
ought."
fta265
Some critics observe, that as
hwhy,
Yehovah, the name which denotes the infinite, self-existent essence of
God, is not the word here employed, but
shwla,
a name which they regard as referring to God as judge and governor of the world,
the meaning of the first verse is not that the fool denies the existence of God,
but only his providence and government of the world; that he persuades himself
God has no concern about the actions of men, and that there will be no judgment
to come; and, therefore, goes on in sin, in the hope of escaping with impunity.
— See Poole's Synopsis Criticorum. The Targum paraphrases the
words, "There is no God," thus, "There is no
shwla
government of God in the
earth."
fta266
"Et abolir de leurs esprits toute apprehension de sa majeste." —
Fr.
fta267
Hammond admits that the word
rs,
sar, means to go aside, or to decline, and that it is
commonly applied to a way or path, declining from the right way, or going in a
wrong way. But he thinks that the idea here is different, that it is taken from
wine when it grows dead or sour, just as the word is used in this sense in
<280418>Hosea
4:18, µabs
rs, sar sobim, "Their drink is gone aside,
or grown sour." He considers this view corroborated from the clause which
immediately follows,
wjlan,
ne-elachu, they are become putrid, which is derived from
hla,
alach, to be rotten or putrified, referring properly to flesh which has
become putrid. "Thus," says he, "the proportion is well kept between drink and
meat, the one growing dead or sour, as the other putrifies and stinks, and then
is good for nothing, but is thrown
away."
fta268
David speaks of all mankind, with the exception of the "people of God," and "the
generation of the righteous," spoken of in verses 4, 5 who are opposed to the
rest of the human
race.
fta269
Calvin here reads Dominus, although the word in the Hebrew text is
hwhy
Yehovah, which he almost uniformly retains. In the Septuagint,
hwhy,
is always rendered by oJ
Kuriov, the Lord, which is equivalent to
Dominus, and is expressive of dominion or property, — a word which
implies a different idea from the name Jehovah, which denotes independent
and eternal existence. The translators of the Septuagint used
oJ
Kuriov, for
why
in accommodation to the scruples of the Jews, who directed
ynda
to be read wherever
hwhy
occurs.
fta270
"Il faut que l'horreur des meschancetez qui regnent au monde nous face dresser
les cheveux en la teste." —
Fr.
fta271
"Desquels l'office est de paistre et governer le troupeau." —
Fr.
fta272
It is the general opinion that this psalm was composed during the alarm and
danger which were occasioned by Absalom's rebellion, and that this is a
prediction of the failure of the conspiracy. But Calmet and Mudge refer the
psalm to the captivity in Babylon, and the latter supposes that in this and the
preceding verse there is an allusion to the great terror into which the heathen
were thrown, in the midst of their impious carousals; which some refer to the
scene which took place at Belshazzar's feast, when the hand was seen writing on
the wall. There is, however, great uncertainty as to the occasions on which most
of the psalms were composed; and those who have examined the different opinions
of interpreters on this subject must be convinced of the difficulty of arriving
at any thing like certainty in regard to
it.
fta273
"Avec ou pour." — Fr.
marg.
fta274
Though punishment had not as yet been actually inflicted on the oppressors of
the people of God, of whom the Psalmist had spoken in the preceding verse, he
speaks of their punishment as if it had taken place. The reason of this manner
of speaking concerning things future in prophetic poetry, Horsley explains to be
this, "That a scene typical of futurity is presented to the prophet's
imagination, and what he sees in that scene he speaks of as
done."
fta275
The particle
µç,
is used demonstratively, in reference to the scene which lies before the
inspired poet's fancy. "See there!" —
Horsley.
fta276
In the Septuagint version, to the words, there were they in great fear,
there is added the words ouJ
ouk hjn oJ fo>bov, Where there was no fear,
the transcribers, perhaps, transferring it by memory from
<195306>Psalm
53:6, or the translators adding the words by way of
paraphrase.
fta277
"Qui les foullent injustement et usent de violence et extorsion." —
Fr.
fta278
"Et tient leur parte, comme on dit." —
Fr.
fta279
"Ne plus ne morns que si quelqu'un mettoit en fuite ceux qui auroyent dress, le
siege derant une ville, et mettoit en liber, les habitans d'icelle qui estoyent
auparavant en grande extremit, et bien enserrez." —
Fr.
fta280
"Et mettre sous le pied." —
Fr.
fta281
"Meschant, ou vilein et abominable." — Note, Fr. marg. "The wicked,
or the vile and
abominable."
fta282
"The LXX., instead of
[rhl,
[lehara,] to hurt, seem to have read
[rhl,
[leharea,] to his fellow, for they render it,
tw|~ plhsi>on
aujtou, to his neighbor, and so the Syriac,
and Latin, and Arabic, and Ethiopic." — Hammond. This rendering
agrees very well with the scope of the Psalm, which relates to our dealing
justly with our fellow-men; and it represents the good man as scrupulously
performing the promissory oaths which he makes to his neighbor. But the ordinary
reading, he sweareth to his own hurt, and changeth not, sets forth
the moral integrity of the good man in a still more striking light, by
describing him as performing his oath in the face of the greatest temptations to
break it, when the performance of it may prove detrimental to his own interests;
and this is no mean trial of a man's
virtue.
fta283
"C'estoit un personnage Romain de grande reputation." — Fr.
marg. "This was a Roman personage of great reputation." - See Cicero
de Officiis, Lib.
2:cap:25.
fta284
"Ce ne sont pas les riches lesquels on mange d'usures." — Fr. "It
is not the rich whom they devour by
usuries."
fta285
The Jews were prohibited by the law from taking usury or interest on money lent
to their brethren, but not on what was lent to strangers; that is, foreigners of
other countries, (Deuteronomy. 23:20.) The manifest design of this prohibition
was, to promote humane and fraternal sentiments in the bosoms of the Israelites
towards each other. A more remote end seems also to have been aimed at, viz., to
check the formation of a commercial character among the Jews, and to confine
them as much as possible to those agricultural and private pursuits, which would
seclude them from intercourse with the surrounding nations, as it was not very
likely that a practice of this nature would be extended much among foreigners
which was prohibited at home." — Walford's New Translation of the Book
of
Psalms.
fta286
"De la sainete Jerusalem celeste." —
Fr.
fta287
The word means gold, the finest gold, and those who understand it in this
sense here, think the psalm receives this title to denote that it is fit to be
written in letters of gold; and some conjecture that the psalms
distinguished by this title were, on some occasion or other, thus written
and hung up in the sanctuary. Others are of opinion that the word mictam
is derived from
µtk,
catham, which signifies to mark, to engrave, to denote that the
psalm is fit to be engraven on a valuable and durable pillar, to be preserved in
everlasting remembrance. This is the meaning attached to the word by the
Septuagint, which translates it
sthlografi>a,
an inscription on a pillar or monument. In either of these views the title
cannot but be regarded as peculiarly appropriate to this sacred poem. "As a
sepulchral inscription," remarks Bishop Mant, "it might have been written on
our Redeemer's tomb; as a triumphal monument, it might have been sung by
him in the region of departed spirits; and in either, or in any sense, it may
well be considered as a golden composition, as apples of gold in
network of which occur in the titles of the psalms, are the names of
old
melodies.
fta288
"Guard me." The Hebrew word expresses the actions of those who watch over
another's safety, as of guards attending their king, or a shepherd keeping his
flock." —
Horsley.
fta289
"The Hebrew word
ytysj,
chasithi, from
sj,
chasah, denotes to betake one's self for refuge to anyone, under whose
protection he may be safe, as chickens under the wing of the hen." —
Buxtor.
ff.
fta290
The word
,yçpn,
naphshi, is commonly supposed to be understood, Thou, my soul, shalt
say, or hast said. But all the ancient versions, except the Chaldee,
read in the first person, I have said, and this is the reading in
many MSS. The words, however, "Thou, my soul, hast said," are equivalent to "I
have
said."
fta290a
The Septuagint reads, Twn ajgaqwn
mou ou creian ejceiv. Thou hast no need of
my goodness, [or good things.] The reading in Tyndale Bible , "My goods are
nothing unto
thee."
fta291
"Voyla donc (ainsi que j'ay commencement dire) l'opinion commune, quasi de
tous." —
Fr.
fta292
"D'un accord, et d'une roesroe affection." — Fr. "With
one accord, and with the same
affection."
fta293
"Et comme armoiries apparentes." —
Fr.
fta294
"A un Dieu estrange, et autre que le vray Dieu." — Note, Fr. marg.
"That is, to a strange God, and another than the true
God."
fta295
In the Latin version, the word is "libabo," which means either to taste,
or to pour out in offering; in the French version it is "gousteray,"
which means simply to taste. "The Gentiles used." Says Poole, ("as
diverse learned men have observed,) to offer, and sometimes to drink part of the
blood of their sacrifices, whether of beasts or of men, as either of them were
sacrificed." — Poole,
Annotations.
fta296
In the French version, the word is "sacrifices," on which Calvin has the
following note on the margin:— "Le mot signifie proprement bruvages
accoustumez en sacrifices." — "The word properly signifies the customary
drinks in
sacrifices."
fta297
The Chaldee version reads, "their idols." The Septuagint reads,
ajsqeneiai
aujtwn, "their weaknesses," or" afflictions;" and
the Syriac and Arabic use a word of similar import. Bishop Patrick paraphrases
the verse as follows:— "They multiply idols, (here in this place whither I
am driven,
<092619>1
Samuel 26:19,) and are zealous in the service of another God. But I will never
forsake thee by partaking with them in their abominable sacrifices, (in which
the blood of men is offered,) nor by swearing by the name of any of their false
gods." "Dathe observes, that
twbx[,
never signifies idols, the proper word being
µybx[.
See Gesenius and
<093109>1
Samuel 31:9;
<100521>2
Samuel 5:21;
<280417>Hosea
4:17. The other versions of the Polyglott support the common interpretation,
which is also approved by Dathe, Horsley, Berlin, and De Rossi." —
Roger's Book of Psalms, in Hebrew, Metrically Arranged; vol. 2:p.
172.
fta298
Walford translates the verse thus:—
"They multiply
their sorrows who hastily turn
backward;
Their
libations of blood will I not
offer;
Nor will I
take their names upon my lips."
And the sense which he attaches to the passage is,
that David having in the preceding verse declared his delight in the righteous,
here states that those who turn away from God and his truth augment their own
sufferings; and affirms it to be his resolution to have no fellowship with them
in their religious services, which were polluted and detestable, or in the
intercourse of friendship by making mention of their
names.
fta299
"Et de faict, nous voyons de quelle impetuosite ils se jettent on leurs
idolatries sans regarder, lien, tellement qu'il semble que ce soyent gens
forcenez, qui courent a travers champs." —
Fr.
fta300
Horsley reads, "They shall multiply their sorrows [who] betroth themselves to
another. That is, who go a whoring after other
gods."
fta301
"Mais touche nommement la ceremonie qu'on observoit en sacrifices asgavoir de
prendre la coupe et en gouster un peu." — Fr. On the margin of the
French version there is a reference to the Commentaries of Calvin upon Matthew
26:26, and Genesis
9:4.
fta302
"Qui se nomment ainsi, tort." —
Fr.
fta303
"Quoy que la terre soit pleine d'un grand areas d'infinite de superstitions."
—
Fr.
fta304
"De ces aveugles d'idolatres." —
Fr.
fta305
"Transportez par les desbordemens impetueux des erreurs qui regnent au monde."
—
Fr.
fta306
"Qui s'estoyent destournez de lui comme apostats." —
Fr.
fta307
"Ains que no'vueillions avoir avec lui les idoles." —
Fr.
fta308
"D'autant que le bruvage est une partie de nostre nourriture." —
Fr.
fta309
The Hebrew is measuring lines. There is here an allusion to the ancient
division of the land of Canaan among God's chosen people. This was done by lot,
and the length and breadth of the portion of each tribe was ascertained by cords
or measuring lines. Hence they came to signify the land so measured
out.
fta310
"My reins" is the literal rendering of the Hebrew text, and they denote the
working of the thoughts and affections of the soul. "Common experience," says
Parkhurst, "shows that the workings of the mind, particularly the passions of
joy, grief, and fear, have a very, remarkable effect on the reins or
kidneys, so, from their retired situation in the body, and their being
hid in fat, they are often used in Scripture to denote the most secret
working of the soul and affections" "The reins or kidneys," says Walford, in
a note on this passage, "are used to signify the interior faculties; and the
divine speaker observes, that in seasons of solitude, his thoughts were
instinctively employed in contemplating the heavenly discoveries that were
communicated to him." In Tyndale's Bible the reading of the last clause is, "My
reins also have chastened me in the night season." And Fry observes, that
the word
rsy,
signifies not so immediately to instruct, as to chasten, correct, or
discipline.
fta311
"Ce qu'autrement nous ferions, veu l'aveuglement de nostre chair" —
Fr.
fta312
Calvin means that God taught David by secret
inspirations.
fta313
"dwpk,
kabod, is the liver, which, like the heart, the reins, etc., is used for
the mind, so that the sense is, "I myself will rejoice." —
Walford.
fta314
The Doctors of the Sorbonne, a university in
Paris.
fta315
The reading of the Septuagint is,
"glwssa
mou" "my tongue." This is unquestionably the
meaning. David uses the word glory for the organ by which God is
glorified or praised. The Apostle Peter, in quoting this passage,
(<440226>Acts
2:26,) reads, "my tongue." See also
<193612>Psalm
36:12.
fta316
"The Hebrew word shachath," says Poole, "though sometimes, by a metonymy,
it signifies the pit or place of corruption, yet properly and generally it
signifies corruption or perdition. And so it must be understood here, although
some of the Jews, to avoid the force of this argument, render it the pit. But in
that sense it is not true, for whether it be meant of David, as they say, or of
Christ, it is confessed that both of them did see the pit, that is, were laid in
the grave." Hence he concludes that corruption is the proper rendering of
the original word. The phrase, however, to see the pit, may not mean to
be laid in the grave, but to continue in it for any length of time. The meaning
which Calvin attaches to the word pit is substantially that which
our English translators attached to the original word which they render
corruption. Hengstenberg adopts and defends Calvin's
rendering.
fta317
"Jusqu'a ce que la mort finalement venant, rompist le cours de nos jours."
—
Fr.
fta318
Thus we have the authority of two apostles for understanding the concluding part
of this psalm as a prophecy of Christ's resurrection from the
dead.
fta319
"Et les faire venir a la participation de ce bien." —
Fr.
fta320
This is the general opinion as to the occasion of the composition of this psalm.
It is supposed that David, in representing his innocence of those things of
which he was accused, refers to the charges brought against him of traitorously
aspiring to the kingdom, and seeking the life of Saul,
<092409>1
Samuel 24:9; and that therefore the persecutors and calumniators from whom he
beseeches God to deliver him were Saul and his
courtiers.
fta321
The Vulgate, Ethiopic, and Arabic versions read "my righteousness", or my right,
as here and in our English version, meaning, his righteous cause. The
Septuagint, "Kurie thv dikaiosunhv
mou," "O Lord of my righteousness."
Jerome reads, "Audi, Deus, justum," "Hear O God, the just one, a reading which
Horsley is inclined to adopt, viewing the Messiah as the speaker in this psalm.
In the Syriac version the reading is, "Hear, O righteous Lord ;" and this is
followed by Bishop Horne, Dr Adam Clarke, and Dr
Boothroyd.
fta322
"Let my sentence come forth from thy presence; that is, be thou, O Jehovah, my
judge in thine own person." —
Horsley.
fta323
"Que David se soit portd justement et fait son devoir sans donner a aucun
occasion de le blasmer." —
Fr.
fta324
"Que nous sommes blasmez et persecutez a tort." —
Fr.
fta325
"Car la cognoissance que Dieu prendra de sa cause est tacitement mise in
l'opposite des tenebres des mensonges qu'on semoit contre luy." —
Fr.
fta326
"Et qu'il ne refuse point de respondre derant le siege judicial d'iceluy."
— Fr. "Nor do I refuse to answer before his
judgment-seat."
fta327
"Qui n'ont pas moyen de se defendre." —
Fr.
fta328
Great difference of opinion has prevailed among critics, as to the rendering and
interpretation of this and the following verse. The third verse is rendered thus
in Tyndale's Bible:"Thou hast proved and visited mine heart in the night
seasons, thou hast tried me in the fire, and hast found no wickedness in me; for
I utterly purposed that my mouth should not offend." Geddes reads the third
clause of the verse "Thou hast smelted me, and found in me no dross;" and
observes, that smelted is "a metaphor taken from the smelting of metals
to purify them from extraneous matter." — Geddes' New Translation of
the Book of Psalms, with Notes. The last clause of the third verse is added
to the first clause of the fourth verse, in the Septuagint, Vulgate, Syriac, and
Arabic versions, and the reading is thus "My mouth has not transgressed as to
the evil designs of other men; that is, I have not countenanced or approved of
them by
word."
fta329
"Du violent." — Fr. "Of the
violent."
fta330
"Le requerant d'en vouloir estre le juge." —
Fr.
fta331
"Il ne sera trouve desguisement ne fraude quelconque en mon coeur." —
Fr.
fta332
This is the sense put upon this last clause by the learned Castellio, who
translates it thus:- "Non deprehendes me aliud in pectore, aliud in ore habere."
"Thou shalt not find me to have one thing in my breast and another in my
mouth."
fta333
Or, the paths of the violent. Literally of him who, by violent means,
makes a breach in, or breaks down a wall or fence, the word
˜yrp,
pharits, being derived from
˜rp,
pharats, to break down, or break through. It is referred by Calvin
to the violent and wicked conduct of his enemies towards
him.
fta334
"De troubler le repos et la tranquillite des autres." —
Fr.
fta335
"Afin de n'estre point corrompu par mauvals exemples." —
Fr.
fta336
"or have kept me from the paths, etc. or observed the paths,
viz., so as to avoid them." — Poole's
Annotations.
fta337
"Car mesme ceux qui sont de nature enclins a debonnairete." —
Fr.
fta338
"De real faire a nos prochains." —
Fr.
fta339
"Qu'il prendra en main la vengence contre ceux qui nous outragent." —
Fr.
fta340
"Et de faict, selon qu'un chacun a receu plus de graces." — Fr.
"And certainly the more grace any one has
received."
fta341
"De la vertu et force que Dieu nous aura donnee." —
Fr.
fta342
The Septuagint renders the verb in the past tense,
"Ephkousav
mou," "Thou hast heard me." The Syriac and Vulgate
give a similar rendering. The verb, in the Hebrew, is in the future; but it is a
common thing in Hebrew to use the future tense for the
past.
fta343
These words are
supplementary.
fta344
The apple, [or pupil,] the daughter of the eye, is the literal
rendering of the Hebrew words, and thus they very powerfully set forth the
beautiful image contained in them. Allusion is here made to the extreme care
requisite for the preservation of so delicate an organ as the eye. Compare
<200702>Proverbs
7:2." — French and Skinner's Translation of the Book of
Psalms.
fta345
Poole observes, that the Hebrew phrase for "them which trust," might be properly
rendered without any supplement,
"believers."
fta346
Calvin's rendering is the same as that of the Septuagint, Vulgate, and Syriac
versions
fta347
"Et des petis oiseaux que la mere tient sous ses ailes." —
Fr.
fta348
Houbigant and Kennicott read,
wrgs wmlbj
yl[ "They have closed their net upon me." Horsley
and Fry adopt this reading. "But," says Rogers, "it receives no support from the
ancient versions or
MSS."
fta349
"Comme les gens replets se trouvent saisis de leur graisse au dedans."
— Fr. "The sacred writers employ this term [fat] to signify a body
pampered to excess by luxury and self-indulgence,
<197307>Psalm
73:7; 119:70;
<181527>Job
15:27." - French and Skinner's Translation of the Book of Psalms. There
may no doubt be a reference to the personal appearance and sensual indulgence of
David's enemies. But something more is implied. "We know that, in the figurative
language of Scripture fatness denotes pride. This connection of ideas is still
maintained in the East, where, when it is intended to indicate a proud man, he
is said to be fat, or to look fat, whether really so or not." —
Illustrated Commentary upon the
Bible.
fta350
Dr Geddes translates the clause, "Their hearts have they hardened." "Literally,"
says he, "they have closed their midriff; — shut out all compassion from
their hearts." The Hebrew word which is rendered fat is explained by Gesenius,
when used figuratively, as denoting a fat, that is, an unfeeling
heart.
fta351
In the French version it is lionceaux, young lions. French and Skinner read
"like a lion," and "like a young lion ;' and observe, "The word
translated ' young lion' signifies a lion in the rigour of youth, and fully
capable of pursuing his
prey."
fta352
The LXX. have happily expressed the exact import of the Hebrew word,
'Upov kelison
aujtouv' 'Make him sink upon his knees.' "-
Horsley. Street reads, "Make them bend." Cocceius renders it, "Incurva
ilium," "Bend him," and explains the phrase thus:— "Fac, ut se demittat,"
etc.; i.e. "Make him to cast himself down, bend his stature, which is erect and
inflexible like iron; that is to say, take away from him the power and the
inclination of doing
mischief."
fta353
"A seculo." — Lat. "Dds un monde, ou un siecle." —
Fr. marg. "From a world, or an
age."
fta354
"Qui sont molestez par ces malheureux." —
Fr.
fta355
"It may be questioned whether David, in this or the next clause, intended to
represent wicked men as the sword and the hand of God; that is, the instruments
which he employed to correct his servants; or whether his meaning was to pray
that God would interpose his own hand and sword to defend him and punish his
enemies. The latter sense is adopted by some interpreters; but as the former is
a perfectly Scriptural sentiment, and requires the supposition of no ellipsis,
it appears to me to be most likely what is intended. Vide
<231005>Isaiah
10:5." — Walford. Many of the most eminent critics, however, adopt the
translation which Calvin has given, as Hammond, Houbigant, Ainsworth, Bishops
Lowth, Horsley, Home, and Hare, Dr Boothroyd, Dr Adam Clarke, Dathe, and Venema.
The reading in Tyndale's Bible is, "Deliver my soul with thy sword from the
ungodly."
ftz336
"Ou siecle car il y a ainsi mot a mot." —
Fr.
ftz337
"L'audace et les outrages." —
Fr.
ftz338
"Comme s'il les nourissok en son giron, les tenant tendrement et mignardant plus
que tout le reste." —
Fr.
ftz339
"Desquelles il n'y oust issue aucune." —
Fr.
ftz340
"Comme s'ils s'abusoyent et perdoyent leurs peines en s'adonnant a purete et
innocence." —
Fr.
ftz341
"Il lui fait tousjours derechet contempler finalment son clair visage et son
oeil debonnaire." —
Fr.
ftz342
"Comme si David remettoit a la vie a venir l'esperance de sentir en son coeur
une joye heureuse." —
Fr.
ftz343
"C'est a dire de choses terriennes, sans gouster les choses spirituelles
esquelles il y a fermete." —
Fr.
ftz344
"Qui nous puisse donner contentement." —
Fr.
ftz345
"Lesquelles ne font qu'affamer et augmenter tousjours tout plus l'appetit."
—
Fr.
ftz346
The Chaldee version applies it to David, and reads, "When I shall awake, I shall
be satisfied with the glory of thy countenance." But the Septuagint, the
Vulgate, Arabic, and Ethiopic versions apply the verb, awake to thy
glory. "En tw| ojfqhnai thn
doxan sou," "At the appearing of thy glory," says
the Septuagint. "Cum apparuerit gloria tua," "When thy glory shall appear," says
the
Vulgate.
ftz347
"Car il ne faut pas penser qu'il soit mis en dernier lieu, comme celuy dont il
fust plus fresche memoire, que de tons les autres." — Fr. "It is
not necessary to suppose that Saul is put last, as he of whom he retained a
fresher remembrance than of all his other
enemies."
ftz348
"Ou plustost ce luy avoit este un bon port et retraite seure au milieu de tant
d'esclandres et calamitez estranges." —
Fr.
ftz349
This is the rendering of the French version. The word in the Hebrew text, which
is
µjr,
racham, is very expressive.
"µjr,"
says Cocceius, "est intime ac medullitus cum motu omnium viscerum diligere;"
— "is to love with the deepest and strongest affections of the heart, with
all of all the bowels." Ainsworth reads, "I will dearly love thee ;" Street, "I
love thee exceedingly ;" Bishop Horne, "With all the yearnings of affection I
will love thee, O Jehovah ;" and Dr Adam Clarke, "From my inmost bowels will I
love thee, O Lord." The word, therefore, denotes the tenderness and intensity of
David's
emotions.
ftz350
The Hebrew word literally means a cliff or crag; and is a
different word from the one which is translated rock in the following
part of this verse. "The word
[ls,
sela," says Dr Adam Clarke, "signifies those craggy precipices which
afforded shelter to men and animals; where the bees often made their nests, and
whence honey was collected in great abundance. 'He made him to suck honey out of
the rock,'
<053213>Deuteronomy
32:13."
ftz351
The horn is the emblem of strength and power. The metaphor is taken from
the bull and other powerful animals, who put forth their strength principally by
the use of their
horns.
ftz352
"Comme environnez de bons rempars de tous costez, tellement que mille morts,
quand autant il s'en presenteroit a eux, ne!cur doyvent point ikire peur."
—
Fr.
ftz353
"Et pourtant David equippe yci les fideles de pied en cap comme on dit."
— Fr. "David, therefore, here equips the faithful from head to
foot, as we
say."
ftz354
"Ou brisemens. — Fr. marg. "Or
contritions."
ftz355
"Hebrews de Belial." — Fr. marg. "Hebrews of
Belial."
fta356
"Ou de corruption." — Fr. marg. "Or of
corruption."
fta357
The word in the Hebrew text
llhm,
mehullal, literally signifies praise. The ancient versions view
the word not as denoting that God is worthy to be praised, which is the meaning
attached to it in our English version, but as referring to the Psalmist's
resolution to praise God. The Septuagint reads,
Ainwn epikalesomai
Kurion Kytov, "Praising I will call upon the
Lord." The reading of the Vulgate is the same, "Laudans invocabo." The Chaldee
reads, "In a song or hymn I pour out prayers unto the Lord:" and the Arabic. "I
will praise the Lord, and call upon him." This is precisely the sense in which
Calvin understands the words, "I will call upon the praised
Jehovah."
fta358
"Death is here personified under the semblance of a mighty conqueror, who binds
his vanquished foes in strong fetters." —
Walford.
fta359
"lbj,
chebel," says Hammond, "signifies two things, a cord, and a pang of a
woman's travail, and which it signifies must be resolved still by the context.
Here, where it is joined with encompassing, it is most fitly to be understood in
the former sense, because ropes or cords are proper for that turn, as for
holding and keeping in when they are inclosed." The Chaldee understands the word
in the other sense, and paraphrases the clause thus:"Distress hath compassed me
as a woman in travail which hath not strength to bring forth, and is in danger
of death," The Septuagint adopts the same view, reading,
"wjdinev
qanatou, the pangs of
death."
fta360
Cocceius renders the words, "the waves of death," and he observes, that the
words "waves'" explains the verb "compassed me about." Death sent its sorrows
thick upon him one after another, as the sea sends forth its waves, and with
such violence that he was ready to be overwhelmed. The word
yrbçm,
mishberey, is applied both to the breaking waves of the sea,
(<194207>Psalm
42:7.) — Ainsworth. Horsley translates the phrase, "The breakers of
death." "The metaphor," says he, "is taken from those dangerous waves our
mariners call white
breakers."
fta361
Jerome doubtless derived the word from
ylb,
beli, not or without, and
lw[,
ol, a yoke, and thus the term Belial means those who shake off all
restraint. Signifying to profit, or to gain advantage in any
respect.
fta362
Belial is a compound term, significant of vileness and
worthlessness.
fta363
"The 'floods of Belial' intend large bodies of men, who rush forward in
impetuous torrents to overwhelm and destroy whatever opposes them." -
Walford.
fta364
"Il faut necessa ement que les gens qui auparavant estoyent comme endormis et
stupides se resueillent et apprehendent qu'il y a un Dieu." —
Fr.
fta365
"Tout ainsi que s'il jettoit une fureur par les narines." — Fr. "As
if he cast forth fury from his
nostrils."
fta366
"C'est comme s'il tendoit un voile espes entre luy et les hommes, afin de leur
oster le regard de sa face." —
Fr.
fta367
In our English version it is, He shot out lightnings. The Hebrew word
bbr,
rabab, signifies both to multiply and to shoot. As the
shooting of arrows is mentioned in the first clause of the verse, it may be
presumed that it is the shooting of lightnings which is meant in the second
clause, arrows and lightnings being contrasted. The reading of the Septuagint,
Chaldee, Syriac, Vulgate, Arabic, and Ethiopic versions, however, is the same as
that of Calvin, — He multiplied
lightnings.
fta368
"Ou de ton ire." — Fr. marg. "Or at thy
wrath."
fta369
"De ce combat et aussi du bruit des nuees allans l'une contre l'autre, se fait
un son." —
Fr.
fta370
"Et tardifs a reconnaistre la vertu de Dieu." —
Fr.
fta371
"En usant de ces hyperboles et similitudes qui semblent estranges et excessives
ne nous recite pas des fables et contes faits a plaisir a la fakon des Poietes
profanes." —
Fr.
fta372
Bishop Patrick paraphrases the verse thus:— "He delivered me first from
that mighty giant, Goliath, and then from Saul, whose power I was not able to
withstand; and afterwards from the Philistines and Syrians, and many other
nations, whose forces were far superior unto mine, and whose hatred instigated
them to do all they could to destroy
me."
fta373
"They set their faces against me in the day of my calamity," —
Walford.
fta374
"Envers ou devant luy." — Note, Fr. marg. "Towards or before
him."
fta375
Agonotheta. Calvin alludes to the ancient games and combats of Greece, the
presidents of which were called
Agonothetee.
fta376
ArMeta. Those who exercised themselves with the view of contending for the
prizes in the Grecian games and combats were called
AtMetce.
fta377
"Sans que nous ne creature quelconque luy en donnions" occasion. –
Fr.
fta378
"Et que bien legerement on semoit de luy de mauvais bruits." —
Fr.
fta379
"Tu to montreras debonnaire envers le debonnaire." — Fr. "Towards
the merciful thou wilt show thyself
merciful."
fta380
"Envers." — Note, Fr. marg. "That is,
towards."
fta381
Some read, The humble people, supposing that, as the contrast is between
them and proud looks, humility rather than suffering is
meant.
fta382
This is the literal rendering of the Hebrew text. "The meaning obviously is,
that the haughty themselves shall be humbled, however confident they may be."
— French and
Skinner,
fta383
"Ils sacrifient plustest a Fortune, et en font leur Dieu." —
Fr.
fta384
"Qui s'endorment en leurs vices sans rien craindre." —
Fr.
fta385
"Comme s'il disoit que leur obstination et opiniastrete sera cause que luy de
son coste oubliant sa moderation et douceur accoustumee, se jettera le tors et a
travers contre eux." —
Fr.
fta386
"Afin de nous faire esprouver comment il sauve les affligez." —
.Fr.
fta387
"Par ta vertu." — Note, Fr. marg. "That is, by thy
power."
fta388
Cuneum. A battalion or company of foot drawn up in the form of a wedge, the
better to break the enemies'
ranks.
fta389
The last clause, By my God have I leaped over a wall, is rendered by the
Chaldee, "I will subdue fortified towers." Hammond renders it, "By my God I have
taken a fort." In support of this view, he observes that the word
rwç,
shur, from
rwç,
shor, to look, signifies both a wall, from which to observe the
approach of the enemy, and a watch-tower and fort; that if we take
rwç,
shur, as meaning a wall, the verb
gld,
dalag, will be rightly rendered to leap over; but if
rwç,
shur, means a fort, then the verb will mean to seize on it suddenly, and
will therefore be best translated to take
it.
fta390
"Qui se forgent a leur fantasie des dieux qui soyent leurs protecteurs et
patrons." — Fr. "Who, according to their own fancy, make for
themselves gods to be their protectors and
patrons."
fta391
"Faisant, ascavoir, me donnant legerete de pieds." — Note, Fr. marg.
"Making, namely, giving me swiftness of
feet."
fta392
"It should be brass, and not steel. A bow of steel,"
says Dr Adam Clarke, "is out of the question. In the days of David, it is
not likely that the method of making steel was known. The method of
making brass out of copper was known at a very early period of the
world; and the ancients had the art of hardening it, so as to work it
into the most efficient swords." Horsley reads, "Thou hast made my arms like a
brazen bow." This is also the reading of the Septuagint, Vulgate, Jerome, and
all the versions. But the reading of Calvin, which is that of our English
version, seems preferable, and is more expressive. To bend a strong bow was
anciently considered a proof of great strength, much more to compress it so as
to break it. To bend a bow of brass is still more expressive, and still
more so to do it by the arms without requiring the assistance of the
foot, which was then usually employed in making that
effort.
fta393
"To be well girt was to be well armed in the Greek and Latin
idioms, as well as in the Hebrew." — Dr
Geddes.
fta394
In the French version it is, "Tu les as desfruits;" — "Thou hast destroyed
them."
fta395
"Comme tous prests a nous mettre le cousteau sur la gorge." —
Fr.
fta396
"Qui est jette par le vent." —
Fr.
fta397
"Si tost que le bruit de mon nom viendra a leurs aureilles." — Note,
Fr. marg. "That is, as soon as the fame of my name reaches their
ears."
fta398
"Les peuples estranges." — Note, Fr. marg. "That is, strange
peoples, or foreign
nations."
fta399
"Feront semblant d'estre des miens s'humilians de crainte." — Note, Fr.
marg. "That is, shall feign to be my servants, [or submission to me,]
humbling themselves through
fear."
fta400
"C'est a dire au dedans de son royaume qui est l'Eglise." —
Fr.
fta401
The Syriac version reads, "They shall submit themselves to me;" meaning a
forced, and so a feigned and hypocritical
subjection.
fta402
The Hebrew word
grj,
charag, signifies both to be moved and to tremble, and
combining both ideas, to move fearfully. The last appears to be the view
which Calvin attaches to the word. "Fear shall cause them to be afraid, and come
forth of their secret holes and holds, to seek pardon." — Note,
Bassandyne's Bible. Walford reads,
"The sons of the
stranger lose their
strength;
Through
alarm they quit their strongholds.
Street reads,
"Foreign nations
are confounded,
and
they shudder within their fortresses."
fta403
"Ou, le Seigneur vit." — Fr. marg. "Or, Jehovah
lives."
fta404
"Celuy qui me donne force." — Note, Fr. marg. "That is, he who
giveth me
strength."
fta405
"Ainsi ce seroit un mot tendant a lour Dieu et convenable a un cantique de
triomphe." —
Fr.
fta406
"L'entour du ciel et de l'air." — Note, Fr. marg. "That is, the
cope or vault of the heaven and of the air." Bishop Mant reads also expanse,
which he considers more correct than firmament. "The latter word,"
says he, "is adopted from the Greek version; but the Hebrew word is derived from
a verb, signifying to spread abroad, stretch forth, extend, expand. The
proper rendering therefore is, 'expanse,' agreeably to other passages of
Scripture which speak of the Creator as stretching out the heavens as a
curtain, and spreading them out as a tent to dwell in." (See
<19A402>Psalm
104:2;
<234022>Isaiah
40:22.) "The expanse of heaven is a frequent phrase with Milton, as with other
poets."
fta407
"Un jour desgorge propos a l'autre jour, et la nuict declare science a l'autre
nuict." — Fr. "One day uttereth speech to another day, and the
night declares knowledge to another
night.
fta408
Dr Geddes has remarked, in reference to this psalm, that "no poem ever contained
a finer argument against Atheism, nor one better
expressed."
fta409
Both Calvin and the translators of our English version appear to have followed
the Septuagint and Vulgate versions in inserting the word where, which is
not in the Hebrew
text.
fta410
"C'est as avoir ces mots, Lequel, Laquelle, etc., comme yci Il n'y a langage, il
n'y a paroles esquelles la voix de ceux ne soit ouye." —
Fr.
fta411
ylb,
beli, commonly signifies not; but it is also often used for all
sort of exclusive particles, without, besides, unless. Hence Grotius
renders it here without. As,
lb
bal, means in Arabic but, and as the Arabic is just a dialect of
the Hebrew, Hammond concludes that this may have been its meaning among the
Jews; and therefore proposes to render the verse thus:— "Not speech, nor
words, but, or notwithstanding,
[ylb,
beli, ] their voice is, or has been
heard."
fta412
"Et se fait ouir en totals endroits." —
Fr.
fta413
The reading in the English Geneva Bible is, "Their line is gone forth through
all the earth, and their words unto the ends of the world." The marginal note in
explanation of this is, "The heavens are as a line of great capital letters to
show unto us God's
glory."
fta414
Paul reads, "their sound," quoting from the Septuagint, the version of the Old
Testament then chiefly used, and it employs here the word
fqo>ggov.
fta415
"Quasi stadia." — Lat. "Comme des lieues ordonnees dedans les
quelles elles font leurs courses." —
Fr.
fta416
"Aucuns l'entendent de sa chaleur vegetative, qu'on appelle, c'est dire par
laquelle ces choses basses ont vigueur, sont maintenues, et prenent
accrossement." —
Fr.
fta417
Here our author uses Dominus, but in the Hebrew text it is
hwhy,
Yehovah.
fta418
In Tyndale's Bible the reading is, "And giveth wisdom even unto babes." Babes
is the word employed in most of the
versions.
fta419
In the Hebrew text it is
hwhy,
Yehovah.
fta420
"Apres lesquelles les hommes se tourmentent en vain." —
Fr.
fta421
"Et ce qui distille des rais de miel." —
Fr.
fta422
"Lequel les Latins ont nomm, Aurum obryzum." —
Fr.
fta423
The rendering of the Septuagint is,
liqon
timion , precious stone; and in
<199127>Psalm
119:127, they translate the same Hebrew word,
topazion,
a topaz, which is a precious stone. This last Greek word, according to
Hesychius, is derived from the Hebrew word
zp,
paz.
fta424
The word is evidently used for fine gold in
<192103>Psalm
21:3, and
<182817>Job
28:17.
fta425
Or to consolidate:and hence
zp,
paz, means solid gold, or gold "well purified" for the more
it is purified, it is the more solid, and consequently of greater weight and
value.
fta426
"Veu qu'en commandant elle nous espouante, a cause que nous deraillons tous en
l'observation d'icelle?" —
Fr.
fta427
"Ses fautes." — Fr. "His faults." "Erreurs ou
ignorances." — Fr. marg. "Errors or
ignorances."
fta428
The word which our author uses denotes literally arrogances or
proudnesses; and this is also the literal rendering of the Hebrew word
here used. Calvin has the following note on the margin of the French version,
explanatory of arrogances, "Pechez commis par contumace et rebellion."
—
Fr.
fta429
From much wickedness. This translation conveys the precise meaning of
what David intended. He was afraid of incurring accumulated guilt. In our
English translation it is "the great transgression," on which Walford remarks,
"The insertion of the definite article 'the' is not authorised by the original,
and leads to a supposition which is incorrect, that some definite crime, such as
'the sin against the Holy Ghost,' is
intended."
fta430
"Dont a bon droict toutes pechez ausquels les hommes se laschent la bride,
pource qu'ils ne sentent pas abon escient le real qui y est, et sont deceus par
les allechemens de la chair, sont nommez du mot Hebrie a duquel David use yci
qui signifie Fautes ou Ignorances." —
Fr.
fta431
"Il se trouvera en nous un tel abysme de pechez, qu'il n'y aura no fond ne rive,
comme on dit." —
Fr.
fta432
"Cela ne diminue en rien l'absurdite de ce beau decret." —
Fr.
fta433
That is, known and evident to the person committing them. He sins against
knowledge.
fta434
"Et de le il nous convient recueiller, ce que jay dit, que sous a figure d'un
regne temporel nous est descrie un gouvernement bien plus excellent." —
Fr.
fta435
As the people of Israel here unite in prayer with and for the monarch of Israel,
whom we may picture to our minds as repairing to the tabernacle to offer
sacrifices, where this animated ode was sung by the priests and
people.
fta436
"Si non qu'il marche derant, et nous conduise a Dieu." —
Fr.
fta437
That is, May he accept it! The best and fattest of the flocks and herds were,
according to the Mosaic injunction, to be offered to God, and were consequently
the sacrifices he most approved
of.
fta438
Meaning, "We will rejoice in thy salvation, and in the name of our God will we
set up our
banners."
fta439
"Ou A puissances le salut de sa dextre." — Fr. marg. "In
mightiness the salvation of his right hand." The rendering which Horsley gives
is this:"In powers or in strengths, salvation of his right hand" and he views
this clause as a complete sentence by itself. He explains it thus:— "In
situations of power and strength, whatever a man's natural means of deliverance
may be, his preservation must be the work of God's right hand." "This seems,"
says he, "to be the best exposition of this line, which is a clause by itself,
not a part of the preceding sentence;
[çy
is a noun substantive, the subject of the verb substantive understood. The
chariots and horses mentioned in the next verse are expository of
trrg
in this line, and all that follows of this psalm is an amplification of his
general
sentiment."
fta440
In the Hebrew text there is here an ellipsis, the reading being, "Some in
chariots, and some in horses" etc. All the ancient versions read the words as
they are in the Hebrew text, without supplying any verb. Calvin does the same in
his Latin version; but in the French he supplies the verb "Se foyent," "trust,"
the same supplement as that which is made in our English
version.
fta441
Different from "the sanctuary" mentioned in verse
second.
fta442
This is the reading of the Septuagint. Its words are,
Kurie swson ton
basilea. The reading of the Vulgate is the same.
Calvin's rendering, which is also that of our English version, agrees with the
masoretical punctuation; but the Septuagint has followed a different
pointing.
fta443
"What was anticipated in the preceding psalm, the present poem appears to
celebrate as having been achieved." — Drake's Harp of
Judah.
fta444
The Hebrew word is
zp,
paz, denoting fine gold, the purest gold, the same word which is used in
<191910>Psalm
19:10.
fta445
Reading "blessings of goodness;" that is, the best or most excellent
blessings.
fta446
Splendour and beauty. "Parkhurst observes, that the two words thus translated
are often joined in Scripture. The former seems to denote 'the splendor
or glory itself; the latter the ornament, beauty, or
majesty, resulting from that glory." — Bishop
Mant.
fta447
"Que la grace de Dieu se monstre favorable envers leur Roy." —
Fr.
fta448
Walford reads this clause — "Thou hast made him glad with the joy of thy
presence."
fta449
This is rendered according to the pointing in the French version. According to
the pointing in the Latin version, Jehovah is joined to the preceding
clause thus:— "In the time of thy anger, O
Jehovah!"
fta450
French and Skinner's translation of these words is the same, and so also is that
of Rogers. This last author observes, "The common interpretation, Thou shalt
make them like a fiery oven, etc., is not very intelligible. I consider
rwtk
as put by ellipsis for
rwntbk
Thou shalt place them as it were [in] a furnace of fire." —
(Rogers' Book of Psalms, in Hebrew, metrically arranged, vol. 2:p. 178.)
Poole takes the same view. Calvin, however, in his French version, gives a
translation much the same as that of our English version:"Tu les rendras comme
une fournaise de feu en temps de ta cholere." "Thou shalt make them like a
furnace of fire, in the time of thy anger." This is exactly the rendering of
Horsley, in which he is followed by Walford. "It describes," says the learned
prelate, "the smoke of the Messiah's enemies perishing by fire, ascending like
the smoke of a furnace. 'The smoke of their torment shall ascend for ever and
ever.'" "How awfully grand," says Bishop Mant, "is that description of the ruins
of the cities of the plain, as the prospect struck on Abraham's eye on the fatal
morning of their destruction:'And he looked toward Sodom and Gomorrah, and
toward all the land of the plain, and beheld, and lo! the smoke of the country
went up as the smoke of a
furnace.'"
fta451
The allusion is to the fabulous giants of heathen mythology, who waged war
against
heaven.
fta452
"Mais qu'il le fait mesme regorger au sein des enfans d'iceux." —
Fr. See
<236506>Isaiah
65:6,
7.
fta453
"Ou, ont decliner." — Fr. , Or, have turned
aside."
fta454
This verse explains the reason why they could not accomplish what they had
devised.
fta455
"Pour icello empescher et comme engloutir." —
Fr.
fta456
Kimchi and others read, "Thou wilt put them into a corner;" which has been
understood in this sense, "Thou wilt thrust them into a corner, and then direct
thine arrows against their faces." — See Poole's Synopsis
Criticorum.
fta457
This is the view taken by Ainsworth, Castellio, Cocceius, Diodati, Dathe,
Horsley, and Fry. Horsley translates the verse thus:—
"Truly thou shalt
make them a butt for thine
arrows;
Thou shalt
take a steady aim against them."
"I take," says he,
"°nwk,
[the word which he translates a steady aim,] to be a technical
term of archery, to express the act of taking aim at a particular object." In
our English version it is, Therefore thou shalt make them turn their backs." In
defense of this sense of
µkç,
shekem, see Merrick's Annotations. Gesenius takes the word in the
same sense. Literally, "thy
bow-string."
fta458
"En toutes les sortes qu'il est possible de penser." — Fr. "In
every way which it is possible to
conceive."
fta459
And this title they say is prefixed to the psalm, because the whole of it is
concerning Christ the morning
star.
fta460
Those who render it strength derive the word from
lya,
eyl, strength, and observe, that the cognate word in verse 20,
ytwlya,
eyaluthi, is rendered by the Septuagint
thn bohqeian
mou, my aid or strength. By the
strength of the morning they understand the dawning of the
day.
fta461
This is the sense in which Lightfoot understands the
words.
fta462
"Mon Dieu, je crie tout le jour." — Fr. "O my God, I cry
all the
day."
fta463
"Ce qu il ne pouvoit faire si non en resistant vivement a la apprehension
contraire." —
Fr.
fta464
"Et de faict, il n'estoit point de si petit courage, que pour quelque real leger
il hurlast ainsi comme une beste brute." — Fr. "The original word
[for roaring] properly denotes the roaring of a lion, and is often
applied to the deep groaning of men in sickness. See among other places,
<193203>Psalm
32:3; 38:9." — Bishop
Mant.
fta465
"Pour crainte de charger Christ de ce blasme." —
Fr.
fta466
In the Hebrew it is, "He rolled [himself] upon God." In the Latin version our
author reads, "Devolvit ad Jehovam;" and in the French, "Il a remis
disent-ils, au Seigneur son a
l'aime."
fta467
"Let him deliver him, let him deliver him. This repetition is also the
rendering adopted by Street, and it is approved by Poole. "The same thing," says
Poole, "is twice repeated, to show both the vehemence of their hatred and their
confidence of success against
him."
fta468
As
bçy,
yashab, not only signifies to inhabit, but also to remain
or continue, (see
<19A213>Psalm
102:13,) Hammond thinks this last is the meaning here, and renders the word,
"But thou remainest or continuest to be holy, O thou, the praises of, or who art
the praises of Israel, that is, the object of all their praises; or more simply,
But thou remainest holy, the praises of
Israel."
fta469
Bishop Horsley reads these words, "All who see me insult [me] with gestures of
derision:" and says, "I can no otherwise render the verb
g[l,
than by this periphrasis. Bishop Mant translates the whole verse
thus,
"All who to
slaughter see me led,
Deride my state
distrest;
They curl
the lip, they shake the
head,
They point the
taunting jest:"
And observes, "The distinctness and colouring of the
prophetic picture here are as striking to the imagination, as the subject is
painful to the
heart."
fta470
"To protrude the lower lip is, in the East, considered a very strong indication
of contempt. Its employment is chiefly confined to the lower orders." —
Illustrated Commentary upon the
Bible.
fta471
hpçb,
besaphah, with the
lip.
fta472
"Qu'il avoit Dieu au ciel pour garent qui s'avoir bien faire la vengence de ses
mesdisans." —
Fr.
fta473
"Qui m'as donne asseurance, lorsque je suchoye les mammelles de ma mere."
— Note, Fr. marg. "That is, thou gavest me confidence whilst I sucked
the breasts of my
mother."
fta474
"Abandonne entre tes mains." — Note, Fr. marg. "That is, left among
thy hands." Poole, applying this to Christ says, "I was like one, forsaken by
his parent, and cast wholly upon thy providence. I had no father upon earth; and
my mother was poor and
helpless."
fta475
"The bull is known to be a fierce animal, and those of Bashan, from its
luxuriant pastures, were uncommonly so." — Dr
Geddes.
fta476
"Ace qu'il luy plaise nous remettre sus, et nous rendre force et vigueur."
—
Fr.
fta477
This word has created much discussion. In the Hebrew Bible, the kethib or
textual reading is,
yrak,
caari, like a lion; the keri, or marginal reading, is
wrak,
caaru, "they pierced," from
hrk,
carah, to cut, dig, or pierce. Both readings are supported by MSS.
There is, however, no ground to doubt that the genuine reading is,
wrak,
caaru. As the Septuagint here reads
wruxan,
they pierced, the translators, doubtless, considered that the correct
reading of the Hebrew text was
wrak,
caaru. The Vulgate, Syriac, Arabic, and Ethiopic, give a similar
rendering. All the Evangelists also quote and apply the passage to the
crucifixion of Christ. Besides, the other reading,
yrak,
caari, as a lion, renders the passage unintelligible. The Chaldee version
has combined both the ideas of pierced and as a lion, reading, "Biting,
as a lion, my hands and my feet." Our author supposes that the text has been
fraudulently corrupted by the Jews, who have intentionally changed
wrak,
caaru, into
yrak,
caari. But there is no necessity for supposing that there has been any
fraud in the case. In the process of transcription, the change might have been
made unintentionally, by the substitution of the letter
y,
yod, for the letter
w,
vau, which it so nearly resembles. Walford observes, "that the present
reading
[yrak,
caari] is quite satisfactory, if it be taken as a participle
plural in reflexive, and be translated, 'Wounders of my hands and my
feet.'"
fta478
"Asgavoir, vie, qui est seule." — Note, Fr. marg. "Namely, my life,
which is
alone."
fta479
"Et me respon, en me sauvant des cornes des licornes." — Fr.
"And answer me, by saving me from the horns of the
Unicorns."
fta480
"Il nous a este faite une demonstration si grossiere, qu'on la pouvoit taster,
au doigt." — Fr. "There has been given us a demonstration so
palpable, that it might be touched with the
finger.
fta481
That is, my life, which is dear and precious to
me.
fta482
"La vie esseulee." — Fr. "Life deserted or left
alone."
fta483
"Disant." —
Fr.
fta484
The second part of the psalm here commences. There is a transition from language
of the deepest anguish to that of exalted joy and gratitude. The suffering
Messiah here contemplates the blessed results of his
sufferings.
fta485
It is "praise God," both in the Latin and French versions; but the train of
thought seems to require that it should be "fear
God."
fta486
"Ate laus mea." — Lat. "Ma louange proviendra de toy."
— Fr. "Ou, ma louange sera de toy." — Ft. marg.
"Or, my praise shall be of
thee."
fta487
As it is not said what they should remember, some commentators explain it
thus:That they shall remember, with penitence, their sins; and, particularly,
their idolatry. Others, that they shall remember the goodness and mercy of God,
through Christ, to a lost world. And others, that they shall remember God whom
they had forgotten, worshipping, instead of him, wood and stones. This last
seems to be the view to which Calvin
refers.
fta488
The reason why the Gentiles shall remember, and turn to the
Lord.
fta489
"Et encores qu'ils les ayent en main, ils ne pourront prendre plaisir in les
savourer." —
Fr.
fta490
The Hebrew word here is
ynda,
Adonai.
fta491
The Hebrew word Adonai is derived from a verb which signifies to
direct, rule, judge; and it therefore signifies director, ruler,
judge.
fta492
"Lesquels ayans le vent a gre, comme on dit." — Fr. "Who having the
wind to their mind, as we
say."
fta493
"Le Seigneur est mon pasteur, porquoy je n'auray faute de rien."
— Fr. "The Lord is my shepherd, therefore I shall not want
any
thing."
fta494
"Il me mene aux eaux quoyes." — Fr. "He leadeth me to the quiet [or
peaceful]
waters."
fta495
"Qui se contiene en la crainte de Dieu se selon la modestie et temperance qui
seroit requise." —
Fr.
fta496
"Mais rememorant les benefices qu'il repoit de luy." —
Fr.
fta497
"Que sa seule providence est suffisante pour nous administrer toutes nos
necessitez." —
Fr.
fta498
Walford adopts and defends this view. His reading is, "He leadeth me in straight
paths." "This version," says he, "may perhaps prove not altogether agreeable to
the feelings of the reader in consequence of his being accustomed to a different
expression in the English Bible. But the consistency of the imagery requires the
alteration; as otherwise, we have an incongruous mixture of physical and moral
figures. A careful shepherd leads his sheep to verdant pastures, conducts them
near peaceful waters, affords them the means of refreshment when wearied, and
guides them away from r ugged and tortuous paths to such as are direct and
easy."
fta499
"Celuy qui est arme d'une constance invincible pour resister a toutes les
fraycurs qui penvent survenir." —
Fr.
fta500
"Car s'il n'y eust point en de crainte, a quel propos desireroit il la presence
de Dieu?" —
Fr.
fta501
"The original, twmlx
aynk, is very emphatic, 'In or through the valley
of death-shade.' This expression seems to denote imminent danger,
(<240206>Jeremiah
2:6,) sore affliction,
(<194419>Psalm
44:19,) fear and terror,
(<19A710>Psalm
107:10, 14;
<182417>Job
24:17,) and dreadful darkness,
(<181021>Job
10:21, 22.) — Morison's Commentary on the
Psalms.
fta502
"Si non qu'eslevans la nos yeux et les y ayans fichez, nons foullions aux pieds
craintes et espouantemens." —
Fr.
fta503
"Son contenu." — Note, Fr. marg. "That is, its
contents."
fta504
"Qu'adonc ils entrerent en ferme et paisible possession de l'honneur que Dieu
leur a fait par dessus les autres nations." —
Fr.
fta505
"Car a quelle fin font produits des fruits de tant de sortes, et en telle
abondance, et qu'il y a tant de vieux de plaisance, si non pour l'usage et
commodite des hommes ?" —
Fr.
fta506
"C'est contre la nature des deux elemens." —
Fr.
fta507
"Il n'en fait yci que bien petite mention et comme en passant." —
Fr. "He here only slightly adverts to this subject, and as it were in
passing."
fta508
"Comme nous s'avons que c'est leur coustume de s'eslever par orgueil a cause des
titres qu'ils prenent sans avoir l'effect, se contentans de porter seulement les
marques par dehors." —
Fr.
fta509
"Par ainsi il est yci requis des serviteurs de Dieu, que quand ils jurent, ce
soit avec reverence et en bonne conscience." —
Fr.
fta510
The textual reading is
wçpn,
naphshiv, his soul; the marginal reading is
wçpn,
naphshi, my soul. But the textual reading, from its clearness and
simplicity, is, without doubt, the correct one. "The points," says Hammond,
"direct to render
tçpn
my soul, and so the interlinear reads anilmain roeare, my soul or
life, as if it were making God the speaker of this verse, and then it is
God's life or soul. But the text writing
w
not
y,
and the context agreeing with it, the punctuation must, in reason, give place;
and, accordingly, all the ancient interpreters appear to have read it
wçpn,
his soul, meaning by that his own soul, or the soul of the
swearer."
fta511
"Asfavoir, Jacob." — Fr. "Namely,
Jacob."
fta512
"Lequel toutesfois ils fuyent par leurs destours et faux semblans." —
Fr.
fta513
He first says, "That seek him," and next, "That seek thy
face."
fta514
The Septuagint reads, Arate
pu>la<v oiJ a]rcontev uJmw~n, which may be
rendered, "Ye princes, lift up your gates." The reading of the Vulgate is
similar:"Attollite portas principes vestras" and so is that of the Arabic and
Ethiopic. But that rendering, as Calvin justly Observes, inadmissible; for in
the Hebrew text, the affix
µk,
kem, your, is joined to
yçar,
roshey, heads, and not to
µyr[ç,
shearim, gates. Although, however the reading of the Septuagint may be
translated as above, "Ye princes, lift up your gates," Hammond thinks it more
probable, that the translators intended
oiJ a]rcontev
uJmw~n, your princes, to represent
µkyçar,
rashekem, as myertin, by mistake, the construction of the
sentence, so your heads, as to give this reading, "Your heads, or
princes, lift up the gates, instead of, "Ye gates, lift up your
heads."
fta515
"Par lesquels ils introduissent Christ frappant a la porte pour entrer les
enfers." —
Fr.
fta516
"Qui comme sacrileges execrables tienent pour jeu de la corrompre et falsifier
en ceste sorte." —
Fr.
fta517
"Que tons ceux qui s'attendant a toy ne soyent point confus." —
Fr.
fta518
"Et sans estre trouble d'impatience." —
Fr.
fta519
"Et use de douceur envers eux." —
Fr.
fta520
"Redevable de tant plus grande condemnation." —
Fr.
fta521
"Humbles." — Fr.
"Humble."
fta522
"Quel soin il ha de ses enfans." —
Fr.
fta523
"Ou, secret." — Fr. "Or,
secret."
fta524
"Les gachans lequel prendre." —
Fr.
fta525
Horsley refers the words to the blessedness of a future state. He reads, "His
soul shall rest in bliss;" and has the following note:—
"°ylt,
pernoctavit. The words seem to allude to the happy state of the good
man's departed soul, while his posterity prosper in the present world." That is,
the land of Canaan, which God promised to perpetuate to the obedient Israelites
and their posterity. "It was promised and given," says Poole, "as an earnest of
the whole covenant of grace and all his promises, and, therefore, is
synecdochically put for all of them. The sense is, his seed shall be
blessed."
fta526
"Mon souci et travail." — Fr. marg. "My care and
labor."
fta527
"C'est, cruelle." — Note, Fr. marg. "That is,
cruel."
fta528
The Hebrew word here used is
dyjy,
yachid, unus, one, which is not infrequently put, as in this place, for a
solitary and desolate person. David was now deserted, desolate,
and destitute of all help. The word is used in the same sense in
<192220>Psalm
22:20, and
35:17.
fta529
"Cependant que nos pechez demeurent c'est a dire iusaues a ce qu'il les
pardonne." —
Fr.
fta530
The Hebrew words literally rendered are, "With hatred of
violence."
fta531
Hammond renders the original word, "Plead for, or defend me;" and Green,
"Vindicate me." The word denotes both the act of a judge and of an advocate.
This last view agrees very well with the scope of the psalm, which, from the
strong assertions of innocence with which it abounds, appears to have been
written by David in vindication of himself from various crimes which had been
alleged against him; although the particular events to which it refers are not
indicated.
fta532
The primary signification of the Hebrew word
ãrx,
tsaraph is to try as the refiner tries his gold by dissolving and melting
it, In this sense it is used in
<196610>Psalm
66:10, "Thou hast tried us as silver is
tried."
fta533
Horsley renders the word, "Those who seek concealment." In like manner, the
Chaldee paraphrases it, "They that hide themselves that they may do
evil."
fta534
"Innocence." — Fr.
marg
fta535
The washing of the hands in solemn protestation of innocence, on particular
occasions, was enjoined by the Mosaic ritual, and was common among the Jews,
<052106>Deuteronomy
21:6, 7. It was in common use among them before prayer; and the priests, in
particular, were not to perform any sacred office in the sanctuary until they
had poured water from the laver, which was set in the temple for that purpose,
and washed their hands,
<024030>Exodus
40:30-33.
fta536
Mudge conjectures that the expression, encompass, is probably taken from
the custom of forming a ring round the altar at the time of worship. And Goodwyn
informs us, that at the feast of tabernacles the people, on the seventh day,
encompassed the altar seven times, carrying branches of palm trees in their
hands in remembrance of the overthrow of Jericho, and singing hosannas.
— Moses and Aaron, p. 132. David, however, may refer to the
practice of the priests, who, when they offered sacrifices, went round about the
altar; and his meaning may simply be, that as the priests first washed their
hands, and then performed their sacred office at the altar; so he deeply felt
the necessity of personal purity, in order to his engaging in the service of
God.
fta537
The habitation of thy house — a Hebraism for the house which
thou inhabitest. This name was given to the tabernacle,
<090229>1
Samuel 2:29, 32, and afterwards to Solomon's temple,
<143615>2
Chronicles
36:15.
fta538
Hebrew:— men of blood. See Psalm
5:7.
fta539
Namely
°y[,
ayin.
fta540
The word which it employs is
ejupre>rpeia.
fta541
"C'est, en lieu plain et droict; c'est a dire, seur." — Fr.
marg. "That is, in a plain and straight; that is to say, sure
place."
fta542
"Qu'elle soit celebree publiquement; afin qu'elle serve d'exempleaux autres pour
se confermer en Dieu." —
Fr.
fta543
The rendering of the learned Castellio is, "Si invadant — offensuri sunt
atque casuri;" — "If they invade me they shall stumble and fall.
The Hebrew verbs for "stumble" and
"fall"
fta544
French and Skinner read, "to devour my flesh;" and observe, that "this image is
taken from a wild beast. Compare
<190307>Psalm
3:7, and
<192213>Psalm
22:13."
fta545
"C'est, d'adversite." — Note, Fr. marg. "That is, of
adversity."
fta546
"Sous le regne de Christ." —
Fr.
fta547
"Sacrificia jubili." — Lat. "Sacrifice de triomphe." —
Fr. Ainsworth reads, "Sacrifices of shouting, or of triumph, of joyful
sounding and alarm." "This," says he, "hath respect to the law which appointed
over the sacrifices trumpets to be sounded,
<041010>Numbers
10:10, whose chiefest, most loud, joyful, and triumphant sound was called
trughnah, [or
h[wrt,
truah, the word here used,] 'triumph,' 'alarm,' or 'jubilation,'
<041005>Numbers
10:5-7."
fta548
"Ou dit de toy." — Fr. marg. "Or said of or concerning
thee."
fta549
"Pourtant." —
Fr.
fta550
Calvin's meaning appears to be this:- God has given us in his word that gracious
command or invitation, "Seek ye my face," inviting us to seek him by prayer and
the other exercises of religion. Now, when David says, "My heart said to
thee, Seek ye my face," he means that his heart reminded God of his command or
invitation; and by this he encouraged himself to seek God's face, which he
expresses his resolution to do in the following clause, "Thy face, O
Jehovah! will I
seek."
fta551
"C'est, plaisir." — Fr. marg. "That is, will or
pleasure."
fta552
"En la sauvegarde et protection de Dieu." —
Fr.
fta553
Hammond renders the words "breathers or speakers of injury or rapine;
smj,
signifying injury or rapine, and
jwp,
speak." Ainsworth reads, "He that breatheth or puffeth out violent
wrong.
fta554
"De glaives et autre tels efforts." — Fr. "From the sword and other
such
weapons."
fta555
In the Hebrew this verse is elliptical, as Calvin here translates it. In the
French version he supplies the ellipsis, by adding to the end of the verse the
words, "C'estoit fait de moy," "I had perished." In our English version, the
words, "I had fainted," are introduced as a supplement, in the beginning of the
verse. Both the supplement of Calvin, and that of our English version, which are
substantially the same, doubtless explain the meaning of the passage; but they
destroy the elegant abrupt form of the expression employed by the Psalmist, who
breaks off in the middle of his discourse without completing the sentence,
although what he meant to say is very evident. "Unless I had believed to see the
goodness of the Lord in the land of the living, What! what, alas! should have
become of me!" - Dr Adam Clarke. As, however,
alwl,
lulë, which is rendered unless, is omitted by the ancient
versions and several MSS., some consider it an interpolation, and translate the
verse without an ellipsis. Thus Walford renders it, "I have believed that I
shall behold the goodness of Jehovah in the land of the
living."
fta556
"A ce que sa foy ne soit jamais esbranier" — Fr. "That his faith
might never be
shaken."
fta557
Calvin here seems to use the Septuagint version. What he renders in the text,
"Be of good courage," is rendered by the Septuagint,
ajndri>zou
"Be manly, or act like a man." The Vulgate reads, "vinliter a,,e," following the
Septuagint, as it generally does. Paul uses the same phraseology in
<461613>1
Corinthians 16:13. "These," says Ainsworth, "are the words of encouragement
against remissness, fear, faintness of heart, or other
infirmities."
fta558
rybd,
debir, is derived from
rbd,
dabar, to
speak.
fta559
The verb
°çm,
mashak, here rendered draw, "signifies," as Hammond observes,
"both to draw and apprehend," and may "be best rendered here, Seize not on
me, as he that seizeth on any to carry or drag him to execution. The
Septuagint, after having literally rendered the Hebrew by
Mh< sunelku>sh|v thn
yuch>n mou, draw not my soul together with,
etc., adds Ki>an mh<
sunapole>sh|v me etc., and destroy me
not together with, etc. Calvin here evidently takes the same view; though he
does not express it in the form of
criticism.
fta560
"Que ceste finesse de renard, quand on use de beaux semblans pour avoir occasion
de nuire." —
Fr.
fta561
"Voulant devorer les agneaux." —
Fr.
fta562
"Conduisant et gouvernant toutes choses." —
Fr.
fta563
"C'estoyent certains peuples ou escrimeurs qui souloyent ainsi comme etre. Voyez
les Chiliades d'Erasme." — Note, Fr. marg. "These were certain
people or fencers, who were wont to fight in this manner. See the Chiliades of
Erasmus."
fta564
"He will destroy them, and not build them
up."
fta565
"Que tout la prospetite qu'ils se souhaitent soit a cause du peuple. —
Fr. "That all the prosperity they desire should be for the sake of the
people."
fta566
"Veu que la plus grand part rejette et desdaigne de porter le joug de Christ."
—
Fr.
fta567
"Qu'il n'en est pas digne." — Fr. "That he is not worthy of
it."
fta568
"C'est, digne de son nom." — Note, Fr. Marg. "That is, worthy of
his
name."
fta569
The entire reading of the verse in the Septuagint is,
"Ene>gkate tw|~ Kuri>w|
uJioi< Qeou~ ene>gkate tw|~ Kuri>w| uJiou<v
kriw~n" "Bring to the Lord, ye sons of God,
bring to the Lord young rams." Thus the LXX, as is not unusual in other places,
render the words for "Ye sons of the mighty" twice; first, in the vocative case,
addressing them, Uioi<
Qeou, Ye sons of God, and then in the
accusative case, uJiou<v
kriw~n, young rams, being apparently
doubtful which was the correct rendering, and, therefore, putting down both. The
Vulgate, Arabic, and Ethiopic, exactly follow them. Jerome also reads, "Afferte
Domino filios arietum;" although he does not give a double translation of the
original words. But the correct rendering, we have no doubt, is, "Ye sons of the
mighty;" which is just a Hebrew idiomatic expression for "Ye mighty ones," or,
"Ye princes;" and to them the inspired writer addresses an invitation to
acknowledge and worship God from the manifestation of his majesty and power in
the wonders of
nature.
fta570
The Hebrew word which Calvin renders "mighty," is
µyla,
elym, a word which means gods. The Hebrew word
µylya,
eylim, which means rams, nearly resembles it, having only an
additional
y,
yod, and this letter is often cut off in
nouns.
fta571
The Chaldee paraphrases it thus:— "The assembly of angels, sons of God,"
meaning by God
angels.
fta572
This translation conveys a somewhat different meaning from that of our English
version; but it is supported by several critics. Green reads, "In his beautiful
sanctuary;" and Fry, "Worship Jehovah with holy reverence," or, "Worship Jehovah
in the glorious places of the sanctuary." "Where the Hebrews read
trdhb"
says Hammond, "in the glory or beauty of holiness, from
rdh,
to honor, or beautify, the LXX. read,
ejn aujlh~| aJgi>a|
aujtou, in his holy court, as if it were
from, "penetrale, thalamus, area, a closet, a marriage-chamber, a
court; and so the Latin and Syriac follow them, and the Arabic, in his "holy
habitation."
fta573
Dr Francis' Translation of
Horace.
fta574
"Qui contraignent les barbares et gens esbestez sentir qu'il y a un Dieu."
— Fr. "Which constrain the rude and insensible to feel that there
is a
God."
fta575
That is, the wilderness of Zin,
<043308>Numbers
33:86. It is described in
<050119>Deuteronomy
1:19, as the "great and terrible wilderness." The Israelites passed through this
wilderness in their way from Egypt to the promised land,
<041327>Numbers
13:27. It received its name from the city of Kadesh, by which it lay,
<042001>Numbers
20:1,
16.
fta576
The Sidonians applied to Hermon the name of Sirion,
<050309>Deuteronomy
3:9.
fta577
"D'approcher de Dieu." —
Fr.
fta578
"Fait avortir." — Fr. "To miscarry or prove
abortive."
fta579
Bishop Lowth reads, "Maketh the oaks to tremble," (Lectures on Hebrew Poetry,
vol. 2:p.253,) in which he is followed by Dimock, Green, Seeker, Horsley, Fry,
and others. But Dathe, Berlin, De Rossi, Dr Adam Clarke, Rogers, etc., adhere to
the common interpretation, in which they are supported by all the ancient
versions, except the Syriac, which seems to favor the view of Lowth. A main
argument of Lowth and those who follow him in support of his rendering is, that
the common translation, which supposes the passage to relate to the hinds
bring forth their young, agrees very little with the rest of the imagery
either in nature or dignity; whereas the oak struck with lightning, is a far
nobler image, and one which falls in more naturally with the scattering of a
forest's foliage under the action of a storm. But Rogers justly observes, that
"we are not warranted in altering the Hebrew text, because the oriental imagery
which we meet with does not correspond with our ideas of poetical beauty and
grandeur," (Book of Psalms in Hebrew, metrically arranged, vol. it. p. 186.)
With respect to the sense conveyed by the common reading, it may be observed,
that birds bring forth their young with great difficulty and pain, bowing
themselves, bruising their young ones, and casting out their sorrows,
(<183904>Job
39:4, 6;) and it therefore heightens the description given of the terrific
character of the thunder-storm, when the thunder, which is here called the voice
of God, is represented as causing, through the terror which it inspires, the
hinds in their pregnant state prematurely to drop their young; although,
according to our ideas of poetical imagery, this may not accord so well with the
other images in the passage nor appear so beautiful and sublime as the image of
the oaks trembling at the voice of
Jehovah.
fta580
"Etant que touche la gloire de Dieu." —
Fr.
fta581
"Pour le craindre et servir comme il appartient." —
Fr.
fta582
"Par le deluge." — Fr. This is the view taken of the passage by the
ancient versions. "God," says the Chaldee, "in the generation of the deluge sat
in judgment." The Septuagint reads, "God shall make the deluge to be inhabited,"
or "make the world habitable after it"; the Syriac, "God called back the
deluge;" and the Arabic, "God restrained the deluge." Ainsworth reads, "Jehovah
sat at the flood," and explains it as meaning "Noah's
flood."
fta583
"Que c'est luy seul qui gouverne toutes choses en tout temps." —
Fr.
fta584
"Se recognoissans estrangers, et que c'estoit luy qui les y logeoit et leur
bailloit demeurance." —
Fr.
fta585
"Quand l'homme allegoit qu'il n'avoit encores dedid sa maison." —
Fr.
fta586
Ainsworth reads, "Thou hast drawn up me," which he explains to mean, "drawn as
out of a pit of waters;" "for," says he, "this word is used for 'drawing of
waters,'
<020216>Exodus
2:16; waters signifying troubles."
"ybtyld,
Thou hast drawn me up as it were out of a dungeon." — Rogers' Book
of-Psalms.
fta587
"D'entre ceux que descendent." —
Fr.
fta588
"Ou chantez afin qu'il soit memoire." — Fr. marg. "Or sing, that he
may be
remembered."
fta589
Literally, "There is but a moment in his anger;" and this is also the literal
rendering of the
Hebrew.
fta590
"C'est, un long temps." — Note, Fr. marg. "That is, a long
time."
fta591
rkzl,
lezeker, at the
memorial.
fta592
"Et de faict, c'est un poinct tout resolu." —
Fr.
fta593
"C'est, en ma prosperite." — Note, Fr. marg. "That is, in my
prosperity."
fta594
Our author here uses Dominus; but in the Hebrew it is
hwhy,
Yehovah
fta595
The Septuagint has "Eijv
diaqora>n" — to corruption. The
rendering of Jerome is the same, "In
corruptionem."
fta596
"Qu'ils se mignardent en leur prosperite, et par maniere de dire, croupessent
sur leur fumier. —
Fr.
fta597
This custom was not confined to the Israelites. It was practiced also among the
heathen nations. An instance of this is recorded in
<320305>Jonah
3:5-8. It appears from Plutarch, that this was also sometimes practiced among
the Greeks. The Hebrew word for sackcloth is
qç,
sak; and it is remarkable that the word sak exists in various
languages, denoting the same thing. It shows the unaffected character of real
sorrow, leading men to neglect the adorning of their persons, when we find
several nations manifesting it by wearing the same dismal garb, and employing a
word of the same sound to express
it.
fta598
"Ne monstrant qu'abjection et desplaisanee d'eux-mesmes. —
Fr.
fta599
"Ou, adresse moy et conduy." — Fr. marg. "Or, do thou direct
and guide
me."
fta600
"Feroit une antithese entre ces deux choses, Estre en destresse pour un temps,
et demeurer confus." —
Fr.
fta601
"Si los hommes regardent a leur dignite." —
Fr.
fta602
Dr Geddes observes, that this is the literal translation of the Hebrew words;
"but," says he, "as negative propositions in Hebrew are often equivalent in
sense to opposite positives, I deemed it better to use an equivalent as more
agreeable to what precerdes and follows." His rendering is, "Rescued me from the
hand of mine
enemy."
fta603
"Se faisans a croire que de leur faict ce ne sera que triomphe." —
Fr.
fta604
Horsley, while his translation is similar to that of Calvin, "Thou hast
delivered me," takes a somewhat different view of the meaning. "Thou hast, i.e.,
Thou most surely wilt. — The thing is as certain as if it were
done."
fta605
Hammond considers "vanities" as referring to the practice of superstitiously
having recourse to auguries and divinations for advice and direction, a practice
which prevailed among the heathen, when they met with any difficulty or danger.
To the responses of augury, they showed the greatest regard; although they were
deceived and disappointed in the confidence which they reposed in them. David
declares that he detested all such practices, and trusted for aid to God alone.
French and Skinner, by lying vanities, understand idols. "Idols,"
says Walford, "are often thus denominated; though the term is not to be confined
to this sense, as all the pursuits of iniquity may be justly comprehended under
it. - Vide
<053221>Deuteronomy
32:21;
<320208>Jonah
2:8."
fta606
"There is a contrast in the expression between the straits to which he had been
confined, and the freedom which was now bestowed upon him." —
Walford.
fta607
"Ou, des grans." — Fr. marg. "Or, of the
great."
fta608
"The word
°w[,"
says Hammond, "as it signifies sin, so it signifies also the punishment
of sin,
<235306>Isaiah
53:6, 11;" and in this last sense this critic here understands it, that it may
be connected with grief and sighing, which are mentioned in the
preceding clause, and may express those miseries which David's sins had brought
upon him.
"[zw"
observes Rogers, "signifies here and in some other places, affliction,
the punishment or consequence of sin; see
<010413>Genesis
4:13;
<092810>1
Samuel 28:10;
<120709>2
Kings 7:9," etc. - Book of Psalms in Hebrew, metrically arranged, vol.
2:p.188. The Septuagint reads, in poverty or affliction, in which
it is followed by the Syriac and
Vulgate.
fta609
"I am become like a broken vessel;" that is, utterly neglected as being
worthless.
fta610
Horsley takes the same view. He reads, "the
mighty."
fta611
"Fearfulness on every side, or terror round about. In Heb.,
magor missabib, which name Jeremiah gave to Pashur the priest, signifying
that he should be a terror to himself and to all his friends;
<242003>Jeremiah
20:3, 4." — Ainsworth. Horsley reads,
"Truly I heard the
angry muttering of the
mighty,
of them that
are the general dread."
On this he has the following
note:"rwgm
bybsm, I take this to be a phrase describing the
mighty, whose malignant threats against him he overheard, as persons universally
dreaded for their power and their
cruelty."
fta612
"C'est, reservee." — Fr. marg. "That is, laid
up."
fta613
"C'est a dire, a cause de leur adoption." —
Fr.
fta614
"Before the sons of men, i.e. openly, so that the world must acknowledge
'there is a reward for the righteous man.' Compare
<195811>Psalm
58:11." — French and
Skinner.
fta615
"Et que quand elle luit sur les fideles, ses rayons sont pour esblouir les yeux
de tous les iniques, et affoiblir leur mains.". —
Fr.
fta616
This is the reading adopted by Walford.
"yskrm,
skr, colligavit:hence 'bands,'
'conspiracies.'"
fta617
"The particle of similitude is wanting in Hebrew, as is not uncommon. The
intention of the Psalmist is evidently to describe by a metaphor his signal
deliverance, as if he had been guarded by invincible fortifications." —
Walford.
fta618
"Ou, perturbation; ou, hastivete." — Fr. marg. "Or,
perturbation; or,
haste."
fta619"Ou,
par excellence." — "Or, excellently." — Fr.
marg.
fta620
"Et recognoistre qu'en icelle ils ont assez de secours." —
Fr.
fta621
Literally, "with
plenty."
fta622
The word
hag,
gaäh, from which
hwag,
gaävah, which we have rendered proudly, is derived, signifies
elatus est, eminuit; and
hwag,
gaävah, "is sometimes taken in a bad sense for pride or
arrogance, as in
<191002>Psalm
10:2; and sometimes in a good sense for splendor, magnificence, strength,
excellence. In the latter sense it is used of God,
<196834>Psalm
68:34, His height, or excellence and strength, are in the clouds."
—
Hammond.
fta623
"Pour lequel nous avons traduit, Donnant instruction." —
Fr.
fta624
Where it is said, "I will instruct thee and teach
thee."
fta625
The translation of this verse in our English Bible is, "When I kept silence, my
bones waxed old through my roaring all the day long;" on which Street observes,
"I must own I do not understand how a man can be said to keep silence who
roars all the day long." Accordingly, instead of When I kept silence,
he reads, While I am lost in thought; observing that, the verb
çrj,
in the Hiphil conjugation, signifies to ponder, to consider, to be deep in
thought." But according to the translation and exposition of Calvin, there
is no inconsistency between the first and the second clause of the verse. To
avoid the apparent contradiction of being at once silent and yet
roaring all the day long, Dr Boothroyd, instead of roaring, reads
pangs.
fta626
"Ou, peine." — Fr. marg. "Or,
punishment."
fta627
"De grandes eaux." — Fr. "Of great
waters."
fta628
In the Septuagint version it is rendered, "In the time of finding favor;" in the
Arabic, "In a time of hearing;" and in the Syriac, "In an acceptable
time."
fta629
"Qu'ils nous faut avoir des advocats au ciel qui prient pour nous." —
Fr.
fta630
"Ou, je guideray de mon oeil." — Fr. marg. "Or, I will guide
thee with mine
eye."
fta631
This verse in the Hebrew is very elliptical and obscure. Hence, besides the
translation of Calvin, which agrees very well with the scope of the passage,
various other translations have been given of it. In our English Bible, the last
clause is rendered, "lest they come near unto thee," that is, to attack thee.
But this is evidently an incorrect translation. This is not the common practice
of these animals, which are timid, and not ferocious; bits and bridles are not
used for the purpose of keeping them away from us, but of subduing, guiding, and
making them subservient to our will; and were this the sense, the figure would
be inappropriate, since the object of the Psalmist is to induce men to approach
God. The clause, therefore, is rendered by many critics, "Or they will not come
nigh unto thee;" that is, they will flee from thee. The Hebrew for this last
phrase is, "There is not a coming to
thee."
fta632
Most commentators consider Jehovah as the person speaking in this verse. Calvin,
however, views David as the speaker. In this opinion he is followed by Walford.
"In
<195113>Psalm
51:13," says this critic, "written about the same time and on the same occasion,
David urges as a reason why God should restore to him the joy of his salvation,
that he might be enabled to teach transgressors his ways, and that sinners might
be converted to him. So in the passage before us, he addresses himself to
sinners, and says, 'I will instruct time, and teach thee the way in which thou
shalt
go.'"
fta633
Fry reads, "Many are the wounds of the refractory;" on which he has the
following note:- "We perceive in this place the exact idea of
jfb,
in its allusion to the restive, disobedient, unyielding, ungovernable mule or
horse. It is opposed to ,, to confide in, to yield to, or succumb,
as the gentle beast fully confides and yields himself to the management of
his
guide."
fta634
"Ou, digne d'estre aimee par les," etc. — Fr. marg. "Or, is
worthy of being loved by
them."
fta635
"Fideles, c'est, fermes et permanentes." — Fr. marg.
"Faithful, that is, firm and
permanent."
fta636
"Et neant moins nous voyons ce que Sainct Paul en determine." —
Fr.
fta637
"C'est, le soufie, le vent." — Note, Fr. marg. "That is, the
breath."
fta638
"Par son simple vouloir et commandement." — Fr. "Simply by his will
and
commandment."
fta639
"Sans aussi y employer beaucoup de temps ou travail." —
Fr.
fta640
In
<010109>Genesis
1:9 we read, "God said, Let the waters under the heavens be gathered together
into one place, and let the dry land appear:and it was so." The Psalmist here
probably has a reference to that passage, as in the 9th verse there is evidently
an imitation of the style in which God is described in the first chapter of
Genesis as performing the work of
creation.
fta641
"Il a commande que si tost qu'il auroit comme prononce le mot, la chose aussi se
trouvast faire." —
Fr.
fta642
The Septuagint here adds a sentence which is not in the Hebrew, namely,
"Kai< ajqetei~ boula<v
ajrco>ntwn"- "And frustrates the counsels of
princes." The Vulgate, Arabic, and Ethiopic, copying from the Septuagint, have
the same addition. But it is not in the Chaldee and Syriac versions, which agree
with our Hebrew Bibles; and from this we are led to conclude that the
translators of the Greek version have added this by way of paraphrase; a liberty
which we find them using in other
places.
fta643
Hebrews To generation and
generation.
fta644
"C'est, sans en excepter un." — Note, Fr. marg, "That is, without a
single
exception."
fta645
"Hebrews est mensonge a salut." — Fr. marg. "Hebrews is a
lie for
safety."
fta646
"Ou, certes." — Fr. marg. "Or,
certainly."
fta647
It should be
<092111>1
Samuel 21:11,
12.
fta648
Achish may have been his particular name, while Abimelech was the common title
of the Kings of Gath. The word Abimelech signifies Father —
King.
fta649
Ainsworth reads, His behavior, or his sense, reason; and observes,
that it is "properly the taste, as in verse 9,
<180606>Job
6:6, and often elsewhere, which is used both for one's in ward sense or reason,
and outward gesture and demeanour, (as the Gr. here translateth it, face,)
because by it a man is discerned and judged to be wise or foolish, as meats
are discerned by the
taste."
fta650
"Luy melt aussi au coeur ceste finesse." —
Fr.
fta651
"That is, in all circumstances; in every posture of my affairs." —
Horsley.
fta652
"Quand il ne cesse de nous bien-faire?" — Fr. "When he never ceases
from doing us good
?"
fta653
The word
µywn[,
anavim, may also be rendered the afflicted. Our author in his
exposition combines both the ideas of humble and
afflicted.
fta654
"Et qu'il avoit bien occasion de penser que la cruaute d'iceluy ne se pourroit
pas appaiser a le faire mourir de quelque legere mort." —
Fr.
fta655
Those who take this view explain the words as meaning that the humble or
afflicted, upon looking to David, saw how graciously God had dealt with him, and
were enlightened, revived, and encouraged. They also consider, as Calvin himself
does, the humble or afflicted as the persons who speak in the sixth verse,
where, pointing as it were with the finger to David, they say, "This poor man
cried,"
etc.
fta656
This is the rendering adopted by Horsley, who understands by the expression the
illumination of the soul by the light of Divine truth. He reads the verb in the
imperative mood, and his translation of the entire verse is as follows:"Look
towards him, and thou shalt be enlightened; And your faces shall never be
ashamed." This reading is sanctioned by the Septuagint. It supposes two
alterations on the text. First, that instead of
wfybh,
they looked, we should read
wfybh,
habitu, look ye; and this last reading is supported by several of Dr
Kennicott's and De Rossi's MSS. The other alteration is, that instead of
çhynpw,
upeneyhem, their faces, we should read
çkynpw,
upeneykem, your faces. Poole, in defense of reading your instead of
their, observes, "that the change of persons is very frequent in this
book."
fta657
This description seems to have been suggested by Jacob's vision of angels,
recorded in
<013201>Genesis
32:1, 2, "And Jacob went on his way, and the angels of God met him. And when
Jacob saw them he said, This is God's host; and he called the name of
that place Mahanaim," (i.e.,
encampments.)
fta658
"Toute sorte de forteresse et lieu de defense." —
Fr.
fta659
"Et ne s'avent plus de quel cost a se tourner." —
Fr.
fta660
By this affectionate appellation, Hebrew teachers were wont to address their
scholars.
fta661
That is, the anger of God. The face of God is often put for the anger
of God, because this passion manifests itself particularly in the face. Thus
in
<250416>Lamentations
4:16, we read, "The anger [literally faces] of the Lord hath divided
them." And in
<032003>Leviticus
20:3, we read, "I will set my face [that is, my anger] against that
man."
fta662
In his First Epistle,
(<600310>1
Peter 3:10, 11, 12,) he quotes the 12, 13, 14, 15, and 16 verses of this psalm.
He quotes from the
Septuagint.
fta663
"Lesquels il espargne pour un temps, afin de les ruiner eternellement." –
"Whom he spares for a time, to destroy them eternally." –
Fr.
fta664
It is wicked men who are spoken of in the immediately preceding verse; but
they here evidently refers not to them, but to the righteous, mentioned
in the fifteenth verse; and, accordingly, in all the ancient versions, and in
our English Bible, the words the righteous are supplied. It is supposed
by those who make this supplement, that the word
µyqydx,
tsaddikim, has been lost out of the text. But if we read the 16th verse
as a parenthesis, it will not be necessary to make any supplement, and the words
may be read exactly as they are in the Hebrew, They
cried.
fta665
The last clause of this verse is applied in the Gospel of John
(<431936>John
19:36) to Christ, and represented as receiving its fulfillment in
him.
fta666
The word rendered shield is in the Hebrew text
°gm,
magen, which was a short buckler intended merely for defense. The word
rendered buckler is
hnx,
tsinnah, for an account of which see note, p. 64. The tsinnah was
double the weight of the magen, and was carried by the infantry; the magen,
being lighter and more manageable, was used by the cavalry. The tsinnah
answered to the scutum, and the magen to the clypeus,
among the Romans. — See Paxton's Illustrations of Scripture,
vol. 3:pp. 866,
867.
fta667
Those who are of opinion that
rwgs,
segor, is a noun, translate it "the scymitar," and read, "Draw out the
spear, and the scymitar, to oppose my persecutors." According to Drusius,
Vitringa, Michaelis, Dr Kennicott, and others, the word means
sagariv,
or scymitar, a sort of battle-axe, which was used by the Persians, Scythians,
and other nations in ancient
times.
fta668
"Que l'esperance de mon salut surpasse tous les dangers qui me seront livrez.
"—
Fr.
fta669
"C'est, chasse et presse." — Note, Fr. marg. "That is, chase and
pursue
them."
fta670
The allusion here is to the custom of digging pits and putting nets in them,
covered with straw, etc., to catch wild
beasts.
fta671
"Qu'il fait yci contre Saul comme le chef, s'estend a tout le corps, c'est a
dire, tous ses adherens." —
Fr.
fta672
"C'est, desconforter." Note, Fr. marg. "That is, to the
discomfort;"
fta673
"smj
yd[ witnesses of wrong or violence; i.e.,
witnesses deponing to acts of violence, as committed by the person accused. See
<192712>Psalm
27:12." —
Horsley.
fta674
"Ont tasch, de rendre orpheline car il y a ainsi proprement en Hebrieu" —
Fr.
fta675
"When the Orientals," says Boothroyd, "pray seriously in grief, they hide their
face in their bosom:and to this custom the Psalmist here alludes. Rabbi Levi,
Dathe, and others, explain it in like
manner."
fta676
The word is derived from
hkn,
nakah, to strike or to smite. The LXX. render it
mastigev,
scourges; and Jerome reads percutientes, smiters, in which he is
followed by Ainsworth, who understands the word as meaning smiters with the
tongue, or calumniators, and who thinks that the LXX., in translating it
scourges, alluded to the scourge of the tongue, as in
<180521>Job
5:21; and if smiters is the proper rendering, we may certainly conclude,
that as this smiting is represented as done upon the person who was its object
in his absence, it was a smiting by the tongue. At the same time, this critic
observes, that the word may be read the smitten, that is, abjects,
vile persons, as in
<183008>Job
30:8. Dr Kennicott translates it by verbcrones, whipt slaves, vile
scoundrels. Another meaning of the word, according to Buxtorff, is, the
wry-legged, the lame. In this sense it is used in
<100404>2
Samuel 4:4, and 9:3; and hence the epithet of Necho was given to one of
the Pharaohs, who halted in his gait. Thus it easily came to be employed as a
term of contempt. Calvin and the translators of our English Bible agree in the
meaning which they attach to this
word.
fta677
The verb
[rq,
kara, for cut, "is significant of tearing or rending, and by an
easy metaphor, is applicable to wounds inflicted by evil speaking and slander."
—
Walford.
fta678
Domine — Lat.
ynda,
Adonai. — Hebrews "More than fifteen copies collected by Dr
Kennicott have
hwhy
here instead of
ynda
Among which is one of the best manuscripts that has been collated. The Jews, in
later ages, had a superstitious fear of pronouncing the word
hwhy
and therefore inserted
ynda
or
µyhla
,c'est a dire in the place of it very frequently." —
Street.
fta679
"Assavoir, mon ame unique; c'est a dire, solitaire et delaissee." —
Note, Fr. marg. "Namely, my soul alone; that is to say, solitary and
forsaken." See note 3, p. 432. In our English Bible the phrase is, "My darling;"
but David rather means to intimate his forsaken and unprotected condition,
unless God interposed in his behalf. Green reads, "my helpless
person."
fta680
"Devant un grand peuple." —
Fr.
fta681
"C'est, beaucoup de peuple." — Note, Fr. marg. "That is, much
people."
fta682
Horsley takes this view. He reads, "Among a mighty people;" and observes,
that this is the rendering of the Chaldee, and that
µx[,
seems more properly to express strength or power than
number.
fta683
"C'est, ne tienent propos d'amis." — Note, Fr. marg. "That is,
their discourse is not that of
friends."
fta684
"C'est, ce que nous desirions." — Note, Fr. marg. "That is, that
which we desire." French and Skinner read, "Aha! aha! our eye seeth!" "that is,"
they observe, "beholds our enemy in the fallen condition in which we desire to
see him. See verse 25, compare
<199211>Psalm
92:11."
fta685
"C'est, nostre desire nous avons ce que desirions:ou, nostre ame, assavoir
s'esjouisse, comme on dit en nostre langue, Grande chere." — Note, Fr.
marg. "That is, our desire — we have what we desire:or, our soul, that
is to say, is glad:as we say in our language, Great cheer." French and Skinner
read, "Let them not say in their hearts, Aha! our desire!" and observe, "that
our desire! means our desire is accomplished."